summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 04:16:35 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 04:16:35 -0800
commit78a9a35644c582bbc1d96dd4d809a842487019cc (patch)
tree59ea5c2b1027cd0524b43b320d96c5073f2e4915
parentc5a02a15853ae1159334cd1d9c0e589facef6420 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/67479-0.txt12319
-rw-r--r--old/67479-0.zipbin235220 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h.zipbin1676894 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/67479-h.htm16076
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/cover.jpgbin232770 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_154fp.jpgbin208315 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_208fp.jpgbin155926 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_292fp.jpgbin213020 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_338fp.jpgbin245844 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_392fp.jpgbin208143 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpgbin160228 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67479-h/images/i_logo.jpgbin6445 -> 0 bytes
15 files changed, 17 insertions, 28395 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..a94c98f
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #67479 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/67479)
diff --git a/old/67479-0.txt b/old/67479-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 4193e26..0000000
--- a/old/67479-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12319 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Day of Resis, by Lillian Frances
-Mentor
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Day of Resis
-
-Author: Lillian Frances Mentor
-
-Illustrator: Harry L. V. Parkhurst
-
-Release Date: February 23, 2022 [eBook #67479]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed Proofreading
- Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from
- images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DAY OF RESIS ***
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
- THE DAY OF RESIS.
-
-
- BY
- LILLIAN FRANCES MENTOR.
-
-
- ILLUSTRATED BY
- HARRY L. V. PARKHURST.
-
-[Illustration]
-
- NEW YORK:
- COPYRIGHT, 1897, BY
- _G. W. Dillingham Co., Publishers_.
-
- MDCCCXCVII.
-
- [_All rights reserved._]
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS.
-
-
- Chapter Page
- I. The Strange Document 7
- II. Into the Heart of Africa 17
- III. In the Cavern 27
- IV. Death Faces Them 35
- V. The City of “On” 43
- VI. The Banquet 50
- VII. The Law of the Land of On 59
- VIII. The Royal Hunt 73
- IX. The Gold Mine and Cave of Ice 81
- X. The Journey to the Lake 89
- XI. The Fight of the Sea Monsters 94
- XII. The Night of Prayer 101
- XIII. The Accusation 107
- XIV. The Storm 114
- XV. In the Track of the Storm 121
- XVI. Enola Found 129
- XVII. “She is Mad.” 134
- XVIII. Onrai Visits the Priest 139
- XIX. Onrai Confesses his Love 148
- XX. The Agony of Onrai 156
- XXI. In Peril 162
- XXII. “They must Die” 168
- XXIII. A Message from the Priest 179
- XXIV. The Crisis Past 185
- XXV. “He will Marry You” 189
- XXVI. A Strange Discovery 195
- XXVII. In the Hole 201
- XXVIII. Prisoners in the Cavern of the Dead 209
- XXIX. The Death-Trap 219
- XXX. The Cave Dweller’s Funeral 225
- XXXI. Lost in the Cavern 235
- XXXII. The Tortuous Tramp 248
- XXXIII. Again in the World of Light 256
- XXXIV. Again with Friends 261
- XXXV. A Black Surprise 265
- XXXVI. Cleft by the Earthquake 273
- XXXVII. In the Crater 280
- XXXVIII. Killed in the Crevice 290
- XXXIX. The Field of Diamonds 298
- XL. The Camp of the Onians 303
- XLI. The Slaughter 312
- XLII. Buried Alive 323
- XLIII. Lost 331
- XLIV. Out of the Ashes 339
- XLV. Searching for Bodies 347
- XLVI. We Die Together 358
- XLVII. In the City Again 366
- XLVIII. No Hope of Escape 376
- XLIX. The Day of Resis 385
-
-
-
-
- THE DAY OF RESIS.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
- THE STRANGE DOCUMENT.
-
-
-The following letter and document were the first causes of the long
-journey, and strange adventure.
-
-
-“DEAR MISS CAMERON:—You will probably be much surprised to hear from me
-in this out-of-the-way place, but knowing the pleasure you take in
-everything pertaining to Africa, I thought you might be interested in a
-matter which came before my notice recently.
-
-Some months ago I joined a hunting party bound for the interior of
-Africa, and on our return march at Rehenoko we fell in with another
-caravan bound for the coast. Having a common destination, Zanzibar, we
-travelled together. An Abyssinian, Sedai by name, was in charge of this
-caravan. He is a large, powerful man, and very intelligent. I often
-talked with him during the long marches, and one day he told me that he
-had on this trip, come across a strange manuscript, a part of which he
-had been able to decipher, but some words of which he could not make
-out. He asked me to help him decipher the difficult phrases; so that
-evening, after everything had been made snug for the night, Sedai
-produced a piece of goat-skin, on which was inscribed the following
-strange tale.
-
-
-‘Name Philip Harding—English—left England July 6, 1801—Zanzibar,
-February 16, 1802—expedition just left Bagamayo—myself and nine other
-sailors started to overtake it—on 26th, lost our way—wandered long and
-far—hostile tribes—fight—four men killed—others escaped—three die with
-fever, reach mountains—one man killed by lion—discover opening into
-mountain—make torches and enter—companion starved—discovered line of
-broken stones—followed these—found bridge—crossed this—followed stones
-again—found secret door—Land of On—people thought me from another
-planet—lived in temple—strange people—no knowledge or connection with
-outside world—highly civilized in their way—have strange Day of
-Resis—mysterious ceremonies on this day—people never mention it—day
-sacred—here nineteen years one month and sixteen days—made escape—looked
-five days for opening key—removed stone set in cliff behind palm tree
-under eagle’s rock mountain—lifted lever seen in spring—rock door turned
-giving time to pass through—passed into cave—crossed bridge—dropped
-torches in lake, am lost—exhausted—starving—if document ever found write
-friends—growing weaker—can write no mo——’
-
-
-Here the writing ended. The first part, or that part which had been
-written before entering the cave was in regular lines, but the last was
-evidently written after entering the dark cave, or passage, as the
-characters were scattered and very irregular. Sedai intends placing the
-matter before the next party who are about to enter the interior, and
-have them look up the mysterious cave and land. He says that the old
-man, of whom he got the manuscript, is still living, and knows the
-entrance to the cave, in which he found the body of Harding still warm,
-and on it this strange document.
-
-Sedai is a trustworthy fellow, or otherwise I would take no stock in his
-story, or manuscript.
-
-Hoping you may find some interest in this strange tale, I am,
-
- Very Sincerely Yours,
- FRANK BOYD.”
-
-
-Such was the letter and weird tale which came in Enola Cameron’s mail
-one morning in the early nineties. Only the fact of hearing from Frank
-Boyd in Zanzibar surprised her. The story in itself did not surprise
-her, for she had so long made a study of Africa and its dark secrets,
-that nothing pertaining to it seemed strange to her. She was as
-enthusiastic in this research as most women were in studying the art of
-dress and beauty. She had met the great explorer Stanley during his late
-visit to New York, and had read the story of his travels again and
-again. She had met Herbert Warde socially, had overhauled his trophies
-to her heart’s content, and his books had also been added to the long
-shelf of African works in her library. Here poor Jameson’s story had
-filled her eyes with tears, and here, too, she had escorted Glave that
-she might, in confidence, reveal to him the one great desire of her
-heart, and to learn from him the possibility of its fulfillment. She had
-studied the history of the dark continent from every obtainable source.
-
-Works, which for the average woman held no attraction, aroused in her
-the liveliest interest. Her enthusiasm had reached such a pitch that but
-one course seemed open to her, namely, to experience the adventures
-which had made the names of Baker, Grant, Speke, Livingstone and Stanley
-famous. She had passed her twentieth birthday; she was of medium height
-and well-rounded figure, brimming over with health and strength, as was
-shown by her clear, rosy complexion and bright eyes, which lighted up
-with enthusiasm as new thoughts opened to life in her active brain.
-
-There was nothing of the so-called New Woman about her; far from it; she
-was a womanly woman with a great sympathetic heart and kindly nature.
-She was an orphan, her parents having died when she was yet a child,
-leaving her with a life-long friend of the mother. This was Mrs. Graham,
-a most estimable woman, wealthy and moving in the best circle in the
-city in which they lived. Enola had long since learned to look upon Mrs.
-Graham and her kind husband as her second parents, and she was as dearly
-loved by them as were their own children. She had a snug fortune of her
-own and was thoroughly independent.
-
-But now that she had made up her mind to go to Africa and ascertain the
-truth, or fallacy, of the tale which had just reached her, she felt a
-little hesitancy in broaching the subject to her friends. But she was
-not the one to be intimidated so easily, so went direct to the library,
-where she knew that Mr. Graham and Harry, the son, would be, and opened
-the subject at once.
-
-“Uncle,” she said (she always called her second parents uncle and aunt),
-“I am going to Africa, and will want your help.”
-
-Mr. Graham’s glasses fell from his nose, so suddenly did he look up.
-
-“To Africa,” said he; “Well, has it come to this.”
-
-“Exactly,” said Enola. “Now don’t look as if I had declared my intention
-of committing suicide, although in your eyes I suppose the two are
-synonymous.”
-
-“When do you start?” asked Mr. Graham. Having long since learned that to
-cross Enola was to make her the more determined to carry out her own
-plans.
-
-“To-day or to-morrow, or as soon as you can make preparations. Now
-remember, I am only suggesting this adventure; you are the real
-instigator of the project, and have asked me to accompany you, you
-know.”
-
-“Well, if that isn’t a woman for you,” said Mr. Graham, laughing in
-spite of himself. “You come here declaring your intention of going to
-Africa, asking my help and then tell me that it is I who must assume all
-responsibility. Well, I will do it for your sake, but I hope it is not
-to be out of the regular beaten paths of travel in Africa, for it might
-not be pleasant, you know, fighting hostile natives with a woman about.”
-And Mr. Graham again laughed.
-
-“The woman will take care of herself, never fear,” said Enola. “But
-seriously, uncle, I never would have asked you to accompany me on this
-journey, but for your having spoken some time ago of your intention of
-going to France to spend your vacation, and the thought occurred to me
-that you might care to go with me for two reasons. First, of course, to
-be my escort, and secondly, because the adventure would please you. And
-as for the danger, from what I can glean from Mr. Boyd’s letter, I
-should say that we will not meet with any great amount of this, for,
-from the coast to the mountains, the road leads through a comparatively
-open country, and if we start now we will get to Zanzibar about the
-right time to enter the interior. I anticipate but very little trouble
-in reaching the mountains. What will happen after that I cannot say.”
-
-“The adventure will just suit my ideas of such things,” said Mr. Graham,
-“and I will go with you gladly. And you want to start immediately?”
-
-“Why, yes,” said Enola. “This man Sedai was to present the matter before
-the first party entering the interior, and if we should wish to be the
-ones to discover this strange land, we must lose no time in getting to
-Zanzibar. It will not take long to make preparations, will it?”
-
-“Well, no,” said Mr. Graham. “We will take but very little with us from
-this country, for everything can be obtained in Zanzibar. Let us see,”
-and he consults a New York paper. “To-day is Friday and the Paris sails
-from New York next Wednesday. We can leave here on Sunday evening if you
-wish to, and mother and Nellie can get packed in that time, and arrive
-in New York Tuesday morning. We can make what few purchases we need, and
-go on the steamer that same night. Now what do you think of that for
-quick work?”
-
-“I see you are quite as enthusiastic as myself in this matter,” said
-Enola. “But where will we leave Auntie and Nellie while we are making
-our longer journey?”
-
-“Oh, they can stop somewhere in Europe,” said Mr. Graham, “or go on to
-Zanzibar if they wish, and wait there for our return. I am afraid,
-Enola, that you will have harder work to convince them of the
-advisability of this trip, than you have had with me.”
-
-“I am afraid so,” said Enola, “but you must help me.”
-
-“I will do the best I can,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“But look here,” said Harry, who had kept perfectly quiet up to this
-time. “Where do I come in?”
-
-“Why, Harry, I supposed you understood that you were to accompany us,”
-said Enola. “Your father is perfectly willing, I know, and your mother
-will not object when she learns that I am determined on going. It will
-be pleasanter to have you with us, for there will be so few of us at the
-most, and among strangers home faces will be very comforting.”
-
-“It will have to be pleasant or otherwise,” said Harry, “for I intend
-accompanying you, most certainly. I wouldn’t see you take such a journey
-without me. There ought to be two of us with you anyway Enola, so that
-in case anything should happen one of us, you would still have another
-to protect you. It is a serious thing I should judge, to have to trust
-wholly to the half savage negroes who will make up your escort. So we
-must guard against any contingency.”
-
-“Very well,” said Enola, “then it is settled that we start on Sunday
-night.”
-
-“Sunday night if you can get ready and I can get accommodations on the
-steamer,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Don’t worry about me, uncle,” said Enola. “Look out for yourself and
-Auntie. I will be ready,” and saying this Enola turned and left the
-room.
-
-Harry had long since learned to love Enola, but she had told him
-positively when he approached her on the subject of marriage, that she
-only thought of him as a brother, but that sometime she might learn to
-think of him in a different way; until that time, however, he must not
-mention the subject again. Harry had promised, and so the matter had
-rested; but he had not forgotten her words, and he now saw a chance,
-while on this long journey, to win the love he craved.
-
-He was twenty-eight, and by hard work, and strict attention to his
-duties, had been promoted to the position of cashier in the bank of
-which his father was president. He and his father had both left the bank
-for an indefinite period just a few days before our story opens, fully
-decided on taking a long vacation, spending the time in Europe. So
-Enola’s plans had not upset theirs to any great extent; they would now
-take a trip into Africa, instead of through Europe.
-
-When they had thought the matter over for some time, they came to the
-conclusion that the African trip would be more to their liking, for they
-were both good hunters and lovers of adventure. So Harry and his father
-lost no time but went out that same afternoon and made purchases of
-shotguns, rifles and pistols, fishing tackle, and some of the more
-necessary medicines. They trusted to getting everything else which they
-might need in New York and in Zanzibar.
-
-That evening at the dinner table, the subject was brought up before Mrs.
-Graham and Nellie. Both objected, but when Mr. Graham and Harry both
-avowed their intention of accompanying Enola, then the ladies gave their
-consent.
-
-Sunday came around and the party had gotten all ready and started for
-New York. Arriving there some few purchases were made, and then in the
-evening the party boarded the great steamer which was to carry them to
-Southampton. The following day opened up bright and beautiful, Enola
-remarking that this foretold success. The steamer left the dock early
-and moved slowly down the bay, past Governor’s Island, Bedloe’s Island,
-the Statue of Liberty, and then along the Staten Island shore, past
-Quarantine, the forts, Fire Island, Sandy Hook, and then, after a
-glimpse of Coney Island, Brighton, Manhattan Beach and Far Rockaway, the
-steamer turned her nose toward the Old World, and land was soon out of
-sight. The trip was an enjoyable one, the steamer not breaking her
-record, but still reaching Southampton in less than seven days. They did
-not tarry in England, but took one of the Channel steamers for Boulogne
-Sur Mer, and arriving here boarded a train for Paris, which city was
-reached the same night. The following day Mr. Graham looked up a steamer
-for Alexandria, and learned that one sailed for that port on Saturday
-from Marseilles. This was Thursday, so no time must be lost in reaching
-Marseilles. Sleeping accommodations were secured on the night train, and
-the following morning found them in the quaint old city. The day was
-spent in taking a drive along the Mediterranean. It was at a time when
-the Reviera is generally crowded, and the beautiful driveway was filled
-with elegant equipages.
-
-The following morning they took the steamer for Alexandria.
-
-This was the most delightful part of the trip. The sky never looked so
-blue, the water never so calm, the sun never so bright, and the air
-never seemed so pure as on this two weeks’ trip, from Marseilles to
-Alexandria. Stops were made at Algiers, Tunis and at several other
-points before reaching Alexandria, and at these different places, the
-boat stopping for a few hours, our friends disembarked, and made short
-excursions over the towns.
-
-At Alexandria a freight steamer was found bound for Madagascar, and
-arrangements were made with the Captain to give the ladies his cabin,
-Mr. Graham and Harry being satisfied with humbler quarters. Down through
-the Suez Canal, into the Red Sea, out through the Gulf of Aden and then
-into the Indian Ocean, and the little steamer headed due south. This
-trip was rather slow but without much hardship, the Island of Zanzibar
-was at last sighted, and, later in the day, they were taken off in
-lighters.
-
-“The civilized part,” as Enola called it, of the journey was finished,
-and it remained now to make preparations for that other journey, which
-might prove less agreeable and a great deal more dangerous.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
- INTO THE HEART OF AFRICA.
-
-
-After landing at Zanzibar, the labor of equipment began. Bales of cloth
-and boxes of wire, innumerable colored beads and trinkets were shipped
-to Bagamayo in charge of reliable Zanzibari, the most trustworthy of
-African carriers.
-
-Harry first looked up the reputation of Sedai, the Abyssinian, and
-finding this to be good, he then went in search of the man himself. He
-was found on the quay with a lot of natives, and upon Harry telling him
-what he wanted, he followed him to the hotel. Sedai was a monstrous
-fellow, standing fully six and a half feet high, and built like a
-Hercules. His skin was of a bronze color, smooth and shiny; his eyes
-were piercing black, his forehead high, and his face above the average
-in intellect for one of his race.
-
-“You remember Mr. Boyd, do you not?” asked Mr. Graham, when the hotel
-had been reached.
-
-“Perfectly well,” answered the Abyssinian.
-
-“And you believe that the mysterious Land of On exists?”
-
-“I do.”
-
-“I wish to make that belief a certainty. Will you join us and get
-together a proper number of carriers and natives to insure comparative
-safety in making the journey?”
-
-“Gladly,” said Sedai.
-
-“You shall have something more than the usual amount paid for such
-services, for the journey may entail more than the usual amount of work
-and danger.”
-
-“I shall expect nothing more than I have been accustomed to getting,”
-answered the Abyssinian.
-
-“We will decide on that later,” said Mr. Graham, “but tell us now of the
-finding of the goat-skin.”
-
-“I will do so,” said Sedai. “When on my last expedition, far up in the
-country, I heard this story from the mouth of an old man. It may be
-false, but I believe it to be true. Umsaga, that is the name of the old
-man, said: “One day when I was quite a boy I was out hunting on the
-mountain side, and among the undergrowth disclosed a flat stone, which
-had at some remote period covered an opening about four feet square, in
-the side of the mountain. Being curious to know whither the hole led, I
-entered, but had gone only a short distance when I heard a groan. This
-scared me but I determined to learn what it was that had made the noise.
-I returned to the outside and procuring a torch, again entered the cave,
-and followed in the direction from which the sound came, and had not
-gone far when I almost stumbled over the prostrate body of a man. I felt
-it and found it still warm, but upon close examination found that life
-was extinct. He was of the white race, but exposure and starvation had
-tanned and drawn the skin tight over the bones. By his side was a knife,
-and clutched in his hand was a piece of goat-skin, on which he had cut
-strange characters, which I could not decipher. I took the goat-skin and
-never again entered the cave.”
-
-“This was the old man’s story,” continued Sedai, “and offering him a
-piece of cloth for the goat-skin, he eagerly accepted it and I left
-him.”
-
-“And you could read it?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“I was for a time in the service of an Englishman in my own country and
-knew some English. I have learned more since, but I could not make out
-all of the letters. With Mr. Boyd’s help, however, all was made plain.
-It is here,” and Sedai saying this, handed the parchment to Mr. Graham.
-
-The party gathered around Mr. Graham and examined the goat-skin closely.
-
-“And the old man never sought to solve the mystery?” said Harry.
-
-“So he said,” answered Sedai.
-
-“This parchment tells us how to leave this strange country, when once it
-is entered,” said Mr. Graham, “but it does not tell how to find the
-secret door which is to admit us.”
-
-“The sailor found it,” said Enola, “and it seems to me that we ought
-to.”
-
-“Well, we will never know until we get to the point where we may expect
-to find it,” said Mr. Graham. “How far is it, Sedai, to this mountain,
-through which we will have to go to find the strange country?”
-
-“About three hundred miles,” said Sedai, “through a country not
-difficult to travel, and among natives not usually hostile.”
-
-“Can you be ready to start to-morrow?” asked Mr. Graham of Sedai.
-
-“I can,” said Sedai.
-
-“Then be at Bagamayo to-morrow at daybreak, ready to start.”
-
-“I will be there,” answered Sedai, and with this he left.
-
-That day a Mr. Bruce called on Mr. Graham, making a request to accompany
-the expedition, and Mr. Graham, having looked up his reference and found
-that he was a Scotchman of first-class standing both socially and
-financially, he consented to his accompanying them. Later in the day the
-party crossed over to Bagamayo, so as to be there for an early start in
-the morning.
-
-Early on the following morning the caravan was drawn up and carefully
-inspected by Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham, Harry and Enola. Twenty donkeys and
-one hundred carriers, with one cart, were to transport the goods of
-barter. A double relay of six carriers was detailed to carry each of the
-sedan chairs of Mrs. Graham and Nellie, after having learned that the
-country through which they would pass would be open, and the tribes not
-hostile had decided to accompany the caravan. They were desirous of
-seeing the strange land and people. Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry had
-procured horses from an Arab in Bagamayo, and when the caravan was drawn
-up it made an imposing sight, and one well calculated to inspire hostile
-tribes with a wholesome fear.
-
-At six o’clock, with the sun shining brightly, and amid the shouts of
-many Arabs and natives who had assembled to see them depart, the caravan
-moved slowly out of Bagamayo. The American flag was unfurled, and
-floated merrily in the breeze at the head of the column. Out through a
-narrow lane they passed, the sun speeding to the west, beckoning them
-on. Loveliness glowed around them, the fertile fields, rich vegetation,
-strange trees bordering their path, the jubilant sounds of many insects,
-the cry of cricket and pewit, all seemed to tell them that they had
-started.
-
-The first camp was only five miles distant, and the next few days were
-spent in completing the preparations for their long land journey. After
-all was in readiness the caravan again started. From here on the roads
-were mere footpaths, leading through fields in which naked women were at
-work, who looked up and giggled as they passed. Passing on they entered
-an open forest. Reaching the Kingimi, they passed over a bridge of
-felled trees, made by some previous party.
-
-Harry came to the side of Enola’s chair and laughingly said:
-
-“One would think from the half-sad expression in your eyes, that you
-were already regretting having taken this trip.”
-
-“You are mistaken, Harry; I was simply lost in admiration of the
-beautiful scene about us.”
-
-“Yes, it is beautiful,” said Harry, “but it is so different from what I
-have been used to, that I often find myself thinking, or wondering if it
-is not all a dream, and if I will not wake up some morning in my room at
-home, and find that I have only visited these lands in my dreams.”
-
-“Yes, it is decidedly out of the ordinary,” laughed Enola, as she saw
-the serious look in Harry’s face; “but if you were as well read in
-African history and lore of the people as I am, you would accept all
-this as genuine at once. Listen. For centuries Africa has been known as
-the Dark Continent. The edges of this immense tract have been known as
-far back as history goes. Egypt, on the North, is the oldest government
-on earth; while the nations bordering on the Mediterranean and Red seas,
-were actors in the earliest recorded histories. Still, Africa to-day is
-an unknown land. That Africa was a rich country, was proven by the
-treasures brought from the interior by the rivers Nile, Niger and Congo.
-That it was populous, was demonstrated by the millions of slaves
-furnished by the native tribes to the outside world. For curiosity
-alone, explorations were made in the early part of the century; but it
-remained with Livingstone to first open up the Dark Continent, and with
-Stanley, to pierce its very heart. Africa is to-day, however, a mystery
-which, it seems, will never be penetrated. Strange stories come to us of
-people never seen by white men, of customs foreign to all history, of
-abandoned cities, of desolated countries. Africa is synonymous with
-mystery and darkness, and nothing seems strange to me which is connected
-with it.”
-
-“Such words should be convincing,” said Harry, “but my education in life
-has been too practical to realize that there is so much mystery left in
-the world in this, the nineteenth century.”
-
-“It will all be real enough before we get back to civilization, I have
-an idea,” said Enola.
-
-“Well, it looks real enough now,” said Harry. “This moving caravan,
-those hippopotami in the river, and the antelope in the forest, all
-scout the idea of there being anything uncanny about our present
-surroundings.”
-
-And so days passed, some amid pleasant surroundings, and others in a
-part of the country not so agreeable.
-
-One day they passed through a continuous jungle. The path was only a
-foot wide, each side being bordered with thorny plants and creepers, the
-spiky twigs of which were as sharp as needles. The entire party was
-badly scratched with these irritating twigs, and the caravan was in a
-sad plight when it reached Msuwa that night. The chief of this tribe was
-very kind to the tired and wounded party, however, and they remained in
-this camp two days. After leaving here, the country was open and
-beautiful, presenting a natural park, and the roads were good.
-
-They reached the Ungerangeri River on the evening of the twenty-fourth
-day, where they encamped, and on the following morning crossed the river
-and entered the Wakami territory. Five days later they reached the
-Wassagahha district. Here several of the party were stricken with fever,
-and several days were lost, but all getting better at last, the caravan
-again moved on. Away off to the North and West, could be seen a long
-range of mountains, in which, Sedai informed them, was situated the
-hidden country of “On.”
-
-Shortly after leaving here they entered a very wild tract. Numberless
-antelope, spring-bok, zebra and giraffes were seen, but upon their
-approach they would scamper away. Here was a hunter’s paradise. What
-nobleman’s reserve in civilization could compare with this vast expanse
-of field and forest? How small and insignificant would they seem in
-comparison! The first herd of elephant was also seen here, but they
-passed them by without disturbing them. That evening they entered the
-Usugara district, and although the mountains were a considerable number
-of miles nearer, they still looked just as far away. The atmosphere in
-this country is so clear it makes distances very deceiving. It was a
-mountain world which they looked upon, for peak beyond peak, cone beyond
-cone, fold above fold, they rolled away like so many waves.
-
-“We shall soon descend into the valley and across this to those distant
-mountains directly west of us, at the base of which we shall find the
-village in which lives the old man of whom I obtained the parchment. We
-will reach there in four marches,” said Sedai.
-
-“And you say there are lions and tigers in the valley?” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes,” answered Sedai, “and this part of the journey will be very
-dangerous.”
-
-And this proved to be true, for two evenings later, when the supper had
-been eaten and all had been made snug for the night, Harry and Enola
-came very near falling victims to one of these ferocious beasts. They
-had wandered a little distance from the camp, and had sat down on a
-mossy bank for a few moments’ talk before going to bed. They had been
-here only a short time when they heard a rustle in the bushes, and
-turning they saw, standing not ten yards away, with his yellow eyes
-glowing through the semi-darkness, and his long tail swaying from side
-to side, an immense lion. Harry had not brought his rifle, and they were
-at the mercy of the beast. The lion seemed to realize this, for he
-quietly settled down on his haunches and watched them intently.
-
-“Listen,” said Harry, and his lips hardly moved, “he will make a leap
-for us, and when he does, stoop low and run toward him. We will try to
-pass under him while he is in the air, and before he alights and turns
-we may be able to reach camp.”
-
-“I understand,” said Enola.
-
-The lion again rose to his feet, and then settling on his haunches
-prepared to spring.
-
-“Be ready,” said Harry. “Now,” and he darted forward, but stopped again
-as soon as he could, for Enola’s hand had left his and she had fallen.
-There she lay with the lion’s paw resting across her breast. Harry could
-see that she had neither lost consciousness nor presence of mind, for
-she was gazing steadfastly into the eyes of the huge beast.
-
-It was a terrible moment. Harry was afraid to move or cry for help, for
-fear of the lion seizing Enola and making for the bush.
-
-All this time the lion was watching Harry intently, seeming to know that
-interference would come from that quarter. But he was as powerless to
-help Enola as if he had been bound hand and foot. He could see that she
-was becoming weak from terror and loss of blood, and that she could
-scarcely breathe owing to the weight of that fearful paw on her breast.
-Her eyes closed several times, and Harry could see that she would soon
-be unconscious. Something must be done. Would the lion, if he made a
-rush for him, turn his attention from Enola long enough for her to get
-out of reach? It mattered little what became of himself if he could but
-save Enola.
-
-Harry seized a short piece of wood lying near him and made a rush for
-the lion. The lion raised on his haunches as Harry struck him a powerful
-blow between the eyes.
-
-“Roll out of the way,” said Harry.
-
-Enola rolled over once and then staggered to her feet, but sank down
-again too weak to move farther. The lion was dazed for an instant by the
-blow, but only for an instant, and with a lightning stroke of the paw,
-struck Harry on the shoulder, knocking him senseless and bleeding on the
-ground.
-
-“Help,” cried Enola, but the sound was so faint that she despaired of
-its reaching the camp. Nevertheless it was heard, and the commotion
-caused the lion to turn to see what was happening. That look was his
-death warrant, for a bullet struck him squarely in the eye, and he
-rolled over with scarcely a groan, dead. One paw was lying across
-Harry’s neck, as though defying them even in death to take his prey from
-him.
-
-Mr. Bruce rushed up gun in hand, and with several of the carriers bore
-Enola and Harry to the camp. Restoratives were administered and Enola
-soon regained consciousness, but Harry lay in a stupor for hours. Both
-were badly torn by the claws of the lion, and it was several days before
-the caravan could move on.
-
-The journey from here on, was through an open forest, watered by
-numerous streams which sprung from the mountains. Their progress was
-somewhat impeded by these streams, but two evenings later they camped
-near the village in which dwelt the old man, who was going to show them
-the entrance to the cave. Was he still alive and would they find him?
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
- IN THE CAVERN.
-
-
-Early the following morning, Sedai went into the village to find the old
-man Umsaga. After much inquiry he learned that the old man still lived
-but was very feeble. He went to his hut and telling him what he wanted,
-and that he would be well paid for the information which he would give
-to the party, the old man agreed to go. Sedai had to support him, for he
-was too feeble to walk alone. They reached the camp and Sedai acting as
-interpreter, Mr. Graham asked Umsaga:
-
-“Do you know where the opening to the cave is?”
-
-The old man made quite a long speech, which when interpreted ran as
-follows:
-
-“I will show you the opening on condition that you take none of the
-carriers or soldiers with you, and for this service I demand one hundred
-yards of cloth, and one pack of beads. The opening is about four hours’
-march from here, and one of your men will have to carry me to the place,
-as I will not allow either my countrymen, or your carriers to accompany
-us. If you will agree to this I will go with you to-day, to-morrow, or
-any time that you wish.”
-
-“We will remain here to-day to settle up with our carriers, and
-to-morrow morning we will have him show us the opening.”
-
-Sedai interpreted this to Umsaga, and then helped him back to the
-village.
-
-The caravan had only been engaged to go this far, but it was decided to
-have it wait three months for them. If they had not returned at the end
-of that time, the carriers need wait no longer. They had paid the
-natives well for their work, and had promised them still more for the
-return trip if they would but wait for them. They hoped that these
-inducements would hold them until the expiration of the three months.
-Arrangements were made with the chief of the village to give sustenance
-and shelter to the members of the caravan during this time.
-
-Late in the afternoon, the goods promised Umsaga, besides a liberal
-present to the chief were sent to the village, after which the remaining
-bales and boxes were carried up the mountain side to a place designated
-by Umsaga. This place was near the opening of the mountain, and here the
-party camped for the night.
-
-Early the following morning, Sedai went into the village and helped the
-old man up the mountain. Umsaga directed them in the way to go, and it
-was not long before they reached a level spot well up on the mountain.
-The trees in this vicinity appeared to have been planted in the far
-distant past, with a peculiar regard for regularity. A broad avenue of
-stately trees of an unknown species to the travelers, led directly to
-the face of the cliff. It suggested that the hand of man had long ago
-intended that they should serve as a hint of the possibilities within
-the mountain.
-
-The party moved through the avenue and halted at the extreme end. Here
-the high cliff seemed to stop all further progress, but Umsaga hobbled
-up to the rock barrier and with the help of Sedai, removed some of the
-bushes growing at the base, and disclosed a large flat stone leaning
-against it. This, Sedai with difficulty moved aside, opening to view an
-entrance about four feet in diameter. All started forward and gazed
-intently into the darkness. It required considerable courage to even
-think of entering this dark passage which the sunlight penetrated but a
-few feet.
-
-For hours the men labored in transferring the bales and boxes to the
-cavern, where they were to remain until their return. Torches had been
-procured from the natives, and lighting one of these the party started
-on their long underground journey. The passage was very narrow for about
-twenty yards, and was very smooth and clear cut, but at the end of this
-distance a vaulted cave, lofty and wide, opened before them. The dim
-light of the torch lit up this vast subterranean cavern but
-indifferently, the roof being so high that it could just be seen in the
-darkness.
-
-The goods were stored safely and the journey commenced in earnest. The
-men carried what provisions and torches they thought would be needed in
-the march across the cave. They had gone but a short distance when Enola
-and Harry, who were a little in advance of the others, stumbled over
-something, which the light of the torch revealed as the body of a man.
-The skin, dry as parchment was drawn tightly over the bones; the eyes
-were sunken; the head was covered with a growth of long hair; the hands,
-which with their long finger-nails looked like talons, clutched the
-garment at the throat, as if the man, when dying, had tried to tear it
-away, in order to gain greater freedom to breathe. This garment was all
-that the body was clothed in, but around the neck of the dead was a
-chain of gold engraved in a peculiar manner and in which diamonds and
-opals were set. The ends of the chain were attached in front to a
-strange red stone, that resembled liquid fire.
-
-Mr. Graham unfastened the garment, and slipped it off. A solid substance
-was discovered inserted in the middle of the back, and slitting the
-garment with a knife, a piece of thin, highly polished hard wood was
-revealed. Tracings were found on it which seemed to be the diagram or
-map of a country; but these were so dim it was difficult to discover
-what they represented. After studying further, however, a circle was
-seen in the corner with the word “ON” written in its centre. This then
-told the tale; this was a map showing the location of the mysterious
-country. On the other side were more tracings. A straight line was drawn
-from one corner to the centre, where a hole about an inch deep was cut.
-On the opposite side of this hole the tracing continued in a straight
-line, but just before reaching the corner it turned to the left and
-ended at the edge of the block. Nothing more could be made out until Mr.
-Bruce, who had looked at it more closely, and whose eyes seemed keener
-than those of the others, discovered the letter “u” and a little ways
-further the letters “g” and “e.” All looked at the tracing intently for
-a few moments trying to guess the riddle. It was finally decided that
-the “u” was the first letter of underground, and “ge” the last two
-letters of passage. This then was the path to be followed through the
-cave. Along the edge of the block could be faintly discerned the name
-“Philip Harding;” this was the body of the man who long ago had visited
-the mysterious land, and had suffered and died in this cave. This was he
-who had given them the knowledge of the hidden country, and who, years
-after, was staring at them with those sightless eyes that seemed to warn
-them back.
-
-“How terrible,” said Mrs. Graham.
-
-“Yes,” said Enola, “my heart turns sick at the sight. And to think that
-he died so near help and liberty.”
-
-“And do you still feel like going on?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“Yes,” said Enola, “for now my doubts are at rest; all the fears that I
-had of this strange country being a myth are gone. Success seems sure
-now and all our long journey has not been in vain. But how strange that
-this body should have lain here all these years and not decayed.”
-
-“There must be some preserving quality in the atmosphere of this cave,”
-said Mr. Bruce, “or else the body would have turned to dust long since.”
-
-“But come,” said Mr. Graham, “we must yet find the line of broken stone
-which is mentioned in the document.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “the block would be of little use to us in this
-vast cavern without some better guide than its tracings.”
-
-So the party began looking for the string of broken stone, and found it
-but a short distance from the body. From here on the cave widened, and
-the roof became too lofty to longer be in the rays of the torch.
-Monstrous stalactite formations hung from the ceiling, and tremendous
-stalagmite pillars reached from the floor into the darkness far
-overhead. These pillars were of fantastic shapes. Some were perfectly
-symmetrical, others irregular, but all were of wondrous beauty, their
-surfaces being covered with delicate tracery as fine as lace. On every
-hand could be heard the dropping of lime-water forming new pillars. Ages
-must have passed since this cave was cut out of the solid rock by the
-action of some subterranean sea, or by a weakening and wasting away of
-the lighter strata, or by some tremendous convulsion of nature, which,
-raising but the upper part of the mountain, had left this vast open
-space.
-
-A little further on a halt was made for the midday meal, and after this
-had been partaken of, Harry and Enola walked a little apart from the
-others, and sat down on some of the broken stone to talk over their
-future plans.
-
-“Harry,” said Enola, “I am a little slow in doing so, but I want to
-thank you for having saved me from the jaws of that fearful lion. While
-I was lying beneath the paw of that awful beast, I for one short moment
-wished that I had not come.”
-
-“And what did you think I would do?” asked Harry.
-
-“Just what you did do,” said Enola, “A brave man could not have done
-otherwise. But there are few brave men when it comes to a question of
-their own lives, or those of others. There must be no selfishness where
-bravery is to play a part, and it is this unselfishness that must be
-rewarded, and I can only do this by thanking you, and by telling you
-that I appreciate the brave act.”
-
-“Let us forget that fearful moment,” said Harry. “It was little enough
-to do for a life-long friend, and I would do the same thing over again a
-thousand times if the opportunities should offer.”
-
-“Let us hope that they will not,” said Enola.
-
-“It is hard to tell in this strange country,” said Harry.
-
-At this moment, they heard a loud shout to the right. They could see
-their friends rushing in the direction of the sounds, and Enola and
-Harry hurried to join them. Nellie was standing wringing her hands and
-trying to explain how she and Mr. Bruce were walking along leisurely,
-when he suddenly dropped out of sight, the torch being extinguished
-leaving her in utter darkness. She had called to him, but receiving no
-answer, had shouted for the others, whom she could just see in the
-torchlight some distance from her. Taking torches they went to where Mr.
-Bruce had so mysteriously disappeared, calling to him constantly. They
-proceeded carefully for fear of falling into the same pit; and it was
-well that they did so, for before them, gaping as if anxious to swallow
-up the whole party, was an abyss opening into the very bowels of the
-earth. They leaned far over the edge and peered into the darkness,
-calling, but no answer came to them, and they felt assured that Mr.
-Bruce was lost.
-
-Harry brought a coil of fine silk rope, and fastening one end to a
-stalagmite, prepared to descend into the darkness. Sedai pushed him
-gently aside, however, and taking one of the torches between his teeth,
-he let himself down. Down, down he went, until he could see a black
-torrent rushing madly through the crevice. He saw a rock near him, and
-swung so as to land upon it. He could see but a few feet about him and
-Mr. Bruce was nowhere visible. He called again and again, and once he
-thought he heard a faint answer. He grasped the rope and jumped into the
-stream and let it bear him down until, clinging to a jagged rock he saw
-Mr. Bruce. He swung toward him, and catching him under the arms, began
-working his way back. This was tedious work, and would have been an
-impossibility to a man not endowed with Sedai’s herculean strength, but
-happily Sedai was equal to the task and soon had Mr. Bruce on the rock.
-He gave the signal to those above, and tying the rope under Mr. Bruce’s
-arms, he was pulled to the surface. The rope came falling back, and
-Sedai, hand over hand, rejoined his companions. It took some time to
-restore Mr. Bruce to consciousness, but he was finally brought around.
-
-After he became stronger he said that he had fallen head first, but
-hearing a rush of waters, he clasped his hands above his head in the
-manner of divers, and thus broke the blow which his head otherwise would
-have sustained. He had gone down a hundred feet he thought, but had then
-began to rise again, and reaching the surface he had grasped the first
-object which his hand came in contact with, which proved to be the rock
-upon which Sedai had found him. Then he saw Sedai coming and lost
-consciousness. The party moved no farther that day but on the following
-morning they took up the journey with renewed vigor.
-
-They had but one fear, and that was as to the possibility of their
-finding a door when they had reached the other side of the cavern. This
-did not worry them a great deal, for the path laid out for them to
-follow both by the broken stones and the tracings on the block of wood,
-led to one point and this would undoubtedly be near the stone door, but
-the secret of the spring had not been learned, and they might have
-trouble in finding it.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- DEATH FACES THEM.
-
-
-The next morning they had gone but a short distance when they came to a
-vast inland lake. The bridge mentioned in the manuscript stood before
-them, and mounting this they startled to cross the lake. They had
-followed this about four miles when they came to a break in the solid
-masonry. The hole was fully eight feet wide, and it was a serious
-question as to how they were to get to the opposite side; but Sedai
-offered to tie the rope to his arm and leap across. The end of the rope
-could be fastened and the ladies and Mr. Graham could cross over, while
-Mr. Bruce and Harry could make the leap as did Sedai.
-
-This Sedai did, and fastening one end of the rope to one of the huge
-stones, which had evidently come from the break, Mr. Bruce and Harry
-held the other end, and Mrs. Graham and Enola worked their way slowly
-across. Nellie then grasped the rope and was half way over, when a
-terrible commotion was heard near the bridge, and a spout of water was
-sent thirty feet into the air. The whole party was deluged; the torches
-were put out, and when their first surprise was over, they saw with
-horror that Nellie had loosened her hold on the rope and had dropped
-into the water. Hastily relighting the torches, they saw Nellie
-disappearing in the swift current. It took but a second for Mr. Bruce to
-throw off his jacket and plunge in after her. He hoped by the help the
-current and his long easy strokes to overtake her. He could just see her
-above the surface of the water about one hundred yards ahead of him,
-evidently fast giving out. He strained every nerve, put forth every
-effort, resorted to every means to force himself through the water, and
-he could see that he was gaining slowly. He called to her to keep her
-hands and feet moving and to keep up courage. He could see her beating
-the water making frantic efforts to keep afloat, but her struggles were
-becoming weaker and weaker, and at last they ceased altogether and she
-began to sink when he was only a few feet away. Making one grand final
-effort he caught her by the hair just as she was sinking beneath the
-surface.
-
-Grasping her about the waist, and holding her head above the water with
-one arm, he tried to swim out of the current. This was a hard task, but
-he was an excellent swimmer, and nearly succeeded. But the struggle was
-an unequal one and having but one hand to use, he soon found that the
-current was getting the better of him. He now threw Nellie over his
-shoulder and grasping her dress between his teeth, he in this way gained
-the use of both hands, and soon made his way into more quiet water.
-Turning he saw the flickering torches far in the distance, but close at
-hand were two round balls that shone like fire. The water was terribly
-agitated and he soon found himself struggling against waves like those
-thrown up by the paddles of a steamboat.
-
-Nearer and nearer came those fearful eyes, and Mr. Bruce thought all was
-lost. Happily for Nellie she had fainted, so she was spared the terror
-of this new danger. Mr. Bruce was not one to give up, however, as long
-as there was a shadow of a hope, and he was thinking hard to devise a
-means to escape this monster. Those eyes were nearing him, and in an
-instant he would feel the hot breath in his face. Down he sank holding
-Nellie about the waist. Rising to the surface again he started for the
-lights. He was afraid to look back for fear of seeing those fearful eyes
-following him. Larger and larger grew the lights, nearer and nearer he
-came to his friends. His strength was fast failing but he must not give
-up when so near to those who could rescue them. A few strokes more and
-he was in the radius of the torchlight, and a shout of encouragement
-from his friends greeted him. This seemed to rouse Nellie for she gave a
-long sigh.
-
-“Throw your arms about my neck and hold on for your life,” said Mr.
-Bruce, and Nellie having done this it left his mouth free, and he
-breathed with greater ease.
-
-“Look behind you,” called Mr. Graham, and looking over his shoulder, he
-saw those awful eyes again, with the huge black body, following them. He
-turned and faced the monster again, just as it was opening its cavernous
-jaws. Once more he sank bidding Nellie to hold her breath. The huge mass
-passed over him, and coming to the surface he saw the great black body
-going straight ahead at a fearful speed. The serpent made a big circle
-and then turned and came toward them again. Mr. Bruce was nearly
-exhausted and felt that he could not risk again that terrible plunge
-under the passing monster, and still have strength to reach the pier. He
-could see Harry and Sedai preparing to swim to them, and knew that
-Nellie and he were safe if the terrible serpent did not make another
-charge on them. Sedai now came towards them holding a flaming torch.
-Back of them but a few yards could be seen the sea monster again making
-for them. They were fast nearing the bridge. The rope was thrown to them
-and Mr. Bruce fastening this around Nellie’s body, she was pulled out of
-the water. It was then thrown to Mr. Bruce and Sedai, just as the
-terrible monster opened his jaws. Sedai thrust his blazing torch into
-the creature’s mouth, and then with Mr. Bruce, hurried hand over hand up
-the rope.
-
-The water was lashed into foam by the struggles of the serpent, and
-bullets from Harry’s revolver seemed to have no effect. They got a good
-look now at the monster. The largest part of the body was just back of
-the head and tapered from this to the end of the tail. The head was at
-least six feet long, and flat, or nearly so. The wide jaws, when open,
-showed a double set of irregular teeth. The tongue was forked. A large
-horn about three feet long sprang from the head just back of the
-nostrils, and from this to the point of the tail was a succession of
-smaller horns. Just back of the large horn or tusk, was a hole through
-which the monster forced a stream of water high into the air. Three
-great fins on either side of the body were tipped with long claws
-looking as if they might be used for crawling. Its rage was terrible
-when maddened by the flaming torch and by the escaping of its prey.
-
-The party now hurried on over the bridge after they had transferred the
-packs by a succession of leaps across the break. The monster followed
-them for awhile but finally turned and swam away. They reached the end
-of the bridge about two hours later, and calculated that it must be
-about ten miles long. Leaving the shores of the lake they again followed
-the line of broken stone, and two days later reached the opposite wall.
-
-For awhile they sought a possible opening in the wall, but could nowhere
-detect any evidence of human handiwork. To and fro they went, pressing
-hard upon every piece of rock which projected from the wall. This they
-kept up all of the first day, and they laid down to rest that night
-pretty well disheartened. Their provisions were getting low for they had
-calculated in getting through in much less time. They had been living on
-short rations for the past twenty-four hours, but now they had but a few
-crackers left. They still had hopes, however, of finding this secret
-door on the morrow, when they would find food in plenty on the other
-side of the wall. The following morning after a frugal repast of dry
-crackers, they again began the search. They first examined the wall
-directly in front of them, but could see no crack or crevice which might
-indicate the presence of a door. They had carefully followed the line of
-broken stone, and they might reasonably expect to find the door at the
-end of this.
-
-Striking on the rock with a hammer at different places, they could not
-distinguish any difference in tone, which would indicate a thinner part
-of the rock wall. They examined the rock for about four hundred feet,
-and all seemed perfectly solid. They discovered in their search many
-holes about four feet square, two feet wide, and three feet deep. These
-were arranged along the side of the cavern, having been cut in the wall,
-and upon close inspection they found them to contain what proved to be
-mummies. These were wrapped in heavy sacking, many of the envelopes
-being of fantastic colors. Harry took one of these bundles from its
-place and cut it open. A number of cloth coverings were found under the
-outside wrapping, and then came a covering of large leaves which
-crumbled into dust when exposed. Next to the leaves was a wrapping of
-fine silk. This having been removed the body was discovered. It was that
-of a man who must have been more than six feet in height when alive. The
-head was brought forward between the knees, which were drawn up; the
-skin was dry and hard and drawn closely over the bones; the hair was
-long and still retained a beautiful lustre. The head was small but
-beautifully formed; the hands and feet were also small and symmetrical.
-Inside the covering were a number of gold balls about one half inch in
-diameter; two characters were engraved on one side of each of these
-balls. Examining them closely, Mr. Bruce declared that the hieroglyphics
-were undoubtedly Egyptian. Around the neck of the mummy was a chain of
-gold set with diamonds and opals. This chain was similar to the one
-found around Harding’s neck, but the bright red stone was missing.
-
-Eight o’clock had arrived and they were still searching for the opening.
-A supper of crackers had been eaten. They were already suffering from
-the pangs of thirst. The water gourds which had been refilled before
-leaving the lake were again empty. The food, with the exception of a few
-crackers, was gone.
-
-Mrs. Graham and Nellie laid down to get a few hours’ rest, but Enola,
-with the men of the party, kept bravely on in search of the opening.
-Midnight came and found them still searching. Hungry and thirsty, they,
-too, at last lay down, feeling that they must reserve their strength as
-much as possible. Their few hours of sleep, however, did not seem to
-refresh them, for the thirst had made them restless. The whole party
-arose about the same time and the search was soon taken up again. They
-examined the wall more closely, going farther on either side, but with
-no success.
-
-Late in the afternoon Mrs. Graham became so feverish for want of water
-that Sedai started with two large gourds for the lake. If they should
-find the opening in the meantime, they were to leave directions as to
-how to open the rock door, and then pass on. About midnight Mr. Graham
-also became delirious, and Mrs. Graham’s and Nellie’s lips were so
-swollen that they could scarcely articulate. Mr. Bruce and Harry,
-although suffering terribly, still kept up the search. All night they
-tramped up and down the cave, trying to find the secret opening. Toward
-morning they became so famished and their tongues and lips were so
-parched and swollen they could not make each other understand what they
-were saying. Enola alone seemed to retain her clear and unfailing
-senses.
-
-Mr. Bruce and Harry had thrown themselves on the ground at last,
-thoroughly worn out, their lips and tongues swollen terribly. Mrs.
-Graham and Nellie were mumbling something in their delirium which was
-unintelligible. This drove Mr. Bruce and Harry nearly frantic, and again
-they arose and took up the search. Their breath came hard through their
-parched throats, and their eyes were wild and glaring. Mr. Bruce walked
-over to where Mrs. Graham and Nellie were lying, and suddenly drawing
-his knife, he slit the sleeve of his jacket and shirt, and made a deep
-incision in his arm; then carefully raising Nellie’s head with his other
-arm he let the warm blood from the wound drop between her half-open
-lips; then going to Mrs. Graham he partially alleviated her sufferings
-in the same way. Finally overcome with weakness Mr. Bruce fell back, and
-Harry, who had stood by looking at the strange sight, but hardly
-realizing what Mr. Bruce was doing, now came up, and tearing off the
-sleeve of the shirt, bound the arm tightly above the wound. Enola stood
-watching this self-sacrificing act on the part of Mr. Bruce, and when
-Harry had bandaged his arm, she turned and walked toward the wall,
-mumbling something to herself. Harry saw that she, too, was fast
-becoming delirious, but he was powerless to help her, he being almost
-too weak now to again take up the search.
-
-He arose to his feet, however, and again joining Enola, they together
-staggered from point to point of the wall, feverishly looking for some
-indication of a revolving stone. Hours had passed since Sedai had left
-them, but they seemed like years to his suffering companions. Praying
-for his return, praying for deliverance from this cavern, Enola felt her
-senses leaving her. She fought against this but to no purpose. Harry
-finally sank to the ground in a delirium. Enola gazed at him for a
-moment, and making one final effort, stumbled along leaning against the
-wall for support. She had gone but five or six paces when her strength
-gave way entirely, and she sank back upon the rock floor. Death seemed
-inevitable.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
- THE CITY OF ON.
-
-
-But Enola had not lost consciousness entirely when she sank to the
-floor. She had rested there only a moment, when she thought she felt
-something pushing her. She half rose, and looking over her shoulder
-thought she saw a ray of light. Could she be dreaming? Was this some
-awful torturing vision come to torment her in her fearful suffering? No.
-She could see the sun, the sky, and far away she caught a glimpse of a
-beautiful city. She now realized it all; her weight upon this particular
-part of the floor had set the door to moving. She must move through the
-opening quickly. Her senses were roused to action by this revelation.
-She knew the door would revolve and close again perhaps forever.
-
-She had by some strange fatality accidentally found the means of opening
-it, for which they had searched so vainly, but while in such a
-semi-conscious state she might not be able to repeat the operation. She
-knew where to find the spring on the other side, and as the opening
-began to grow smaller, the door slowly swinging into its place again,
-she gave one frantic leap and turned to find herself cut off from the
-rest by the solid wall of rock.
-
-From the ground she began to tear bits of grass and succulent weeds, and
-partially allaying her thirst with these, she hurried to the point which
-might be, she thought, the hiding place of the spring. Almost tearing
-the flesh from her hands in pulling the underbrush away, she was
-rewarded by seeing a loose piece of rock set into the solid cliff.
-Removing this the lever was before her. It took nearly all the strength
-she had left to move the lever, but she was rewarded at last by seeing
-the door swing on its pivots again. Peering through the opening she saw
-the light of a torch moving quickly toward the door, and she knew that
-it was Sedai returning. Sedai had caught the glimpse of daylight, and
-hastening his steps, he had moistened the lips of the sufferers, and
-when the door again swung open he hurried through with Mrs. Graham, and
-as often as Enola would lift the heavy lever he would carry out another
-of the prostrated companions.
-
-One by one, all were carried out, and Sedai returned for the arms and
-accoutrements. Ladened with these he lacked the rapidity of motion
-necessary, and the massive stone as it revolved, caught him squarely
-between the shoulders. Slowly the grinding mass pressed closer, while
-Enola, petrified with horror for the moment, pressed her hands to her
-throbbing temples. Finally, realizing the fearful position that Sedai
-was in, she seized one of the rifles, and using it as a lever, placed it
-in the crack of the door and threw her whole weight against it. At the
-same time Sedai, with a herculean effort of his mighty muscles, strained
-every nerve, pushed himself through, and fell on the ground bruised and
-bleeding. Enola, taking one of the water gourds which Sedai had tramped
-so far to fill, placed it to the lips of the noble fellow, and then gave
-the others a very little. Her strength now gave out again and she sank
-down thoroughly worn out.
-
-The few drops of water had partially roused the others, and Mr. Bruce
-especially seemed to have regained complete consciousness. He looked
-about him, but it had grown dark and he could see nothing; but he could
-hear, and the cries of many beasts reached his ears. He tried hard to
-remember how he had come here, and wondered where his companions were.
-The cries of the wild beasts, however, brought him back to himself, and
-he knew that a fire must be built or the beasts would be on him. He rose
-and began looking for some dry twigs with which to build the fire; he
-stumbled over something, and stooping, he found it to be one of his
-companions. He felt about him and found a torch, and lighting this, he
-saw the rest of the party lying about him. He started a fire, and not a
-moment too soon, for the cries of the animals were growing dangerously
-near; and a little while after he saw two bright eyes looking at him
-from out the darkness; then all about him he could see those glaring
-eyes. The number was growing, and Mr. Bruce becoming thoroughly alarmed,
-roused the others, and all gathering near the fire, waited for further
-developments. They were jackals, as nearly as the party could make out;
-and occasionally one a little bolder than the rest, would come within
-the circle of light; but a ball from one of the rifles would stop him,
-when his bloodthirsty comrades would jump on the body and devour it in
-an instant. They increased in numbers until those in the rear, crowding
-forward, pushed the foremost nearer and nearer the fire, it became
-necessary to use the rifles as clubs and beat them back.
-
-The situation had become most alarming when the roar of a lion almost in
-their midst struck terror to the hearts of the travelers, and made the
-jackals scamper off into the jungle. A crashing of the underbrush was
-followed by another mighty roar, and looking, our friends could just
-see, in the outer edge of light, two tawny monsters about to engage in a
-combat, evidently over the possession of a beautiful lioness which was
-moving about urging the lions on. The two lions sprang at each other
-simultaneously, and meeting in midair, down to the earth they fell,
-fastened together by teeth and claws. Over and over they rolled, biting
-and snarling, and striking murderous blows with their powerful paws. It
-was a magnificent battle, and in spite of bleeding wounds, raged
-furiously for a quarter of an hour, when, through loss of blood, the
-blows became weaker, and the biting less fierce. The royal combat was
-drawing to a close. Suddenly, as though determined to win or lose all in
-one final struggle they separated and once more came together in savage
-fury. A terrific blow from the paw of the one laid open the neck of the
-other, but not soon enough to check the fearful crunch of the powerful
-jaws upon the throat of his opponent, and in a moment the writhing mass
-lay quiet on the ground, dead.
-
-Our friends had stood gazing at the awful fight with a horrible
-fascination, and it was some minutes before they could take their eyes
-off the fallen foes. When they did, and looked at the east they saw that
-dawn was breaking.
-
-As the shadows faded before the rising sun the sounds from the forest
-grew less and less, until nothing was heard but the songs of the
-wakening birds. Slowly the dawn crept into the heavens. The gray turned
-to pink, the pink to a rich red and then to a yellow, and the sun rose
-in all its equatorial splendor. A mist hung over the landscape, but
-gradually this was dissipated before the hot rays of the sun, and the
-country and city of On lay before them.
-
-They were standing on a small plateau on the eastern slope, a lofty
-range of mountains or cliffs. As far as the eye could reach westward,
-these mountains rose in perpendicular cliffs, thousands of feet into the
-air. A few miles east of them the range turned in a northerly direction,
-and extended on and on until the eye could follow it no farther. The
-mountain descended about six hundred feet from where they were standing,
-and ended in a beautiful valley.
-
-In their immediate vicinity was a dense jungle, and to the north of a
-magnificent forest. At the base of the mountain was a wide river, and on
-the opposite bank of this was a stone wall fifty feet in height. Beyond
-this wall stretched a beautiful valley, dotted with numerous groves and
-small lakes. To the northwest of them a few miles rose the tall towers
-of a vast and beautiful city, all glistening in the sunlight. The city
-rose from the valley to the top of a high hill on the summit of which
-was a grand structure, probably a temple.
-
-The scene was ineffably grand, and our friends looked on it in wonder.
-
-“Are you now convinced, Harry, that there are a few real things in
-Africa?” asked Enola.
-
-“The scene before me would hardly convince me of this,” said Harry, “for
-everything seems too beautiful to be real.”
-
-“Disabuse your mind of its being a dream?” said Enola. “It is a most
-sublime reality, and a happy ending to the horrors and sufferings of the
-cavern. But look, do you not see a body of horsemen yonder? Probably
-they saw our fire last night and are coming to investigate.”
-
-The horsemen were lost to view for a moment but again appeared to the
-party as they came out on a clear stretch of road. In a short while the
-men had arrived at the wall, and opening a gate in this which was at the
-end of the bridge, they waited for our friends to approach. The
-travelers moved slowly toward them, and as they came nearer the men
-dismounted and made a respectful obeisance. These men were the
-handsomest and most beautifully formed ever looked upon. They were fully
-seven feet high, and their figures showed great strength and suppleness;
-their heads were rather small but beautifully shaped; the skin was a
-light bronze color, soft and healthful-looking; the face was covered
-with a short beard of dark brown color; the eyes were large, dark, and
-full of expression; the nose straight and well-proportioned.
-
-Each wore a loose garment with large flowing sleeves; this tunic was
-belted in at the waist by a girdle of gold; sandals were fastened to the
-feet by golden lacings extending to the knee; a round helmet was worn on
-the head, but as our party approached these helmets were removed
-disclosing short curly heads of hair.
-
-Their steeds were of the same species but much larger than the ordinary
-zebra, standing at least eighteen hands high; they were beautiful
-creatures, with small heads, arched necks and finely shaped bodies and
-limbs; stripes encircled them from the tip of the nose to the tail; the
-manes and tails nearly touched the ground.
-
-The trappings of the animals were gorgeous; the bridle was of polished
-gold wire with large ostrich plumes reaching up from the head-piece; the
-reins and martingales were made of white leather heavily studded with
-precious stones which glistened in the sunlight; the saddle was flat,
-being nothing more than a pad made of cloth-of-gold and without
-stirrups.
-
-As our friends approached them, the men stood leaning against their
-steeds, holding their helmets in their hands. The rest of the party
-having halted, Mr. Graham went up quite close to the natives and by
-signs made them understand that they were tired, and hungry, and wanted
-food and shelter. One of the men showed by signs that he knew that which
-Mr. Graham wished to convey, and that they would send to the city and
-get other beasts to carry them there. Four men now left the band and
-rode off toward the city, and about two hours later the adventurers were
-surprised to see approaching them a body of at least one thousand
-zebramen and in front six monstrous white elephants.
-
-With the greatest care all were helped upon the backs of the royal
-beasts, but Enola was given the largest, whitest and most richly
-caparisoned. These elephants were partially covered with cloth-of-gold,
-and on each of their backs was a comfortable howdah shaded by a canopy
-of palm branches.
-
-When all was in readiness they started with Enola’s elephant in the
-lead. The cavalcade moved slowly over the beautiful highway on through
-green fields, along the shores of miniature lakes, over low eminences,
-past well-cultivated farms, under stately palms and eucalyptus trees
-until the white city was seen but a short distance away. Here some of
-the party left the cavalcade and rode on ahead.
-
-Shortly after this the road widened into a wide well-paved boulevard,
-lined on each side by lofty trees, and bordered by beautiful villas
-built of an exquisite pinkish white stone which resembled Mexican onyx.
-These villas were broad and deep, and moderately high; a wide flight of
-steps led up to each entrance which was easily twenty-five feet high,
-and which was sheltered by a portico, with immense pillars supporting
-its roof. The surrounding grounds were large, delightfully shaded and
-bright with flowers.
-
-On the cavalcade moved, through the broad avenue, the houses becoming
-larger and more magnificent as they approached the centre of the city.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- THE BANQUET.
-
-
-They came at last to a large opening, at least one thousand feet square
-and paved with exquisite onyx. In the centre of this square was a huge
-column, surmounted by a statue of magnificent workmanship. Surrounding
-this statue were five immense fountains. In each was a heroic statue of
-a woman with her head thrown back, from whose mouth spouted a stream of
-water high into the air. The arms were outstretched with the palms of
-the hands turned upward, and from these also sprang streams of water.
-Beyond the fountain, facing the avenue through which they had entered
-the square, was a stone sphere ten feet in diameter, on the top of which
-was a beautifully carved chair of onyx inlaid with gold. A man was
-seated in this chair who was probably thirty-five years old and of
-immense build. As the cavalcade approached he arose, showing to the full
-his magnificent figure. This personage afterwards proved to be the King.
-
-The square was thronged with the inhabitants of the city, the porticos
-and roofs of the surrounding houses being filled with the populace.
-
-The men were magnificent specimens of the human race. The women were six
-feet six inches in height, of stately figure and dignified bearing;
-their heads were small but well-shaped; the hair was of a dark brown
-color fastened in a coil at the back of the neck. A band of gold passed
-around the forehead just below the hair and was studded with precious
-stones. They wore loose, flowing robes of white silken cloth drawn in at
-the waist with a girdle of gold; around each neck was a golden chain set
-with diamonds and opals; these chains were similar to those worn by the
-men but of finer workmanship.
-
-As the King raised his hand the mighty throng broke forth in beautiful
-song, the King moving his hand right and left as if directing. The
-voices of the men were deep and melodious, and those of the women soft
-and musical. When the song was finished, the King turned his back to our
-friends, and facing the magnificent building on the summit of the hill,
-made a movement with his right hand. The doors of the temple were thrown
-open, and a band of beautiful young girls came forth singing the same
-song that the populace had sung. Merrily these maidens came tripping
-toward the square, the great throng of people making an opening through
-which they could pass.
-
-Upon reaching the space before the great sphere of stone, they waited
-for the occupant of the throne to descend, then fastening gold cords to
-the tusks of the elephants they led them toward the temple, the populace
-falling in behind. Slowly the maidens led the animals over the beautiful
-square, through the mass of eager and interesting people, all of whom
-made deep salaams as they passed on through the wide avenue which led to
-the temple and past the magnificent buildings to the summit of the hill.
-When nearing the temple ten men came forth, each wearing a long robe of
-embroidered white silk.
-
-The elephants were stopped at the main entrance of the temple, and
-immediately fell to their knees, when the party dismounted. Carefully
-the priests assisted them to the pavement and then walked before them
-burning sweet smelling incense from silver vessels, which they swayed to
-and fro. Through a wide court with a lofty colonnade on either side, up
-a broad staircase with battlemented towers they proceeded, and then
-entered a hexagonal hall, one hundred and fifty feet square. From here
-they passed into a second court of quadrangular form. All around the
-court ran arcades, forming chambers or recesses open in front, with long
-silken curtains hanging from the top of the arcade, and caught up at the
-sides to be used when needed. The roofs of the chambers were supported
-by columns, the beauty of conception, and the exquisite finish of which,
-astonished our friends. The decorations were most elaborate. Nobly
-sculptured statues occupied spacious niches, and showed that those who
-executed them were masters of their art. The quadrangle itself was about
-three hundred and fifty feet square.
-
-Enola was led by a priest to one of the semi-circular chambers and the
-curtains were drawn. Each of the others was shown to one of these
-recesses.
-
-Enola, upon entering the chamber, looked about her and was surprised to
-see the preparations made for her. In the centre of the chamber was a
-beautiful designed square onyx table, supported by four spheres. Upon
-this table, in great profusion lay girdles and circles of gold, all
-heavily studded with diamonds and opals, similar to those worn by the
-native women but of more exquisite design; also gold pins, bottles of
-gold, filled with delightful perfumes, golden combs and highly polished
-mirrors of silver. Upon a smaller table at the far end of the chamber
-was a ewer filled with perfumed water. Near this table, resting on an
-onyx sphere, was placed an extinguished lamp of fine workmanship.
-Couches were in various places in this luxurious apartment; upon one of
-them lay a gown of silk and gold with short flowing sleeves, and near it
-another gown of pinkish white silk which was evidently meant to be worn
-as an undergarment.
-
-Across the end of the chamber were hung heavy silk curtains, which, when
-parted, disclosed a bath sunken in the floor. About the bath stood six
-of the maidens who had conducted the party to the temple. The maidens
-stood motionless watching Enola as if waiting for her to come to the
-bath. Enola hesitated for a moment, then determined to accept the
-situation and walked towards the bath. The maidens disrobed her, and
-leading her into the bath, forced her gently backward in a reclining
-position with her head resting on an onyx head-piece, and then poured
-the perfume from the golden vessels over her body, rubbing her gently
-with a silken towel while doing so.
-
-She being tired and worn out, the luxury of the perfumed bath, with the
-pleasing treatment of the maidens, rested and refreshed her.
-
-After remaining in the bath for some time the maidens raised her in
-their arms, and carrying her to a couch laid her down and rubbed the
-moist skin until it was perfectly dry. They then sprinkled scented
-powder over her body, rubbing it gently; then motioning her to arise,
-the undergarment was thrown over her shoulders, after which one of the
-maidens dressed her hair in a low knot on the back of her head. A band
-of gold was placed over her forehead and then the outer robe was donned.
-This was fastened in at the waist by a girdle of gold; the necklace from
-Harding’s neck was brought to her, but Enola noticed that none of the
-maidens touched it with their naked hands, and she soon divined that in
-some way her royal reception was connected with the necklace and its
-flame-colored stone. Enola was then led to an alcove before which a
-curtain was hung, and then the curtain being drawn aside she found the
-alcove faced on either side with polished silver mirrors. She was
-surprised at the lovely picture she presented, in rich gown and golden
-bands around her head and waist, making her appear like an ancient
-Egyptian goddess.
-
-The long tramp through the cavern with its scarcity of water and clean
-garments had left Enola in a pitiable plight, and this sudden change was
-most gratifying to the natural pride of the woman. Enola was next
-conducted to a couch and a pair of sandals were fitted to her shapely
-feet; these were laced as far as the knee with silken cords. One of the
-maidens left them for a few moments, and upon her return, motioned to
-Enola and the others to follow her. They passed into the quadrangular
-court and from here into one of the other semi-circular chambers. Here
-on a long onyx table was spread a sumptuous repast.
-
-Enola was led to a seat or couch at the head of the table, and half
-reclining upon the soft cushions, while waiting for her friends, looked
-in wonderment at the elaborate prodigality in the equipment of the room.
-
-The sides of the chamber were hung with heavy silk curtains alternating
-white and red, on which scenes of the chase, of banqueting and of
-worship were gorgeously embroidered with gold thread. Exquisite
-sculptures rested upon spherical pedestals. Lion, tiger and leopard
-skins covered the floor, and upon the ceiling, beautifully carved, was
-an immense eagle with outstretched wings, the tips reaching almost to
-the ends of the chamber. In the talons of the eagle was a scroll upon
-which were engraved strange hieroglyphics. At one end of the chamber a
-human skeleton was standing, the only discordant object in the entire
-furnishings. The table was of semi-circular form, and was covered with
-flowers, fruits and chalices of wine. The flowers were held in high,
-beautifully carved vases of gold and were profuse and fragrant. In the
-center of the table a tiny fountain threw forth a spray of perfumed
-water.
-
-Enola was lost in admiration and did not hear a slight noise behind her,
-and was suddenly startled by the immense figure of the King as he
-entered and stood before her. She motioned him to the couch and he sank
-down beside her. He kept his eyes intently upon her, but noticing his
-look of respectful admiration Enola was half amused, and soon began a
-conversation by signs all of which were readily understood by the King.
-The rest of the party now came in, each of the ladies accompanied by
-three maids, and the men by two male servitors each.
-
-Nellie and Mrs. Graham were attired much the same as Enola; Mr. Graham,
-Mr. Bruce and Harry were dressed as the native men, but their garments
-were of a finer quality of silk.
-
-Upon entering the chamber the male servitors retired and six maidens
-took their places. Nellie was given a seat next to Enola, and next to
-her came Mr. Bruce and then Harry; Mrs. Graham sat next to the King with
-her husband at her left.
-
-When all were seated, a strain of exquisite music from some hidden
-orchestra of stringed instruments burst forth. The King gave a command
-and fifteen maidens came tripping in singing a pretty song, their
-harmonious voices blending deliciously with the music. Seven of the
-maidens carried gold dishes containing chipped ice, while the others
-carried cups in one hand and a vase of honey in the other. They rested
-the cups on the tables and after filling them partly with honey added
-wine from the chalices and then dropped into the cups some of the
-chipped ice, stirring this gently with small golden ladles. This done
-they stepped back and the King raising his cup, waited for the others to
-do so; when they had done this the King arose and looking toward the
-skeleton at the end of the room, raising his cup and saying a few words,
-drank the contents. All had followed the King in his movements, and as
-the cool beverage touched their lips it seemed that they had never
-tasted anything half so sweet or refreshing. Months had passed since
-they had known such luxuries as ice and wine and they emptied their cups
-almost greedily, hoping that the etiquette of the feast would allow them
-to drink long and unsparingly of the delicious beverage.
-
-The maidens bore the cups away, and others brought in trays containing
-small silken napkins and golden finger bowls filled with perfumed water.
-Other maidens brought in trays, covered with figs, fresh herbs, chipped
-ice and eggs of a peculiar kind in tiny cups of gold.
-
-Thus far not a word had been spoken; the King, however, seemed surprised
-at the silence, and probably surmising the reason pointed to his lips
-and then to the guests, making them understand that he would like to
-hear them talk. Enola took upon herself to instruct the King as far as
-possible in English, pointing to different articles on the table and
-then naming them. Onrai, for this was the King’s name, named the
-articles slowly after her and then gave the names in his native tongue.
-
-Mr. Bruce, who had listened intently to the names given the articles by
-the King, and who had carefully studied a piece of papyrus upon which
-the King had inscribed some characters when passed to him, declared the
-characters to be Egyptian hieroglyphics or closely resembling them. He
-had been a close student of the Egyptian hieroglyphics while at college,
-and had spent many spare moments in the great British museum going over
-the ancient inscriptions in the vast collection of that home of relics.
-He had noticed also the inscription upon the pennant held in the eagle’s
-talons on the ceiling, and the characters above the skeleton at the end
-of the room. All these convinced him that the strange people around him
-had originally come from Egypt, but it must have been thousands of years
-before, for the language and written characters of the ancient Egyptians
-had been obsolete for centuries. The skeleton in the banqueting hall was
-an old Egyptian custom, and this but added to the belief that these
-people had originally sprung from that race.
-
-“One would think,” said Harry, “that we had been taken from the world of
-hurry and bustle which we so recently knew, and set back two or three
-thousand years into this ancient city.”
-
-“Yes, it all seems very strange,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I must admit
-there is novelty in the change at least, and for my part I am enjoying
-it immensely.”
-
-“Well, I never expected to find iced wine in the heart of Africa,” said
-Mr. Graham.
-
-“Nor I,” said Mrs. Graham, “nor cups of gold from which to drink it.”
-
-“Truly, we must have discovered a city of the gods,” exclaimed Mr.
-Graham.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “one could easily imagine from the beauty of the
-city, the stateliness and courtesy of the people, and the delights of
-the feast, that we have dropped into something supernatural.”
-
-The music changed to a livelier measure, and the maidens tripped more
-lightly to and fro as the feast progressed. Roast kid with wine sauce,
-composed the third course, and when this was removed, the finger bowls
-were again passed among the guests. Then, after more iced wine and
-honey, a delicate kind of fish was served, after which came fowl,
-followed by sliced fruits covered with shaved ice, and accompanied by a
-new and delicious wine. The feast ended, the King arose, and leading the
-way with Enola at his side, passed into the large court, where they
-witnessed a magnificent entertainment.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- THE LAW OF THE LAND OF ON.
-
-
-Four weeks of constant enjoyment passed. The greatest kindness had been
-shown the explorers by both king and subjects. The most sumptuous
-repasts were set before them; the most beautiful robes were presented to
-them, and the most glorious entertainments gotten up for their delight.
-Their attendants anticipated their least desires and the King himself
-personally supervised the festivities. Great hunts had been projected
-and carried out; excursions through the beautiful country had been made
-on the backs of white elephants; points of interest in the city had been
-visited; moonlight rambles through the beautiful groves had been taken,
-and there seemed no prospect of diminution of enjoyment.
-
-They were living under the laws of three thousand years ago. Little had
-been learned of their history or religion, for they had not become
-sufficiently acquainted with the language to have these things imparted
-to them. With Mr. Bruce’s help, however, they had learned that these
-people were closely affiliated with the ancient Egyptians. Onrai had
-promised to give the party some of the laws that night.
-
-During the four weeks which had passed so pleasantly, the adventurers
-had studied closely the people and their country. The rays of the sun
-were intensely hot during the day, but owing to the thickness of the
-onyx walls of the temple and the system by which air was forced over
-blocks of ice, the apartments were delightfully pleasant and cool. The
-streets during the day were deserted, but as evening came on the people
-would leave their homes and promenade the principal thoroughfares and
-squares, enjoying the cool and refreshing breezes which sprung up from
-the south as the day declined. The people themselves were the most
-remarkable feature of this strange country. The women stood fully six
-feet and six inches high and the men seven feet.
-
-Another very noticeable thing was the total absence of aged people. In
-all their excursions they had not met a man or woman who looked to be
-past middle life. Had they discovered a fountain of youth, which, when
-bathed in, gave them a long lease on life with health and beauty? No
-cripples or infirm people were seen, all being robust and healthy. All
-resembled each other. It could be seen that their dispositions varied to
-some extent but not radically, since all seemed inspired by the same
-motives. They were easy in their movements and very graceful.
-
-After four weeks of studying these people and their lives, our friends
-considered them the happiest mortals they had ever known, for they did
-not seem to have a care or trouble in the world.
-
-That evening Onrai took the evening meal with them as usual and after
-this was over, and they had repaired to the large court, Enola said:
-
-“Onrai, you promised to tell us of your laws to-night and we are waiting
-patiently to learn the government of such a happy people.”
-
-“Our laws are simply nature’s law,” said Onrai. “In the first place, the
-laws governing our physical welfare are very strict, for we believe that
-happiness springs from a strong constitution and a healthy body. Our
-tables are spread with an abundance of viands, but just so much must be
-eaten and no more. We have certain hours for work and certain hours for
-entertainment and recreation; the hours for work are few, because we
-believe that overwork is injurious to the constitution and this we
-always try to prevent. Our people are educated in religious laws and
-language between the ages of seven and twelve.”
-
-“Who are the teachers?” asked Enola.
-
-“We are all teachers,” answered Onrai. “In our temples of learning all
-above the age of twenty have their days for teaching. This is considered
-one of the lightest duties, and we arrange the days so that they may
-come directly after those of the hardest toil.”
-
-“But is it with all other occupations as it is with teaching?” asked Mr.
-Graham. “Do you not assign certain work to those who are most proficient
-in that work?”
-
-“We have none who are more proficient in one thing than another,”
-answered Onrai. “Between the ages of twelve and twenty, our young people
-devote certain hours each day to the study of trades and professions.
-They may work for two weeks on a farm, and for the next two weeks study
-architecture, and so on until they arrive at the age of twenty, when
-they are as well versed in one thing as in another.”
-
-“But are there no differences in the intellects of the people?” asked
-Mr. Graham. “Are not some brighter and more clever than others?”
-
-“No,” said Onrai. “Our duties are simple and easily learned, and when we
-have once mastered them thoroughly, what difference would it make, if,
-as you say, some should be brighter than others.”
-
-“But,” said Enola, “Do you not have those who go beyond the things
-taught them and develop new principles and invent new contrivances,
-which might make their duties less irksome, their labors less arduous?”
-
-“No, we have none such,” said Onrai, “or, if we have, their ideas never
-take shape or form, for the one great law is to be content with what is
-taught us. Look about you, see this beautiful country, the grand
-palaces, the statuary and paintings; could we conceive of more beautiful
-architecture, or grander statuary, with which to adorn these beautiful
-palaces? No, I think not. We have certain lines to follow in
-architecture, certain forms to copy in our statuary, and certain rules
-to observe in our painting, and these lead to but the one thing, and
-that is, perfection, which, when once reached cannot be surpassed.”
-
-“Tell us more of the laws,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“After the physical welfare of our people is looked after, we make it
-imperative that they study, and learn and adhere to the laws governing
-the spiritual being. Our religion teaches us that if we abuse the body
-and die before our time we shall not enter the great hereafter; we shall
-be condemned to everlasting punishment. This religious law, and the dire
-future for those who break it, makes all observe it, and consequently
-you see no sick or infirm about you. We are taught to believe in one
-God, and live so that we may enter a home of everlasting bliss when we
-have lived out our lives on this earth.”
-
-“Tell us how you punish murder and stealing,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Stealing, murder?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Yes, taking from another that which belongs to him, either property or
-life.”
-
-“These are unknown to us,” said Onrai. “We are all equal; we have the
-same duties to perform, the same garments to wear, the same things to
-eat and drink. Why should we take from another that which we have
-ourselves?”
-
-“Is there no buying and selling?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“No,” said Onrai, “We all share alike. When a citizen wants a certain
-article he has but to ask for it and it is his. We have an abundance of
-all things, at all times and it is as free to one as to another.”
-
-“What are your laws concerning marriage?” inquired Enola.
-
-“Our religious laws govern this,” replied Onrai. “At the age of eighteen
-the young people are taken before a council of ten and a careful
-examination is made of both physical and mental health. These
-examinations are reported on tablets and at the age of twenty they are
-again summoned and a husband or wife is allotted.”
-
-“But love,” said Mrs. Graham, “does not love enter into the compact at
-all?”
-
-“No”, said Onrai, “We are taught by our religion, not to allow ourselves
-to love until married. Those, who from association learn to seek one
-young person more than another, are brought before the council of ten
-and steps are taken to prevent a recurrence. It is by this law that we
-have attained a point in physical culture which shows a race of healthy,
-strong and vigorous beings. In the course of events there are occasional
-errors which render it necessary to forbid the further production of
-children. When the young people are examined, if any organ seems at all
-weak a companion is selected in whom that organ is at its best. If three
-decided weaknesses are found, the person is not allowed to marry.
-Dispositions and tempers are also considered by the council before
-selection is made. We, of course, in our short lives, cannot notice the
-great effects such a method brings about, but reason tells us that it
-must be a safeguard to the strength of the people.”
-
-“But what of the history of your people, Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Our history is unknown to us,” said Onrai. “The history of the people
-is not divulged. They know the events which occur during their own
-lives, and that is all. At the expiration of each king’s reign, the
-history of his reign in inscribed on a tablet of hard wood, and this is
-placed in a secret chamber. Those who are living at the time of his
-death are forbidden to ever mention the events of his reign when his
-successor has ascended to the throne.”
-
-“We are greatly disappointed,” said Mr. Bruce. “We have become very much
-interested in your country and people, and we had hoped that we might
-learn their history.”
-
-Onrai at this moment called an attendant to him, and speaking a few
-words to him the attendant withdrew. Presently the High Priest came
-forward, and Onrai held quite a conversation with him, after which he
-turned to our friends, and said:
-
-“The High Priest informs me that he knows of no law which would forbid
-your entering this secret chamber, and there read from the tablets the
-history of our country and people.”
-
-Our friends were much surprised at being granted this privilege, and
-thanking Onrai, they repaired to the Secret Chamber with the High
-Priest. While going to the chamber with the priest, he informed the
-party that he was entrusted with certain religious secrets which the
-rest of the people were not allowed to know, but as far as the history
-of the country was concerned he was forbidden, as were all others, to
-consult the tablets. Upon arriving at the Secret Chamber, a secret
-spring was touched, and an immense stone door turned on a pivot, much
-the same as the door to the cave. After entering the Priest showed them
-the location of the secret spring on the inside, and also the location
-of the most ancient tablets, and then retired. The great gate swung shut
-and they were left alone in the immense chamber which contained the
-unknown records of the history of On. They removed a great number of
-tablets, until those bearing the earliest dates were uncovered, and
-found them in a state of excellent preservation. With Mr. Bruce’s
-knowledge of ancient hieroglyphics he was able to decipher most of the
-inscriptions; by deciphering certain portions it was not difficult to
-fill in between without the labor of actual translation. The research
-stretched over several days, but condensed, the account ran as follows:
-
-“During the reign of Amenophis of Egypt, the country was scourged by
-numerous and grievous plagues, and the people were sorely tried. These
-plagues were inflicted upon the Egyptians by the God of the Israelites,
-as a punishment for the severe treatment of the latter race. One Moyses,
-who had been reared in the royal house of the Pharaohs as a son, adopted
-the religion of the Israelites and was chosen by them for their leader
-to deliver them out of the land of Egypt. But they had no remedy at hand
-and still bowed in submission to the fearful task imposed upon them
-until Moyses at last saw a favorable opportunity for their deliverance.
-Reminding them of their former freedom, and of the God of their fathers,
-and that their cause was His, he prevailed upon them to regard their
-deliverance as an article of religion, and they again became a united
-people in their determination to seek refuge from the oppression of the
-Egyptians in the wilderness, which was the dwelling place of their
-kindred and the seat of their God. Then the fearful plagues were visited
-upon the people of Egypt and they became desperate.
-
-“Many Egyptians in the vicinity of Goshen, the dwelling place of the
-Israelites, had accepted the religion of that people, and seeing no end
-to the plagues which were scourging this country, they gathered together
-and determined to emigrate to some distant land where they could live in
-peace and happiness, and without fear of molestation from their
-idolatrous countrymen. At the final meeting of these people, On, of the
-city of Goshen, and the land of Egypt, was chosen as their leader, and
-it was determined to follow the Nile as far as expedient, until they had
-reached such a land as would suit them for a dwelling place. It is I,
-On, who am now inscribing this record. There were six thousand and six
-hundred of us, men, women and children. To leave Egypt together would
-create suspicion, so choosing forty sub-commanders, an equal number of
-companies set out at stated intervals and marched until the southern
-boundary of the country had been crossed, when all were consolidated and
-marched into the vast interior. When all were united, preparations were
-made for the great journey. Boats were built, and many provisions were
-procured, for we knew not the country into which we were going, or how
-long it would take to reach a desirable land in which to take up our
-abode. When all was in readiness we embarked in the boats and followed
-the Nile until coming to the many streams which comprise its source.
-Here we disembarked, leaving the boats in the river. Towards the south
-we marched, the journey being very slow, tedious, and fraught with much
-sickness and danger. Strange tribes of people we met, much darker in
-color than we, and very hostile. We struggled on for many weary leagues,
-fighting the strange people and being a prey to fever and wild beasts.
-Our band was altogether discouraged; still I pleaded with them, telling
-them that we would, sooner or later, come to an uninhabited country with
-fertile fields and cooling streams.
-
-“We came at last to a lofty range of mountains, running north and south,
-extending, peak beyond peak, far to the westward. Following the
-mountains south, for many leagues farther, the range suddenly turned
-west. Still following along their base, we came to a beautiful open
-country. Here we decided to take up our dwelling.
-
-“We had been here but a short time when one of the men discovered a hole
-in the side of the mountain. Ten men were sent to explore the vast cave
-which this opening led into. At the end of three days they returned and
-told us that an immense lake of water had stopped their further
-progress, and that they had returned for boats. These were made, and
-with them the men again started. Many times did the sun rise and set
-before they again returned, but at last they came with a story which
-made us all joyful. They had crossed the lake but had been lost on the
-opposite shore, and had wandered for many days until they saw a ray of
-light and making for it found an opening which led into a beautiful
-country, stretching far to the west and north. They explored a part of
-the country, finding numerous lakes and rivers, and then returned to
-tell of the wonderful hidden land.
-
-“After a consultation it was determined to pass through the mountains
-and take up a permanent abode beyond. Preparations were made and
-together we started. The lake was crossed, the opening found and we
-reached the country which was to be the scene of our remaining life and
-death. Our numbers were taken, and it was found that during the two
-years’ march to this land we had lost more than half of our band. But
-three thousand and two hundred remained of the six thousand and six
-hundred which had started from Egypt. Fifteen hundred of those remaining
-were men, the women and children having succumbed more readily to the
-hardships of the journey.
-
-“A site for a city was picked out and a part of the country cultivated.
-Our land abounded in wild animals and fruits so we were well-provided
-with food. A quarry of beautiful hard stone was found and we determined
-to build our city of this. The architects drew up the plans for the city
-and work was commenced. The Temple, which when finished will be the
-grandest which the world has ever known, will stand in the northern end
-of the city on a slight eminence. The streets are to be broad and paved.
-At frequent distances will be squares for public amusement, and parks
-for recreation will be placed conveniently near the city. We made two
-discoveries which have helped us in the manufacture of necessary
-implements and added to our comfort. A mine of gold was found, and in a
-cavern through which the wind rushes like a blast from a mountain of
-snow we found a lake of pure ice. This ice was of great thickness and it
-took us a great while to cut through it. We have also a mountain of
-iron, a field of diamonds and a forest of wood so hard that we find
-great difficulty in cutting it. On blocks of this wood I am now
-inscribing the infant history of our country.
-
-“I am growing very old. My people have increased rapidly and great work
-has been done. The City and Temple are fast nearing completion; most of
-the streets are paved with hard stone and cultivated fields are about
-us; we have measured the length and breadth of our country and find that
-it is nearly three hundred miles square. We have driven the wild animals
-from our cultivated land into a section near the mountains, and at the
-border of this vast land of jungle and forest we are building a wall
-fifty feet high to keep the animals within bounds. We also built a stone
-viaduct to cross the lake in the cavern and several across the river
-which flows at the base of the southern mountains. During the building
-of these viaducts hundreds were engaged in keeping the laborers
-furnished with meat, the animals being skinned and dressed for food in
-the cavern. The inhabitants who died during the first twenty years of
-our settlement here were embalmed, and their bodies placed in the niches
-of the rock in the cavern. After this date the dead were cremated and
-this is now a law. I am now ninety years old and we have been in this
-country fifty years. The city and country has been named “ON,” in honor
-of me, because I led the people to it, and I have been the people’s
-chosen King since we left Egypt. I have laid down the laws which are to
-govern the people for all time. These laws I have made simple and just,
-guarding against any contingency or cause for dissension, profiting by
-the experiences of other countries. I have tried to formulate laws which
-will not allow of jealousies or covetousness.
-
-“Again, the laws are aimed to make a race of people grand in physical
-strength and beautiful in moral character. All are equal in the eyes of
-the law. All are made to work at the different vocations. All are
-furnished with the same provisions and raiment. The best artisans have
-laid down rules to be followed by the people in architecture, sculpture,
-painting, and in the making of ornaments. The best agriculturists, the
-foremost of our quarrymen and miners have made new inventions and laid
-down rules which will lighten and facilitate their labors.
-
-“To the religion taught by the Israelites I have added nothing. From
-their teachings I learned that they expected to have the Son of their
-God visit them at some future time. They also taught us that there was a
-great and eternal hereafter which was to be entered into after death,
-and I have made this hereafter so bright and beautiful that my
-countrymen will hail with delight their day of death. I have also made
-it possible to stop the over-increase of our people by a certain law. To
-guard against intemperate habits of any kind, by which so many diseases
-and so much unhappiness are brought into the world, I have established a
-law that all dying because of intemperance or over-indulgence in any of
-the necessary things of life will enter into everlasting punishment. I
-have made the delights of our future life so bright that my people will
-guard against everything which might bring on disease and premature
-death. Already the effects of these laws have been seen, for disease is
-passing away and my people are striving in every way to live until their
-day of death.
-
-“I alone of the many Kings who are to follow me am allowed to reign for
-so many years. I have given myself the right to reign thus long because
-I wish to have my laws well-established before abdicating in favor of
-another. I have found that some of the laws first laid down were
-defective and by still retaining my sceptre I have been able to correct
-them. To the High Priest I have given certain knowledge which is denied
-the remainder of the people, and this knowledge is to be guarded by him
-as a sacred commandment to be imparted only to his successor.
-
-“The language of my forefathers I have changed but little. I have added
-some few words from the language of the Israelites and a few from the
-Syriac. I have made the language as simple as possible as well as the
-hieroglyphics. The history of the reign of each King shall be inscribed
-on tablets of wood and placed in the secret chamber of the Temple but
-the people are to know nothing of their former history. This is done to
-keep them from knowing anything of the outside world. I wish them to
-believe that the world is bounded by the mountains which enclose their
-country; for thus believing they will remain together and will never
-undertake needless excursions into other countries, which would result
-in war and bloodshed. I wish them to be a peaceable, law-abiding people
-believing that they are the people and that theirs is the only country.
-
-“I have fitted to the opening in the mountain a stone turning on pivots
-and opening by a secret spring, of which I alone know the secret. Those
-who fitted the stone were forbidden to speak of it and they have long
-since died, and the laws forbidding access to the inscribed history have
-been so well kept that none of my countrymen to-day are aware of the
-existence of an outside world.
-
-“This is not a history, but a simple outline of the events which led to
-our emigration, the long journey, and the discovery of the country and
-the laws which I have made. I have inscribed this during my few leisure
-hours more for recreation than aught else. The history of our people and
-country will be found inscribed on the King’s tablets.
-
-“I have made the one holiday of the Land of On, ‘The Day of Resis,’ and
-this day, if all of my laws are adhered to, will be the happiest day in
-the lives of those who participate in its ceremonies.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- THE ROYAL HUNT.
-
-
-Mrs. Graham had, during the past few weeks, given herself up to the
-comforts of her delightful boudoir, seldom accompanying her friends on
-the many excursions which were projected for their pleasure. The
-splendid attendance, the magnificent apartment, the sumptuous table, all
-tended to make her new life a happy one. It was just suited to the
-fastidious tastes of such a woman as Mrs. Graham, and she had determined
-to startle her native city with a reproduction of many of its delightful
-features.
-
-Nellie had enjoyed the new life quite as much as her mother but in a
-different way. With Mr. Bruce she had visited every nook and corner of
-the Temple, and had taken sketches of the principal courts, colonnades
-and terraces, intending to copy them in oil at home. Then they had taken
-long walks through the city and visited the schools in which Nellie was
-especially interested; had remained one whole day in the provision
-market, where the inhabitants went each morning for the day’s supplies,
-and another in the mills where the cloth for wearing apparel was woven.
-They had spent many happy hours in the fine art studio, where beautiful
-statues were being carved out of blocks of onyx, and where pictures were
-being painted on flat pieces of hard wood.
-
-There was also the school of architecture, where students between the
-ages of twelve and twenty were busy working out the difficult problems
-and drawings. In this building also were made the gold ornaments which
-were used in every household in rich profusion, in the shape of girdles
-for the waist, bands and ornaments for the hair. It was noticed that
-certain models were used for all these different works of fine art, and
-that nothing new was ever executed. As Onrai had told them, though, the
-models were perfect and nothing more beautiful could be conceived. They
-had also visited the parks, squares and principal thoroughfares, and had
-taken an interest in studying the architecture and furnishings of the
-different residences. All places were open to them and the greatest
-attention was paid them wherever they went.
-
-This constant association and similarity of tastes had brought these two
-closer together, and although Mr. Bruce had never yet mentioned his love
-to Nellie, still he felt that she reciprocated that love.
-
-Mr. Graham, sometimes accompanied by Harry, but oftener alone, had gone
-everywhere. He was in his element, for, astride of a beautiful zebra, he
-would take long rides into the country and spend whole days fishing on
-the small lakes, or at other times, would venture a short distance into
-the great hunting reserve. In this grand expanse of wild jungle and
-forest could be found every known species of African animal, and Mr.
-Graham was especially delighted in the hunting of large game. The laws
-governing these hunts were rather strange; the smallest of each species
-of animal was killed, the largest always being left. The same laws which
-governed the inhabitants were applied to the wild animals and also to
-those domesticated, allowing the larger to mate and bring forth healthy
-offspring. If a colt or baby elephant should be dwarfed at birth, or
-show any ailment afterward, it was instantly killed. By observing this
-law with the domestic animals, and in killing only the smaller of the
-wild animals, the whole race had become large and powerful.
-
-Harry seemed to be the only unhappy one in the party. This was easily
-accounted for. During the long excursions the King would be at Enola’s
-side constantly, and Harry had hardly found time to speak with her alone
-since they had arrived in this, as he called it, barbarous land. Onrai
-always dined with the party and sat at Enola’s right. Harry had been
-given a seat the farthest from her; whether this was done intentionally
-or not, Harry could not say, but he fumed in silence. After the evening
-meal, Enola would invariably accompany Onrai to the terrace where they
-would sit until near midnight. Occasionally Harry would have a short
-talk with Enola in the morning, but even then their conversation was of
-Onrai.
-
-Sedai had been given a home with one of the inhabitants and was enjoying
-the new life greatly. He had been given a zebra and spent most of the
-time on its back. Once each day he would go to the Temple to see his
-friends, and while there would tell of his exploits among the fair woman
-of the city. Because he was one of the party he was looked upon with
-great admiration. As he was but little below the height of the native
-men and was only a shade darker in color, the inhabitants had been led
-to believe that he was one of their own race, but had in some mysterious
-way left his own land and visited that planet from which the strangers
-were supposed to have come. The women smiled on him, the men treated him
-with the greatest respect and he could hardly help liking this new life.
-He had come up to the Temple on this morning to join the party in the
-royal hunt.
-
-The rifles which our friends had brought with them they had never used
-for fear of the natives coveting them when they learned their value in
-the hunt, but now they felt, because of the great respect which had been
-shown them, that they and everything pertaining to them was held as
-sacred by the natives, and they had decided to use the guns on to-day’s
-hunt.
-
-The morning was bright and the hour early when the party started. Enola
-and her friends were seated on huge black elephants with long formidable
-tusks and trained to the hunt. Around the neck and also around the body,
-just back of the howdah of each elephant was a band of gold, in which
-were embedded the handles of large pointed daggers, the blades pointing
-outward. These were placed for the protection of the elephants and of
-those who rode them. The rest of the party rode zebras which were to-day
-only plainly caparisoned. The weapons of the natives consisted of large
-cross-bows with quivers of flint-pointed arrows, daggers with long,
-narrow blades and axes with short handles.
-
-About one hundred comprised the party, all well armed and impatient for
-the hunt. They traversed the same road over which our friends had been
-conducted when they first came to the city, and very soon passed through
-a huge gate on the border of the hunting reserve and then across the
-long stone bridge. Before going through the gate, the zebramen had all
-dismounted, leaving the zebras to graze in a near-by field until they
-returned. These men were to beat and cut the bush, to stir up the game
-and also to make a pathway for the hunters. The footmen went forward,
-and with huge clubs in one hand and axes in the other, opened up a
-passage-way. A little while later an open forest was reached and passed;
-the trees of this forest were literally alive with monkeys which
-chattered and made grimaces as the party passed. Deer were seen
-scampering away, and occasionally a huge boa constrictor could be seen
-crawling through the high grass or suspended from the limb of a tree
-waiting for its prey. On the opposite side of the forest a thick and
-almost impenetrable jungle confronted them, but the bush-beaters went to
-work again and a way was opened up.
-
-Suddenly a roar was heard which was almost deafening. The elephants
-stopped and began to move their huge ears forward and back and give
-short cries similar to those of a baby. The men immediately scattered,
-dividing equally and moving to the right and left. Soon they had formed
-a circle about two hundred feet in diameter, and then commenced to close
-in toward the centre. This was slow work but they knew that it would not
-last long, as the lion or lioness would make a dash for liberty or jump
-at one of the party. Mr. Graham had directed his elephant near the
-circle and from his elevated point of view he could occasionally catch a
-glimpse of a tail above the bush. The men were slowly closing in on the
-lion and Mr. Graham held his rifle in readiness to get the first shot.
-Suddenly the lion raised on his haunches so that his head appeared above
-the bush. This was enough for Mr. Graham, and taking a quick aim at the
-head, he fired. The lion dropped, and the natives stood aghast at the
-sound of the shot and the sudden flash of fire and smoke which followed.
-Mr. Graham slipped from the back of the elephant and made for the bush
-and, with the help of an axe, which he was wielding, was fast nearing
-the lion, when the huge beast leaped into the air and struck him fairly
-on the side of the head. Mr. Bruce, who had half-expected something of
-the kind, had been waiting for the lion to leap, and as he appeared
-above the bushes, had aimed at a point just behind the brute’s shoulder
-and fired. Mr. Graham had been stunned by the powerful blow of the lion
-and Mrs. Graham screamed and fainted. Leaving the backs of their
-elephants, Onrai, Harry and Mr. Bruce hurried to their companion’s
-assistance, and soon reached the spot where he and the lion lay
-together. He was insensible and bleeding badly from his wound and with
-the lion lying dead over his lower limbs. Harry and Mr. Bruce called
-some of the natives, and together they moved the body of the lion, after
-which they carried Mr. Graham to an open place where his wound was
-washed and wine being poured between his lips he was soon restored to
-consciousness. Mrs. Graham was revived by Enola and Nellie, and Mr.
-Graham refusing to return, he again took his place in the howdah and the
-hunting party proceeded after leaving a number of the natives behind to
-skin the lion.
-
-Mr. Bruce’s shot had struck the lion just behind the right shoulder and
-the bullet had penetrated the heart. It was lucky for Mr. Graham that it
-did so, for the lion, being maddened with pain, would soon have torn him
-to pieces. The King and his men looked at the lion carefully, turning it
-over and over, trying to find the marks of wounds such as their arrows
-would have made. Harry took his rifle, and handing it to the King,
-showed him how to hold it properly, and then how to aim it, telling him
-to aim at one of the lion’s paws. He did so, and pulled the trigger. The
-King dropped the gun as soon as it was discharged, alarmed at the loud
-report it had made so near his ears. Harry and the King went up to the
-lion and pointing to its huge paw, Harry showed Onrai the hole made by
-the bullet. He was greatly surprised, but could not understand it. Harry
-then showed him one of the cartridges and explained to him how the
-concussion caused the powder to ignite, forcing the bullet from the tube
-and through the gun-barrel with such swiftness as to penetrate anything
-that it came in contact with. Onrai slowly shook his head as if it were
-still a puzzle to him.
-
-They again took up the march through the jungle, and presently came to a
-large stream which must have found its outlet in the river at the base
-of the mountains. They followed the bank of the river for some distance,
-until they came to a stone bridge over which they passed. Another open
-forest was entered, and here was seen the first herd of elephants. Upon
-catching sight of the elephants which our friends were riding, the
-curiosity of the herd was aroused, and they came crowding about the
-hunting party by scores. So quick had been their movements that the men
-on foot had time to do nothing but climb trees. These elephants were
-huge monsters, but did not seem ill-disposed towards our friends. They
-were very curious, and could not understand the queer things on the
-necks and backs of the domesticated elephants. They came crowding around
-our friends, shoving their trunks up into their faces and under the
-saddle-cloths, as if trying to find out all they could about these
-strange visitors. Occasionally one would come too close to the elephants
-of our party, and would be pricked by the long daggers about their
-bodies, when it would give a cry and retreat. The tame elephants paid no
-attention to the others, seeming to consider them as beneath their
-notice. They probably looked upon these denizens of the forest as our
-friends would on a band of savages. Their curiosity satisfied, they
-slowly retreated through the forest, throwing their enormous trunks into
-the trees and breaking off limbs half the size of a man’s body. The men
-came down from the trees and the party again took up the march.
-
-They had proceeded but a short distance when a shriek of terror from
-Mrs. Graham caused all to look in her direction. A huge gorilla had
-sprung from a neighboring tree and seized her with his powerful arm,
-showing his white teeth and chattering wildly. For an instant all was
-confusion. Harry sprang to the rescue and before the animal could drag
-Mrs. Graham from the elephant, his rifle was emptied of its deadly load
-and the gorilla laid writhing on the ground.
-
-With two such experiences in such a short time it was deemed expedient
-to abandon the hunt for the day, and though Mrs. Graham was sorry to
-cause this break in the programme she could not but admit her desire to
-leave a place so fraught with danger. So back through the jungle and
-forest, over the bridge and through the gate, and along the white road,
-the cool evening breeze now refreshing them after the fearful heat of
-the day, the party made its way toward the city.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- THE GOLD MINE AND CAVE OF ICE.
-
-
-The shock of the day before had left Mrs. Graham in a very nervous
-condition. Having arrived at the Temple, she was given into the hands of
-her attendants, who soon had her in the perfumed bath, and with a
-treatment much resembling our massage, she was soon brought out of her
-nervousness. Still to-day she was far from feeling like herself, and
-when Onrai had proposed a trip to the gold mine and quarries, she
-declined to go.
-
-Mr. Graham, having already visited these places, decided to remain with
-his wife.
-
-Onrai had each day since their arrival, projected some novel excursion
-or entertainment for our friends, the preparation for these always being
-both elaborate and complete. So much of interest was to be seen in this
-strange city and country, our friends never tired of these excursions.
-Many things were seen which contrasted favorably with similar
-contrivances in their own country. The streets were paved with the
-beautiful onyx, and were always scrupulously clean. There were no
-sidewalks, the pavements stretching from lawn to lawn. These pavements
-were cleaned once a day with a combination of sweeper, watering cart and
-dirt gatherer in one, which did its work most effectually. The
-contrivance, but for the material used in its construction, the striped
-animals pulling it, and the queer costumes of the drivers, would have
-caused no comments on the streets of an American city; for it looked
-like the invention of some modern genius.
-
-This had been used, however, as had every other contrivance or machine,
-since the foundation of the city. In fact, the city or country must have
-been founded by a race who had reached a high point in civilization, for
-their architecture, their fine arts, their implements of manufacture and
-farming, all showed deep thought, careful study, and great knowledge of
-the principles involved. And the laws which were made to govern the
-people were perfect, and, being carried out, left perfect results.
-
-But our friends had not seen all the wonders of this strange country, or
-the works of its people; nor had Onrai given to Enola or the rest of the
-strangers, any idea of the immense resources of this land. They had many
-things to learn still, and one thing in particular, which would startle
-and surprise them. Our friends were happy though, and not one of them
-had as yet given a thought to the returning to their homes. This life
-was so pleasant, every feature of it so enjoyable, they had little time
-or desire to think of aught else. The time would come, however, when a
-longing to see their friends left behind, to once more taste the
-delights and pleasures of modern civilization, to be where people talked
-and acted as themselves, would take such hold on them that they would
-wonder how they ever could have found any pleasure in this strange city
-and among a people which knew nothing, or cared to know nothing, but
-what had passed down to them from the founder of this country, who had
-lived thousands of years before.
-
-But as yet this longing had not come to disturb their peaceful thoughts,
-and to-day, as they were about to start on another excursion to see more
-of the wonders of this strange country, they were never happier. As was
-customary on such occasions, our friends were mounted on the white
-elephants, accompanied by the king and ten zebramen, who acted as on
-escort.
-
-Their first stop was to be at the onyx quarries, five miles distant.
-They started early, so as to reach the farthest point before the middle
-of the day, when the heat was so intense, it was hard to withstand it.
-
-Their way led through a broad avenue lined on either side by tall palms,
-back of which were beautiful palaces, the large entrances being open,
-showing their dark, cool interiors. Many of the inhabitants were also on
-the street, enjoying the fresh morning breeze. Some were lounging about
-the broad terraces, while others were seated on onyx chairs, in the
-great gardens surrounding each house.
-
-The sun, just rising above the eastern mountain, the songs of the birds,
-the perfume of the flowers wafted to them by the cool morning breeze,
-the beautiful palaces with the white-robed inhabitants lounging about
-them, the broad, paved avenue with the white elephants and beautiful
-zebras, moving stately along it, left but one thought in the minds of
-our friends, namely, that they would willingly brave the hardships,
-trials and dangers of their past journey, for this one short hour in the
-beautiful city of On. The paved avenue reached on as far as the Cave of
-Ice, which the party was to visit before their return.
-
-At last the immense quarry of onyx was reached, and our friends stood in
-wonder, gazing at its great extent. At least forty acres of onyx had
-already been taken from the quarry, and huge blocks of the beautiful
-stone lay finished on the broad pavement, while others were being placed
-by means of levers, on rollers in readiness to be moved to the new
-building in course of construction in the city. Some of these blocks
-measured twenty feet in length, being five feet square.
-
-These were moved to the city, and placed in position by means of rollers
-and derricks, the huge elephants doing most of the work. About the
-quarry were a great many beautiful columns, capitols, pedestals, stones
-for arches, balustrades, stairs, and roughly hewn statues, ready to be
-moved to the school of fine arts. A great many men were at work, all
-taking the greatest interest in their labors. The king explained that
-these men discontinued work at eleven o’clock, and were through for the
-day. At three o’clock another body of men went to work, and continued
-until seven in the evening. The following morning another body of men
-would take up the work, and so on, until each company of workingmen had
-taken their turn at the work in the quarries. From the time one company
-of men leave the quarry for any one of the other duties, which had to be
-performed, two weeks elapsed before they again returned. Four hours
-comprised a day’s work, and each day found the men at different
-employment from the one preceding it, until all of the different
-vocations had been temporarily filled.
-
-The party now continued their journey, passing the gold mine on their
-way to the cave of winds, or ice. Arriving at the latter place, before
-going into the cave they were taken into a small house and given very
-warm garments of untanned lion skins, their attendants telling them that
-the air was very cold in the cave and the heavy garments would not feel
-uncomfortable. The King taking the lead, they were led to a large arched
-opening into the side of the mountain. Torches were carried by the
-attendants who preceded them.
-
-A loud rumbling, which resembled the noise made by the great cataract of
-Niagara, soon fell on their ears, and this increased in volume as they
-penetrated farther into the mountain. The passage for some distance
-after entering, was about ten feet wide and that many high and large
-cakes of ice were piled up on each side as if waiting transportation.
-The passage soon widened until they found themselves in a large cave,
-the sides of which could not be seen in the darkness.
-
-The air was growing colder each moment and the awful rumbling had become
-almost deafening. Far on ahead could be seen numerous lights flickering
-in the darkness, and upon our friends asking the King what this meant,
-he told them they were used to light the lake on which men were cutting
-ice. Here the torches were exchanged for a kind of lantern with a globe
-of mica, and before our friends had proceeded much further they realized
-why this was done, for a howling wind struck them broadside nearly
-knocking them from off their feet. The wind and the deafening noise it
-made in its wild rush through this subterranean passage was terrible. It
-was fearfully cold, too, and the attendants went among the party and
-adjusted the warm fur hoods over the heads and faces, leaving space only
-for the eyes and nose. Even these precautions did not save our friends
-from the piercing cold, for the blood had been accustomed to the
-equatorial heat on the outside and this quick change could not but make
-them shiver. Mr. Bruce calculated that the extreme cold would lower the
-mercury to 40 degrees, Fah., below zero, but he might have been
-mistaken, so long had it been since he experienced such freezing
-atmosphere.
-
-On they went, fighting against the wind and cold until they reached the
-shore of the lake. Here about one hundred men were at work cutting ice,
-using a sort of long saw and an axe with a very large but narrow blade.
-The men were bundled up very carefully and worked very fast. The lake
-extended as far as could be seen in the darkness and was one solid sheet
-of ice with the exception of the place cut by the men, and even a film
-was already beginning to form over this. Near where our friends were
-standing was a flume or chute declining towards the entrance of the
-cave. The blocks of ice were brought to a point directly under this and
-being caught in a fork were raised by means of a windlass to the flume,
-where they were sent sliding to the entrance. An acre of ice was cut one
-day, and the following day another acre was cut, and by the next day, or
-at the end of forty-eight hours the ice had gained a thickness of ten
-inches over the acre that was cut on the first day. Thus had it gone on
-for centuries, each day an acre of ice being cut and supplied to the
-inhabitants. Each palace was furnished a quantity of ice sufficient for
-its needs. It was used for cooling the atmosphere as well as for drinks
-and preserving provisions.
-
-Our friends now being thoroughly chilled, and having seen all they
-wished to, they left the cavern and as soon as the villa was entered,
-attendants took charge of them, and disrobing them, plunged them into a
-hot bath, after which they were given a good rubbing and dressed in the
-clothes which they had worn upon arriving. After this a meal was served
-them.
-
-At three o’clock a start was made for the gold mine, and upon reaching
-this they were put into large cages and lowered down, down, down, until
-the very bowels of the earth must have been reached. They could see by
-the light of the torches, as they were lowered, the abandoned shafts
-which centuries before had probably been mined.
-
-Down they went until the bottom was at last reached and they left the
-cage to explore the mines. The air was fearfully hot and would have been
-unbearable but for the cool air forced into the mines from above. Miners
-were at work, wearing nothing but a breechcloth. The quartz found at
-this depth was the richest our friends had ever seen or heard of. Mr.
-Graham calculated that it would assay about eighty per cent. pure gold,
-and the quartz was easily mined. Not many men were working in this mine,
-as the quartz was so heavy with gold, that but very little was needed to
-satisfy the demand.
-
-Our friends wondered no longer at the profusion of gold ornaments and
-implements. Here was enough gold apparently to furnish the world for
-hundreds of years. The shaft which they were now working was easily one
-hundred feet wide and ten feet high. Just think of quartz assaying
-sixteen hundred pounds to the ton and thousands of tons in sight! Still
-these people did not consider it as valuable as iron, of which latter
-they had plenty, but which they found so hard to work. Onrai explained
-to our friends that the miners only worked one hour at a time and there
-were months at times when the mines were not worked at all, owing to an
-over-supply of gold. Truly these people were rich if they only knew it,
-but wealth was an unknown word to them.
-
-The party, after being shown through some of the unused shafts, where
-there was also plenty of quartz, but of an inferior quality, was hoisted
-to the surface. The mill for crushing the quartz was shown them and the
-process proved very interesting.
-
-They returned to the city in the cool of the evening, well satisfied
-with their day’s excursion. The longer our friends remained in this
-strange country, and the more they saw of its beauties and wealth, the
-more they were astonished at its vast resources. But they had seen only
-a small part of its wonders.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE JOURNEY TO THE LAKE.
-
-
-In the centre of this vast country was an immense lake, covering at
-least fifteen thousand square feet, and this was filled with almost
-every conceivable species of fresh-water fish. This lake was undoubtedly
-fed by springs, for no inlet had ever been found. The river was its
-outlet, and this, as has been said before, emptied its waters into a
-large gulf, or hole in the ground which had a subterranean outlet.
-
-For a long time our friends had wished to visit this inland sea, but
-their days had been so taken up with their other pleasures, a visit to
-the lake had been quite impossible, heretofore. However, the day was
-fixed for the long-looked-for pleasure, and they were about to start. It
-was intended that three days should be spent on this journey, one in
-going, one in fishing and the next in returning.
-
-Mr. Graham was here in his element, for he found more real pleasure in
-fishing than in any other sport; and then, from what he could learn,
-this fishing excursion was liable to have its adventures, for it was
-said, that not only were there small fish in this lake, but also marine
-monsters too fearful for description and still more fearful to come in
-contact with. He would rather that the ladies remain in the city, but
-all were determined to go, so he gave his consent.
-
-The morning, like all others in this fair land, was beautiful, and
-early, even before the sun had risen, the party started from the Temple.
-The ladies on the backs of the huge elephants, and the men riding ahead
-on sleek, well-groomed zebras, made a picture as they rode through the
-beautiful streets.
-
-The populace was already astir, and the royal party was greeted on all
-sides with that respectful salute which was so graceful, but which had
-so little humility in it. A road new to the visitors was now taken, one
-which led in a straight line due northwest, and which was smoothly paved
-with onyx. This road, or avenue, was lined with tremendous trees, the
-thick foliage of which met and mingled a hundred feet above their heads,
-making a vast shady arch through which the sun’s rays could not
-penetrate. As far as their eyes could reach this tree-arched avenue
-extended.
-
-“How far is it to the lake?” asked Nellie.
-
-“Twenty miles, according to your method of measuring distances,”
-answered Onrai.
-
-“And does this magnificent avenue extend so far?” asked Enola.
-
-“Not only to the lake,” answered Onrai, “but it borders its shores, its
-entire circumference.”
-
-“And is it all paved as it is here?” asked Harry.
-
-“Yes, throughout its entire length,” added Onrai.
-
-“And has this been done recently?” asked Enola.
-
-“Recently,” answered Onrai, “I do not understand you.”
-
-“Has it been done during your reign or the reign of your predecessor?”
-exclaimed Enola.
-
-“No, it has not been done during my reign or during my life, so I, as a
-consequence, know nothing of the time of its laying,” answered Onrai.
-
-“But it must have been laid but a short time,” said Enola, “for not one
-of these beautifully polished stones shows the least defacement.”
-
-“Oh, that counts for naught,” said Mr. Bruce, “for they are placed
-together so carefully, and the onyx itself is so hard, there is no
-possibility of its chipping.”
-
-“This is called the Avenue of On,” said Onrai, “and not only circumvents
-the lake, but stretches on from the opposite side to the farthest corner
-of On, or to the great field of brilliants.”
-
-“To the field of brilliants? Tell us of this, Onrai,” said Enola.
-
-“Far away in the direction in which we are now going is a large field
-devoid of all verdure. Rocks from the size of a zebra’s hoof to those
-half as large as the Temple cover the ground. The cliffs which surround
-our country at this point are seamed and very irregular, which shows
-that at some remote age the rocks which now cover the field were torn
-from them, and having been ground and crushed in their rush to the level
-field, have finally there found a resting place. But these stones and
-rocks do not entirely cover the field, for there seems to be an ashy
-substance and in places a bluish sandstone, and covering these are
-small, white brilliants as pure, white and clear as the water from a
-spring. During the day these stones catch the sun’s rays and gleam forth
-like polished silver but with a brilliancy much more intense. But at
-night when the great white sentinel rises in the heavens and throws its
-soft light on these stones, they look like the reflection of stars in
-the lake. I have never looked upon this field but once at night and it
-impressed me then as being the grandest sight in our whole land.”
-
-“Diamonds,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“May be so, or they may be nothing but brilliants, as he calls them,”
-said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“But do you use these?” asked Harry.
-
-“Yes, we use them,” said Onrai, “the larger ones in our sling-shots for
-killing small game; the smaller ones we polish and use for
-ornamentation. They are very hard, harder than onyx, and we find it very
-difficult to polish them.”
-
-“You are undoubtedly right, Mr. Graham,” said Mr. Bruce. “They must be
-diamonds.”
-
-“How strange it is that these people think so little of everything on
-which civilization places the greatest value,” said Enola.
-
-“Yes,” answered Mr. Graham, “but it is because these articles, gold and
-diamonds are so plentiful. I doubt not but that if these were as
-plentiful in our world we would care but little for them.”
-
-“May be,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-It was now high noon, and although the sun’s rays did not reach them,
-still the day was very hot and it was decided best to wait over for
-three or four hours in one of the farm villas which they were now
-opposite. They accordingly dismounted, and although the house was
-unoccupied at the time, still the same comforts and conveniences which
-were found in all of these charming villas were also found here. After
-partaking of a light lunch of iced wine and honey and cake, the party
-retired for a short siesta.
-
-The sun was well toward the western horizon when they again took up
-their journey and now a cool breeze had sprung up which made the ride
-along the shady flower-scented avenue, delightful in the extreme. They
-now began to meet the fishermen with their day’s catch on their way to
-the city. There were a great many of these for the lake furnished most
-of the fish for the entire populace. These fish were carried in a sort
-of kettle which was partly filled with ice; this kettle was swung
-between two zebras, the back saddles of which were connected by the rod
-from which the kettle hung. So well-trained were the zebras to this work
-that they went along perfectly and one man was able to manage eight or
-ten of these teams.
-
-Now through the trees in the distance could be seen the blue waters of
-the beautiful lake. As far as the eye could reach stretched the calm
-waters, the surface as smooth as glass. As they drew near the shore
-numerous small boats could be seen.
-
-“These are the boats of the fishermen,” said Onrai, “and that black
-speck well down toward the horizon is the island Myrrh, on which is a
-villa in which we will spend the night.”
-
-“But can we reach it before dark?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“We will have to,” said Onrai, “for it is not safe to be on the lake
-after nightfall.”
-
-“And why?” asked Enola.
-
-“Because of certain sea monsters which inhabit its waters,” said Onrai.
-
-Mr. Bruce looked at Nellie and the thought occurred to both.
-
-“Can these fearful monsters be like the one which so nearly proved our
-death in the cave?”
-
-“These marine animals are not seen during the day for they lie at the
-bottom of the lake as long as the sun is shining, but when the glorious
-orb of day has set and can no longer cast its hot rays on their hideous
-bodies, they then come to the surface and very often fearful fights
-occur among them. They prey on each other and after one of these nights
-of terrible battle I have seen the surface of the water red as far as
-the eye could reach, and may be several of their ugly dead bodies would
-be floating about the water near the island.”
-
-“It is fearful,” said Mrs. Graham.
-
-“Yes, it is the one fearful thing in this fair land of ours,” said
-Onrai.
-
-They now reached the shore and Onrai signaled one of the boats to
-approach. These boats, long and narrow, were propelled by six oarsman.
-They almost flew through the water and in a very short space of time the
-boat which Onrai had signaled drove its bow far up on the shore of the
-island. Those who had accompanied the company thus far, were to wait on
-shore until the following morning when Onrai and his friends should
-return. The boatmen pulled a quick stroke and in a half hour the island
-was reached.
-
-Attendants had anticipated them and had prepared the evening meal and
-all were soon enjoying the delights of fair On’s cuisine.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- THE FIGHT OF THE SEA MONSTERS.
-
-
-The island on which they now were was very small, not being more than
-one half mile in circumference. In fact it was a mere dot on the surface
-of this vast inland lake, but it was of considerable importance,
-nevertheless, for here the King made periodical excursions, and often
-took up his residence for weeks at a time in its charming villa. From
-the shore on which the party landed, the island rose gently to the
-centre, and on this slight eminence stood the villa. On the opposite
-side the shores were precipitous, rising in a cliff about fifty feet
-high. Bordering this cliff had been built a low, onyx wall and the
-intervening space between this and the villa had been laid out in a
-magnificent garden, filled with the redolent flowers so numerous in this
-country.
-
-It was this delightful spot, shaded by immense palms and eucalyptus
-trees, which so pleased the King and which brought him here so
-frequently. From this garden could be seen the cliffs far away to the
-south and east and the fertile country lying between, and on the
-opposite side of the lake spreading on and on until merged into the blue
-horizon. Even from the broad dining hall, in which the party were now
-sitting, could be caught glimpses of the city as it lay bathed in the
-bright moonlight far away, and occasionally dim lights could be seen
-which shone from the open villa of the pink-white city.
-
-“Look,” said Enola. “Is the scene not grand?”
-
-“Yes,” said Harry, “the most exquisite picture I ever looked upon.”
-
-“It is because of this natural picturesqueness that I visit this island
-so frequently,” said Onrai. “To me it has no equal, and I can conceive
-of nothing more beautiful.”
-
-“No,” said Enola, “nothing could be more beautiful, for here we have
-every element which goes to make up a grand landscape; the distant city
-standing on the gentle slope of the foothills, the towering cliffs
-beyond, their jagged rocks softened by the moonlight; the broad fields,
-the noble forests, and about us the blue waters of the lake.”
-
-“Truly a good country to live in,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, a fair country, with which God has dealt most kindly,” said Mr.
-Graham.
-
-The party arose and through the broad halls and lofty entrance they went
-into the garden; across this and near to the stone wall reclining seats
-had been placed for them. The scene which now met their gaze was
-ineffably grand. The lake lay before them like a sea of liquid silver
-the surface scarcely ruffled by the soft evening breeze; beyond, the
-shore of the mainland with its flickering lights, dimmed by the bright
-rays of the moon, and beyond these the magnificent panorama already
-described. The party sat for a long time lost in contemplation of the
-magnificent scenery.
-
-“Look,” said Enola, “a boat.”
-
-“No, Enola, not a boat,” said Onrai, “for it means death to any who may
-venture on the lake at night.”
-
-“It may mean death, Onrai, but nevertheless some one of your countrymen
-has undertaken the hazardous journey to-night, for see, the lights in
-the bow shine brightly,” replied Enola.
-
-Onrai had arisen as Enola had spoken, and stepping to the wall looked
-long at the black object coming toward them, then resuming his seat, he
-said:
-
-“No, it is one of the monsters; those lights are its fiery eyes.”
-
-A shudder ran through the frames of all present excepting Onrai, who had
-long since become accustomed to look upon these fearful sea serpents. On
-the black mass came, growing larger and larger as it neared them.
-Remembrances of the fearful race with and escape from the monster in the
-cavern came to the minds of those who had participated in this dreadful
-scene, and Mrs. Graham arising, said:
-
-“Onrai, you will pardon, I hope, a woman’s faintheartedness, but I
-cannot look upon the scenes which we have been told by you will shortly
-take place near us; so with your kind permission I will retire to my
-apartment.”
-
-“You have my permission most assuredly, Mrs. Graham, and it grieves me
-to think that I have been the cause of this disturbance of mind. When
-these monsters come together the battle will be fearful, and if the
-other ladies feel that they cannot witness it, it would be better for
-them to retire also, for see! other monsters are now coming, and the
-fight will soon commence.”
-
-At this Nellie arose and together with her mother they entered the
-villa.
-
-As Onrai had said, other black masses were now seen and the glow of red
-eyes shone through the semi-darkness from all directions. On came their
-bodies growing larger as they came nearer. Now the foremost had reached
-the base of the cliff and raising its huge body half out of the water,
-threw its ugly head back and fastened its glittering eyes on those who
-were watching its movements from above. The moon shone full on its long,
-dragon-like body and the party shuddered with horror as they recognized
-in it the exact counterpart of the sea-monster of the cave. After gazing
-on those above it for a full minute, and then realizing probably that
-they were out of its reach, the monster became enraged and, throwing
-itself back into the water beat the surface with its wing-like fins and
-long tail until almost lost to view in the foam thus created. But others
-had now come close to the rock, and as the number increased the water
-was blackened by their dark bodies. It was a mass of writhing,
-horror-depicting sea reptiles, and as they wound in and out under and
-over each other, their eyes glowing the while, it was enough to make the
-stoutest heart grow faint.
-
-Suddenly one of them, which had been crowded close to the rocks by the
-great number from behind, and finding it impossible to extricate itself
-in any other way, dove, and piercing the body of the one next to it,
-held it half out of water, pinioned on its formidable horn.
-
-“Ah, the battle has commenced,” said Onrai.
-
-“It is fearful,” again said Enola.
-
-“Horrible but fascinating,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“This is but the beginning,” said Onrai. “In a few moments the whole
-seething mass will be engaged in one grand battle royal. If, Enola, you
-think you cannot look on this hideous spectacle, it would be better for
-you to retire now.”
-
-“No,” said Enola, “I wish to see it all.”
-
-They again turned their attention to the monsters. When the beast had
-been pierced by the horn of its companion, it had given out a fearful
-groan like that of a dying man. This seemed to be a signal, for
-immediately the beast began to beat the water with fins and tail, until
-the spray was forced upward almost splashing our friends. In fact the
-lake looked as if it had been struck by a hurricane so turbulent had the
-waters become. All this commotion was but preliminary, however, for it
-soon ceased, and all was perfectly quiet for a moment, when, as if moved
-by a common impulse the battle commenced in earnest.
-
-Each had, seemingly, during the short interval of rest, selected its
-prey or opponent, for as far as could be seen the fight was a succession
-of duels, not more than two being engaged at once in tearing each other
-to pieces. Fastening their fiery eyes on each other they would retreat
-for a short distance, and then, with heads thrown back and their
-enormous jaws opened, would make a rush for each other, coming together
-with sickening force, their huge jaws crunching into each other’s
-bodies, or, perhaps fastening jaw into jaw. Then they would writhe and
-squirm, beating each other with their fins and tails. Upon becoming
-exhausted, if one or the other had not been overcome with the struggle
-they would disengage themselves, and retreating, rest for a moment and
-then make another rush for each other. Now they would dive, ripping each
-other with their murderous tusks, frequently both being beneath the
-surface, but the agitation of the water telling that the fearful battle
-was being continued far beneath.
-
-Again they would rise to the surface, their bodies torn and lacerated,
-and blood from the gaping wounds dyeing the water a crimson red. One
-would finally succumb and the survivors, after giving their fallen
-antagonists a parting thrust, would swim away until outside the
-seething, battling mass. Here it would nurse its wounds, waiting
-seemingly for the horrible struggle to end. Here also it would be joined
-by other victors, but these undoubtedly having the proper respect for
-the fighting powers of those about them, would not again take the risk
-of being annihilated.
-
-The duelling was becoming less fierce each moment for the weaker were
-fast being overcome and the survivors joining their victorious comrades.
-All this time the dreadful groans continued. Now the last victor had
-vanquished his foe and joined the others.
-
-“Ah, the battle is finished,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“No, not yet,” said Onrai. “Watch the line of victors.”
-
-These had formed a straight compact line, and as if by a signal, they
-charged on the bodies of the dead and wounded floating on the surface.
-Their movements were as swift as lightning, and like a body of
-well-drilled cavalrymen they charged, killing the helpless wounded, and
-lacerating the bodies of the dead. Then they again retreated and, as the
-first faint rays of morn streaked the eastern heavens, they sank beneath
-the surface, leaving the bodies of their victims to rot in the heat of
-the equatorial sun.
-
-When the party again reached the mainland, they were taken to the villa
-in which they were to spend the night. The men returned to the lake in
-the evening and watched the process of cutting up the monsters, and
-taking from them the fat which produced the oil. The remains of the
-animals were then piled in heaps and burned. One hundred and four had
-been killed the night before, but how many still remained to be
-slaughtered by their mates?
-
-As the men stood watching the scene, Onrai said:
-
-“This sight is even becoming loathsome to me; let us return to the
-villa.”
-
-As they were crossing the broad avenue, a suspicion of music was wafted
-from the direction of the city. It was so faint that our friends could
-not say whether it was the music of distant harps, or the song of some
-night bird, far away. They stopped for a moment and listened, but the
-sound not again being heard, they resumed their walk toward the villa.
-
-Onrai had also stopped and seemed to be listening, but had offered no
-explanation until they again started for the villa. Our friends seemed
-to think he could explain this distant music if he wished to, and they
-looked at him inquiringly. Noticing this look, Onrai said:
-
-“In two months comes the Day of Resis. It is our custom during the two
-months previous to this day to sing songs of praise at this hour each
-evening.”
-
-“Are they songs of joy and happiness?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“They are,” said Onrai. But he would say nothing further on the subject.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- THE NIGHT OF PRAYER.
-
-
-As the night came on and the glorious moon rose high into the heavens,
-bathing all in its silvery rays, the very beauty of the scene made our
-friends forget the horrors of the night before. They had assembled in
-the garden, and the swinging chairs, as they were moved slowly backward
-and forward by the attendants, were conducive to rest and comfort. They
-were far enough removed from the lake to be entirely free from any
-suggestions which its busy scenes might make.
-
-Near Enola stood the great white elephant, which she rode on all
-journeys, its huge body towering into the air and nearly touching the
-lower boughs of the trees. This elephant had become so attached to Enola
-that it seemed happy only when with her, and she had requested of Onrai
-that he allow “Gip,” as she had named it, to come into the garden while
-they were there. He had now taken hold of the rope with his trunk and
-was swinging the chair as carefully as could be done by the attendants.
-Occasionally he would let out that peculiar cry so much like an
-infant’s, when Enola would hand him one of the sweets which she always
-had about her when he was near.
-
-Several of the zebras were also grazing in the garden and the deer,
-which were numerous, would come up now and then, and with their great
-liquid eyes, gaze into the faces of our friends. There was no timidity
-in these animals, for they were all treated so kindly, and had so long
-been made pets of, that all fear of the human form had left them.
-
-The lofty trees, the flower-bedecked garden with the animals wandering
-through it, the perfumed air, the pink onyx villa in the background, the
-silk-robed party swinging lazily to and fro, the attendants standing
-near, and above all, the glorious moon, made an enchanting scene.
-Suddenly, as if in a dream, too faint almost to be heard, was wafted on
-the evening breeze a strain as sweet and indistinct as the low melody of
-an Æolian harp. Onrai half rose and as the music grew stronger he became
-erect, and bowing his head, almost whispered, “’Tis the night of
-prayer.”
-
-The attendants discontinued the swinging of the chairs and also bowed
-their heads. Our friends, half aroused from the sweet languor into which
-they had fallen, looked with wondering eyes at Onrai. The exquisite
-music was coming nearer and nearer, and now could be discerned
-harmonious voices mingling with the strains of the harp. On and on they
-came, the music growing louder and stronger, but losing none of its
-sweetness. Onrai and the attendants still stood with bowed heads, and in
-a subdued voice, Onrai was evidently repeating a prayer. So impressive
-was the beautiful music and the devout attitude of those about them, our
-friends were deeply moved, and had now also arisen and were standing
-with bent heads and clasped hands, breathing a prayer.
-
-Now those who were making such sweet music had reached the villa, and
-our friends raising their eyes, looked upon a picture. Standing in the
-foreground, with his arm thrown over the neck of the zebra, from which
-he had dismounted, and holding in one hand a shepherd’s hook, was a
-white-robed priest. Grouped in a semicircle about him, were a number of
-maidens all carrying tiny torches. Back of them was a body of men, and
-still further in the background were the elephants and zebras which had
-brought the party from the city.
-
-As they stood there, Onrai approached and spoke to the priest in the
-native tongue. Then, with the King leading, they went direct to the
-villa and entered.
-
-“How strange,” said Enola, when Onrai with his visitors had left them
-alone.
-
-“Strange indeed,” said Mr. Graham. “Can it be that they bring unexpected
-news from the city?”
-
-“It is hard to tell,” said Mr. Bruce. “But I think not. It is evidently
-a celebration of one of their religious rites. From the solemn
-proceedings I should say that this was so.”
-
-Just then Onrai was seen approaching them and when he was directly
-opposite, he said:
-
-“’Tis the night of prayer, come;” and turning, he retraced his steps
-with our friends following.
-
-They were led through the wide hall to a spacious apartment in the rear.
-This apartment was the exact counterpart of the large devotional chamber
-in the Temple, but somewhat smaller. Subdued lights were placed at
-frequent intervals about the sides of the apartment, and others hung
-from the lofty ceiling. In the centre was a wide, crescent-shaped
-platform, and standing about its base were those who had so recently
-come from the city.
-
-As the King entered with our party the natives commenced playing on
-their native harps, and the low, sweet music penetrated to the very
-souls of our friends. Onrai led them to the platform on which seats had
-been placed; then the priest also mounted the platform, and facing the
-King, commenced reading in the native tongue from one of the polished
-tablets of wood. He then passed this to the King and he, arising, read
-from it the same inscription. Then the priest raised his hand, and all
-joined in a chant, the maidens accompanying the voices on the harps. It
-was solemn but grand and very impressive. The chant ended, the priest
-again turned toward the King and began speaking, the maidens in the
-meanwhile playing a sweet refrain on the harps. The priest having
-finished speaking, the King arose, turned his face heavenward and
-prayed:
-
-“God our Father, God of the Heavens and earth, God of On, God of all, as
-the flowers turn their faces to the great orb of day, so we on this
-night of prayer, turn our faces to Thee. O God, we know that all
-blessings come from Thee and we thank Thee. We thank Thee for the
-fertile fields, the green pastures, the silvery waters, the shady
-forest, the life-giving sun of day, the soft-lighted moon and cool
-breezes of the night. We feel Thy presence O God, we know that Thou art
-near us. Still be with us and when our time has come take us home to
-Thee, our God, our Father.”
-
-Onrai ceased praying and the sweet voices and the music of the harps
-again broke forth. Now the voices grew fainter, the music more subdued,
-the lights growing dimmer and dimmer. Now the voices were almost
-whispering, the strains of music are dying, dying, the lights are
-flickering. At last all is hushed and dark. Suddenly the Temple was
-flooded with brilliant light, a glorious grand flood of song and music
-burst forth. More brilliant becomes the light, louder and grander grows
-the music, as if from a thousand voices, as if from a thousand harps.
-Now comes a troop of maidens robed in shimmering white, singing and
-playing. Lightly they trip over the polished floor, their forms swaying
-and their limbs bending gracefully as they dance.
-
-Our friends hold their breath for fear of losing one strain of the sweet
-music; they lean forward eagerly to catch every movement of the willowy
-figures. All is grand beyond conception. The music becomes more
-soul-stirring, the dance grows quicker, the lights blinding in their
-brilliancy. Our friends arise in their eagerness to see and hear. ’Tis
-glorious!
-
-Suddenly the maidens leave the room, the song and music cease, the
-lights are darkened. ’Tis over.
-
-The night of prayer with its grand and imposing ceremonies had passed,
-and now the party had again assembled and were partaking of the morning
-meal preparatory to starting on the day’s journey. It was yet very
-early, for in this equatorial climate the journeys had to be taken in
-the cool of the mornings and evenings. The sun’s rays in the middle of
-the day were too hot to withstand. Through the open door could be seen
-the elephants and zebras trapped and waiting for the start. Nearby
-stood, not only the attendants, but also the party which had arrived the
-night before. Turning to Onrai, Enola asked:
-
-“Are those who came from the city also to accompany us, Onrai?”
-
-“Yes,” answered Onrai, “it is essential that they should go with us, for
-we shall not have returned to the city before the night of prayer shall
-have again come, and on this night we must have a priest and
-attendants.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- THE ACCUSATION.
-
-
-The heat of the day had been excessive, but our friends had not suffered
-to any great extent because of the shade which the avenue trees had
-afforded; and then they had rested during the midday hour, and had not
-taken up the journey until late in the afternoon. Then, too, the brisk
-trot of the animals, as they moved over the smooth stone pavement, had
-created a breeze which was very cooling to the riders; but as they
-emerged from the forest, dark clouds were seen rising out of the west;
-dark, forboding clouds, which portended rain and probably a hard blow.
-The forerunner of this equatorial storm reached them before they arrived
-at the villa, in the shape of quick, rapidly moving gusts of wind, which
-would overtake them and moving on would leave the air perfectly calm,
-hot and humid, until the next gust would spring out of the ground
-seemingly, and fly after its leaders.
-
-The riders hurried on, one minute fanned by a refreshing breeze and the
-next almost sweltering in the dead calm. But they suffered only a short
-time, as the villa was reached and once inside its cool, onyx walls, all
-thought of the humidity of the outside was forgotten, and the on-coming
-storm was only thought of as making the air cool for the morrow’s
-journey. After dinner the travelers went into the garden and hardly any
-signs were seen now of the approaching storm; in fact, the evening was
-much the same as had been many others since their arrival. They retired
-late but had not slept long when the wind rose almost to a gale. The
-storm was a novelty, and our friends never having seen an equatorial
-storm, all arose and went on the terrace.
-
-The elephants had already sniffed the approaching storm and began to
-throw their trunks in the air, moving their huge ears back and forth,
-all the time making those funny sounds, which seemed so strange in such
-large animals. The storm meant to them a refreshing bath, coupled with a
-feed of grass and herbs washed by the cooling rain; they gloried in it.
-The zebras were already grazing, or half buried in the long grass, were
-rolling and kicking, happy to be free from bridle and saddle.
-
-Onrai alone, of all the party, after going onto the terrace, seemed to
-be worried over the storm. He had gone to one end of the terrace, and
-now stood looking intently at the black mass of clouds which were
-rolling on, coming nearer and nearer, and reaching out huge, dark arms
-toward the earth. He was muttering in the strange tongue of his people:
-
-“An omen. Is our great God angry? Have my people failed in their duties?
-Have we neglected our work? Have we treated lightly our teachings? No;
-but our God is great. He sees all things, and goes deep into the hearts
-of his people, and he knows even if they contemplate doing wrong. Oh!——”
-Onrai raises his hand to his forehead, and pressing it tightly against
-his throbbing temples, he staggers and almost falls.
-
-“Can this thing be?” he gasped. “Is this a warning to me, the King of
-the Land of On? Is this to show me that God knows my sinful thoughts and
-would check them before it is forever too late? Oh, my God, spare me!”
-he cries, and sinks into one of the onyx chairs near him. His powerful
-frame shook like an aspen leaf; his breath came in gasps; his hands
-twitched nervously; his eyes almost started from their sockets as he
-gazed on the black clouds, which seemed to engulf him. Unable to look
-upon the fearful sight any longer, he sprung to his feet, and shading
-his eyes with his hand as if to hide from view those fearful clouds, he
-staggered towards the entrance. He struck something as he hurried
-forward, and started back frightened. Looking up he saw that it was
-Enola, and raising his hand as if to warn her back, he said:
-
-“You, too? Have you come to accuse me at this moment? Could you not have
-spared me?”
-
-Onrai again started for the entrance, but Enola noticing the pained look
-in his face, and being totally at a loss to know why he should address
-her in this manner, caught him by the light tunic as he was passing her.
-He stopped and looked at her with frightened eyes.
-
-“Onrai,” said Enola, “don’t look at me in that way. How have I offended
-you? Tell me, is it I or one of my people?”
-
-Onrai looked at her, his heroic figure standing erect, his shoulders
-thrown back as if to defy the influence which Enola was exerting over
-him. But his face was deathly pale and his hands clutched nervously as
-they hung by his side; his eye never flinched, however, as he looked at
-her.
-
-“Onrai, do not look at me so,” said Enola, stepping back, growing afraid
-of that unbending figure and steely gaze.
-
-“What have I done?” she continued. “I come to seek you to-night to thank
-you for the happy, happy day which you have given me; for having
-suggested this pleasant journey. The beautiful music of the evening made
-me forget for a time this duty, but I thought of it as I retired to my
-apartment and was glad of the opportunity which the storm afforded me to
-thank you yet to-night. My heart was light as I came from the villa,
-expecting to find that great, noble Onrai glad to see me and ready to
-hear my thanks, but I find him excited and nervous, and when he sees me
-he speaks as I never heard him speak before. Tell me, oh, tell me,
-Onrai, what have I done?”
-
-Enola stopped near the entrance and waited for Onrai’s answer.
-
-“What have you done?” he said. “Everything. You have come from that
-planet home of yours and have stolen into our land in the night; but we
-have received you as guests and have treated you as we would those who
-come from afar and sought our hospitality.
-
-“Myself and my people have done all in our power to make your sojourn in
-our world a happy one. From that world of yours, far above, in one of
-those shining stars which twinkles and throws its soft light on us on
-the clear beautiful nights, we believe that your people have for ages
-looked down on us, and have learned our life, our customs and our
-secrets. This we have learned to believe since you have come among us,
-for before that time we knew nothing of another people. And you come to
-us with the chain of the high priest about your neck, and this is proof
-that you know the great secrets of the high priests and those of the Day
-of Resis. For this reason we have looked for you to respect our laws and
-customs. To all but me you seem to have done this. I have just begun to
-believe that you, and may be your people, have no respect for the sacred
-laws that govern me, the King of On. To-night has been a revelation to
-me. Never before, during my life, has there come such a storm at this
-season. I looked at the dark heavens and saw the black clouds hurried on
-by the mad winds, almost sweeping the earth, and I could see in it only
-a warning. Then it flashed over my bewildered brain that the warning was
-meant for me. I had sinned. But why had I sinned? Because tempted by you
-who knew our laws, and knew the fearful punishment which would be the
-King’s who would dare disobey these laws. You who cared naught for all
-these, but still threw out your alluring temptations, your subtle
-fascinations, in order to entrap me. But God has spoken in this storm
-and I am saved. Listen to His voice,” and as he ceased speaking a
-fearful peal of thunder broke through the air as if in answer to him.
-
-Enola stood aghast during this accusation, unable to account for this
-fearful change in Onrai’s conduct toward her, until he had mentioned the
-storm, and then she realized that it was this unusual phenomenon which
-had wakened in his mind the sin he was committing in loving her; she
-must let him know that these fascinations were only those which God had
-given her, and that the seeming allurements were but the graceful
-acknowledgments of his many courtesies. But how to tell him, how to
-convince him! He still stood like a statue, like an accusing Apollo who
-had but little mercy for one who had caused him even a moment’s pain. To
-suffer for even an instant was such a new sensation to the man, and it
-was so acute withal, that for the time he could find no forgiveness for
-the one who had caused it, and he stood contemplating Enola, for the
-moment a savage, glaring at the one who had caused him a moment’s pain,
-and whom he had in his power to torture as he saw fit.
-
-He forgot his love for her for the moment; he only remembered that she
-had hurt him, and when the first great fear of the discovery was over,
-he grew hard and cold and wanted revenge. Enola saw that she had blind
-superstition to deal with, superstition whose birth was in sin, and she
-knew that it would be hard to convince Onrai of her innocence. But this
-she must do; so taking a step timidly toward him, she raised her hand as
-if she would touch his arm, but when he saw this movement he
-involuntarily drew his arm away as if afraid that her touch would
-contaminate him. The movement hurt her more than all his harsh words had
-done, and she partially turned as if to walk away, but remembering the
-fearful consequences that might ensue unless Onrai’s mind should be
-disabused of this fearful mistake which he had made, she turned again,
-and placing her hands behind her, walked up to him and looking him
-straight in the eye, said:
-
-“Onrai, look at me. Do you see any guilt or flinching in my eye? Do you
-think that I, who have the same faith in the same God that you have,
-could look at you now if I were guilty, and too, when this fearful storm
-is raging, which you call the voice and anger of God? No, Onrai; you and
-your people have a mistaken idea when you think we knew your life,
-customs and laws before we came to your world. We did not even know that
-your people existed; but we knew that there was a world here and we
-determined to visit it, and learn whether it was inhabited or not. So we
-came and found this glorious land and this beautiful, justice-loving
-people. And never until to-night have I learned to think that they had
-any but the grandest minds, with the most charitable thoughts for those
-who had been thrown in with them for awhile. I understand your laws but
-imperfectly, and I do not understand why you should treat me thus, or
-accuse me of wishing to make you sin or suffer because of an unusual
-phenomenon. Search your mind, Onrai, and see if it was not yourself who
-sinned willingly and not because I have tempted you; ask yourself if in
-any way I have been less modest than your native women; whether I have
-sought you, or you me; whether I have not avoided you rather than sought
-you. Ask yourself these questions, and then accuse me if you can.” And
-as Enola finished speaking, she drew herself up nobly and started to
-walk toward the entrance. She had nearly reached this when Onrai stepped
-forward and almost in a whisper, said:
-
-“Enola, wait; wait; let me think; let me think; my brain is whirling; I
-cannot see all clearly yet; but it is growing brighter. Oh, Enola,
-forgive, forgive me. I cannot now tell you the great sin which I thought
-was your making, but which I can now see was all my own. The laws of the
-Land of On are stringent on this point, and if I should give up to the
-temptation I would be killed. To be killed for sinning means not only
-the death of the body, but the everlasting torture of the soul. It is a
-fearful thing for any of us to sin, but how much more so is it for the
-King, the chosen one, who is the people’s choice not because he is the
-greatest physically, but the purest of mind, if there can be one purer
-than the others. But I have sinned unwittingly, and it is because of
-this that I was so ready to accuse you. But I look at you now and see in
-that clear, unflinching eye, that smooth brow and erect body, no guilt.
-You are innocent, Enola; innocent and I ask forgiveness. It seems
-strange that I should use the word to one on earth, for it belongs to
-God, and is never used among us. But I have wronged you fearfully and I
-know not how else to make amends. Forgive me, Enola,” and as he
-finished, he took her hand and raised it to his lips.
-
-Enola was crying, for the pleading words of this strong man, this King,
-touched her strangely.
-
-“But tell me, Onrai, of this strange sin, that I may know,” she said.
-
-“No,” Onrai answered, “it would be a greater sin to tell it to you. But
-listen; what is that fearful rumbling sound?”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- THE STORM.
-
-
-So absorbed had Enola and Onrai been in their talk that the storm had
-been forgotten for the moment. But it had not abated but had rather
-grown fiercer and blacker, until now it was so dark that objects only a
-short distance away could not be seen. The elephants could be heard
-stalking through the garden, and occasionally their huge bodies and also
-the zebras would be lit up by the lurid lightning. But the wind had died
-down to almost a calm a few moments before, and nothing had broken the
-stillness of the night but the sharp peals of thunder which would follow
-the brilliant lightning.
-
-But as Onrai spoke, a rumbling was heard, not like distant thunder, but
-less distinct, like the rattling of a distant railway train, the sound
-being regular but growing louder each moment. The others of the party
-now joined Enola and Onrai, and the attendants grouped themselves about
-the terrace. There was no fear depicted on their faces, or shown in
-their actions, but there was the greatest wonderment. This was something
-unheard of, a storm like this promised to be, in the heart of the dry
-season; still fear was unknown to them, or that fear which is caused by
-a possibility of bodily suffering. They simply wondered and did not even
-try to make out the mystery.
-
-Now the elephants seemed to scent danger, for they would sniff the air
-and then give out that peculiar cry. The zebras had gathered together in
-one part of the garden and would neigh in a pitiful manner as if
-expecting danger. The rumbling grew louder and more distinct and now
-sounded like the falling of many trees. The heavens were lurid with
-flash after flash of lightning, this lending a fearfulness to the scene
-which was awful. Now the elephants came up quite near to the terrace as
-if trying to find a place of refuge, and standing together with their
-backs turned toward the storm waited for the worst. Then the trees gave
-out a gentle wail as they were touched with the first breath of the
-wind; then they began to sway and groan as if in mortal agony. Each
-moment the wind grew more fierce, the lightning more vivid, the rumbling
-more deafening.
-
-“Is this not unusual, Onrai?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“It has never before happened at this time of the year,” said Onrai. “At
-this season we never expect rain and depend wholly on the heavy dews to
-moisten our vegetation.”
-
-“It seems to be very fierce. Are your storms all like this?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“We have very hard storms accompanied by very strong winds, but I have
-never seen, or heard anything like this. Listen; is it not growing
-worse?” and Onrai’s face for the first time looked troubled.
-
-“Yes, very much worse,” said Harry, “and I would advise that we all go
-inside the villa.”
-
-“No, Harry,” said Enola, “let us remain outside until driven in. The
-sight is too grand to lose.”
-
-“I am willing to remain but it is much safer inside during a storm like
-this,” said Harry.
-
-Now the noise drowned their voices and conversation was given up. The
-air seemed full of electricity; the flesh tingled with it; the nostrils
-inhaled it and a copperish taste was left in the mouth.
-
-“Look,” shouted Enola, “what is that fearful mass approaching, and hear
-that terrible sound. It is like the dashing of thousands of waves
-against the rocks, or the tearing asunder of mighty mountains.”
-
-This was true; and now in the lurid lightning could be seen the dark
-clouds flying over Mother Earth, crushing all in its way. On the left of
-the villa was an open space, probably five miles broad, and on the far
-edge of this, as Enola spoke, could be seen the black cloud approaching.
-It seemed to take everything in its course and now the air was filled
-with all kinds of debris; huge logs of wood and even large boulders were
-seen flying through the air. It was a seething, hurling mass, made more
-awful by the ear-piercing noise and the continuous lightning.
-
-“A cyclone,” shouted Mr. Graham, but his voice could hardly be heard
-above the fearful din. “Hasten,” he continued, “into the house,” and
-leading his wife by one hand and Nellie by the other he hurried toward
-the entrance.
-
-Onrai took Enola by the arm and was hurrying with all speed toward the
-large arch, when Enola, looking at the elephants, saw Gip looking
-pitifully at her and extending his trunk toward her as if begging her to
-help him. “Poor Gip,” she said, and freeing herself from Onrai’s
-retaining arm, she walked to the edge of the terrace and patted the
-elephant on the trunk stretched toward her.
-
-“Come Enola or it will be too late,” said Onrai. But it was even then
-too late, for Enola had leaned too far over the edge and losing her
-balance, fell to the lawn beneath. The distance was not great and Enola
-was not hurt, so she picked herself up and started for the steps leading
-to the terrace. But the wind had now grown so fierce she could hardly
-keep an upright position, and before she realized it she was being
-hurried forward with a speed which almost took her feet from under her.
-On by the steps she sped, unable to battle against the wind and force
-her way up these.
-
-Gip had followed her, wonderingly at first, but at last, seeming to
-realize her peril, quickened his pace and just as the wind was about to
-hurl her to the ground, he grasped her about the waist with his powerful
-trunk and turned toward the terrace again; but the awful wind was even
-stronger than this mighty animal, and he was losing ground each step.
-Bravely he battled, holding Enola far above his head, his trunk
-encircling her body just tightly enough to keep her from slipping
-through its folds. His great body now began to sway in the gale and it
-looked for a moment as if both elephant and Enola would be picked up and
-swept into the fearful, swirling holocaust overhead.
-
-Gip knew his danger, so turning his back to the storm he hurried on with
-it. At first he traveled only in a trot as if reluctant to give up to
-the power of the storm, but his pace grew faster and faster as this
-fearful power asserted itself, until he was flying over the ground, he
-seemed to no longer touch the ground so rapid was his pace. He had
-thrown Enola over on his back so that she could rest her limbs, but he
-still kept a firm hold on her with his trunk, and they kept up the mad
-rush together. The air was filled with debris of all kinds and Enola was
-afraid to open her eyes for fear of being blinded. On they rushed, the
-elephant keeping up the mad pace before the wind. One moment it would be
-as black as Erebus; the next the lightning’s glare would break through
-the dirt filled atmosphere. It was a seething mass, a hurricane sweeping
-all before it; twisting trees from their roots or snapping their huge
-trunks like straws; sucking up great quantities of water as it crossed
-inlets of the lake; picking up in its mighty grasp cows, sheep, deer,
-zebra and all other animals excepting the huge elephants, whose great
-weight kept them from being carried from earth.
-
-Enola was lying flat on Gip’s back, he holding her there as if he
-understood that she would be drawn from his grasp if he allowed her to
-sit up for even a moment. Grandly the noble beast fought against the
-fearful storm; the awful pace had now kept up so long he was fast giving
-out, and Enola could feel his grasp growing weaker, and feel the weary
-limbs give way when they would strike the earth; his breath came quick
-and he was gasping like a dying human being; but he kept on fighting,
-still fighting that enemy which was each moment getting the best of his
-efforts.
-
-He stumbled and fell to his knees, but he was up again in an instant and
-hurrying before the wind; again he fell, and this time his huge body lay
-flat on its side, but he had held Enola aloof and she had been only
-slightly jarred. A groan escaped the noble beast as he tried to regain
-his feet. “Brave Gip!” said Enola, as she patted him on the trunk. “Once
-more, Gip, just once more, my noble friend, and we may yet escape.” Gip
-made a supreme effort, and regained his feet. The thought now occurred
-to Enola that if she could guide the elephant out of this current of
-wind which was hurrying them on to destruction, they might yet be saved.
-She had seen the attendants touch the elephants on the right or left
-side of the head when wanting them to move in either direction, and she
-determined to try it. Reaching her hand out as far as she could, she was
-just able to touch the right ear of the elephant.
-
-She struck this with her open hand, saying, “Try it, Gip, good Gip,” and
-Gip, with strength nearly gone, turned as much to the right as possible,
-and beating against the strong wind, hurried on as fast as his weakened
-condition would allow him. In thus beating against the storm in an
-oblique direction, it brought them in a direct line with the flying
-debris, and Enola began to be bruised by the sticks and small stones
-which filled the air. She could hardly breathe either, for the dust and
-dirt which were swept up by the swirling current. She tried to protect
-her face with her hands, but these were soon raw and bleeding with the
-sand blast. Her eyes were filled with dirt, and her throat was dry and
-parched with the inhalation of the dirt-filled atmosphere.
-
-She was suffering fearful agonies, and her suffering was growing worse
-every moment; she tried to hold her face closer to the elephant’s back,
-but she was too weak now to make any exertion at all. On the great,
-brave beast moved, his body swaying with the wind, and each minute
-looking as if he must give up the struggle. Now the fury of the storm
-seemed to have grown worse, and the next instant it seemed to be
-abating. This would give hope to the suffering girl and to the animal,
-and a moment’s breathing space in which they could recuperate slightly
-and prepare for a renewed effort.
-
-It was just after one of these momentary spells of comparative quiet,
-that Gip, reeling and almost falling, had tried to pull himself together
-for another trial. His massive body seemed almost rigid as he stopped
-for a moment and braced himself; he half released his hold on Enola, and
-she, almost exhausted, felt that the grand fortitude of the animal and
-his sublime strength had given way, and that hope was indeed gone. But
-no; Gip shook all over; and, his nerves again relieved, made a last
-effort to go on. Painfully he strode on, never for a moment leaving the
-course which Enola had started him on.
-
-The air seemed to grow thicker with sand and dust, while above them and
-all about them were flying logs, trees and stones. Enola was bruised and
-bleeding and she was on the point of fainting, when she opened her eyes
-for a moment, and just in time to see a huge tree fly through the air,
-and strike Gip fairly on the side of the head. Down he went like a shot,
-carrying Enola with him, but still holding her in his trunk. He had made
-a brave fight and lost.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- IN THE TRACK OF THE STORM.
-
-
-Sedai, who had been such a prominent figure in the first part of the
-journey, and who had played such a part in the real cause of the
-expedition, had not been forgotten since reaching the Land of On, but so
-many new and strange things had come up to occupy the time and minds of
-our friends, and so many attendants had been placed at their disposal,
-Sedai had not been called upon to perform the many little duties to
-which he had become accustomed, and he was left to enjoy himself much as
-he saw fit. He had accompanied the party on the first part of the
-journey, but the King wished to send word back to the city, of the
-change in the programme and of their intention to proceed to the far end
-of the country before their return, and Sedai had offered to carry the
-message. Not that native messengers were wanting, but Sedai seemed to
-find more enjoyment in the delightfully cool and comfortable city than
-he did riding through the somewhat heated country.
-
-But he had been too long accustomed to the march, and the white
-companions of the past few weeks had become too dear to him, to long
-remain away from them; so after spending one day in the city, he
-determined to start out and overtake the party. But now a strange thing
-occurred. Far off in the west, just creeping up from the horizon, rose a
-dark cloud, at first no larger than a zebra, but growing in size each
-moment and fast approaching the city. It soon overcast half the heavens
-and the entire populace was standing in the streets gazing at this
-wonder. The cloud had cut off the twilight completely and now, while it
-was yet early, darkness was over all, a darkness which was appalling.
-The populace exchanged looks of wonderment, but offered no explanation
-of this strange freak of the elements.
-
-Sedai, who had long been accustomed to seeing these fearful electric and
-wind storms, was surprised to see the wonderment in the faces of these
-people. Turning to one who was near him, he said:
-
-“Why do you gaze at the heavens in that way; have you never before seen
-a storm?”
-
-“Many of them,” answered the man, “but never at this time of the year,
-and never at any time as fierce a one as this promises to be.”
-
-“It does indeed look very threatening,” said Sedai.
-
-The night grew even darker, and then the lightning broke through the
-black clouds for a moment illuminating the beautiful city which the
-inhabitants had for the first time in their lives, failed to lighten.
-The thunder rolled up from the west, making a deafening roar, and still
-the people stood gazing, so overpowered were they by this strange event.
-And now the fitful gusts of wind reached them, and then a few drops of
-rain fell; and listen: what is that fearful sound. It is not thunder,
-for the thunder is roaring peal on peal and cannot be mistaken. This is
-something else. It can be heard only when the thunder rests for a
-moment. And it is growing nearer, and a little longer and it seems to be
-almost on them.
-
-Like a flash it comes to Sedai.
-
-“It is the simoon,” he cries, in such an alarmed voice that all look at
-him in surprise. Again he called out, “the simoon.” And now the natives
-all crowded around asking him what he meant. He had not learned the
-language sufficiently to make them understand by words, but by making
-signs he explained to them how the great winds sweep over the earth,
-leveling houses, trees and all else to the ground. Even then they showed
-no signs of fear. But one of them happened to remember the King, and
-that he, with the strange guests, was somewhere in the country, over
-which the storm was now approaching.
-
-“The King,” the man cried, and then, the others catching his meaning,
-and realizing the King’s danger, the cry of “the King” rose high above
-the roar of the storm.
-
-Sedai grasped the situation at once and knew that the King and his
-friends must be in imminent peril. The storm had come up just at that
-hour of the evening when the party, having rested during the heat of the
-day, might be expected to be on the road. If this was true and they were
-near no villa at the time, they must have fallen victims to the storm.
-But the populace was also fully aroused now, and already men were
-appearing in the streets astride of zebras, waiting only for others to
-congregate when they would hurry on to the rescue of the King and his
-party, if it was not already too late.
-
-Sedai also brought out his zebra and joining the party, they started for
-the shore of the lake, knowing that somewhere near this would be found
-the King and his party. They started down the Avenue of On with the hope
-of reaching the King and his friends in time to help them, but the air
-was now becoming thick with sand and even sticks and stones, and the
-rescuing party were riding right in the face of this merciless
-hurricane. The zebras held their heads far down and moved on
-determinedly. Their riders lay close to their necks, endeavoring in this
-way to protect their faces. But it grew worse. The zebras, now
-thoroughly blinded, stumbled on, making heroic efforts to keep up the
-uneven struggle, but their pace was growing slower and slower and there
-seemed to be no chance for their getting much further. Suddenly Sedai’s
-zebra turned to the right and left the avenue, the others followed. The
-party dared not open their eyes to see where the zebras were taking
-them, but after a little while noticing a cessation of the pitiless rain
-of sand and gravel, they opened their eyes as well as they could, and
-found that the animals had left the road and had sought shelter from the
-fearful storm near one of the farm villas. They had stopped under the
-east wall which protected them to some extent.
-
-The men hurriedly dismounted and led the zebras to the large stable in
-the rear. All realized that it was useless to try to proceed further in
-the pitiless storm; it would only be death to do so, and they could not
-help their friends if they were in such a condition as the storm
-promised to put them in if they continued. Another hour of that fearful
-onslaught of gravel and sand, and small sticks and twigs, and every man
-would be dead. So they determined to wait until the storm would abate,
-when they would hurry on and give assistance to their friends, if it was
-not forever too late.
-
-The inky blackness of the night, lit up only occasionally by the
-lightning, the fearful peals of thunder, the roaring of the storm as it
-rushed madly on, made the night one never to be forgotten. It must have
-been several hours past midnight before it abated in the least, and
-after it had once spent its wild fury it died quickly, and in a very
-short time it was perfectly calm.
-
-Sounds of wounded and distressed animals could now be heard, pitiful in
-their mournful cries; trees could still be heard falling, and the
-night-birds which had escaped the fury of the storm, again took up their
-flight, giving out most dismal screeches. But the storm had passed, and
-Sedai and his party were again moving slowly along the avenue, for the
-night was still dark and many fallen trees now covered this beautiful
-highway.
-
-So hurrying was out of the question, but the zebras, who had had their
-eyes washed out in the stable, and keen-sighted and sure-footed now,
-they went along at a good pace, considering the condition of the road.
-But it was so dark, and they had now proceeded far enough on their
-journey to expect to meet couriers from the King and party, if there
-were any left to tell the tale. Torches had been procured at the villa
-at which they had sought shelter, and lighting these, they carried them
-high above their heads with good effect. The lights threw weird shadows
-along the avenue as they picked their way through the debris. The storm
-seemed not to have touched the avenue or the grand trees bordering it,
-but had taken a course parallel to this, the outer edge of which had
-come very close to the southern border of the avenue. It was not, then,
-the avenue shade trees which occasionally lay across it, but the forest
-trees which covered the fields on each side. So close, however, had the
-tornado or cyclone come to the avenue, that some of the branches of its
-bordering trees had been cut off as with a knife.
-
-Occasionally, in the glare of the torches, a wounded or dead animal
-would be seen. In one instance, a deer had been killed by a falling
-tree, and its mate, which had probably been with it at the time, now lay
-beside its dead licking the eyes and face. Again, a zebra had been torn
-and lacerated by the fierceness of the storm, and as it saw the lights
-and the familiar forms of the zebra in the cavalcade, it made a painful
-effort to rise and follow. Sedai seeing its suffering, dismounted and
-killed the poor beast, thus putting it out of its misery. The onyx
-pavement was covered with dead and wounded birds, the storm having
-played greater havoc among the winged inhabitants, than among any of the
-other.
-
-At last faint streaks of dawn lighted up the eastern heaven, and
-gradually it grew lighter, until the great hot sun burst forth, its rays
-disclosing a scene of fearful devastation. But our friends had but
-little time to notice all of this. They were looking for the wounded or
-dead bodies of the King and his party. But look as they might, they
-could not see either a wounded or dead zebra or elephant, in this part
-of the avenue. This was probably because these animals had stables, into
-which they could run if they chose, and as all the buildings were of
-onyx, and built to stand for centuries, the storm’s violence had no
-effect on them.
-
-The rescuing party’s progress had necessarily been slow, for they were
-not only hindered by fallen trees and other debris which strewed the
-avenue, but a great deal of time had been taken up in looking over the
-ground carefully, they fearing that if they did not do this, they might
-pass some of their wounded friends. They had now reached the lake, and
-the numerous inlets, or bays, which stretched into the mainland for a
-short distance, showed, from the appearance of their banks, that they
-had also received harsh treatment by the storm. Near one of these, lay,
-with its body half twisted in two, one of the sea monsters which had
-been sucked from the stream and hurled against a neighboring tree. Many
-fishermen’s boats were strewn along the banks smashed to splinters. The
-villa in which the King and party had spent the night of prayer, was
-visited by the rescuers, but the bewildered attendants here could only
-say that the King and his party had left the morning before, and had not
-again returned. Then Sedai, and those with him, after exchanging their
-poor, tired zebras for fresh ones, and after a hasty meal, pushed on.
-They might reasonably suppose that the party had reached a point at
-least twenty miles farther to the northwest before the storm broke in
-its fury; but it might have been that they saw the storm approaching
-even before those in the city did, and fearing serious consequences had
-turned back. In this case the rescuers might expect to meet them at any
-time now and especial care was taken to look behind each fallen tree or
-pile of debris.
-
-An elephant had been taken along from the last villa in hopes that he
-might be able to sooner detect their near approach to any of his
-companions used by Onrai and his party. These animals are very sagacious
-and their senses are very acute, they being able to hear the slightest
-noise or see the most minute object, while their scent is only equaled
-by a bloodhound.
-
-Carefully this great beast picked his way, stepping gingerly over the
-fallen trees and testing each bridge with his fore legs before venturing
-to cross it. The distance between the villa and where our friends might
-expect to be found, if safe, was now half covered and the rescuers had
-gained heart with each step forward, for if those whom they were seeking
-were not found within the next few miles, they would know that they were
-safe. Suddenly the elephant stopped, and sniffing the air gave a sharp,
-quick cry. Looking to the left the party saw the huge body of an
-elephant, and beside it that of a woman.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- ENOLA FOUND.
-
-
-Onrai had seen Enola slip and fall, and then carried away from him, with
-the greatest anguish. He stood for a moment gazing at the retreating
-figure, and saw the noble elephant grasp her. He now thought her safe
-and started toward her, but the storm caught him in its folds and he was
-also being hurried before it. But the attendants had been watching him
-and Enola from the entrance, and seeing him hurried on by the storm,
-they formed a line by clasping hands, and throwing this human barrier
-across the terrace they prevented the King from being blown further by
-the storm, and before he could realize it, he was hurried into the villa
-and was standing among his friends and attendants. The action had been
-so quick that he was at first bewildered, but the truth having suddenly
-dawned upon him, he made a rush for the door.
-
-“Back, man,” said Mr. Bruce, throwing himself across his path. “What
-would you do? Do you not know that it is sure death to venture forth in
-this storm?”
-
-Onrai stopped and looked at Mr. Bruce almost scornfully, then said:
-
-“And would you let Enola perish?”
-
-“No, not if the giving of my life would save hers,” said Mr. Bruce, “but
-to throw myself into that howling vortex, would mean instant death, and
-in no way could I help Enola. We must wait until the storm abates and
-then look for our friend. She has the protection of the only living
-thing which can help her now, her good friend, Gip. God grant that his
-powerful strength may prove mightier than the power of the storm,” and
-as he finished speaking, Mr. Bruce raised his hand to his eye and
-brushed away a tear.
-
-Onrai turned away and paced the long hall like a caged lion, his hands
-crossed behind his back, and his body slightly bent forward, as if ready
-to spring through the open entrance and run, as soon as the elements
-would permit. Harry, who was also crazed with pain because of the fate
-of Enola, was also on the alert to give Onrai a race in his rush to
-rescue his friend.
-
-The storm grew fiercer each moment and the noise more fearful. Mr.
-Graham stepped up to Mr. Bruce and with a white face, said, “No human
-being could possibly live in that storm; it is fearful.”
-
-“Yes, the most terrible I have ever seen,” said Mr. Bruce. “But let us
-hope that in some way Enola has reached safety.”
-
-“If I could only hope; but I cannot, that storm would kill every hope,”
-said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Enola was not in the heart of the storm,” said Mr. Bruce. “She was not
-carried into the centre of that seething, swirling tornado. She was only
-in the outer edge, and maybe the elephant was sagacious enough to work
-its way out of danger. Let us hope so at least.”
-
-But hope seemed futile when they looked into that fearful on-rushing
-storm.
-
-“Look,” said Mr. Bruce. They all turn toward the door. The elephants had
-gathered beneath the trees in one corner of the garden, and here,
-bunched together they had resisted the storm, but as Mr. Bruce spoke,
-the storm had reached the height of its fury, and the elephants no
-longer being able to withstand its power had been blown forward, some of
-them falling and the others tumbling over them. Those that were able to
-keep their feet had been rushed forward with such force, that in
-striking the trees they were crushed and badly wounded; those that were
-left prone on the ground were rolling over and over in their efforts to
-regain their feet, the wind blowing them over again before they could
-stand erect.
-
-Most of the zebras had run to the stables when they actually realized
-their danger, but others, which had remained to graze the fresh grass
-until too late, had been drawn into the circling, whirling mass and
-hurried on.
-
-Onrai was still pacing the floor, almost crazed with the thought that
-Enola was in fearful peril and he unable to help her. Frequently he
-would walk to the door and clasping his hands, cry in an agonized voice:
-“Will it never cease?” It was now three hours after midnight and the
-fierce winds had slackened, and the storm seemed broken. All were
-watching it now with an eager look, praying for its speedy death. The
-attendants went into the stables, and in a little while brought zebras
-to the terrace, and Onrai with his guests and twenty attendants started
-in search of Enola. But the night was still very dark and the torches
-helped them but little. Every foot of ground was gone over carefully.
-They did not keep in the avenue, but to the right, or in a direct line
-with that taken by Gip as he left the garden.
-
-Several elephants were lying about the garden or in the surrounding
-fields, dead or too badly disabled to work. In the clear light of day
-Gip could have been easily distinguished from any of these, but in the
-darkness all looked alike, and each prostrate form was examined
-carefully, and in some cases ropes were thrown about the legs and the
-elephant turned over, the party thinking that Enola might possibly be
-lying crushed beneath it. But none of these proved to be Gip, and the
-party moved slowly on.
-
-“I feel hopeful that the elephant with Enola has escaped,” said Mr.
-Bruce to Onrai, as they rode along.
-
-“Oh, I hope so,” answered Onrai, “but it was fearful,” and he shuddered.
-
-“But tell me, Onrai, when you have such storms as these, are many of
-your people killed?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“We have never before had such a storm, never during my life. We have
-some storms in this season, but never like this, and death has never
-resulted. The death and ruin which I have seen to-night appalls me.
-Never before have I, or any of my race, I believe, experienced such
-sensations as these fearful sights bring forth. I cannot understand why
-this should be. That it is a visitation of our God, I know; but why?
-That the punishment is just I cannot doubt; but for what is this
-punishment? I or my people have sinned, but I know not what this sin is,
-unless——” and Onrai’s face turned ghastly pale in the glare of the
-torches.
-
-“Unless what, Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Unless it be in a way of which I cannot tell you,” said Onrai, “or,
-unless my people have failed, in my absence, to carry out certain rites
-preparatory to the Day of Resis, which must not be neglected.”
-
-Mr. Bruce looked at him for a moment with the intention of asking him
-something further regarding this strange day, but something kept him
-from doing so.
-
-The dawn was breaking and it seemed that these hours had been spent in a
-fruitless search. But so careful had been the search, that all felt
-assured that Enola had not been passed. They had covered but few miles,
-but in this space the whole width of the storm’s track had been
-carefully looked over.
-
-“I cannot see how the elephant could have held out sufficiently long to
-reach this distance,” said Mr. Graham to Mr. Bruce, “and I think that it
-is convincing proof, that the beast beat his way out of the trail of the
-storm and took a circuitous route back to the villa.”
-
-“If that was so,” answered Mr. Bruce, “he should have reached the villa
-before we departed, or else we would have met him on the way.”
-
-“No, I think that we will yet find both the elephant and Enola safe,”
-said Harry, who then joined them, but probably too exhausted to return,
-and awaiting assistance. “See there,” and as he spoke all looked in the
-direction of the avenue and saw a party of natives, headed by Sedai,
-approaching.
-
-“They are coming towards us,” said Onrai. “Let us meet them.”
-
-They started towards the approaching party, Onrai in the lead. He turned
-his zebra to one side to go around a pile of debris, when, upon reaching
-the far side of this, he pulled up his zebra so quickly, that it nearly
-dismounted him. His eyes were bulging from their sockets and a groan
-left his lips; he seemed paralyzed, so rigid had he grown. The rest of
-the party had now come up, and also Sedai and his followers, and all
-looked in the direction in which was Onrai, and there, half hidden by
-the debris and great body of the elephant, lay Enola, her robe almost
-torn from her body and her face and hands black and bleeding.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
- “SHE IS MAD.”
-
-
-As both parties met and looked down on the bruised and blackened face of
-Enola, a cry of horror went up from each one of them. Hope had still had
-life as long as there was any uncertainty, but now it had met its death.
-
-“Look,” said Harry, “the elephant is not dead. See, he is trying to move
-his head.”
-
-Hurriedly the party dismounted, and Onrai lifted Enola carefully in his
-arms. She had fallen across Gip’s outstretched trunk when the crash
-came, and here she now laid. When Onrai lifted her up, Gip tried to
-raise his head, but this he could not do. The whole side of it was
-crushed in, or the lower part of it was, and he looked up with pitiful
-eyes, begging help from the party bending over him.
-
-Onrai still had Enola in his arms when Mr. Bruce came up and said:
-
-“Lay her down on the grass, Onrai, until I can make an examination.
-Quick, she may yet be living; the elephant is.”
-
-Carefully Onrai laid her on the grass, holding her head in his lap. Mr.
-Bruce bent down, and placing his ear to her heart, said:
-
-“She yet lives. Quick, bring me a flask of brandy.” A flask was handed
-him, and placing this to the lips of Enola, poured a few drops down her
-throat. “Bring some water,” he again commanded, and this having been
-handed him, he bathed her bruised face and hands with it. She was badly
-lacerated, the cuts not being deep, but so many of them that an inch of
-whole skin could scarcely be found.
-
-Harry looked as long as he could, but finally walked away; the sight of
-his loved one in this condition crazing him.
-
-But for the faint beating of the heart, all would have pronounced her
-dead, for it could scarcely be hoped that one so terribly cut and
-bruised could survive. Even the body had not been spared, and great
-blotches of flesh had been torn from it by contact with the flying
-debris.
-
-“Is there hope?” almost whispered Onrai.
-
-“I cannot say,” said Mr. Bruce. “But if blood-poisoning does not set in,
-I should think, with her splendid constitution, she might get well. But
-she has laid here for hours exposed, and it is greatly against her
-chances for recovery. She must be taken where women attendants can help
-her, and that immediately.” And Mr. Bruce had to again place his ear
-over the region of the heart in order to tell whether she was yet alive.
-
-“See, she opens her eyes,” said Harry, as he again comes up.
-
-Yes, it was true, she had opened her eyes, but only for an instant, and
-then closed them again.
-
-“Enola, look; do you not know us?” said Harry, as he bent over her.
-
-Her eyes again opened, and she tried to part her parched and bleeding
-lips, but she had not yet the strength.
-
-“There may be some hope now, I think,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-Hurriedly a litter was made from the blanket taken from the elephant,
-and with one of her friends at each corner of this, Enola was carried to
-the nearest villa. This was not far away, and, when reached, attendants
-were found in waiting, and Enola being carried to one of the large, cool
-and comfortable apartments, she was soon under the care of female
-attendants. Carefully they bathed the bruised and bleeding body, and
-under Mr. Bruce’s orders they anointed and bandaged the cuts. Finally,
-after long and hard work, and after hope of resuscitating her was nearly
-lost, she opened her eyes.
-
-Mr. Bruce was standing at her side at the time, and seeing that she had
-regained consciousness, and that danger for the time was passed, he
-carried the glad news to the anxious ones waiting for his report. All
-immediate anxiety being allayed they breathed freer. Onrai, who now felt
-at liberty to return to the city, began to make preparations for so
-doing, he feeling that at such a time his presence was greatly needed
-among his people. Accordingly he took a few of his attendants, and after
-making arrangements for hourly messengers to be sent him, giving full
-account of Enola’s condition, he started. Just before leaving, Enola
-opened her eyes, and after a moment, uttered the one word, “Gip.”
-
-It was perfectly natural that returning consciousness should bring to
-memory the fearful experiences of the night before and of the brave
-animal which had fought so nobly to protect, and save her life. In their
-anxiety for Enola all thought of poor Gip had been forgotten, but when
-she spoke his name and they knew that she was anxious about him, and
-when they remembered all that he had done for her, they censured
-themselves for having forgotten him for even a moment.
-
-Onrai gave orders to some of his people to go to the assistance of Gip,
-and to do all in their power to relieve the noble beast, if yet alive.
-Mr. Bruce, not being needed for the time in the sick-room, went with the
-party as did also Sedai. The great animal heard them coming, and tried
-to raise his shattered head, but could not. A slight movement of the
-trunk was the only sign of life he could give. Mr. Bruce had not made a
-study of the anatomy of the elephant, and he understood very little
-about them, but he determined to do all he could for the animal.
-
-Gip had unfortunately fallen on his right side and it was necessary for
-them to turn him over. This was no easy task; in fact it looked at first
-as if this could not be accomplished; but Mr. Bruce quickly thought out
-a plan which proved successful. Large ropes were tied to the legs of the
-side on which the animal was lying, and by a long and hard pull he was
-turned over onto the unbruised side. A groan, almost human in its
-intensity, escaped the crushed beast, as he was pulled over but he
-seemed to understand that his friends were there to help him. Mr. Bruce
-commenced at once to examine his wounds.
-
-The lower side of the head had been crushed and the body for half its
-length was lacerated. He had fallen on these wounds and the sand and
-gravel which covered the ground had worked into the wounds and were now
-held there by clotted blood. Water was brought from the lake and poured
-into the wounds until cleansed of all dirt, and then soothing liniments
-were poured into them. Gip did not make a movement, the great
-intelligent beast realizing that all this washing and anointing was
-being done to help him. It was a question as to how they were going to
-bandage the huge body, and after careful consideration this was deemed
-impossible until he could stand, as they could not carry the bandage
-about the body otherwise. The head, however, was lifted by the exertions
-of a dozen of the attendants and great, white silk bandages were carried
-around the monstrous hulk. Pails of water were now brought and he drew
-in great draughts with his trunk. Food was also brought where he could
-reach it. Everything that could possibly be done for his comfort was
-done, and two men were left to watch over the animal until evening, when
-he was to be again bandaged, and, if possible, gotten on his feet and
-taken to the villa.
-
-Mr. Bruce now hurried back to the villa. He had been gone for some time
-and he feared that Enola might need his attention. He had considerable
-misgiving regarding her speedy recovery, or even her recovery at all,
-for she had been fearfully bruised and cut, and had been so long exposed
-afterward, that there was great fear of blood-poisoning setting in. He
-realized what this wonderful woman had undergone in these few short
-hours, and he doubted if another could have passed through such an
-ordeal and lived. But Enola had a perfectly healthy constitution and Mr.
-Bruce had a faint hope that this intrepid girl might pull through.
-
-As he entered the villa, Nellie, who had been sent for, met him in the
-hall, and to his look of inquiry, said,
-
-“She has awakened but her mind is gone; she is mad.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- ONRAI VISITS THE PRIEST.
-
-
-Onrai hurried on to the city. At frequent intervals on his journey he
-met couriers from the city, all hurrying to give him the details of new
-discoveries of the storm’s devastation. The track of the tempest, as he
-now followed it, so shortly after its fearful advent, showed ruin and
-death everywhere. But so far no loss of human life had been reported and
-the King felt more than thankful for this. As the inhabitants would meet
-the King, they would look at him in the same wondering way as they had
-at the storm the night before, they were evidently seeking an
-explanation from their King, of the phenomenon. When they did ask him
-why such ruin had overtaken them, he would invariably answer by saying
-that there was sin among them. Then they would look one at the other as
-if wondering, if it were he or she who was guilty.
-
-Arriving at the city, he found the populace awaiting him. On all
-previous occasions when Onrai had been away from the city for a season,
-upon his return the people had been glad to see him and had met him at
-the city limits with harps and glad songs. But now they stood and looked
-with no joy in their faces; but this was easy to account for. The people
-had never before in their lives had one little thing to occur to disturb
-the even tenor of their existence. Their lives were simply one long,
-happy or perfectly contented existence, they knowing no pains or
-sorrows.
-
-The seasons came and went, each occupying just so many months, never
-varying greatly one from the other, for it was perpetual spring in this
-delightful country. But at one season more rain fell than at another,
-and for several months of each year rain never fell. Severe storms were
-very infrequent and such storms as the one of the night previous had
-never been known before. And this had happened right in the middle of
-the dry season. It was not so much this latter fact probably which made
-the people wonder, as it was the death and ruin which it left in its
-wake. This the people could not understand, for life to them was a
-sacred thing, even those animals of a meat-serving kind, never being
-allowed to be killed wantonly, or where there was no use in the
-slaughter. Why had the poor dumb beasts been killed in this way? There
-was a world of inquiry in their looks as they stood perfectly still, and
-saw the King pass.
-
-But Onrai heeded them not. He hurried on past the great square and up
-the broad avenue to the Temple, where the head priest was awaiting him,
-and as the King drew up, the priest approached him, saying, “You have
-come, oh King. Throughout the night I have prayed for you and those with
-you. You are safe, God be praised,” and taking Onrai by the hand he led
-him into the Temple.
-
-“It was your prayers then which brought us to shelter before the storm
-overtook us,” said the King. “But tell me, you who know all of the
-sacred writings, what has caused this death-dealing and destroying
-storm. I can only believe that our people are sinning. Tell me, do you
-not think this so?”
-
-“I have made research, knowing that both you, King, and the people would
-want to know the cause of the storm, and I too have wished to learn the
-reason. I find among the sacred writings words admonishing us to do
-right at all times and if laws were broken and the inhabitants of this
-great Land of On treated lightly, the commands laid down for their good
-and prosperity, they would be made to suffer in such ways as God would
-devise. I also find that God will give warning to the good of coming
-events. I do not know what to think, but I hardly believe that our good
-people are sinning.”
-
-“Are there any motives which might make us break the laws?” asked the
-King.
-
-“I think not,” answered the priest, and as he said this, he looked at
-the King and was surprised to see his face so pale. “No, it must be a
-warning,” he continued.
-
-“But what unusual event can come to our country?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Was not the storm of last night an unusual event?” asked the priest,
-“and should this not be a sufficient warning to us to guard against all
-such? I believe that naught else can come to the Land of On but the wars
-of the elements, and if these visit us, it is God’s will and they
-purpose some good.”
-
-“If it be God’s will, he must have some object in it,” said Onrai. “But
-tell me, priest, did the Kings of On ever marry?”
-
-The question almost staggered the priest and he started back for the
-moment unable to answer. But controlling himself he came forward and
-looked Onrai straight in the eye, asking sternly, “Why do you ask? Do
-you not know that it means death to the King who even contemplates
-marriage? Were not the sacred teachings imparted to you when you were
-yet young, and have these not been told you many times since and
-expanded on, and explained? And does not the law say that the King shall
-not marry? I cannot understand you, King.”
-
-Onrai’s face was puzzled as he looked at the priest as he spoke.
-
-“I hardly understand myself,” said the King. “I have indeed read the
-great laws and have heard them read since my earliest childhood, and I
-know that the King cannot marry and that there are great and good
-reasons given for his not marrying. But God forgive me if I have thought
-for one moment that this law was unjust. I am King, chosen by the people
-because of my physical attainments and stature. I am strong, powerful;
-through my veins courses the blood of endless generations of perfect
-manhood; every nerve, every tissue, every muscle tingles with life; I
-have been trained until my naturally healthy sinews are as hard as the
-black metal which we dig out of the foothill of the cliffs; my whole
-being vibrates with health and vitality and for these reasons I am
-chosen King and denied a wife; I of all men who should be granted a
-mate,” and as he ceased speaking he strode up and down the Temple, his
-powerful form shaking like an aspen; his breath came quick and short;
-his hands opened and shut nervously.
-
-The priest looked at him in wonderment and seemed at a loss to know how
-to answer him. But he must say something to this rash man, this ruler of
-the people, who was supposed to be pure, to be sinless. If others should
-hear him talk in this mad way the consequences might be fearful. He
-stepped in front of the King as he came near him and said, “Onrai, are
-you not mad? Do you not realize the consequences of such ravings? Do you
-not know that death awaits you if you give up to such sinful thoughts?
-Oh, Onrai, King, brother, great and good, strong and beautiful, drive
-these fearful thoughts from your mind; smother these emotions, which can
-only lead you to destruction. Remember that endless line of ancestors of
-whom you speak, and let not an act of yours disgrace their memory or
-make sorrowful the people who chose you for their King. Tell me, oh my
-brother, what it is which has wrought this great change in you,” and
-then, seeming to remember the strangers, he clutched Onrai’s arm
-nervously and said, “Tell me, is it they?”
-
-“Of whom do you speak,” asked the King.
-
-“Of the strangers,” answered the priest.
-
-“Why should you suspicion our guests,” asked Onrai. “Is it just to them,
-who for the time may expect only the kindest treatment from us? I do not
-like this,” but as he spoke, his heart smote him for being the first to
-suspicion the good motives of the strangers.
-
-“Forgive me, King,” said the priest. “I had but your interest at heart
-and thought only of you when I spoke; but I could not suspicion you of
-fostering such thoughts unless encouraged by some one. And I could not
-suspicion any of our people, for they have too great a reverence for our
-holy laws to ever speak on such subjects. Then, who could I think of but
-they of the fair skin? But I was wrong, forgive me.”
-
-“No, it has been nature itself, this strong vital power which permeates
-my being, which has prompted the thoughts. I cannot be held responsible
-for these thoughts, but only for nurturing them, and allowing them to
-influence me in doing wrong. It has not reached this point yet and it
-never shall. If I am weak in the body I am strong here,” and Onrai
-tapped his forehead.
-
-“Now, you are the Onrai I have known since a boy,” said the priest. “But
-Onrai be careful; guard against temptation, as our sacred writing
-commands us to do. Come to me and tell me if you are again tempted; I
-have never had such thoughts as yours and I can better counsel and
-advise you. And if others should hear you vent such thoughts, the whole
-populace would soon know it and the end would be death. Let me again
-admonish you, my King, to fortify your mind against such temptations. If
-certain ones create such thoughts, go not near them,” and the priest,
-with this advice, left him.
-
-Onrai walked down the main hall of the Temple, his mind trying to throw
-from it the gloomy thoughts which the priest’s negative assertion had
-raised. So the hope, which sprung into being when he saw Enola’s
-innocence, could not be cherished; the fulfilment of it could never be
-realized. The thought was maddening and Onrai groaned aloud in his
-fearful agony.
-
-“God help me in this struggle,” he cried, “is it sin, can it be sin,
-this longing to be like other men, be allowed to take unto myself a
-wife? I cannot believe that it is, but the law says “No,” and I, with
-every impulse fighting against it, must comply.”
-
-He now left the Temple and walked down the broad avenue. Word had gone
-forth that the King would speak at the large open square, and crowds who
-had seen the King come to the city had now, with their friends gathered
-and were waiting with those same wonder-depicting countenances, for the
-King to come and tell them why the strange storm had come and ruined the
-Land of On. Walking straight to the fountain, Onrai mounted the dais and
-glancing about him for a moment at the hushed, bewildered Onians, said:
-
-“It has pleased our great God to give us a warning; this warning
-admonishes us to be careful, watchful and diligent. If any among you
-have sinned or are sinning, this fearful storm tells you to turn from
-the evil of your ways; if you have intentions of sinning, it speaks to
-you a warning, but I cannot believe that my people are sinning. I look
-among you to-day and see not one guilty face. You are bewildered, in
-wonderment, but this is not guilt. It can be a warning to us of some
-disastrous event which may visit our fair land. It may be that it will
-all be revealed to us later, but let us not be worried, but obeying the
-laws, go on in our happy way. The fearful storm has caused no loss of
-life of our people, and we may believe from this that God was not angry
-with us. Let us be watchful of coming harm, but let us not live in
-dread, for such will destroy happiness. The storm has left a vast track
-of ruin behind it, but ruin easily righted. We must, for the time, give
-up all other occupations and repair the damage done by the storm. Only
-let the food be furnished and the city kept clean. All traces of the
-devastation will soon be gone and we will forget, or it will only be a
-memory to us after a short time. Our guests from the far-away planet
-escaped injury, all but one and that one was the fair and sweet Enola,
-who is so much loved by you all. But I left her better and she will
-recover, for God would not take one of our guests, and leave our people
-unharmed.”
-
-As if in denial of Onrai’s words, a messenger stepped to the edge of the
-crowd and waved a piece of papyrus over his head. Onrai saw him at once
-and raising his hand, said:
-
-“A courier has just arrived from the villa in which lies the fair Enola.
-I must hasten to this villa as these people are our guests, and I should
-be with them. Again I pray of you, be watchful, and keeping from sin, be
-happy and contented as in the past.”
-
-Onrai ceased speaking and descending to the pavement took the message
-from the courier. It read as follows:
-
-“Enola lives, but her reason is dead.” His face turned ashen and he
-jumped on to the zebra held for him by an attendant, and dashed off
-madly down the avenue. The populace watched his retreating figure in
-still greater wonderment, and the attendants who followed him were soon
-left far in the rear, as the zebra which he rode was fleeter than any
-other in the land. On the King rode, each moment urging the zebra to
-greater efforts, each moment shortening the distance between Enola and
-himself. The avenue had been almost cleared of fallen trees by the large
-body of men who had immediately gone to work after the storm, and Onrai
-hardly met with any obstructions in his mad rush. It was growing dark
-now and Onrai had ridden nearly fifty miles that day, but he showed no
-fatigue as he bent well over the zebra’s shoulders and urged it on. He
-had but one thought, an excruciating one: “Enola was mad.” The agony of
-that thought. She would no longer look at him with those beautiful eyes
-or speak to him in those charming accents, or smile on him with those
-lips which seemed only made to kiss. Mad, mad, mad; the word rang in his
-ears, the zebra’s hoofs seemed to pound it out of the flinty pavement,
-the birds in the air were screeching it; everything seemed to be telling
-him the fearful story. On, on he rushed with unabated speed, the zebra
-reeking with sweat and panting as if it would drop each moment, its eyes
-bulged and glaring, until, pulling up in front of the villa, and Onrai
-jumping from its back, the beast falls dead.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- ONRAI CONFESSES HIS LOVE.
-
-
-Yes, it was only too true. The sufferings of that mad ride before the
-storm and the long exposure had unbalanced Enola’s reason. As Mr. Bruce
-entered the apartment after visiting Gip he found two women attendants
-struggling with her trying to prevent her leaving the couch, while Mrs.
-Graham was standing near trying to reason with her. But there was no
-longer any reason in Enola. She had awakened to oblivion, her mind
-groveling in darkness.
-
-Mr. Bruce walked up, and looking at Enola closely, saw that she was in a
-high fever; feeling her pulse he knew that she was in a very dangerous
-condition. His troubled look told the story to Mrs. Graham and Nellie as
-they stood watching him anxiously. He sent for the small medicine chest
-which they had brought with them from the States, and which they had
-thought to place with the equipments when starting on this excursion.
-From this he took medicines that would allay the fever, first giving
-Enola a quieting powder. This had to be forced down her throat as she
-closed her teeth tightly and refused to take anything. It soon had its
-effect and as her muscles relaxed and bruised limbs became quiet, Mr.
-Bruce could better diagnose the disease.
-
-After a careful examination he came to the conclusion that she was
-suffering more from a nervous fever than anything else, caused by the
-fearful suspense, suffering and exposure of the night before.
-
-“Is there any hope for her?” asked Harry, who had come into the
-apartment.
-
-“I cannot say,” said Mr. Bruce, “but we will hope until the disease has
-run its course and the change comes.”
-
-“But of her reason,” questioned Harry. “If she lives, will her mind
-always be clouded?” and Harry’s look of agony was fearful.
-
-“That I cannot say, for unfortunately, I am not an expert in mind
-diseases,” answered Mr. Bruce. “It may be though only the ravings of a
-fever-racked brain, and when this has passed she may regain her reason.”
-
-“God grant that this may be true,” said Harry.
-
-Mr. Bruce was a great advocate of ice in cases of fever and he had at
-once ordered a liberal use of this. Fortunately Mrs. Graham and Nellie
-were with Enola, for they had both had experience as nurses and knew
-just what to do, and then their love for her would insure her the very
-best of treatment.
-
-The day rolled by and Enola had not yet come out of the long sleep into
-which the morphine had thrown her. Harry had strolled up and down before
-the door of the sick chamber, stopping occasionally to listen, hoping to
-hear signs of returning consciousness from within. But all had remained
-quiet and Harry had kept up the vigil from without. He had suffered
-fearfully in those few short hours since Enola, snatched by the storm,
-had been carried away, giving her up only after it had destroyed the
-greatest gift of God—reason. It seemed an age to him, these few short
-hours and the suffering had grown more intense as the day advanced, and
-the possibilities of returning life and reason grew less. Harry was not
-one to say much or to carry his heart on his sleeve, but his love for
-Enola was deep and sincere, and his suffering now fearful as a
-consequence. He had seen Enola’s growing friendliness or infatuation for
-the King and this had wounded him terribly. Still he had so much faith
-in her that he could not doubt but that she would be perfectly true to
-herself in the matter, and if, in the meantime she should learn to love
-Onrai, she would tell him candidly.
-
-But the thought was torturing, the very possibility of his losing her
-after these long years. The barbarous grandeur, so it might be called,
-of the King and his people, was enough to turn the head of any woman or
-man, for that matter, and he could not blame Enola if she should turn
-from him to the King. Yet there was something about these people which
-could not be understood, a certain mystery unsolved and unsolving; they
-had now been among them several weeks, and had been let into all their
-mode of life, their customs, habits, and nothing, seemingly, had been
-kept from them; but there had been mentioned a certain day, the Day of
-Resis, over which there hung a cloud. This had only been mentioned
-unguardedly, and there seemed to be a secret connected with it, which
-was not to be divulged to the vulgar ears of the strangers. Harry had
-hopes that the uncertainty of this mystery would guard Enola from
-allowing herself to form an alliance with the King, an alliance which
-might make life a hell ever afterwards.
-
-Harry was not superstitious, but there was a certain dread of the future
-with these people; a sort of premonition of coming evil; that before
-long this pleasant life would end, and a something would occur which
-would make the party forever regret the day they entered this strange
-country. These thoughts might have been occasioned by the fear that
-Enola was being infatuated by the subtle influence of the King; an
-influence, which he, Harry, thought lay in the mystery overhanging the
-entire race. But when Enola would once come to believe as he did, that
-there was a future life with these people, which was the very reverse to
-the one they were now enjoying, she would at once turn a deaf ear to the
-love-making of Onrai. But had he made love to her? Harry could not make
-himself believe that Enola would allow this from one whom she had known
-but such a short while; and then Onrai, when Harry came to think of him,
-was such a great, powerful man, so straightforward and free from all
-deceit, so brave and strong; he looked a lover, and yet he did not know.
-One thing Harry was assured of: Onrai did not make love to Enola with
-those simple nothings which make up the wooings of modern lovers in
-civilized countries. And it might be the total absence of these idiotic
-expressions which won her friendship and esteem, and finally, love. It
-might be the grand physique and strength of the man which attracted her.
-But at any rate, Harry would not relinquish all hope of yet winning
-Enola, and when he thought of that mysterious something which threw a
-sort of shroud over the future of these people, he felt almost confident
-that Enola would not allow herself to become entirely infatuated, or, as
-it has been said, allianced with this King.
-
-But now this slender hope had been shattered. Enola lay at death’s door
-physically and mentally, with but slight hopes of regaining bodily
-health, and less of her ever regaining her reason. For the first time
-Harry regretted their ever having started on this hazardous journey, but
-when he thought of the determination of Enola, and realized that she
-would have come at any rate whether he had or not, he felt glad at least
-that he was now here to help her. He must be resigned and await the
-future. But this was easier said than done, especially when the one
-great loved one was lying at death’s door. Again he stopped and
-listened, and hearing no sound, walked to the entrance, and looking out
-saw Onrai dash madly up on his winded charger and dismount. Onrai almost
-stumbled over Harry as he hurried through the entrance. Looking up
-almost angrily, he was about to make some passionate remark, when,
-seeing that it was Harry, he grasped him by the shoulders, and said,
-hoarsely:
-
-“Tell me quickly, how is she?”
-
-“The same,” answered Harry. “Still mad, and no hope.”
-
-“It is fearful!” cried Onrai, as he dropped his hands from Harry’s
-shoulders and commenced pacing the floor.
-
-Harry watched the suffering of this strong man, and for a time, almost
-gloated over the thought of this rival’s agony. But why should he feel
-this way? Had not Onrai been open and above board with him, and did he,
-Onrai, ever suspect that he had a rival in himself? So if they were to
-be rivals, let it be an open and square fight, and not for a moment
-harbor such miserable jealous thoughts. Going up to Onrai, he said:
-
-“Tell me, King, why do you take such an interest in us—in Enola? We are
-your guests, certainly, but your interest in us is even greater than we
-might expect from you, our host.”
-
-“I cannot answer you,” said Onrai, “further than as you have suggested,
-it is because you are my guests. You come to us strangers; you knew not
-what to expect when you threw yourselves on our bounty, but you trusted
-us, and for that reason you are deserving of every attention which we
-can give you.”
-
-“But pardon me, Onrai,” said Harry, “if I ask you a pointed question. I
-saw your fearful agitation as you witnessed Enola being borne away from
-you last night in the teeth of the storm; I saw that you suffered far
-more than if you had only a friendly interest in her; and I saw you
-to-night when you came tearing up the driveway and then up the steps of
-the terrace, the dead zebra testifying that you must have ridden like
-mad: I see you now, your face pale, your eyes bloodshot, your whole
-appearance displaying mental anguish. Have you not a personal interest
-in Enola, and is not this interest prompted by a feeling deeper than
-friendship?”
-
-Onrai now stood with his arms crossed over his breast, his bearing erect
-and scornful, as if to give Harry the impression that he was accountable
-to himself alone for his actions and did not recognize Harry’s right to
-question him. He stood looking at Harry for some time after he had
-finished speaking, as if debating with himself as to whether he would
-answer him or not. But his just nature asserted itself, and he said:
-
-“Your question is a strange one, but I feel that you have some right to
-ask it; for you have been Enola’s companion for years and must have a
-brotherly regard or love for her. I cannot blame you, now that I
-remember the difference in our lives, for this solicitation for her
-future. But have not my attentions to Enola been honorable? Do you think
-that I, the King of the Land of On, chosen by the people because they
-knew that I was pure of mind, do you think that I could so far forget my
-natural traits or early teachings, as to have any but the purest
-thoughts of Enola, and do you not know that the Kings of On cannot
-marry?”
-
-“So I have learned,” answered Harry, “but are you not still a man, and
-as a man have you not human emotions and passions? Because you are a
-chosen King, is the ruling passion, love, driven from your heart?”
-
-“No, I would to God that it was,” answered Onrai, and his face betrayed
-his fearful agony of mind. “No, this passion is still ours, but
-sufficient strength is given us to keep it in check. We must smother it
-and cast it out. We must so interest ourselves in our people as to
-forget all else.”
-
-“But can you do this?” asked Harry. “Is not love all-powerful? Even
-among your people, who are supposed to keep it in check until after
-marriage? You have lived, Onrai, thirty-five years; have you not in that
-time felt the delightful sensations of love, and have you found it
-possible to smother it?”
-
-“Yes, I have loved,” answered Onrai. “But it came over me like a dream
-and was so subtle in its movements that I did not realize that it had
-taken possession of me until a long time afterwards. But an unlooked for
-event opened my eyes to my sin and the knowledge of it nearly crazed
-me.”
-
-[Illustration: “No, I would to God that it was.”—_Page 154._]
-
-“Your sin?” asked Harry. “Do you consider it a sin when you did not
-realize that it was love that had taken possession of you? I would not
-call it by such a name.”
-
-“Still it was a sin,” said Onrai, “for I had allowed myself to be drawn
-into its meshes without even making an effort to extricate myself. To
-escape this tempter it is necessary that we guard against the influences
-which lead to it, and I have not done this.”
-
-“But, King, could you, after your discovery, tear this love from your
-breast and go on as if you had never experienced this grand emotion?”
-questioned Harry again.
-
-“I must,” answered Onrai, “for it would be death for me to nurture it
-and allow it to influence my life, which it would do if I did not kill
-it. Still, the struggle will be terrible, and I know not how it will
-end. It is too early now in the fight, perhaps, to expect great results,
-but I almost doubt my strength to overcome its machinations. But I must
-see her,” and Onrai hurried toward the door of Enola’s apartment, Mr.
-Bruce having beckoned him to come.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
- THE AGONY OF ONRAI.
-
-
-The day must have seemed interminable to the wounded elephant as he lay
-on the hard, sand-covered earth. All that could be done for his comfort,
-however, had been done; his wounds had been dressed again in the evening
-and repeated efforts had been made to get him on his feet, but without
-success. They had, though, gotten him on his haunches and he seemed
-easier in this position. They had gone to the villa and procured ropes
-and a sort of pulley, which they were now rigging to one of the trees
-above Gip. They thought that by getting him on his feet he might be able
-to walk to the villa stables, as the trouble all lay in the right
-foreleg, which had been sprained by the log striking it. The block and
-fall had been rigged and the rope worked under the immense body and
-fastened in a loop; then two other elephants were hitched to the other
-end of the rope and started. They moved slowly, and as the rope
-tightened about Gip’s shoulders, he did all in his power to help regain
-his feet. But his help was not needed for the two elephants lifted him
-bodily until his forelegs were pulled from off the ground, his hind feet
-alone touching; then he was lowered until the forelegs again touched the
-ground, and after awhile, when he had become used to the weight, the
-rope was taken from about his body and the other two elephants taking up
-a position, one on either side of him, he was gently urged to take a
-step forward.
-
-It was painful to see the effort he made to walk. His right foreleg was
-stiff and he had to limp in a distressing manner. It took a long time to
-reach the villa stables, where a soft bed had been made for him with a
-sling rigged above, so that he could be raised or lowered as the
-attendants saw fit.
-
-“I declare,” said Mr. Bruce, “it does me good to see the brave animal
-housed. If it were not for him we would not now have even a small hope
-of Enola again being with us, alive and well.”
-
-“It is a small hope, indeed,” said Mr. Graham. “But it is a hope, and
-even that is better than knowing that the bruised and mangled body lay
-buried under a pile of debris. Gip, you do not realize the full
-significance of your brave act. It may mean health and happiness or it
-may mean suffering and mental death. God forbid that it should be the
-latter.”
-
-Mr. Graham and Mr. Bruce now turned and went into the house and direct
-to Enola’s apartment. She lay still in that death-like sleep into which
-she had fallen after taking the morphine. Mr. Bruce looked at her
-anxiously, and stepping up to her couch, felt her pulse.
-
-“Her fever is abating,” he said, “and I can now say there may be some
-hope of her recovery. When I first felt her pulse this morning it was
-beating at the rate of 105; but the smallest rise in this and she could
-not have survived,” and saying this, Mr. Bruce proceeded to rebandage
-the swollen and inflamed face and limbs. Now that the fever was checked
-he feared blood-poison, and especial precaution against this had to be
-taken. As Mr. Bruce and the attendant unwound the old bandages, Enola
-opened her eyes and looked about her in a half-dreamy way, but there was
-no intelligence in that look; the eyes were dull and seemed to recognize
-none of the friends about her; her lips parted and she again breathed
-the word “Gip.” That was all. Everything else was forgotten, friends,
-past, all was wrapped in darkness now.
-
-“The experiences of that night must have been terrible,” said Mr.
-Graham, as he looked upon Enola with tearful eyes.
-
-“More terrible than we can even imagine,” said Mr. Bruce, “but the
-strong constitution may bring her back to health and happiness again; I
-feel more hopeful now.”
-
-Nellie, who was standing by one of the large curtained arches at the far
-end of the room for a moment, breathing the fresh air from the garden,
-exclaimed hurriedly:
-
-“Father, come quickly, it is Onrai dashing madly up the drive. Look, he
-is now at the terrace. Oh! his poor zebra has dropped dead, and he
-hurries up the steps. He looks wild, crazed by the experiences of the
-past few hours.”
-
-“He will come directly to the apartment,” said Mr. Graham. “Mr. Bruce,
-warn him back.”
-
-Mr. Bruce stepped into the wide corridor and motioned to Onrai to remain
-where he was. Coming back into the room, he said:
-
-“Care must be taken when the King comes in, for he is not the Onrai we
-have known for the past few weeks. One short night and day has changed
-him wonderfully. He may, in his impetuosity, do something which will
-injure our fair patient.”
-
-“How strange,” said Mrs. Graham, “that he should have changed so. Why,
-only yesterday, as we rode along, happy and without a care, I thought to
-myself that I had never seen a man so thoroughly free from all care and
-trouble as Onrai.”
-
-“I think,” said Nellie, “that an explanation is easy enough to find.”
-
-“Then tell us, Nellie,” said her mother.
-
-“Why, he has fallen in love with Enola and the events of the past few
-hours have crazed him. We do not wonder at ourselves for being buried in
-grief at Enola’s sufferings, and it is but natural that Onrai should
-feel the same.”
-
-“Don’t say that,” said Mrs. Graham. “It would grieve Harry deeply if he
-suspected such a thing to be true.”
-
-“I doubt not that but Harry has seen the trend of things, for I have
-watched him closely lately and he seems to be worried,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but he would never admit it.”
-
-Enola had fallen into the stupor during this short conversation and this
-was probably better so, for any violent movement would loosen the
-bandages and open the wounds afresh, and this must be avoided. As she
-lay partially on her side, a full view of her bandaged face could be
-had; nothing but the eyes could be seen however, the remainder of the
-face being entirely covered. She looked like one dead and with scarcely
-a breath stirring the gauze over her nostrils, and with the white silk
-robe falling about her, one could easily believe that she had succumbed
-to the excruciating sufferings. Just at this moment Mr. Bruce stepped to
-the arch and motioned Onrai to enter.
-
-“Be very quiet,” said Mr. Bruce, as the King came forward hurriedly.
-Harry also came up quickly, and together they entered the apartment
-where the dearest one on earth to them, lay at death’s door.
-
-Both stepped up to the couch, and as Onrai’s eyes fell on the white
-bandages and saw only the discolored eyelids, he fell back exclaiming in
-an agonized voice, “Dead;” then, almost beside himself with grief, he
-rushed forward and falling beside the couch would have clasped her in
-his arms had not Harry, who was also suffering untold agony, caught him
-by the arm and held him back. Mr. Bruce also stepped up and said calmly;
-
-“Onrai, what would you do. Do you not realize that such an act on your
-part would endanger her life? Calm yourself and do not ruin the small
-chance which this poor girl has for recovery.”
-
-Onrai arose and stepped back slowly, his whole frame convulsed with
-strong emotion. Drawing his hand over his eyes he said slowly.
-
-“She is not dead then, thank God. Forgive me, I should not have acted
-thus for her sake and my own.” Then looking about him and seeing several
-native women attendants in the apartment, his glance fell on the floor,
-for the first time in his life ashamed of his own actions.
-
-Mr. Graham noticing the look of humiliation and guessing its cause, felt
-for this strong man to the bottom of his heart, and taking his arm,
-said;
-
-“No, Onrai, she is not dead; but come with me, I would talk with you.”
-
-Onrai, with his glance still resting on the floor, went out with Mr.
-Graham. When they had reached the terrace, Mr. Graham said:
-
-“Onrai, I saw your suffering to-night, and, believe me, it touched my
-heart. But do you realize what you are doing? Are you doing this with
-your eyes open? Have you forgotten the laws of your land? I know but
-little about these, but I do know that you cannot marry. Then, are you
-doing yourself or that dear one inside, justice, by harboring such
-feelings? It can only bring unhappiness to both of you; therefore,
-banish such thoughts from your mind.”
-
-“It is easy enough to say, do this, and I found it easy enough to
-resolve to do this, but I cannot do it. I cannot understand my weakness.
-My life has been spent, like my people’s, adhering to the laws laid down
-for us to follow. I have never questioned these, and have, by living up
-to them, been perfectly contented, as are all of my people. But you come
-to us from afar, and my life is changed immediately; at first I was
-pleased with you all, and then I found myself happier when alone with
-Enola and discontented when away from her; and not until last night did
-I realize that it was love which had wrought this change in me. Since
-then, what with the discovery of my sin and the fear for Enola’s life, I
-have suffered the tortures of hell.” As Onrai ceased speaking a noise
-like the marching of a heavy body of cavalry reached their ears. It was
-coming nearer and nearer. What did it mean?
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
- IN PERIL.
-
-
-The rumbling noise came nearer and nearer, and Onrai and Mr. Graham
-stood without saying a word. In some respects the noise resembled that
-of the night before, but it came from the opposite direction.
-Involuntarily the two watchers looked at the heavens, but seeing the
-stars shining brightly, all fears of another storm were allayed.
-
-“What can it be?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“I cannot tell,” said Onrai. “It sounds like the tramp of many zebra,
-but I cannot understand why there should be any riders out to-night,
-unless it be a body of men who are on their way to to-morrow’s work. But
-even they would have started so as to have reached their destination
-long before this. It puzzles me greatly.”
-
-“Could it be a body of men coming to you on a mission of some kind?”
-asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“No, none would come to me at this time of night,” said Onrai. “And then
-there is no reason whatever for any of my people coming to me. The
-people know my wishes regarding the repairs to be made where the storm
-has brought ruin, and this is the only thing which they could wish to
-consult me upon. But they come nearer, and now we can distinguish the
-different sounds; yes, it is a body of riders, but where they are bound
-I cannot say,” and as Onrai finished speaking, a hundred flickering
-lights could be seen far down the avenue toward the town.
-
-“Yes, it is a large body of men,” said Mr. Graham, as the riders came in
-sight, “and they are riding fast, as if their mission, whatever it may
-be, was important.”
-
-“Yes, they seem in earnest,” said Onrai, “and they are turning toward
-the villa. They are coming here. I cannot understand,” and Onrai looked
-puzzled.
-
-There seemed to be thousands of them as they rode toward the villa,
-winding in and out between the trees, for they disdained the single
-roadway. The leaders at last reached the terrace and seeing the King
-standing with Mr. Graham, they dismounted and stood beside their steeds.
-One of the leaders came forward and doffing his helmet and bowing low
-before the King, said,
-
-“We have come from the city, oh King, to consult you on a matter which
-has come up to-day before the people.”
-
-“I am always glad to heed the matters of my people. But why do you come
-to me at this hour of the night; would not the morrow do as well? It is
-late and within the villa lies one of our guests very near unto death, a
-victim of yesternight’s storm. Will the matter not rest then until
-daylight when a more suitable place can be chosen for its discussion,
-and where there will be no fear of disturbing the fair sufferer? I ask
-this not for myself but for one whose comfort you should all consider.”
-
-“It is of her and her companions that we wish to speak,” answered the
-man.
-
-“And what manner of business can the people possibly have with the
-strangers? Have they not been given into my charge and am I not
-responsible for their welfare and comfort? I cannot understand your
-reasons, man, for coming here on such an errand or the object the people
-had in sending you. Have you lost confidence in the ability of the King,
-to take care of and make enjoyable the life of our guests?”
-
-“No, it is not that, oh King,” said the man. “We do not fear for the
-well-being of the strangers nor do we doubt your power to make all
-things pleasing for them. Our mission is of a different character; we
-wish to complain of them.”
-
-“To complain of them,” said Onrai. “What do you mean, man? Have my
-people then so far forgotten their respect to the King’s wishes as to
-complain to him of his guests or the guests of the Land of On? For have
-not these strangers come to us from afar and have they not thrown
-themselves on to our hospitality, and is it not our sacred duty to care
-for them as long as they are with us? It is your duty as well as mine,
-then why do you forget this so far as to make complaints of them?”
-
-“We have not made these complaints as yet, oh King,” said the man, “and
-we wished to place our suspicions before you and let you decide if they
-be well-grounded before we would call them complaints. But complaints to
-us seems to be the only fitting word to use in this connection.”
-
-“I cannot understand you, my people,” said Onrai, “I was among you only
-to-day and you said naught to me about this matter. You allowed me to
-depart and come here without so much as a hint of your protest. Now, you
-follow me but a short time after, at the dead of night, and here where a
-fair life hangs by a thread; you come a thousand strong and voice your
-miserable suspicions. Our life has been so quietly peaceful that this
-trait has never before shown itself. A word which has almost passed from
-our vocabulary alone can fit the act, and that is cowardice,” and as
-Onrai ceased speaking he drew himself up grandly and faced them with
-such a haughty bearing and scornful look that the leader drew back
-involuntarily.
-
-“No, no, King, not that,” said the man, “not that, for we had only your
-and our own best wishes at heart when we came here at this hour of
-night.”
-
-“And had you no thought for those who are now under our protection? Had
-you a right, even with complaints to make, to sneak here like a band of
-jackals, in the dead of night? Why do you not come in the bright open
-light of the day and then in numbers only equaling those against whom
-you are going to make complaints, and not with a horde as if to
-intimidate them.”
-
-“Listen, oh King,” answered the man. “You must know that this is an
-event which has never before occurred in our land, and the people did
-not know how to act. They then got together and decided that we were to
-come to-night, and in a large body; this is to impress the strangers
-within our land that, although war and strife, such as our sacred
-writings speak of, are unknown to us, still we can come before them in a
-formidable body and fight for our fair Land of On.”
-
-“Are you mad, man?” asked Onrai. “What is this I hear? Are you talking
-of waging war against a handful of strangers, whom you ought to protect?
-Do you speak of war, that which has never been heard of in this land?
-Have the people of On gone mad with the advent of the storm?” and Onrai
-turned and strode up and down the terrace.
-
-Mr. Bruce and Harry had come on to the terrace and now stood back with
-Mr. Graham but saying nothing, so alarmed were they over the new turn
-things had taken. The leader of the party said nothing for a few moments
-after the King had finished speaking the last time. He seemed convinced
-of the justice of the King’s remarks, but still he had a mission to
-perform and he was expected to carry it out to the letter. Again
-stepping forward, he said:
-
-“We do not come to fight the few of another sphere, who are now here but
-to fight those of this race who might come to help them. These people
-came in the dead of night to our land; we know not how they came or
-whence they came and how should we know but that they could call to
-their assistance thousands of others. It is this possibility that we
-have prepared ourselves for.”
-
-Onrai turned on the man almost savagely and said:
-
-“Enough, now. I will listen to no more to-night. Begone, and find you
-quarters until morning, when I will meet you near here on the shore of
-the lake and hear these miserable complaints which you have to make.
-Discuss the matter well among yourselves to-night, but remember this,
-that I come to you to-morrow morning prepared to refute any statements
-which you may make against our guests. Your fears, whatever they are,
-are based on superstition and are simple. Now go and move away quietly,
-so as not to disturb the woman whom you come to war against.”
-
-The men remounted after this and rode away, but not far, for when the
-shores of the lake were reached they halted, and made preparations to
-spend the night. Even at the villa the low hum of their voices could be
-heard as they discussed the subject which had brought them here.
-
-After their departure Mr. Bruce stepped up to Onrai, who was standing,
-lost in thought over the unexpected turn which events had taken, and
-said, “What is it, Onrai?”
-
-“I cannot tell,” said the King, “but the people seem to have taken a
-sudden fear of your party. Never before have I seen this quality in my
-people and it worries me, for now that it is aroused it is hard to tell
-where it will end.”
-
-“But why should this sudden dislike and fear of us have taken possession
-of them,” asked Mr. Bruce. “Heretofore they have done all in their power
-to make our stay in their country pleasant. Something strange must have
-happened to make them change so suddenly.”
-
-“Have no fear, my friends,” said Onrai. “Whatever it is, I will learn
-to-morrow and then I will know how to meet their arguments. They will
-abide by my decision and will again extend to you their friendship.”
-
-They were now called into the sick-room for Enola had again awakened.
-She was still raving about Gip, nothing else seeming to break through
-the dark pall which had fallen over her mind. Loudly she called “Gip,
-Gip, Gip,” half raising from her couch.
-
-As if in answer to her call a noise is heard outside and through one of
-the open arches Gip pushes his great bandaged head. Enola seems to hear
-the sound and, turning, sees the mighty head and before they can
-restrain her, she springs forward and clasping the trunk in her arms
-cries, “My noble, true friend, Gip, you have saved me.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
- “THEY MUST DIE!”
-
-
-Yes, Gip, the great, noble, loyal Gip, had saved Enola. When that great
-cry of hers had broken out, it had floated through the arches and out to
-the open stables where Gip had been placed. He had just been raised to
-his feet preparatory to having his wounds rebandaged, and as the
-agonized cry reached him, he raised his head and listened, and when the
-second cry came he pushed the attendants aside who tried to stop him and
-limping and almost falling he started for the open arches through which
-the sound came. Such loyalty, such love for a mistress had never before
-been displayed by the domestic animals of On and Onrai and the
-attendants looked with astonishment at Gip as he pushed his great head
-through the arch of Enola’s apartment, and gave that peculiar cry.
-
-Enola a moment before had seemed very close to death’s door, her breath
-being scarcely perceptible and no movement of the body showing any signs
-of life. But she had awakened and in her delirium had called on that
-friend who had shared the danger with her and had suffered in trying to
-protect her. Her movement had been so quick when she had seen Gip, that
-those about her had not time to stop her before she had fallen on the
-floor clasping the great trunk of the animal. But it was well perhaps
-that they did not, for any hindrance or objection on their part in
-allowing her to go to that protector, the only one she had recognized,
-might have resulted seriously to her reason, that reason which was
-already darkened, but which now gave a glimpse of light.
-
-All looked at her in astonishment as she caressed the elephant, throwing
-her arms about the great trunk, patting him and calling him by endearing
-names in the meantime. She now noticed the bandages about his head and
-said.
-
-“Oh, my poor Gip, and you were wounded? Ah, yes, I remember now, that
-great, cruel log struck you,” and as she said this she almost fell
-backwards in her weakness, but Mr. Graham caught her and attempted to
-bear her to the couch, but she clutched Gip’s trunk and cried so
-pitifully not to be taken from him, that Mr. Bruce stepped forward and
-said:
-
-“It will not hurt her and it may do her an inestimable amount of good.
-Listen, she already remembers a few of the instances of the storm and
-mad ride.”
-
-“It was terrible, was it not, Gip?” Enola went on, “and you tried so
-hard to keep me from danger; but it blew so furiously and the air was so
-thick with stones and sand and sticks, and you were blinded, dear
-friend. But you are safe now, all but that poor head which the cruel log
-struck. But where are we now, Gip? The storm is over and we are
-together; but where?” and Enola looked about her with eyes which began
-to show some signs of returning reason.
-
-“Ah, I see, they have found us and have taken us back to the Temple; and
-what are these?” and she looked at her bandaged hands and arms. “And my
-face, too! Oh, they hurt so,” and the poor girl seeming for the first
-time to realize her suffering, fell back on the floor.
-
-“Come, Enola,” said Mr. Graham, “you are tired and weak, and must lie
-down. Gip shall stay near you,” he continued, as Enola again turned
-toward the elephant.
-
-“Oh, uncle, I am so tired,” said Enola, as Mr. Graham laid her on the
-couch.
-
-“Thank Heaven!” almost whispered Harry, “her reason is not destroyed.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bruce, as he gave her a quieting powder, “Gip has indeed
-saved her life and her reason, too, for the sight of him has brought
-from out of the chaos the scenes of last night, and these have brought
-in their train other thoughts, until reason itself has been restored.”
-
-This news was received with tears of joy. All fears were now allayed
-regarding Enola, but there were the greater ones awaiting them on the
-morrow. What was to be the result of the conference of the King with the
-people to-morrow? Onrai had assured them that it would be all right,
-that they would abide by his decision in the matter; but was there not a
-possibility of these people, who were experiencing for the first time
-the fears which superstition brought out, being swayed by these rather
-than by the King? Such thoughts had occurred to Mr. Bruce, but he had
-said nothing of his fears to the others, not wishing to worry them
-unnecessarily. Indeed, the thought had come to Mr. Bruce to suggest
-their immediate departure from On, but Enola’s condition forbade this,
-and again, they could not possibly reach the cave before morning, and if
-this intended escape was once discovered, they would be stopped and
-dealt with roughly to say the least.
-
-The news of the coming conference had not been imparted to Mrs. Graham
-and Nellie and they, happy at Enola’s assured recovery, were quietly
-dozing in their chairs, the events of the past twenty-four hours having
-tired them greatly. The watches were now set for the night and the men
-had retired with the exception of Onrai, who went into the garden and
-strolled up and down, his arms hanging listlessly by his side and his
-head bowed as if in deep thought. Was he, too, thinking of that coming
-conference and of the possibility of the men refusing to heed him, and
-following their own blind reasoning? Whatever his thoughts were he was
-completely wrapped up in them and hardly heeded the approaching morn.
-The eastern heavens grew lighter and lighter, but still Onrai paced the
-drive, his head bending low and his eyes cast on the ground. The whistle
-of a bird seemed to rouse him at last, and raising his head and noticing
-the rosy tints of morn lighting the east, he shook himself and said:
-
-“The battle is fought and I now feel stronger; but it has been cruelly
-hard.”
-
-A song sung by a thousand male voices, now arose on the morning air, and
-Onrai, turning toward the lake, exclaimed:
-
-“Oh, I had forgotten. I must meet the people this morning at the lake,”
-and he started off in that direction.
-
-Mr. Bruce came running from the villa, and hurrying up to the retreating
-figure of Onrai, said:
-
-“Onrai, you are about to go to your people. They have a grievance with
-us. Is it not best that we also accompany you, and plead our own
-defense?”
-
-“No,” said Onrai, “I can better do this myself. I am dealing with a new
-phase in their character to-day, and I do not know just how I will
-handle them, but, at any rate, it is best that I should go alone.”
-
-“I would ask one favor of you before you leave,” said Mr. Bruce. “We
-came to your land uninvited, and it is not right that we should create
-any disturbance, or destroy the peace of mind which your people have
-always known. If they demand our departure, and you feel that their
-demand is just, and this decree is irrevocable, do not hesitate to tell
-us, and we will leave immediately, although it would grieve us greatly
-to be compelled to do so, just when we have fully experienced the full
-delights of your beautiful country, and tasted the pleasures of your
-hospitality. We cannot understand why they have learned to fear us, but
-we do not question their motive, in wishing us to leave, if this be so.”
-
-“Fear not,” said Onrai, “Some question of difference has come up
-probably, which has led them to fear that if you should remain here
-long, established customs might be changed. By talking on this subject
-and expatiating on it, it has assumed great proportions, and has seemed
-of greater importance because of the mystery which surrounds you. They
-have never been able to understand how you came to our country. They
-found you on the side of the cliff one morning in the heart of our wild
-beast range; you had been there overnight, and had been unmolested by
-the ferocious beasts. This alone made them look on you with awe, and
-they have never forgotten it. As I have said, it is superstitious fear,
-which is now urging them on, and we will have to first destroy this.”
-
-“I hope that you may be able to do this completely,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“for we wish to be friends with your people, and remain a long time with
-them.”
-
-“I would have it so,” answered Onrai, as he turned and again started for
-the shore. “I can understand now, I think, why these people have turned
-on their guests. In some way they have learned of my love for Enola, and
-a fear has taken possession of them that I would give myself up to the
-fascinations of this fair woman. And they have attributed a supernatural
-power to her, for they could not believe that any other could make me so
-far forget my laws and people as to love; and I do not know just how I
-am going to deny their charges and still ask them to allow the strangers
-to remain with us. This they must do, however, for I would have them
-with us until they have fully learned our customs and ways. They will
-not fully know these until they have seen the ceremony of the Day of
-Resis. And, am I still weak? May be so; but I cannot now see Enola leave
-me. I will be strong, I will bury the love, which, if mentioned, will
-ruin my whole life and that life to come. But I must see her; I must
-have her with me yet awhile. Ah, I am approaching the appointed place.
-Now for the struggle.”
-
-The party had seen him coming and were now drawn up before a large rock,
-which was intended for a platform, from which Onrai was to speak; Onrai
-approached and took his stand on the rock; the men stood in a semicircle
-about him, their heads uncovered and as Onrai took his position on the
-rock they bent their bodies respectfully, and then stood waiting for him
-to speak.
-
-“My people,” he commenced, “you came to me last night with a strange
-complaint. For a short time we have had in the Land of On a number of
-strange people, the first which has ever visited our world since we can
-remember. If at any previous time such visitors came to the Land of On,
-we know not, for the events of the past ages are not made known to us.
-But we are concerned only with these strangers from a distant planet.
-When we stop to consider, we cannot wonder that these enlightened
-people, of another world, seeing our world as we see theirs, should wish
-to visit it and learn, if here was a race of people like unto
-themselves. We cannot fully understand, perhaps, the curiosity which
-should prompt this desire, for we have been taught to be contented with
-the good land which God has given us and not to seek anything which we
-have not here given us. We have certain laws to follow, and these laws
-are life and death. But it is not so with the people who are now here as
-our guests; they have certain political and moral laws, as they call
-them, which they must adhere to, but they have no laws restricting their
-research into the unknown. They may invent new contrivances for making
-their labor easier, they may advance new theories on great subjects,
-even their religion, not being altogether as ours is, but a number of
-different beliefs, these beliefs being subdivided, each advancing
-different theories, which in the end are widely varying. And they are
-allowed to study the heavens and learn the different stars and to name
-them; and they learned that there was a world similar to theirs and they
-determined to visit it, and immediately devised new means to do so; and
-they came and found that another race was here, a race much like
-themselves in many respects but different in others, principally in
-physique; but they worshiped the same God, the great God, and this makes
-them brothers, and now you would destroy them, or send them back to that
-world from whence they came, even before they have fully learned the
-world or people which they traveled so far to find. You have an
-imaginary complaint to make against them; it cannot be a genuine
-complaint for I have been with them almost constantly since they came to
-our land and I know that they are as pure in heart and deed as any among
-us. Accept your King’s word for this, for he knows of what he speaks. I
-have done.”
-
-The party of men had stood perfectly still during this speech of the
-King, but it would be impossible to tell from their mobile features
-whether they were being convinced or not. They stood stolidly silent,
-not a muscle moving, leaning against their zebras. They made a grand
-sight, these thousand men in their beautiful tunics, holding their
-bright helmets. A body of men which would make the armies of the
-civilized world look like pigmies and which would make the eyes of a
-general open wide with admiration. But that stolidity; not one among
-them betrayed an emotion in the face. As Onrai finished they did not
-even change the position which they had held while he was speaking.
-
-Onrai now stepped to one side of the rock and the leader, who had spoken
-the night before, came forward and mounting the rock, bowed to Onrai and
-then proceeded with his explanation.
-
-“Oh, King, I was chosen by the people, who sent us here to make the
-charge against the strangers last night, but you ordered us away, and we
-have always learned to obey our King before all else, so we have waited
-until this morning. The decision reached by the people was caused by a
-report which was brought to the city by one, who has been a member of
-your expedition since you left the city and was for some time before
-attached to the woman Enola before she left the Temple. She was alarmed
-by certain things which transpired, and no longer being able to keep
-them to herself, rode to the city yesterday morning, arriving even
-before you did, oh, King. She tells of the King of On, being in the
-company of the woman Enola most of the time, and that certain
-expressions passed between the King and this woman, which could mean but
-one thing; the King had become infatuated with the woman. This news
-could hardly be credited and would not have been believed probably, if
-one of our men, who was also in the party, had not rushed madly into the
-city yesterday, giving out that the King was mad; that he had stood on
-the terrace of the villa, occupied by Onrai and his party on the night
-of the storm, and had heard the King accuse the woman Enola of having
-bewitched him; of her having known before the laws and customs of the
-people of On, even before she had come here; but notwithstanding this
-she had thrown a spell over him, the King. The King told her that she
-had been balked in her machinations before it was forever too late, by
-the warning of God. This warning was the storm. The man had not stopped
-to listen longer; the storm causing him to seek shelter. The people had
-seen the King come to the city, where he should be in the time of great
-trouble, but that word had come from the woman Enola and he had
-forgotten his people and had rushed off quickly, even killing the zebra
-which he had ridden. This latter, we learned afterwards. The people love
-their King, oh, Onrai; they feel that he has not sinned but that he is
-in the meshes of one who would ruin him, and they have decided that the
-woman and her party should die, and we have come to fulfill this
-mission.” And the man, as if this declaration ended the matter, stepped
-down from the rock and commanded the men to don their helmets and again
-mount.
-
-“Hold,” cried Onrai, “what would you do? Consider well the step which
-you would take. Have you forgotten that these people are our guests and
-as such demand our protection? The stories which you bring are true, but
-they are the results of my own blindness and are not due to any
-supernatural influence, which Enola has had over me. She is innocent and
-even now lies at the point of death, and, will you not at least wait and
-see if her injuries are fatal? Oh, heed your King and do not this thing
-which hurts him. Let them be escorted to the place where they were
-found, and let them from there return to their own world. Do not kill
-them,” and Onrai wrung his hands in despair.
-
-The only answer the leader made him was, “We must save our King, for we
-love him and this is the only way,” and he ordered the men to march.
-Onrai jumped from the rock and ran like a deer ahead of the riders, and
-reaching the villa, met Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and Harry on the terrace
-awaiting his return. The hurrying figure of Onrai coming toward them
-told them that something was wrong, and stepping up quickly toward him,
-Mr. Bruce asked, “What is it?”
-
-“It is settled,” said Onrai; “they are coming to kill you; I tried to
-dissuade them, but it was useless. Rush to the rear and take zebras and
-make all possible speed to where you were found. I will try to keep them
-back for a while; it will mean my death, but that matters little.”
-
-The three men turned white, but did not move.
-
-“But what of Enola?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“She must be taken too,” said Onrai, “but it is too late.”
-
-The riders had now reached the terrace and dismounting, a number of them
-stepped forward and laid hands on the strangers. Others prepared to
-enter the villa, for the women. Onrai stood with bowed head, overcome
-with emotion. This then was to be the miserable end of the expedition.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
- A MESSAGE FROM THE PRIEST.
-
-
-The moment was a critical one and the three men realized it fully; what
-could they do? They were powerless against such a mob; their only hope
-seemed to lay in Onrai, but he had said that the men would no longer
-listen to him. Onrai stood with arms crossed and head bowed and it could
-be seen that he was fearfully agitated. But he made no move to stop the
-men, who were now entering the villa to take the women. But the thought
-of these men, laying their hands on Enola, on that poor bruised body,
-finally overcame Onrai, and rushing madly into the villa, he grabbed the
-two men who were about to enter the sick chamber and pushed them
-forcibly from the house.
-
-“What would you do?” said he, beside himself with anguish. “Would you
-war against poor defenseless women, or worse, sick women? Men, have you
-forgotten your manhood; have you no longer any self-respect? Has your
-pride and honor all been killed by this horrible suspicion?”
-
-The men stood quietly by as they had at the lake, listening, but not
-seeming to heed their King. Those who had laid hands on Mr. Bruce, Mr.
-Graham and Harry still stood guarding them, waiting for those who had
-been sent for the women to come from the villa, when they would carry
-out the rest of the miserable programme.
-
-“Why do you look at me in that strange way?” continued Onrai, “do you
-not know that it is the King who is talking to you, that it is he who
-implores you, that it is Onrai who commands you; have you forgotten that
-it is I, Onrai, whom you yourselves chose for King, and whom you have
-sworn to love and obey, that now entreats you? How are you keeping that
-oath? Oh, that I should ever be chosen ruler of such cowards.”
-
-The men did not move, but when Onrai ceased speaking the leader walked
-up, and again bowing to the King, that King, whom he still respected,
-but did not obey, said:
-
-“King, we know of the great goodness of your heart; we know that that
-great goodness of heart would still be influenced by the love; no, not
-love, but unholy infatuation, which this woman has thrown about you, and
-we know that because of this, you will forget yourself, your future,
-your people, the holy laws and all, and would plead for the lives of
-these people. We knew this and we hardened our hearts against such
-pleadings before we came to you. It was decided that we would not be
-influenced by these pleadings, for we knew that it would not be our
-King, our great, noble Onrai, who would ask pardon for these people, but
-the evil one, which the woman Enola had possessed him with. We believe
-this with all our hearts and consequently we cannot listen to you. We
-are chosen by all the citizens of On to carry out this mission and we
-must do it or go back to our people traitors.”
-
-“Traitors, traitors, did you say? The word is well-chosen, but one which
-heretofore has never been used in the Land of On. Traitors to those who
-sent you! Would you then rather be traitors to the King than to the
-people? Which is the greater sin, if you would call obedience to your
-King a sin, which is the greater sin to be traitor to the people or to
-the King, which you have sworn to love, cherish and obey? Come, man, can
-you answer?”
-
-“Quickly,” said the leader, “for as I have said, it is not now the King
-which commands us, but that evil one within. If it were the King, he
-would say, ‘Take these people who have made your King sin; take these
-people who have called the great God’s vengeance down on us, because we
-harbored them; take them and show them no mercy, for they stole upon us
-like thieves in the night; and when we clothed and fed them, when we
-made them honored guests, giving them every comfort and luxury which the
-Land of On knows, even taking them into the most sacred sanctuary,
-making them special guests of the King, thinking that he alone was
-fitted to entertain them, when we did all this for them, they repaid us
-by making our King sin, and bringing God’s wrath upon us. Take these and
-kill them, for they have betrayed our confidence.’ This is what the
-true, noble King, the great Onrai would say to his people if it were he
-talking to us. Oh King, we pity you, for we do believe that even now you
-suffer, when you see the people, whom you have learned to love through
-their machinations, going to their death. But the people have settled
-the matter, having first given it just consideration and they know that
-it is best that the cause of your sin and the land’s suffering should be
-put out of the way, for if they remain, even if you no longer fell under
-their spell, the land or people would no longer be safe. We know that
-you are suffering for these strangers; these traitors are making you
-suffer, because they would have you intercede for them, but when the
-spell is broken, when you are no longer in the power of this subtle
-Circe, you will thank your people for thus delivering you.”
-
-“I look at you now and wonder if this be the happy, care and
-superstition-free people, whom I have known for so long and I am almost
-persuaded to believe that you are not; that I have been transported in
-some unknown way in my sleeping to another world, where the people have
-never known what happiness, contentment and lack of all superstition is;
-where the people are governed by the most imaginative fantasies of the
-brain; where common sense and reason play no part in their decisions or
-judgment. No, you are not the strong, mighty people that I once knew,
-and yet you are the same. I know you all, every face is familiar to me,
-but that is all. The solid mind has wandered, leaving in its place
-nothing, or worse than nothing—superstition. That you believe in your
-own ignorance that you are now right and that you are following the
-dictates of sensible minds can easily be seen and your decision is as
-much as could be expected from such miserable beings, as would be swayed
-by superstition. Oh, where are the noble minds which once dominated over
-those bodies? Have they gone beyond recall? Have they been so outraged
-by these miserable superstitions that they have gone forever? Will not
-sense, and reason and justice break the flimsy wall of these
-superstitions and place the right mind again in possession? Oh, men of
-little brain, why will you insult me by still calling me King?” And as
-Onrai finished he turned his back on them as if their presence was
-hateful to him; as if their stolid gaze would contaminate him.
-
-The leader stepped forward again and motioned the men back. Mr. Graham
-and his companions watched these proceedings with renewed hope, but
-Onrai did not even turn to see what they were doing. His strong nature
-and nobleness of mind would no longer allow of his suing for mercy, even
-for the sick girl, whose life meant so much to him.
-
-He had first plead; then he called on them as men; then he had commanded
-them as King, and all had been useless; they had still stared at him
-with that set look which would indicate that their decision was so
-irrevocable that nothing, not even positive proof of this decision being
-wrong, would make them change it. Then he had used contempt, he had
-belittled their manhood, their intellect, and unwittingly he had made an
-impression; an impression surely, but whether a good or bad one could
-not yet be said, for the men had taken a position at the edge of the
-park and were now in conference.
-
-Mr. Bruce had slipped into the sick chamber and had looked at Enola. She
-was now resting quietly; her breathing being regular, her temperature
-being almost normal. Mrs. Graham and Nellie were sitting near her, and
-the women attendants were gathered in a group in one end of the
-apartment, conversing in low whispers.
-
-“Mr. Bruce,” asked Nellie, “what is that great body of men doing
-outside; are they here to congratulate the King and his party upon their
-escape from the storm?”
-
-“Exactly,” said Mr. Bruce, and he tried to smile. “They came as a
-delegation from the people of the city to express their heartfelt
-thankfulness for our escape; and also sympathy for Enola’s suffering.”
-
-“But they were here last night,” said Nellie, “and still remain. I
-cannot see why they should do so.”
-
-“They are waiting for further news of Enola’s condition, and when this
-is learned they will depart for the upper part of the country, where
-they are bound to repair the devastations of the storm;” answered Mr.
-Bruce; but as he spoke, Mrs. Graham had walked to the curtained arch and
-parting the hangings, said:
-
-“See, Mr. Bruce, they are returning; their movements are very strange;
-can anything be wrong?”
-
-“Nothing, I assure you, Mrs. Graham,” said Mr. Bruce, “I will see what
-it is,” and saying this he again went on to the terrace.
-
-The leader was just pulling up his zebra, and raising his voice, said:
-
-“Oh King, we cannot heed your command or words. Our duty is plain and we
-must do it. Men do your duty.” Again the men placed their hands on the
-shoulders of the three men and two again entered the villa for the
-women. Onrai stood motionless as if turned to stone. The men came from
-the house, one leading Mrs. Graham and Nellie, and the other with the
-still sleeping figure of Enola in his arms.
-
-A zebra’s gallop was heard on the hard pavement of the avenue. Whoever
-it was, was keeping up a most fearful pace, for the sound of falling
-hoofs came and quick. The men turned to see who this rapid rider could
-be and just then Sedai hove in sight, his zebra fairly flying over the
-ground. He turned into the park and the body of men parted to allow his
-panting zebra to pass between them.
-
-“Hold!” he cried. “A message from the high priest!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV.
- THE CRISIS PASSED.
-
-
-The noise of the zebra galloping madly over the avenue, had so surprised
-the men that for the moment all else had been forgotten, and those
-holding the strangers had let go their hold, and stood with necks craned
-to catch the first glimpse of the mad rider. Mrs. Graham and Nelly had
-stood where their guard had stopped when the first sound of the zebra’s
-hoofs had reached them. They had been so surprised by the entrance of
-the men into the sick chamber, and by their command to follow them, that
-they could not at first realize what the men meant. But when one of them
-attempted to raise Enola from the couch, Mrs. Graham rushed forward, and
-would have tried to stop him, but for the retaining hand of the other
-man.
-
-“What does this mean?” indignantly asked Mrs. Graham.
-
-But the man did not understand English, and simply stared at Mrs.
-Graham.
-
-But now that Enola had been secured, Mrs. Graham and Nellie were made to
-understand that they were to go with the man. They then began to realize
-that something was wrong, and that this was being done with the
-knowledge of those outside. They walked to the terrace, and when they
-saw the men holding their male companions also, they knew that they were
-being made captives for some reason or other. They turned pale, and
-thoughts of dungeon cells and murder came into their minds, which were
-probably not far from the truth, if they but knew it. But the men
-stopped as Sedai rode furiously up, flourishing a piece of parchment in
-his hand. Onrai stepped forward hurriedly, and taking the parchment into
-his hand, read the hieroglyphics inscribed on it. His face at first wore
-a puzzled look, then became brighter, and finally broke into a smile, as
-he handed the parchment to the leader, saying:
-
-“There, man, read that to your followers. It is from the high priest,
-one whose authority you cannot question. Read also how fickle are the
-people whom you represent, for they now order you to return without
-fulfilling your mission,” and saying this, he walked over to where the
-man stood who was holding Enola, and taking her in his arms, carried her
-into the apartment, and laying her on the couch, kissed the fair cheek,
-saying:
-
-“Mine, all mine, and they were trying to take you from me. Oh, God, I
-thank thee.”
-
-Outside the leader had taken the parchment, and, first reading it to
-himself, turned to the men who were watching him closely and
-expectantly, and said:
-
-“This message, as you have heard the King say, is from the high priest,
-and it relieves us from the painful duty of disobeying our King’s
-orders, listen:
-
-“‘I, the high priest of On, who has access to the most sacred laws,
-have, knowing that a matter of great moment depended on the proper
-reading of these laws, perused them carefully, studying each character
-as it is written, and have made this discovery: in those laws which
-govern the King and his conduct, I find the law which says he shall not
-marry; this has always been read that the King shall not marry. But it
-does not end here. In believing that our race is the only one on earth,
-and that we could never be visited by other people, we have read but the
-first part of this law which says, the King shall not love or marry. But
-the whole reading of the law is this: ‘The King shall not take unto
-himself a wife chosen from among his own people.’ The great law-giver of
-our land undoubtedly foresaw that at some future day, people of another
-race would visit us, and although he has virtually given no consent to
-the King’s marrying one of his people, he has, by writing the law in
-this way, namely: ‘The King shall not marry one of his own people,’ made
-it possible for him to marry one of his own race, if he so choses,
-providing, of course, if such a woman comes to the land of On. Therefore
-I, the high priest of the Land of On, do hereby declare that Onrai, the
-King of On, has full and proper rights to marry the woman, Enola, who is
-of another race, and that the men who have been sent to kill the
-strangers, because of Onrai loving one of their women, are on an
-unlawful mission, and must be recalled.’”
-
-As the man finished his reading, he turned to face those whom he and his
-men had been sent to take and kill, and said:
-
-“I came to you with orders from the people to make you prisoners, and to
-take you to a certain place and kill you. We had learned to respect you,
-and it was hard for us to believe that you were guilty of that of which
-you were accused. But all signs seemed to be against you, and we were
-compelled at last to believe that you were guilty. But we have just
-learned from the words of the high priest, that the King’s love was
-sinless, and if there be no sin in his loving, Enola must be sinless. If
-we have shaken your confidence in us, we know not how to regain it. All
-we can do is to assure you that if we have doubted you and have proven
-ourselves traitors to the confidence you have placed in us, we will now
-strive all the harder to make your stay among us a happy sojourn. We
-crave you to pardon us, and believe it was the respect to our laws, as
-we knew them, which made us act as we did.”
-
-The man waited for a moment after he had finished speaking, as if
-expecting a reply from one of the strangers, but none of them understood
-the language well enough to make themselves understood as they would
-wish. Onrai came forward, however, after telling him that they wished
-him to express to his people that they freely forgave their mistaken
-understanding of their mission to their country, and further intention
-of killing them. Onrai turned and interpreted this to the men, who then
-mounted their zebras and departed.
-
-The party again entered the sick chamber and looked at Enola. She had
-awakened from the stupor or sleep into which she had fallen after taking
-the powder, and as they entered she was looking wistfully at the great
-open arch, which had framed the bandaged head of Gip the night before.
-She looked up as the party came in and tried to smile, but the effort
-was lost, the bandages covering her face so completely, that they hid
-all expression.
-
-“Was I so badly wounded then?” she asked, as she half raised her head
-and looked at them.
-
-“Yes, dear,” said Mrs. Graham, who had hardly yet got over the scare
-which the recent event had given her. “But you are going to get well now
-and we will be so happy.”
-
-“Yes, Enola,” said Onrai, as he stepped up and took the poor bruised
-hand, “happiness has been unknown to us since you were wounded, but we
-know now that you will get well, and our happiness has returned,” and he
-raised her hand to his lips.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV.
- “HE WILL MARRY YOU.”
-
-
-One week had now passed and Enola had almost entirely recovered. Her
-fever had lasted only a day or two and with Mr. Bruce’s prescriptions
-and treatment, and Mrs. Graham’s and Nellie’s gentle care she mended
-rapidly. Her wounds, too, had healed so quickly, the bandages had been
-discontinued and altogether Enola was nearly in as good a condition as
-before her fateful ride.
-
-“Why, Enola,” said Mr. Graham, “you look as bright and happy as ever,
-this beautiful morning, and I prescribe a good long walk for you in the
-garden.”
-
-“And I feel quite as well as usual, Uncle,” answered Enola. “My arms and
-limbs are a little stiff yet, but outside of that I am all right and
-will gladly accept your invitation. Ah, the morning is beautiful,
-glorious,” she continued, as they stepped to the terrace. “Uncle, have
-you noticed that the sun seems to be brighter, the air purer, that all
-verdure is greener, that the waters of the lake and river bluer, that
-the birds’ notes clearer and their plumage gayer, that all nature seems
-brighter and happier here than in the civilized world?”
-
-“Ah, that is quite a speech, Enola,” answered Mr. Graham, smiling; “but
-seriously, I have noticed all this many times, and I have long ago
-ceased wondering at the happiness and contentment of the people, for
-they could hardly be aught else with such environments.”
-
-“Yes, they are truly a happy lot,” said Enola, “yet how human. For
-centuries, more than likely, their ancestors had never known such words
-as fear and superstition and they themselves could hardly have defined
-the meaning of these words, yet one little word set them wondering and
-just a word more and a little act on the part of their King made them
-slaves to superstitious fears.”
-
-“Yes, that is so,” said Mr. Graham, “I am very much afraid we are all
-alike after all.”
-
-“No, not all alike,” said Enola, “for we, with our advanced notions on
-such matters could never believe as did these people for a short time.”
-
-“May be not,” said Mr. Graham, “but we must take into consideration that
-these people have always been led to believe that they were the only
-people on earth, and have never been told of other people on other
-planets, so our advent among them was a great surprise in the first
-place and they looked on us with awe, mingled with fear; and Onrai’s
-strange actions and the storm simply ‘capped the climax.’”
-
-“We had rather a narrow escape, don’t you think?” asked Enola.
-
-“Yes,” answered Mr. Graham, “too narrow for comfort; but I think we
-stand on a better footing with these people since, and that for this
-reason the occurrence should be looked upon as being a decidedly lucky
-one for us.”
-
-“That is very true,” said Enola, “but look, Gip has seen us and is
-coming to meet us.”
-
-Across the lawn strode the great monstrous beast, his limp nearly gone,
-but his head still bandaged. This great elephant stood fully twenty feet
-high and as he stalked under the trees his back touched the lower
-boughs. He had been given the freedom of the garden from the first night
-of his removal from the scene of the accident to the villa, and he had
-taken up his position beneath the arch which opened into Enola’s
-apartment, and here he had remained, only going to his stall for a few
-moments’ rest; he knowing that if he lay down beneath the window, he
-could not again rise. Such love for a mistress had never been displayed
-before, according to Onrai, and his people could not understand it; but
-it was clear enough to them that the elephant was attached to Enola, and
-this was quite enough to let him have his own way.
-
-Quickly he passed over the smooth lawn until he had reached them, when
-he affectionately stuck his great trunk into Enola’s face. Perhaps this
-was not a very pleasant way of having him show his love, but it was the
-only way he knew of, and Enola seemed to enjoy it.
-
-“Good Gip,” she said, “and could you not see me in my room? I saw you
-poke your big head in the arch and pull it out again and look about. You
-are a dear, good fellow, Gip, and you can come right along and walk with
-us.”
-
-And he did. Back and forth on the lawn the three walked, the great
-elephant keeping close to Enola’s side, occasionally thrusting his trunk
-over her shoulder, giving out that little squeak, as if to let her know
-that he was still with her. And his great moving hulk shook the ground
-at every step, making Mr. Graham look around now and then with
-apprehension. But Gip paid no attention to him, simply looking at Enola
-and trying to make her look at him.
-
-The day before Onrai had gone to the city to attend to any matters which
-might need his attention. He was to return to-day, and on the morrow
-they were again going to take up the journey to the field of diamonds,
-which had been so unexpectedly interrupted by the storm. Mr. Graham and
-Enola had now walked to the edge of the garden, and were standing
-looking down the beautiful roadway, when far away, where the perspective
-came to a point, could be seen a small black spot. At first it looked
-like a pedestrian, then like a zebra, and finally the form of zebra and
-rider were made out. It was Onrai returning, and as impatient as on the
-night when the message had reached him of Enola’s serious illness. Gip
-pricked up his ears, and looking down the road, saw the rider
-approaching; then kneeling, he placed his trunk for Enola to step on, as
-of old. She divined his intention and placing her foot on his trunk, he
-raised her to his back and started off down the avenue, she sitting
-Turkish fashion on the silk covering which was always worn by the white
-elephant.
-
-Onrai was now near enough to distinguish her form, and seeing her
-approach he urged his zebra into a still faster gallop and in a moment
-he and Enola had met, and Gip, turning, strode along beside the zebra.
-Far above Onrai Enola sat, her face almost hidden by the huge figure of
-the elephant, but Onrai was happy in the thought that he was near her.
-That was enough for him at least.
-
-“You came to meet me, then?” asked he.
-
-“No, I think it was Gip, who came to meet you,” answered Enola, smiling,
-“I simply accompanied him.”
-
-Onrai laughed as he said, “Well, you are here and that is enough. You
-are looking entirely well this morning; are you feeling so?”
-
-“Perfectly so,” answered Enola, “and ready and waiting to again take up
-the journey.”
-
-“We will start to-morrow, at break of day,” said Onrai, “and let us hope
-that our journey will not again be broken by such an event as the
-storm.”
-
-“Yes, it was fearful,” answered Enola, “but let us not talk of gloomy
-things on this beautiful morning. The miserable past is gone and let us
-forget it. I hope your people will not again mistrust us, for this hope
-only will again insure us comfort and happiness.”
-
-They had now reached the villa and Gip, placing his trunk for Enola to
-step on and kneeling for her, she was soon standing beside the King.
-
-“I thank you for having met me,” he said.
-
-“Don’t thank me,” said Enola. “Thank Gip.” Then she tripped lightly up
-the terrace stairs.
-
-“She seems to have lost all seriousness since her recovery,” said Onrai
-to himself, as he followed Enola into the villa, “but this may be
-joyousness over that recovery. But she will have to be serious when the
-time comes, for my people will demand it.”
-
-Enola had gone into her own apartment, where she found Nellie awaiting
-her.
-
-“Has Onrai said anything to you yet?” asked Nellie.
-
-“About what?” asked Enola.
-
-“About his intended marriage,” said Nellie, and she tried to smile, but
-could not, the whole matter seemed such a farce.
-
-“About his marriage? why he has not mentioned it to me,” said Enola.
-
-“It is strange he should not have spoken to you about it,” said Nellie,
-“for it concerns you quite as much as himself.”
-
-“In what way?” asked Enola. “I cannot possibly see how I am concerned in
-his marriage.” But as she spoke she remembered the conversation of the
-night of the storm and of his accusation. For he had told her then that
-a King was not allowed to marry, how was this then, that he was going to
-break the law.
-
-“Tell me, Nellie,” said she.
-
-“I can hardly bring myself to do so,” said Nellie. “We told you that we
-had trouble with the people when you were sick, which nearly ended in
-our massacre, but we did not tell you all concerning that trouble. You
-are strong enough now and can hear it. They accused you of bewitching
-the King, when you knew he was forbidden by the laws to either love or
-marry. They said that the storm had come to them as a warning, and was
-God’s wrath on them for harboring us, and they were going to kill us.
-But the high priest learned that the King could marry you if he so
-desired, and so we were pardoned, and now it is the King’s intention and
-the people’s desire that you should marry him. But I cannot understand
-why he has not spoken to you about it. Oh, Enola, can you marry this
-barbarous king?”
-
-“Don’t ask me, now, Nellie, I cannot answer—I cannot understand.” And
-Enola drew her hand across her eyes as if to break the spell.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI.
- A STRANGE DISCOVERY.
-
-
-The following morning opened bright and beautiful; all rose early, and
-after a light breakfast again took up the journey. Gip had sufficiently
-recovered to be allowed to go, and as it was intended that for the first
-few days’ the marches were to be short in order not to fatigue Enola, it
-was thought best for her to ride in the large howdah on Gip’s back, for
-the motion would be less and the position more comfortable than it would
-be on the back of a zebra. So Gip was happy in carrying the precious
-burden, and strode out at the head of the large cavalcade as proud as
-any of them, with scarcely any sign of lameness left. Onrai had also
-mounted an elephant so as to be on a level with Enola, for the idea of
-trying to keep up a conversation when he was riding some feet below her,
-was entirely out of the question.
-
-Harry preferred his zebra, notwithstanding this left the field entirely
-open to Onrai. Still, he thought it might as well be thus, for Enola
-might look on his riding near her as an intrusion, and this would hurt
-his cause far more than it would help it.
-
-Mrs. Graham and Nellie were both on elephants this morning, Mrs. Graham
-being stretched out in a half reclining position, enjoying to the
-fullest the comforts of the huge howdah and easy motion of the elephant.
-Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and Harry rode well on ahead of the rest of the
-party, and Sedai was directly in their rear. The story of his hard ride
-from the city, when bringing the message from the high priest, he had
-kept silent on for a long time, but Mr. Bruce finally prevailed upon him
-to tell how he had been chosen as a courier. His story was substantially
-this:
-
-“I was standing just before the terrace when I saw the body of men come
-up. I heard them make the demand and knew that they would make trouble.
-I heard one of the number say that it was because of Enola having made
-the King sin by wishing to marry her, she knowing that the King could
-not marry. I then remembered having heard one of the men, whom I had
-talked with in the city, say that the law did not forbid the King
-marrying a woman of another country. I heard Onrai tell them to wait
-until morning. I then determined to ride to the city and look up the man
-who had made this remark. After the men had withdrawn, I stole to the
-stable, and jumping on my zebra started for the city. I rode hard and it
-was still night when I reached there. I found the man after considerable
-trouble and he told me that that was his opinion only, but that the
-people had decided that the King could not marry, and he must believe
-this as did they. He told me to go to the high priest. While on my way
-to the Temple some of the populace saw me, and fearing that I had broken
-away from those who had been sent to kill our party, they pursued and
-overtook me at the base of the terrace steps which led to the Temple. I
-fought hard but they overpowered me and bore me into the Temple. The
-high priest came forward and asked me how it was that I was not with my
-friends. I told him as well as I could, for I knew little of the
-language, that there was a doubt regarding the law governing the King’s
-marriage; that I had been sent to him with the request that he examine
-carefully this law and give me his decision and let me bear it to the
-King. The high priest left us for a few moments and then came back and
-handing me a piece of parchment, commanded the people to leave me go,
-and bade me ride with all speed to the King and my friends.
-
-“The priest was very much agitated as he said this to me, and kept
-urging me to use all speed. I rushed down the steps and jumped on one of
-the zebras of the natives, mine being winded, and never stopped until I
-had reached the villa.”
-
-This was the story Sedai told in his quiet and unassuming way and he
-never seemed to realize that he had, by his quick forethought, put into
-immediate action, saved the lives of his friends. And Sedai had ever
-since this held a new place in the hearts of the party and Onrai himself
-seemed to look on the Abyssinian as one who had done him a personal act
-of kindness which could never be repaid. He was a hero, was Sedai, and
-it was decided by the party that although he might never again have an
-opportunity to help them in a like way, still it was good always to have
-him with them, and upon their telling him this he said that he would
-never again leave them; not even for a day. And so he was one of the
-party to-day, his sturdy figure riding the zebra like a native.
-
-The journey would occupy some ten days yet and it was decided to travel
-early in the morning and in the cool of the evening; spending the warm
-part of the day in one of the villas en route, as they had on previous
-marches. The storm’s track could be seen very plainly from the avenue
-and a large body of men were still employed cleaning away the debris. A
-remarkable thing about the terrible storm was that it had not killed a
-single human being. Some had been very badly injured, but these had all
-recovered or were recovering, so that not one death could be laid to the
-storm; many animals had been killed and it was expected that many of the
-wild animals in the hunting reservation had also been killed, but this
-had not yet been ascertained, as none had gotten as far as the
-northwestern part of the country, where the storm was supposed to have
-started.
-
-It would remain with Onrai and his party to ascertain this.
-
-All was life and happiness this beautiful morning and all thoughts of
-the storm had been relegated to the past. On their right stretched the
-lake, its clear waters stretching far to the north; on the left were the
-farms and pastures, through which the storm had ploughed its way; on
-ahead of them, as far as the eye could reach, stretched out the shaded
-avenue; way off to the northwest could just be seen in the blue
-distance, hardly perceptible, the faces of the cliffs, and at the base
-of these cliffs was their destination, and there too were the points of
-interest, which the party were to see before their return.
-
-“The journey for the next few days will be uneventful enough, will it
-not?” said Mr. Graham, as he pulled up for a moment alongside of Onrai’s
-elephant.
-
-“Yes, we will have little to break the monotony between here and the
-field of brilliants, but the country is beautiful and I think you will
-find it all interesting,” said Onrai.
-
-“It is all interesting to me,” said Mr. Graham, “but I wished to know if
-there was anything of special interest, such as mines and quarries.”
-
-“No, nothing of that kind,” said Onrai, “but wait a minute; there is a
-deserted mine or something, which has never been explored by any of my
-people, since I can remember, and I cannot tell whether it be a mine or
-well or natural hole in the ground. It is about the width of the avenue
-and goes down, down, down, far below where the eyes can reach. I have
-only looked down this dark hole when I have been passing and know
-positively nothing about it, but if you would like to do so, we will
-halt there to-morrow and go down with ropes and explore it as far as we
-can. A villa stands near in which the ladies can wait for us.”
-
-“I should like to see what this curious place is,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Well, then, it is settled, we will explore it to-morrow,” said Onrai.
-
-Mr. Graham again rode up alongside of Mr. Bruce, and telling him of the
-hole in the ground, had his interest aroused at once. All along the
-track of the storm many men were at work, but for some time past none
-had been seen.
-
-“It is strange, is it not?” asked Harry of Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, decidedly so,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“But, look, what is that in the distance?”
-
-“It looks like a body of men,” answered Harry.
-
-“Perhaps they have congregated there for some special work.”
-
-No further comment was made about these men. They could now be plainly
-seen standing in a circle. They were not working as far as could be
-seen, but were standing with heads bowed as if contemplating something
-on the ground before them. They now saw the King and his party
-approaching, and one of their party hurried to the avenue and came
-towards the travelers.
-
-“He seems to be excited over something,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Yes, he acts differently than most other men I have seen in this
-country,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“May be they have made a discovery.”
-
-“Something agitates him,” said Harry, “that is sure.”
-
-The man now came near, and seeing that it was the King and his party he
-stopped, and making a respectful bow, said:
-
-“I have come, oh, King, not knowing that you was of the party, to call
-attention to a strange being which we have found in the field. We know
-not whether it be human or not, and we would ask you to look at it and
-tell us how to act with it.”
-
-“Go, we will follow,” said the King, and the party followed the man from
-the avenue into the field to the left.
-
-The body of natives moved, upon seeing the King and party approaching,
-to one side, disclosing the object which had so interested them. The
-party looked and saw the body of an African negress with a child
-strapped to her back.
-
-But how had it gotten here?
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII.
- IN THE HOLE.
-
-
-Yes, it was a negro mother and her babe. The body was that of a slight
-woman, weighing not more than one hundred pounds, and perfectly black.
-The babe was probably three months old, and was strapped to the back of
-her mother. The features of the mother were flat and broad, and showed
-but little intelligence. Both bodies were considerably mutilated; this
-being caused, very likely, by the storm; not a rag of clothing covered
-the bodies. Silently the native men and women stood gazing on the
-strange figures; they could offer no explanation on this as to how these
-bodies had come here or from whence they had come; they looked at the
-bodies and then at the white strangers as if to trace some likeness, but
-there was none, and this puzzled them all the more. Involuntarily they
-glanced into the heavens, as if expecting to see a new planet looming up
-in the midday sun from which these black bodies had fallen. That they
-had come from the same world which they themselves inhabited—that world
-which was theirs alone, they could not believe, of course.
-
-Onrai looked at one of the guests and then at another, as if expecting
-some explanation from them, but they offered none; they being nearly as
-much in the dark as was he. But finally Onrai, stepping up to Mr. Bruce,
-said:
-
-“You know so much of the heavens and of the stars, can you not tell me
-whence came this woman!”
-
-“I can only offer one explanation,” answered Mr. Bruce, “and that is
-that the woman and child were caught up by the great storm and blown
-from their own country into this.”
-
-“Ah,” said Onrai, “that explanation maybe truthful, and looking over his
-people he called them all closely about him and told them what Mr. Bruce
-had said. It seemed to satisfy them, but it raised their curiosity to a
-greater extent, and they crowded more closely about the bodies. The hot
-sun had poured down on these bodies until they were in a bad state of
-decomposition and our friends soon moved away, leaving the find wholly
-in possession of the natives.
-
-“What shall we do with these bodies?” asked Onrai of Mr. Graham.
-
-“I would order them burned,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-So Onrai told some of the men to throw together a pile of wood and lay
-the bodies on it; this was soon done and the torch was then applied. As
-the flames shot into the air, licking the reeking flesh off the bodies,
-our friends again mounted and moved on.
-
-“What do you think of this, Mr. Bruce?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“I can only say what I have already said to Onrai,” answered Mr. Bruce.
-“The force of the storm must have blown this woman and her child over
-the cliff and thus far into the heart of the land.”
-
-“Do you not think that another explanation might be made of their
-appearance?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“There may be many explanations made,” answered Mr. Bruce, “but if this
-country is impregnable, how else could this woman and her child reach
-here?”
-
-“I think myself that the storm has played a great part in this woman’s
-appearance in this part of the country, but I cannot help but think that
-she was this side of the cliffs before the storm,” answered Mr. Graham.
-
-“If that be so, then these people have lived in ignorance of this
-tribe’s having taken up a residence in this country,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Graham, “but these Onians very seldom visit the
-northwestern part of this country, as Onrai has said, and this tribe
-might have found an entrance and settled in a fertile part near the
-cliffs, and may now be living there in total ignorance of their having
-entered a country which has for ages been shut in from the rest of the
-world?”
-
-“This may all be so,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I would rather cling to my
-theory.”
-
-“I would gladly accept your explanation,” said Mr. Graham, “if it were
-not for that part of it, which says that the woman was blown over the
-cliffs. Now, if this storm had started on the western side of these
-cliffs, the cliffs themselves would have broken the force, or destroyed
-it entirely before it reached this side. Therefore, I claim that the
-storm must have started from this side of the cliff.”
-
-“When put in that way,” said Mr. Bruce, “you almost convince me that I
-have made a mistake. But whatever the way in which this woman reached
-this country, I believe that we will hear more of it. It would be
-strange indeed if we should find a race of negroes quietly villaged in
-this country.”
-
-“Well, there is a possibility that we may,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-Off to the right, in a clump of trees, is now seen a villa and the party
-made for it, it now being nearly midday. Once in the cool villa, and all
-thought of the morning adventure was forgotten. Lunch was served and
-then came the afternoon siesta.
-
-Late in the afternoon they again started, intending to ride until late
-in the evening. The journeys in the cool of the evening were delightful.
-There was always a breeze coming off the lake at this time and it was
-very refreshing after the close, warm air of the day. Along toward
-evening the villa, which they had occupied on the evening of the storm,
-was passed. The storm had made great ravages here, tearing up immense
-trees by the roots and piling them one above the other. The earth was
-gouged out in places to a depth of twenty feet, and all along the track
-of the storm were immense piles of debris.
-
-Thoughts of the storm had long since passed from the minds of our
-friends; they were interested only in the far northwest toward which
-they were headed, and which promised them so many surprises and
-adventures. This northwest was almost unknown even to the natives; they
-knew certain parts of it very well, such as the field of diamonds and
-one or two other points, which had come under their notice for some
-special reason. But taken as a whole very little was known of the
-country, and for this reason Mr. Bruce and the others expected to make
-some very interesting discoveries. The country had wonderful resources;
-every known part of it producing certain products, which made it a
-veritable Eldorado, and it might be expected that the northwest held
-resources which would astonish all, even Onrai and his people. The field
-of diamonds alone was enough to make this part of the country
-interesting to the strangers, and for this alone they had started on
-this journey.
-
-The following morning the party was up and off exceptionally early, long
-before the sun had risen. They were only to make half a march that day,
-for the shaft, which Onrai had spoken of on the previous day, was to be
-explored. That is, men were to be lowered into it and if the bottom
-could be reached and openings found leading from it, then all of the men
-of the party were to go down and explore these. Such was the programme
-laid out for the day and with this prospect of new diversions the men
-started off with happy hearts.
-
-Each day now was bringing them nearer to the great northwest and the
-cliffs were growing plainer as they advanced. The country began to
-assume a wilder appearance; still there were well-kept fields and
-numerous farm villas and many men at work in the fields. At another
-point to-day they had passed a great herd of elephants, which had been
-brought from the city to recuperate, the former hospital having been
-almost entirely destroyed by the storm. These elephants, like many
-others which they had passed, had followed them until driven back by the
-attendant.
-
-The morning was getting pretty well-advanced and the hopes of reaching
-the shaft shortly were making the men keep up a constant watch on both
-sides of them for fear of passing it. It was partially hid in a piece of
-woods which bordered the lake at this point for some distance. None of
-the party knew the exact locality of the opening and so care had to be
-taken in order not to pass it.
-
-“What do you think of this hole in the ground?” asked Mr. Graham of Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“I do not know what to think of it,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I do know that
-it is a very strange thing that these people should be in ignorance of
-its origin. It seems to me that such things would start the curiosity in
-these people, but I have seen very little of this article in their
-make-up. They did look a little bewildered yesterday when they saw the
-negress and child, but I will wager you a shilling they have forgotten
-all about it by this time. This very lack of curiosity in these people
-almost puts me out of patience with them.”
-
-“It may be, though,” said Mr. Graham, smiling at Mr. Bruce’s impatience,
-“that it is better that they have left to us the exploring of this
-extinct mine or well, or whatever it is; anyway I would feel better
-satisfied finding something, which is not already known by this people.
-There goes one of the attendants now towards the trees; perhaps we have
-reached the hole.”
-
-And they had, for the fellow, pulling aside some underbrush, disclosed a
-large, dark opening running straight into the ground. The wind seemed to
-be rushing into this hole with great force. He turned and motioned to
-the party and they rode toward them. All dismounting, ropes were
-procured and tied to the trunks of the trees, surrounding the hole. A
-glance down the dark aperture would have been enough for most men, but
-for those here assembled, the blackness but whetted their curiosity and
-desire to investigate. A lighted torch was thrown down, but the fearful
-wind which rushed down the hole extinguished this before it had fallen
-far.
-
-“Let us all go down in a bunch and with our combined efforts we may be
-able to keep our feet,” Harry said.
-
-And so it was decided; Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and Harry and Onrai were to
-go down, well tied together, only allowing enough freedom for the limbs
-to move easily. A small supply of food and a few skins of water were put
-up and strapped to the back of each and several torches were also taken.
-It was strange, but Onrai seemed to take quite as much interest in the
-contemplated subterranean journey as did the other members of the
-expedition, and he showed more enthusiasm than he had at any time since
-the arrival of the strangers. This was the first opportunity though that
-he had had to display any enthusiasm, for everything in this country had
-been familiar to him since childhood and he could hardly be expected to
-show any great interest in things. But now, though by the eagerness
-displayed by his guests, he had also had his curiosity aroused and he
-was really impatient to get started.
-
-“Are you ready, Onrai?” asked Harry.
-
-“I am,” answered Onrai, “and eager to start. If there is anything new in
-my country, I want to know it.”
-
-“Well, I think you will be surprised by the things that you will see and
-learn to-day,” said Mr. Bruce. “That is, if the passage-way and its gale
-of wind are any criterion.”
-
-“’Tis well, let us start,” Onrai answered.
-
-All bade the ladies good-bye, Enola almost crying because Mr. Bruce
-forbade her accompanying them. Sedai was left to look out for the
-interest of the women folks.
-
-The four men were now tied together, and many sturdy hands grabbing the
-strong rope, they were lowered over the side of the hole. Slowly they
-descended, each moment nearing the passage. Suddenly, without any
-warning, they were swung in, and the line giving way, they landed on the
-floor of the cavern. They scrambled to their feet in the dark, for they
-had not lit the torches in descending, and by keeping breast to back and
-throwing themselves well against the wind by leaning as far back as
-possible, they were enabled to keep their feet and advance. The angle
-was reached and they turned; now the wind caught them full force again,
-and it was hard to keep an upright position. They were in hopes of
-reaching another passage though, through which the wind did not rush
-with such force, and where they could keep their torches lit. If they
-could not find such a one, they might as well return, for they could
-explore or learn nothing in this Egyptian darkness.
-
-[Illustration: “Grinning at them with open mouths and sightless
-eyes.”—_Page 209._]
-
-Slowly they proceeded, feeling their way every step, and keeping tight
-against the right wall. Mr. Bruce, who was in the lead, suddenly felt an
-opening on the right, and telling his companions to follow him, turned
-into this new avenue. They were now comparatively out of the wind and,
-stopping, they lit a torch. Looking about them they saw, grinning at
-them with open mouths and sightless eyes, thousands of human faces.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
- PRISONERS IN THE CAVERN OF THE DEAD.
-
-
-Mr. Bruce, who held the torch, dropped it to the floor at the ghastly
-sight which met his gaze. From all sides these horrible visages were
-looking at them. There seemed to be thousands of them; in fact, the
-number seemed unlimited and as the torch flickered away on the floor,
-casting long shadows over these sombre surroundings, the scene was
-enough to curdle the blood of the strongest. Mr. Bruce stooped and
-picked up the torch again, he having recovered from the shock which the
-scene first gave him.
-
-The hall was about fifty feet wide and ten feet high; the depth could
-not be ascertained because it went beyond the vision. They had entered
-the hall by a door about seven feet high from the corridor of winds.
-This hall or chamber was like the corridor hewn out of the solid rock,
-the ceiling, sides and floor being perfectly smooth. The party now began
-to examine the bodies which were arranged in groups about the walls and
-piled in heaps all over the chamber. These figures were small, being on
-an average about five feet in length; but the bodies had been
-well-proportioned in life more than likely, but now the skin was drawn
-tightly over the bones; the lips having dried and drawn away from the
-teeth, leaving the grinning, ghastly expression, which first struck such
-horror to the hearts of the explorers. The bodies were nude, having no
-covering whatever, but around each, just below the arms, was a band of
-copper. There were no signs of embalming cloths at all about the chamber
-and their bodies had seemingly been preserved by a process of injection
-of some powerful fluid, whilst there was a natural means of some kind in
-these underground passages which preserved them. The skin was almost
-black and rather thin, having that dull color which death or age gives
-to the skin; it shone like ebony.
-
-Mr. Bruce took hold of several of the bodies and removing them, found
-their limbs and arms as pliable as in life. This, too, was against all
-natural and scientific principles and could not be explained.
-
-“What do you think of all this?” asked Mr. Bruce of Mr. Graham.
-
-“I should say that these bodies had been here for some time, but how
-long it would be impossible to say,” answered Mr. Graham.
-
-“Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, “have you ever seen any such people in your
-country?”
-
-“Never,” answered Onrai, and his face looked puzzled. “I cannot
-understand this at all. Can it be that these people have always
-inhabited these underground passages, here under our country? Can this
-be the great death hole, to which the wicked are condemned?” and Onrai
-turned to look about him.
-
-“No, no, Onrai, let not such thoughts come into your mind,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “These are dead and they know no suffering. If they were, as you
-suppose, they would be alive and undergoing great torture. You have been
-kept in ignorance of the existence of these people for good reasons, or
-it may be that the founder of your country knew nothing of this.”
-
-“But are there any of these now living, I wonder? This we must learn
-before returning, so let us go on, taking good care not to lose our
-way,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-They accordingly moved along through the death chamber, keeping straight
-ahead. The chamber seemed unending and went on and on, with the dead
-still piled in heaps and leaning against the walls. It must have taken
-ages to accumulate these thousands of dead.
-
-“There seems no end to all this,” said Mr. Graham. “I would prefer that
-we get out of this place and into another not so thickly populated with
-the dead.”
-
-“It must end some place,” said Mr. Bruce, and he had hardly finished
-speaking, when a wall loomed up ahead of him and the chamber was ended.
-
-“Well, we are a nice lot,” said Harry; “there is no opening here and we
-will have to return.”
-
-But after looking around for some time, and by moving several of the
-bodies, an opening was discovered in one corner. This was small, but
-after crawling through it the party found themselves in another
-corridor, resembling the one of the winds. The hideous sight of the dead
-was now lost and they passed on down a smooth hallway quickly, nothing
-obstructing their headway. On, on they went, the corridor leading in a
-straight line, as near as they could calculate, in a southeasterly
-direction.
-
-“I should much rather have followed the windy passage, if it had been
-possible,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“And I,” said Mr. Graham. “But to fight against being blown away by that
-strong current would soon have exhausted us. But we may strike it again
-further on.”
-
-“Yes,” said Harry, “and this passage may be leading us to great
-discoveries. I believe that if any of the strange race of people are yet
-alive, they must use this passage, for it would be quite impossible for
-them to get through the windy one.”
-
-“How long it must have taken to cut this hall from a solid rock,” said
-Mr. Bruce, “and how many thousands of men it must have taken to
-accomplish this immense work.”
-
-“It was not done in a day or a year, or in many years,” said Mr. Graham.
-“Still the work looks as if it might have been done years or hundreds of
-years ago.”
-
-“We have made a greater discovery than the one of On,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“That’s so,” answered Mr. Graham, “for this has the additional interest
-of being underground.”
-
-“Is it possible?” said Onrai, “that my people have lived so long over
-these strange inhabitants of the under world and have learned nothing of
-them?”
-
-“Your people are not at all curious, Onrai, or they would have long ago
-investigated these things,” said Mr. Bruce. “The desire for discoveries
-is altogether lacking in your make-up, and your laws have had a great
-deal to do with it. You believe that yours is the only race on this
-earth and that all things are known to you, so you have never thought it
-necessary to look beyond the things that be.”
-
-“There is much for us to learn here,” said Onrai, a puzzled look coming
-into his face.
-
-“No,” answered Mr. Bruce, “you know enough to make your lives contented
-and happy and anything beyond that would be folly. But that certain
-things exist that you do not know of, there is no doubt; these, however,
-are not necessary to your happiness or well-being, and for this reason
-have been kept from you. I would not let the things which you are now
-learning of for the first time, worry me in the least if I were you.
-Whatever these underground passages may bring to light, they cannot in
-the least effect you or yours; so it would be best not to give these any
-serious thought yourself or ever mention them to your subjects.”
-
-“I believe you are right,” said Onrai, “for we are happy now and any
-greater knowledge might make us discontented, giving us a desire to
-reach out and learn more, thus making us restless. I can now realize how
-this can be.”
-
-They were still following the smooth-floored corridor and throughout its
-entire length it had kept up that uniform width and height. The angle
-formed by the meeting of the floor and walls was sharp and perfectly cut
-as could be, and the beautiful arched roof showed wonderful skill in
-chiseling. They all walked along, after this conversation, each one
-engrossed in his own thoughts, when Onrai, who was in the lead, stopped,
-and stooping, picked up a peculiar-shaped spear; the handle was short
-and made of the backbone of some kind of fish; the head was long and
-narrow and made of a very flinty stone; this head was set into the
-handle, a slot being cut into the latter for this purpose; a cement was
-used to fasten this head firmly into the handle, it also being bound to
-it by thongs in much the same manner as are all spearheads of the
-African tribe. Examining it more closely, stains were seen on the head
-and handle, and the handle was notched in several places. The spear
-might have been left there a day before or a century before; it was in a
-perfect state of preservation, but the substance of which it was made
-was very nigh indestructible, so it might have laid there for ages.
-
-“This passage has never been used since that spear was left here,” said
-Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Why do you think so?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“Because,” answered Mr. Bruce, “if it had been the spear would
-undoubtedly have been picked up, as it is more than likely that these
-are not so easily made as to be thrown away or left without being picked
-up.”
-
-“If that be so,” said Mr. Graham, “it tells nothing that we may want to
-know. We are only interested in the live portion of this race, if there
-be any of them yet extant, and we want some clew that will lead us to
-them.”
-
-“Well, I can say this much,” said Mr. Bruce, “that we will find them
-ahead of us if we find any at all.”
-
-“Another indefinite declaration,” said Mr. Graham, “tell us how you know
-this, Mr. Bruce?”
-
-“Why this spearhead was lying, turned in that direction in which we are
-going and when it was dropped, it was but natural that its loser was
-moving in the same direction, for in falling it would naturally fall
-that way.”
-
-“There is considerable in that argument,” said Harry, “and I agree with
-you, Mr. Bruce, that whoever dropped it was the last person through here
-and was going in the direction in which we are now moving.”
-
-“Well, we shall see,” said Mr. Graham, “have you made out the stains on
-the handle, Mr. Bruce?”
-
-“No, but they look very much like congealed blood and I suppose they are
-nothing else. These people probably use the spear for killing fish.”
-
-“Why fish,” asked Onrai.
-
-“Well, that was only another supposition of mine,” said Mr. Bruce. “You
-see it is hardly likely that these people have any land animals down
-here. Such things have never been found yet or at least not in any
-numbers. But fish in subterranean rivers and lakes are very prevalent;
-in fact an underground river or lake is seldom found without these fish,
-some of them, as is the case in the great Mammoth Cave of Kentucky,
-being without eyes. Then, we know that these people find fish in some
-part of their underground home, for we have the proof of it here,” and
-Mr. Bruce held up the spear handle.
-
-“But do you know that that is fish bone?” asked Harry.
-
-“Well, from what I have learned on the subject, I should say that it
-was,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, it looks like a bone in the fish we catch in the lake,” said
-Onrai.
-
-“Well, it is decided that it is a fish bone and the stains are made by
-the fish blood,” said Mr. Bruce. “Now, we know that somewhere in this
-cave there is a river or lake and I would say that the passage, which we
-are now traversing, is but the avenue leading to the death chamber.
-These people probably realize that it is best to have the dead
-well-removed from the living quarters, for the same reason, may be, that
-we do this above. Therefore we are on the right road to the living
-habitations of this people, if there be any of them now living. Listen,”
-and as Mr. Bruce, ceased speaking, he stopped and the others following
-his example, a low buzzing sound was heard like the hum of many voices.
-
-“What is it,” whispered Mr. Graham.
-
-“Hard to tell,” said Mr. Bruce, “but we will soon learn for it is
-growing louder,” and raising his torch he blew it out, leaving them in
-perfect darkness.
-
-“What shall we do?” asked Onrai.
-
-“It is hardly safe to look forward, and it looks decidedly cowardly to
-retreat, and we will be an open mark if we stand still,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Let us move a little further forward,” said Mr. Graham, “and we may
-find a hiding place. If we find that these people are coming this way
-and are in great numbers, we can keep ahead of them until we reach the
-death chamber, when we can barricade the small entrance with the bodies
-and in this way hold off an army.”
-
-They all agreed to this and moved a little further forward. The passage
-at this point made a slight turn to the south and as our friends rounded
-the corner they came in sight of a number of lights far down the
-passage. These were being carried by a number of beings, who looked, at
-this distance, to resemble the bodies in the death chamber. Our friends
-stopped, not knowing whether to turn and go back or keep on for a short
-distance.
-
-“Look well down on the left,” said Harry, “don’t you see that hole in
-the wall?” They looked and all saw it, but it was fully half-way between
-the torchbearers and themselves. It would be almost suicidal to try and
-reach it, but Mr. Bruce, who was looked on as the ringleader of the
-party, said: “Come, keep close to the left wall and walk sideways and
-step as quickly as possible. I think we can reach the hole before they
-see us. They seem to be engrossed in something else at present and not
-expecting to find any strangers in this hole, which has never seen one
-before probably. We may escape them.”
-
-And so saying, Mr. Bruce took the lead. They hurried forward, walking
-with their backs to the wall. The natives were coming towards them
-slowly and each moment brought them into better view. Their figures were
-perfectly nude and of a bluish-white color; looking as if they might
-have been black originally, but long absence from the light of day had
-faded them to the present color. They were not over five feet in height
-and their bodies were slender. They were chanting a strange dirge in a
-peculiar tone and this did not make the strangers’ position any
-brighter.
-
-Slowly our friends moved toward them and the hole. They were still hid
-in the shadows, but they could not expect to be out of the light of the
-torches much longer, for the natives were now getting very near them.
-The hole was nearly reached when a shout went up from the natives, but
-instead of hurrying forward they crowded back, apparently afraid to
-encounter the strangers which they saw coming toward them.
-
-“Keep on to the hole,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-They did so, and a moment later reached it and passed through. When they
-were all inside the new chamber or hall, they stopped; it being
-perfectly dark. The torchbearers, after running back for a short
-distance, stopped, and again resuming their chant, started forward. Our
-friends stood perfectly still, and threw themselves on the defensive.
-They could see the light through the doorway growing brighter and
-brighter, and could hear the voices growing louder. Had they seen them,
-or was the shout caused by something else? It might have been a part of
-the strange proceedings which they were now going through.
-
-“Do nothing until they attempt to enter the opening,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“then use your weapons.”
-
-The procession outside came nearer and the chant grew louder, as if the
-strange people would in this way strengthen their courage. What would it
-be, fight, or run, or neither? Whatever it was to be they would soon
-know, for now they were at the doorway and passing. They are safe.
-
-“No, look,” said Mr. Graham, “the door——”
-
-It was true. A huge stone was slowly moving into the open place, making
-them prisoners.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX.
- THE DEATH-TRAP.
-
-
-“Light a torch,” said Mr. Bruce, as he saw the stone door slowly slide
-into place.
-
-One hideous head of a native stooped and looked under the lowering door,
-and shaking a torch in his hand, dodged back as if afraid of being
-charged upon by the prisoners. The door fell to its place and a torch
-was lighted at Mr. Bruce’s command, and an inspection of their quarters
-was made. This did not take long, for the chamber was only about twenty
-feet square; the ceiling was about the height of that in the hall or
-passage. Try as they would they could discover no other opening, nor any
-opening now, for the stone fitted the doorway so perfectly, that not
-even a crack was left to show where this had been.
-
-“We are in for it,” said Harry.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “and it looks very much as if we were here for
-good, for there is no opening that I can see at all, and all our energy
-and strength would be wasted in trying to dig our way out.”
-
-“We must make an effort of some kind,” said Mr. Graham, “so let us
-consider the matter for a moment.”
-
-They all stopped, and putting their wits to work, tried to devise some
-means for escape. When they realized that they were not only entombed in
-a room cut out of the solid rock, but this rock, hundreds of feet
-beneath the surface, the thought was not very cheering; but they were
-not the ones to give up without a struggle. They had stood for some
-moments thinking over their unpleasant position, and trying to formulate
-some plan of procedure, when Onrai, who was probably the most helpless
-of the number, began sniffing the air as if he had detected some foreign
-substance in it.
-
-“Can you not smell something strange?” said Onrai.
-
-They all drew in a deep breath. Yes, there was something; a nasty odor,
-which they had not noticed before, and it was getting plainer each
-moment. They looked about them, but could see nothing.
-
-“It may be the torch,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“No, it is a different smell from that, but we must extinguish the torch
-or the smoke will soon suffocate us, if this other smell does not,” and
-saying this, Mr. Bruce blew out the torch. But that fearful smell, what
-could it be? In a short time their eyes began to smart.
-
-“It is smoke of some kind,” said Harry, “and I am going to find out from
-where it is coming.”
-
-He relighted the torch, and for a moment the men could hardly see, so
-thick had the smoke become in those few minutes.
-
-“It is stifling,” said Mr. Bruce. “Can you see where it comes from?”
-
-Harry, who had the torch and who was looking for the source of this new
-danger, examined every nook and corner, but could find no hole or
-opening. The smoke was getting thicker each moment, and the men were
-gasping for breath; it would only take a very few minutes of this to
-kill them all; still there seemed to be no avenue of escape. These
-natives had shown great cunning in thus allowing them to get into the
-chamber, imprisoning them and choke them to death with smoke.
-
-Mr. Bruce took the torch from Harry and started inspecting himself. He
-was staggering about the room half-blinded and choked by the smoke, when
-the torch fell from his hands, and falling to the floor went out. He
-stooped to pick it up again, when he felt a draft near the floor; he
-hurriedly relit the torch and placed it near the floor; he had to get
-down onto his knees and bend close to the floor before he could see, and
-there, coming in a great broad stream, he saw the smoke coming through a
-crack about an inch in width, and five feet in length. The crack ran
-with the floor, and Mr. Bruce at once came to the conclusion that
-another stone door must be at this point, and it had been lifted to
-leave a space for the smoke’s entrance.
-
-“Come quickly,” he called to the others, not knowing but that they had
-already succumbed to the fearful smoke, as he could not see them. They
-had been leaning against the opposite wall, fighting off that fearful
-suffocation, when they heard Mr. Bruce’s voice.
-
-“Hurry, pull yourselves together and help me, and we may escape. Who has
-the spear? Bring it here.”
-
-Harry, who had been holding on to the spear, using it for support,
-staggered towards Mr. Bruce, and handed it to him mechanically.
-
-“Brace up there, men,” he again called out, and they shuffled towards
-him almost falling. “Now, get your fingers into that crack, and lift,
-lift for your lives, for it is our only chance. I will work the spear
-under and hold all you can get. Now.”
-
-The men seemed to realize that there was a chance to escape, no matter
-how faint a one, so making a despairing effort to overcome the
-suffocation, which was parching their throats and bursting their heads,
-placed their fingers in the cracks, and lifted. They strained every
-nerve, stretched every muscle, and look, it was raising. Yes, the huge
-stone was moving; now it was an inch higher, and now two inches higher,
-and then there was a space of a foot under the door, but the wider
-became the space the more smoke poured in, and the men were almost ready
-to drop the fearful weight and fall over unconscious. Mr. Bruce
-realizing this, broke the handle of the spear, and placed this under the
-stone just as the men fell exhausted.
-
-This act of his, if delayed one second longer, would have cost them
-their lives, for he had barely gotten it under the huge stone when the
-men dropped. The solid straight piece of bone held the stone, however,
-but would he have strength to pull the three men through the opening;
-and would there not be a body of their would-be murderers on the
-opposite side to fight him back? He had no time to spend in conjectures,
-however, so catching Harry by the feet he pulled him to the hole; he
-rolled him through and then Mr. Graham, but when it came to Onrai, he
-had to roll the man over and over, his body being too heavy to move in
-any other way. And he was fast giving out himself, but he must not do so
-before he got him and his friends on the other side of the hole. Getting
-Onrai to the opening and pushing him through, and then crawling through
-himself, he looked about him for the generator of this fearful smoke.
-Groping his way about, he stumbled over a large stone brazier in which
-was a powdered substance, and it was this which was smoldering and
-making a dense smoke. Taking his water-skin from his back, he quickly
-poured its contents over the smoldering coals and extinguished them. He
-was nearly fainting and he felt that he must soon give up; his eyes were
-nearly blinded, he was choking and his head was bursting; he was fast
-losing his senses, but he staggered about the room, and finally found an
-open archway. Through this he plunged, falling to the floor, but the air
-was pure here and a cooling breeze was blowing through the apartment,
-and it was this draught probably, which had forced the smoke through the
-crack. Mr. Bruce lay still for a moment in the refreshing air, but
-realizing that his three friends were still in the stifling smoke and
-unable to help themselves, he again picked himself up, and by rolling
-them over and over succeeded in getting them all in the outer chamber or
-corridor.
-
-But where were the natives? Mr. Bruce had not seen or heard them since
-leaving the death-trap, and he could not account for their absence. But
-he felt very thankful for their not having interfered with him, for if
-they had it would have been all over with him and his friends. He had
-his companions in the pure air now, and unstrapping the water-bag from
-Harry’s back, he bathed their faces and poured some down each parched
-throat. He worked hard with them, and at last brought them all around;
-but they were not able to do much walking for a while, so while they
-were recruiting, Mr. Bruce took the torch and reconnoitered. They seemed
-to be in another corridor, somewhat wider than the other, but about the
-same height.
-
-Mr. Bruce, after following this for some distance, returned to his
-companions and made his report.
-
-“What had we better do?” asked Mr. Graham. “Turn back or go on?”
-
-“I say, go on,” said Mr. Bruce, “but if you think the risk is too great
-and wish to return, we will do so; what do you say, Onrai?”
-
-“I know not what to say,” said Onrai, “but if you would like to proceed,
-I am willing. I am afraid, though, I should be nothing but a hindrance
-to you.”
-
-“No, no, Onrai, you must not say that,” said Harry. “Such an ordeal as
-we have just passed through is enough to make any man go under; any man
-but Mr. Bruce, and he is a wonder. How did you do it, Mr. Bruce?”
-
-“By pure force of will,” said Mr. Bruce. “I felt like giving up several
-times, I can tell you; but a man can do a good deal, I believe, when his
-life and the lives of his friends depend on it. But don’t let us talk of
-that now. The question is, shall we retreat or advance?”
-
-“Advance, I should say,” said Harry, “what do you say, father?”
-
-“I am willing; but before we run into a trap again, rather let us
-retreat.”
-
-“Agreed,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-They now rose, and stretching their legs and taking another drink of
-water, they advanced cautiously down the corridor; not knowing what
-moment their escape might be detected and the natives of this hellhole
-be after them again. They had not long to remain in suspense, when
-suddenly into the corridor rushed a mob of howling naked natives, making
-straight for them.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX.
- THE CAVE DWELLER’S FUNERAL.
-
-
-The howling mob came hurrying toward them; their faces distorted with
-horrible grimaces, their arms flying in the air, brandishing spears like
-the one found in the corridor. They came on howling, yelling and
-shouting in a blood-curdling way.
-
-“Fall back, slowly,” said Mr. Bruce, “but keep in this corridor.”
-
-They retreated slowly, keeping their faces on the approaching mob.
-
-“If they come too near discharge your pistols in their midst,” continued
-Mr. Bruce.
-
-The natives were gaining on them fast, but they were not moving as
-quickly as they might, showing that they were undecided as to whether it
-would be best to attack the strangers or not. There seemed to be about
-two hundred of them, each bearing a torch in one hand and a spear in the
-other.
-
-As time went on and they saw the hostile movements on the part of the
-strangers, they became bold and moved more rapidly. They were closing up
-quickly when our friends heard a shout in the rear, and looking over
-their shoulders saw another mob of the natives closing in on them from
-that direction.
-
-“Which shall it be?” said Mr. Bruce, “advance or retreat.”
-
-“Advance,” said Harry, “and give those howling demons a taste of lead.”
-
-On all the excursions our friends had carried their small arms but had
-never used them; but they had these with them now and it was well that
-they had taken this precaution, for nothing else would have had as much
-effect on this barbarous race of underground dwellers, as the noise and
-explosion of the pistols would. Our friends were still standing waiting
-for the men to advance. The natives, seeing that they now had their game
-safe, became wilder in their demonstrations and bolder in their
-movements. The body in the rear also hurried forward and in a very short
-time the strangers in this horrible place found themselves very sorely
-pressed.
-
-“Now,” said Mr. Bruce, “make a rush and fire as you go. Harry, you and I
-will take the lead, for it is best to go in twos. When the chambers of
-our revolvers are empty, we will drop behind and let Mr. Graham and
-Onrai take the lead. If these beasts do not turn and run, charge right
-into them, for it is our only chance. Now, forward, double quick.”
-
-The men started on a run, discharging their revolvers as they went. At
-each discharge, one of the natives would fall, for they were so tightly
-wedged in the narrow passage, there was no chance of missing them. As
-our friends started and the fearful noise of the pistols, as they were
-discharged, rung through the cavern, the natives stopped and watched the
-advance with open-mouthed wonder. Then they saw their companions
-dropping one at a time as the weapons were discharged, they began to
-grow uneasy, and then to move slowly backward and then, at last, as the
-full force of the panic struck them, they turned and fled down the
-corridor, each trying to outrun the other and trampling those under foot
-who were unlucky enough to fall. On, on they flew over the hard surface
-of the cave, occasionally throwing frightened glances over their
-shoulders as they ran; then, seeing those strangers still after them,
-they strove still harder to place a greater distance between themselves
-and their pursuers.
-
-Those in the rear of our friends had turned and ran in the opposite
-direction from which they came, when they saw their companions retreat.
-They saw too the work of those awful barking, smoke-belching weapons and
-thinking that they might be turned on them in the same manner, probably
-thought it best to get out of the way as quickly as possible. This took
-a considerable load from off the minds of our friends, for they had
-feared that these howling barbarians would attack them from the rear as
-they ran. After the first three or four discharges of the pistols had
-started their enemies, they had discontinued firing in order to save
-their ammunition, but they kept up the pace and were close on the heels
-of the devils. Suddenly the mob turned to the right and disappeared. As
-our friends had thrown away the lighted torch, when first surprised by
-the natives they were now left in total darkness again and when the
-danger disappeared, they stopped to hold a consultation. Looking back
-they saw that their former pursuers had also left the corridor and this
-decided them to wait a few minutes for further developments.
-
-“We must be careful now,” said Mr. Bruce, “for these natives may lay in
-ambush and attack us, as we advance or retreat. They are cunning, as
-they have shown by their smoking process, and we must be on our guard.”
-
-“I think they are so badly scared they will not again bother us;” said
-Harry.
-
-“Perhaps so,” said Mr. Bruce, “but if they have a means of attacking us
-without running any risk of personal injury to themselves, you may
-remain assured they will do so.”
-
-“They are a strange race of men,” said Onrai, “I thought, when I first
-looked upon your people, that you were small in stature, but these are
-very much smaller and are hideous. Do you think them human?”
-
-“Human, yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “but of a very low order of humanity. The
-race has so long inhabited these underground dwellings that they have
-become wild and barbarous.”
-
-“They must be,” said Onrai, “for they are so unlike your race. But do
-you suppose that they have always lived here or have they come from
-another world like yourselves? I cannot believe that they have been
-here, right under our fair Land of On, for long, for if they had we
-would have known it.”
-
-“But how would you have known it, Onrai?” asked Mr. Graham. “You nor
-yours have ever investigated nor have you ever cared to, and you might
-have gone down to your graves and countless generations of those who
-follow you have done the same, without ever knowing that these strange
-people lived beneath your land, in the very bowels of the earth. And, we
-have said so frequently, Onrai, your people have no curiosity and take
-no heed of things which do not directly concern them.”
-
-“It is better so, I think,” answered Onrai; “for surely you can find no
-happiness in an undertaking like this, can you?”
-
-“Well, yes, we can,” answered Mr. Bruce, “for in the first place it is a
-pleasure to us to see and learn of new and strange things. That is where
-one’s curiosity comes in, you see; and then we enjoy, in a way, the
-excitement which such adventures always bring. But at the same time I
-would not recommend any such questionable pleasures to those who have
-never had any desire for them. But we are in a strange place and
-predicament now to be discussing this question. We must decide on which
-way we are going and how we are going to proceed.”
-
-“What do you say, Mr. Graham?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Well,” said Mr. Graham, “we have kept in one direction so far and I see
-no reason for returning now. Our friends will not worry about us if we
-do not return for two or three days and there are many things here which
-I would like to find out before going back. We have proceeded so far and
-it will be no more difficult for us to get back from a short distance
-beyond here than it would be from this point. So let us go ahead.”
-
-“Agreed,” said Harry, “and let us keep close together, for we may need
-each other’s immediate help.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must move cautiously and silently if possible
-and may be we will pass the point where the natives turned off.”
-
-With this they moved on, feeling their way by the walls of the corridor
-and keeping close together. A braver lot of men it would have been hard
-to find; in fact, not one of these men felt the least fear even after
-their recent experience, unless it might have been Onrai, and it was not
-a fear with him, but more that unexplained uncertainty. He had been led
-to think, throughout his life, that his race was the only one inhabiting
-this world and he had first been visited by a number of strange people,
-even coming into his company in a strange way. He had accounted for
-these by believing that they had come from another planet. This had not
-worried him but only a few days before, while moving through his country
-his men had found a woman and child, which had evidently belonged to
-another race of people. This had set him to thinking and now, down here
-in the bowels of the earth, living in caves hewn out of rock, he had
-found still another race, a miserable half-dwarfed race, and Mr. Bruce
-had assured him that these people had lived here for ages, probably
-longer than had his people in the open country above. All these things
-had upset the teachings and the beliefs of a lifetime and Onrai now was
-in a doubt as to what to believe. But he felt no fear really, but only a
-disgust, brought on by all this doubt.
-
-The party calculated that they had now reached the point where the
-natives had disappeared and the precautions were doubled. The floor of
-the cavern at this point was strewn with spears, which had been dropped
-by the frightened natives and it was hard work to walk over these in the
-dark without making some noise, but no signs of natives were seen, as it
-was supposed that they had hid themselves in some remote part of the
-cave. After passing this point, the explorers moved faster but did not
-attempt to light a torch.
-
-“Do you think that we can be able to find the other corridor again, the
-one by which we entered this place?” asked Onrai.
-
-“That’s so,” said Mr. Bruce. “I had forgotten that we were now in
-another corridor.”
-
-“No,” said Harry, “and even if we look for it we would not know where to
-find it. We may wander about here for weeks or months and never find our
-way out.”
-
-“Now, these are disagreeable things which we must not think of if we
-would enjoy this adventure to the fullest,” said Mr. Graham. “I can
-understand that to be lost in this hole would be fearful, but we are not
-lost yet, for if we are, we are not aware of the fact; so let us not
-think of that. We must try, however, to keep in this corridor or one
-which leads off from it and to know at all times just how many turns we
-make.”
-
-“It would be well for us to notch these walls occasionally, or in some
-other way leave marks by which we can find our way back,” said Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“That is a grand idea,” said Harry, “and I will commence right here by
-scratching the wall.”
-
-The torch was lit and Harry, taking one of the spears, attempted to chip
-the wall with this, but one stone was as hard as the other, seemingly,
-and the spearhead would make no impression.
-
-“We will have to find some other means than this,” said Harry. And
-stooping, he looked over the floor of the cave, in hopes of finding
-something which would cut the hard stone. But he was not successful, so
-the notching was given up.
-
-The corridor still stretched out straight ahead of them, and they
-hurried along as fast as their tired limbs would allow their doing.
-
-“What time is it, Mr. Bruce?” asked Harry.
-
-“Why, it is nine o’clock,” answered Mr. Bruce; “and to tell the truth I
-feel as though it were twelve. A little rest would not go amiss.”
-
-“But I do not think it advisable to sleep here,” said Mr. Graham, “we
-are not far enough away from that bloodthirsty mob.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “we will hurry on for a while yet, and if no side
-aisle leads off into which we can hide for a few hours, we will lie down
-in this, leaving watchers.”
-
-For another hour they trudged along, until thoroughly exhausted and
-ready to drop, they decided upon taking a short rest. The first watch
-fell to Harry, and he took his stand against the wall, being afraid that
-if he sat down he would go to sleep. The others stretched themselves out
-upon the hard floor of the corridor, and in a moment were fast asleep.
-Harry put out the torch for fear of its attracting attention to them,
-should any of the natives happen in the corridor.
-
-The moments passed on leaden wings; his eyes grew heavy and he began
-pacing the corridor to keep awake; his legs were too weary to longer
-support his body and he squatted down upon the floor with his back
-resting against the side wall. The scenes of the day passed through his
-mind in a dreamy sort of way. In a short time he caught himself dozing;
-then tired nature asserted itself and his eyes closed and refused to
-open again; his head dropped to one side and he slept. How long he had
-slept he did not know, but he was awakened by a humming noise, which
-seemed far away and yet very close. Starting up and opening his eyes he
-looked far up the corridor in the direction in which they were traveling
-and there he saw a procession of torches coming toward him. He hastily
-awakened his companions and telling them what was up they held a
-consultation.
-
-It seemed folly to longer go ahead, for these bodies of natives might be
-met continually and to have to chase them every few hours would be
-nonsense. Harry had walked up the corridor a ways, while the others were
-talking, feeling his way by the wall when his hand, which went out to
-touch this wall failed to come in contact with it; he tried again with
-the same result and then moved his body in that direction thinking that
-he might have wandered away from the wall. But there was no wall at this
-point and after moving in this direction for a short distance, he struck
-a match; he could not see very closely, but he understood that he was in
-a side corridor or room of some kind. He at once called to his
-companions and they having joined him, they lit a torch; the natives
-still being a great distance up the corridor. This room was considerably
-larger than the one in which they had been imprisoned and was evidently
-a living chamber; for in one corner was a raised slab, on which were
-dead coals and some fish offal. The room had evidently been used very
-recently from the looks of the fish remains.
-
-On the opposite side of the room was another door, leading into another
-corridor, and upon examining this corridor it was found to extend only a
-short distance and end against a solid rock. But if there was a secret
-door in this rock, the explorers could not see and they had no time to
-give it a thorough examination, because of having to extinguish the
-torch, the natives now getting very close.
-
-“What shall we do now?” asked Harry.
-
-“I think,” said Mr. Bruce, “it will be well to hide behind the slab on
-which are the coals and watch the procession as it passes. They cannot
-certainly be after us, for they have not had time to get so far ahead of
-us. It is probably another band on their way to this part of the cave
-for some purpose or other.”
-
-They took up their positions behind the slab, lying on their sides with
-their heads just above the stone, looking for the natives. They could be
-heard coming, chanting a dismal dirge; the glare of the torches already
-lighting up the hall outside. “I would not care to be made a prisoner
-again,” said Harry.
-
-“They can’t catch us in the same way here,” said Mr. Bruce, “for these
-arches have no sliding doors.”
-
-“This may be some holiday celebration,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“It may be their Day of Resis,” said Onrai, “that is if they have a Day
-of Resis.”
-
-“I doubt their having such a day, Onrai, although we do not know what
-the ceremonies of your Day of Resis are, but look they are opposite.”
-
-The first one of the procession now came up and our friends lowered
-their heads as they passed, but the natives were seemingly oblivious of
-their presence, the explorers grew bolder and raising their heads well
-above the slab watched the procession. First the men came, bearing
-torches stuck on the ends of spears, then came a number of men bearing
-spears alone; following these were a number of women each carrying a
-peculiar-shaped fish—a sort of combination fish and lizard, as it had
-four short legs and feet; there were a great number of these and it took
-a long time for them to pass; after them came a great number of
-children, ranging, as nearly as the explorers could guess, between the
-ages of five and ten; each of these children bore a small piece of coal,
-which brought to the minds of our friends thoughts of the great cave
-which they had crossed in coming to the Land of On. Following the
-children was another body of men and it was these men who were chanting.
-The wailing tones of these men, as they came nearer, were fearful to
-hear and our friends felt the cold chills running down their backs.
-These men also carried torches, black torches, which looked as though
-they were made of sharpened pieces of coal; they made a very bright
-light and but little smoke. As the men came forward it could be seen
-that they were bearing a very thin slab of stone on their shoulders and
-on the slab lay the body of a native. It was a funeral procession.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI.
- LOST IN THE CAVERN.
-
-
-They watched the funeral rites, and soon afterward discovered that they
-were lost in the ground, and did not know their bearings. They thought
-they must be several miles within, as the direction taken from the point
-where they entered the cave was several days’ journey from the City of
-On, and as they had traveled nearly due south, or as nearly as they
-could calculate, they must now be a good many miles from the secret
-door. They might take the same corridor which they had traversed in
-coming to the lake, as this would take them directly to the hole near
-which the rest of the excursionists were awaiting them; but this was
-dangerous and it was quite possible that before they had gone far into
-this, they would again fall into the hands of the natives.
-
-They were in a quandary as to what to do. If they traveled to the east
-in quest of the hidden door, they might not find it, and before they
-could again reach the long corridor they would be overcome by hunger,
-thirst and fatigue.
-
-“What shall we do,” asked Harry.
-
-“I think,” said Mr. Bruce, “it would be well to strike straight for the
-north wall and when this is reached we may find another opening which
-will take us in a roundabout way to the hole leading to the surface. You
-know we left the windy corridor and took one to the right. This windy
-corridor may lead to this cavern also. If this were so it would come out
-further to the east, or may be at a point directly south of where we are
-now.”
-
-“Even if that should be so,” said Mr. Graham, “could we beat against
-that wind for so many miles?”
-
-“I am afraid not,” said Mr. Bruce, “but other corridors may lead from
-it, which would carry us into one or the other halls which we have
-already traversed, but at a point beyond all danger.”
-
-“It is a chance, at least,” said Harry, “that is, if this corridor leads
-into the cave.”
-
-“Are we beneath the Land of On, now?” asked Onrai, who had spoken but
-seldom since coming into this strange place.
-
-“No, Onrai,” said Mr. Graham, “we are under the mountains or cliffs
-which surround your country. These though may be said to belong to the
-Land of On, or half of them at least, for they stand on the dividing
-line.”
-
-“It is strange,” said Onrai, “that I should never have known of all this
-or that my people had never learned of it before me.”
-
-For a second time Onrai had spoken thus and the events of the past few
-hours seemed to have made a great impression on his mind; he could not
-realize that all these things had existed for years and hundreds of
-years. It all seemed so improbable to one who had been taught to believe
-that his race was the only people and that his or their land above the
-surface, was the only country. He had seen strange things in the past
-few hours the only strange things he had ever seen in his life, with the
-exception of our friends, if they may be classed under this category.
-
-“I will have strange tales to tell my people,” said Onrai.
-
-“You must not tell them of these things,” said Mr. Graham, “for it would
-but make them discontented and long to see them also. It would be much
-better never to mention these; you can easily evade the subject when
-broached and our people will never say anything.”
-
-“Do you think they would care to investigate?” asked Onrai. “I would
-never care to come here again and I cannot believe that they would ever
-care to visit this place if I should explain to them the danger and
-trouble attending the trip.”
-
-“Yes, it would be better, would it not?” said Mr. Bruce, “to obey the
-laws which have governed you for centuries, and which forbids your
-prying into anything which has not already been explained by these
-laws.”
-
-“I begin to think as you do,” said Onrai, “but I doubt my ability to
-keep from my people, should they ask me, the things which I have learned
-here. We have never had secrets, as you have taught me to call these
-things, and I have not learned the art of withholding things which I do
-not wish to say.”
-
-“Nothing may be said to you about your journey, and then it would be
-easy enough, would it not, to keep these things to yourself?”
-
-“It may be so,” said Onrai.
-
-They were traveling in a good easy walk, and were covering considerable
-ground, but they were growing weary and it was decided to rest for a few
-hours. This they proceeded to do, but before they stretched out on the
-hard floor, they blew out the torches so that any of the natives, who
-might be prowling about, would not see them and again be on them. The
-journey had been long and they had had but little rest, so when they
-finally lay down and stretched out their weary limbs, their eyes soon
-closed and all was forgotten in a very few moments. The hard floor of
-the cave, the memories of the recent events, the fear of not again
-finding their way out of the dark hole, these things could not keep them
-awake for they were worn out, mind and body, and once they had fallen
-into a reclining position, they were soon oblivious to everything.
-
-They had been sleeping for hours, it seemed to Harry, when he was
-awakened by a distant cry. It sounded to him like the yell of the
-natives, when they had first discovered the strangers. He looked about
-him half dreamily but could see nothing and turned over, thinking he
-would sleep awhile longer as the others had not yet awakened. He was
-just falling off again, when that cry broke out just a little shriller
-than before. This time Harry jumped to his feet, certain now of its
-being a human cry. He looked about him, he even took a few steps away
-from his sleeping companions, and stopping again, listened. No, he could
-hear nothing; still, he was sure that he had not been mistaken. All
-sleep had now been knocked out of him, and feeling refreshed he knew
-that he had been sleeping for some time. He walked over to his
-companions and awakened them, but before he had time to interfere or
-explain to them what it was that had awakened him, Mr. Bruce had lit a
-match, and with this, the torch. Harry made a movement as if he would
-extinguish this, and not having heard the sound after this second
-awakening, he thought there might be just a possibility of his having
-been mistaken. But he told his companions of the occurrence so that they
-might not blame him if anything should come of it later.
-
-“I could not say that you were mistaken, Harry,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it
-seems very probable that we would see some light if these natives were
-again on our track.”
-
-“Yes,” said Harry, “I don’t suppose they have dark lanterns which would
-give them light, but would still keep the light hid from us.”
-
-“They might have such lights,” said Mr. Graham, “but we would see the
-reflection on the ground, at least.”
-
-They had now started again when Harry stopped, saying:
-
-“How do we know that we are moving in the right direction? We may have
-turned completely in our moving about, and may now be making a bee line
-for the lake.”
-
-The party stopped, looking at each other in a puzzled way. Mr. Bruce’s
-face lighted up though as he asked:
-
-“Did you touch my torch, Harry?”
-
-“No,” answered Harry.
-
-“Well, and then we can depend on it, that we are moving in the same
-direction that we were before, for I laid down the torch with the burnt
-end looking in the direction we were going when I laid down, and when I
-picked it up and lighted it again, after you had awakened us, I remember
-I was standing facing the same way, and I did not turn again before we
-started.”
-
-“But that tells nothing,” said Mr. Graham, “for we may be walking round
-and round in a circle not a mile in circumference. We have nothing to
-guide us, and it very often occurs, in cases of this kind, that the
-travelers who think themselves miles away from their starting point
-will, the next moment, bring up at the same spot.”
-
-The friends stood and looked at each other as Mr. Bruce said this; the
-terrible truth flashing upon them. It was only too true; they were
-helpless in this great dark cavern. They might wander until starved and
-famished, and still be miles from the encircling wall, or may be but a
-few feet from it. It would only be chance if they should come up to the
-wall; not chance either, for even chance was barred in this Egyptian
-darkness. It would be the hand of Providence which saved them if they
-should ever now escape from this cave. If they had followed the lake
-until the bridge had been reached, they could then have followed the old
-path to the hidden door, and in that way have gotten out. But no, the
-only thought they had in getting away from the scene of such carnage,
-was to leave it far behind and to reach their friends as soon as
-possible.
-
-They realized their mistake, but now it was too late. The thought
-completely prostrated them as its full significance dawned upon them.
-
-“But we must not give up while there is strength left,” said Mr. Bruce;
-“so let us go on in some way, even if we are bearing right away from our
-goal. We may be right, you know. Anyway we will never find our way out
-of this by standing still.”
-
-They again took up their way, but with a halfheartedness, which made
-every step a task and every movement painful. It was strange how these
-strong men, who had just gotten up from a refreshing sleep, well and
-hearty, should so soon be changed to despondent beings; their faces
-looking years older and their gait indicating feebleness. Such is the
-change which the awful sense of complete helplessness had wrought in
-these men. They had hit upon a possibility, even a probability, and all
-else had been forgotten from that moment they had given themselves up
-for lost, lost in this vast cavern, which had probably been the tomb of
-many others.
-
-When these thoughts took possession of them, they could not be persuaded
-that there was any possibility of escape, and it was no wonder they lost
-hope so quickly, for here was a cave miles in extent, without a guiding
-light or post to beckon them on. All was dark and still as the death
-which would so soon claim them. For some strange reason, Onrai seemed to
-be more affected than any of the others. He said but little, but his
-face was painful to look at, so frightfully changed had it become. He
-shuffled along, his shoulders bent and feet dragging over the ground
-like a man of eighty.
-
-Occasionally he would mutter to himself:
-
-“I have missed my Day of Resis!”
-
-This seemed to be the thing which was worrying him.
-
-“Wait,” said Harry, and they all stopped suddenly, for this was the
-first word which had been spoken by any of the party excepting Onrai.
-“When wandering in the cave, as we came,” went on Harry, “I remember
-seeing pieces of coal lying along the path. The thought has just
-occurred to me that these marked the path, or else how could the natives
-find their way. Now, if we could find these.”
-
-“But these would be as hard to find as the border wall,” said Mr.
-Graham.
-
-“True,” said Harry, his face again falling, “but it is another chance
-and this makes two.”
-
-This cheered them but little, however, and despair took possession of
-them completely a few moments later. They ought to have reached the wall
-hours before, yet there were no signs of it. Suddenly they were brought
-to a stand by the same cry, which had awakened Harry. There was no
-mistaking it now; it was human and right in front of them.
-
-Our friends stopped. There was no mistaking the cry now; it was human
-and only a few feet ahead of them. They peered through the gloom but
-could see nothing; the man, whoever he was, could not be far away, so
-they moved forward and a moment later a dark mass was seen lying on the
-floor of the cave just ahead of them. As they hurried up to this,
-another cry went up from the heap. Our friends now came up to the object
-and found it to be a native. As they approached and stood over him, he
-raised his head and looked at them in a half-scared way and then tried
-to crawl away from them. Seeing them following him he raised to his feet
-and staggered along for a short distance but again fell. The party now
-saw that his left side from knee to shoulder was badly lacerated, but
-how had he come into this condition? Had he been wounded in a fight or
-in a blast and brought to this fearful place to die?
-
-Although this man was probably one of their captors and would have
-helped to kill them if they had not turned the tables on them, still the
-man’s plight was so pitiful and his condition so helpless that their
-sympathy went out to him at once and coming up close to where he had
-fallen, Mr. Graham stooped and taking the bag of water from his back,
-poured its contents over the raw wounds of the native. He writhed under
-the momentary pain, but realizing that they wished to help him, he tried
-to facilitate their good acts by turning his side to them, exposing the
-wound. He kept looking at Onrai, as if the King had a fascination for
-him, which he could not resist and at last he raised his hand and
-motioned to Onrai to approach. Onrai came up to him and the native
-looked at him for fully a moment, then addressed him in the language of
-On.
-
-Onrai started back completely surprised by hearing his own language
-spoken by this man. The native’s face fell, showing that he had built
-much on this disclosure to the King and the result had bitterly
-disappointed him.
-
-“Speak to him, Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-Onrai again stepped up to the native and asked him how he had become
-acquainted with his language.
-
-“The story is long and I am hurt,” answered the man, “but if you will
-carry me to the lake, where my companions were killed, and let me there
-wash my wounds, I will tell you all.”
-
-“The lake,” said Mr. Graham, “why, my good man, that is many miles
-away.”
-
-“No,” answered the man, “it is only a short distance from here.”
-
-Our friends looked at each other with astonishment; they had seen the
-lake upon their entrance; their fears then had been realized; they had
-been describing a circle and were now but a few feet from the starting
-point. But there was now hope and the men carefully lifted the native
-and carried him in the direction indicated by him and in less than five
-minutes they were again standing by an underground lake. The man was
-laid on the floor of the cave and his wounds washed again with water.
-Harry tore from his tunic a piece of the silk and this was bound about
-the wound.
-
-“Do you know a way by which we can reach the death chamber without
-traversing that part of the cave where your people live?” Onrai asked.
-
-“I do,” said the man, “but I could not explain so that you could
-understand.”
-
-“But if we took you with us, could you guide us?” asked Onrai.
-
-“But am I strong enough to walk?” asked the man, and he tried to rise to
-his feet.
-
-“You may be able to walk a part of the way and we will carry you the
-remainder,” said Onrai.
-
-“I can guide you,” said the stranger, and his face lighted up with hope
-as he thought that he might yet see that great outside world of which he
-had heard. The more the native thought of this, the more probable it
-seemed to him and with this great hope springing into life came renewed
-energy, and after awhile, when Mr. Bruce had bandaged the wounds well
-and he had been given something to eat he stood erect and declared that
-he could walk as well as ever. But this he could not do, although with
-help he got along very well for a time, and then Onrai picked him up in
-his powerful arms and carried him as if he were a babe.
-
-Before leaving the lake they had caught some fish after the method of
-the natives and had cooked them over a slow fire. This they hoped would
-last them until they reached the upper world. They found the line of
-coals and found it easy work to follow it. The way was long but not
-tedious, still there was that desire to leave this place which made the
-time long and the journey anything but pleasant. The native was doing
-very well with the help of Onrai and would very frequently relate such
-things concerning his people and country which would help to while away
-the time.
-
-“We do not know,” said he, “when first our people came into this
-underground world, nor do we know from whence they came; but we do know
-from traditions handed down, that we have had this world many, many
-ages. Then our old tunnels have been abandoned many ages, how many we
-know not, nor do we know why these have been laid aside for new ones,
-unless it be because new ones had to be built in order to keep down our
-population.”
-
-“What do you mean by that?” inquired Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Why,” said the native, “our people increase very rapidly and we can
-only keep them within bounds by constantly blasting these tunnels. Each
-blast costs the life of one of our men.”
-
-“But what of the women,” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“The women and criminals are all fed to the water-monster,” said the
-man.
-
-“But are none of these placed in the death chamber?” again asked Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“None,” answered the native. “The death chamber is only for the men. At
-the end of these long tunnels, is the Tunnel of Wind, which keeps a
-circulation of air in all of them. The wind flies through this tunnel,
-making no sound and giving no warning, and when once in its awful clutch
-you are lost.”
-
-“But how do you embalm the bodies of your men,” questioned Mr. Bruce.
-
-“With a preparation of coal and yellow stone, which we find in one part
-of our country. These are pounded into a powder and are then mixed with
-fish oil and rolled into small cakes and left to dry. These we burn
-beneath the bodies and the smoke puts them in a state of preservation.”
-
-Our friends had now reached the wall and were about to enter the tunnel
-indicated by the native when a body of natives jumped forth only a few
-feet distant and rushed onto them. The explorers started back and seeing
-that there was a great number of them, decided on retreating. They
-accordingly followed the wall to the east, running as fast as they could
-with the wounded native. The natives were following them closely, and
-our friends, seeing another tunnel, opening out from the cave, turned
-into it and hurried forward. The natives were hurrying after them. On
-they rushed covering mile after mile, until breath and strength were
-nearly exhausted. The natives had called out to them in their language
-to drop the one of their number which Onrai was carrying. The man
-interpreted this to Onrai but it only had the effect of making him hold
-him all the tighter. But after a while the natives began to drop off one
-by one and our friends were thinking of turning on them, when they saw
-their tunnel ending in one running at right angles with it. Hurriedly
-they pushed forward and were just on the edge of the cross-tunnel, when
-the native called out:
-
-“Not in there, it is the Tunnel of Wind;” but it was too late. They were
-launched into it and were even now in the power of the mighty wind.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII.
- THE TORTUOUS TRAMP.
-
-
-Our friends might have turned and faced the natives but they were still
-a great number of them following, and the capture of the strangers would
-have been certain if they had tried to fight it out. Their treatment at
-the hands of these natives had been such that they might expect nothing
-else but death if they were again captured, so the thought of taking any
-risk by fighting had not occurred to them until the last moment. There
-was but one way to escape these beings and that was by flight and they
-had been so intent on making their escape in this way, that they had
-forgotten for the moment the windy corridor, their former experience in
-this and the experience of the native of On, which their new companion
-had so recently related. They had rushed madly forward, caring little
-where the cross corridor led, so long as it enabled them to keep ahead
-of their pursuers. And they had dashed into the windy corridor, not
-giving it a thought and were now being blown through this at break neck
-speed.
-
-It would be impossible for human being to stand alone in this gale, and
-in an instant the men were thrown violently forward and were now rolling
-over and over unable to stop themselves. Onrai, although he carried the
-wounded native, was the first in the tunnel and was now some feet ahead
-of his companions, but was being borne on just as fast as the others.
-The native had fallen behind him and his wounded body was suffering
-fearful tortures in this violent exercise; each time the wounded side
-would strike the rock a cry of pain would escape him. Mr. Bruce was
-right back of the native, and after a while managed to call to Onrai to
-work himself toward the wall, if possible, and get head on to the wind
-and thus offer less resistance to the awful gale. Onrai immediately
-began edging his way toward the wall and would have succeeded in doing
-this if the native had not struck him full force on the side, thus
-starting him rolling again. But Onrai had caught the native and had
-clung fast to him and they were not moved nearly so rapidly, being
-together. As a consequence Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and Harry came bowling
-along and bumped into them, and as they did this the men grabbed each
-other, and held on, and in this way they were all joined and the wind
-could no longer move them.
-
-“Now,” said Mr. Bruce, “let us get into position and try to regain our
-feet, and in single file, as we did upon our first entering this
-corridor, try to resist its awful power.”
-
-They worked around until one was immediately behind the other, and at a
-given signal, first rose to one knee and then to both knees, and in this
-way continued until they were standing on their feet. The poor native
-asked them to leave him in the corridor to die, but they would not hear
-of this, and Onrai again threw him over his shoulder, when they were
-ready to move. They started, leaning well back so to offer greater
-resistance to the wind, but it was hard work tramping along in this
-darkness, frequently hitting up against the walls, and bruising their
-already sore bodies. And then the uncertainty of where the tunnel would
-finally land them, was making things all the more unpleasant. They could
-not possibly guess where this would lead them; they had had some
-experience in the tunnel before, and had heard more about it from the
-native, but all this had told them nothing. They knew that this gale of
-wind must have an outlet some place, but what sort of place was this?
-Would it be a shaft leading to the surface as did the shaft which seemed
-to be its source? Would it take them back to the great cavern, or to the
-center of the earth, or where? The thought was maddening, but they could
-do nothing but go with it, wherever it might lead them.
-
-They had gone on in this way for miles, they thought, and their bodies
-were bruised and exhausted; still there was no way to stop and rest even
-for a moment; they would have to keep up the awful rush until too
-exhausted to longer keep their feet, they would drop and be blown—where?
-To death, surely. Onrai, who was still carrying the native, tried hard
-to keep up, but he was fast giving out, and our friends knew that when
-he should do so, their mainstay was gone, and hope might be abandoned.
-Onrai suddenly stumbled, and would have fallen had not Mr. Bruce, who
-was next to him, held fast, thus saving him and may be the others.
-
-“What is wrong, Onrai,” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“It was something on the floor,” said Onrai. He had hardly said this
-when he stumbled again, and this time Mr. Bruce lost his hold, and Onrai
-went down bearing the native with him. The others threw themselves back,
-and managed to save themselves from falling.
-
-“Can you get up, Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I will try in a moment,” said Onrai. “But can you take the native?”
-
-The others now held on to Mr. Bruce, and he stooped and raised the
-native.
-
-“Can you stand?” asked Mr. Bruce of the native.
-
-“Yes,” the man answered; but when Mr. Bruce lowered him to the ground,
-the poor fellow’s legs gave way under him, and he would have fallen had
-not Mr. Bruce held him. He then raised him again with the others’ help,
-and threw the man over his shoulder.
-
-Onrai had risen and had again taken his place at the head of the column.
-But they had noticed something; the wind was not blowing so violently in
-this part of the tunnel. They could not account for this, neither did
-they try to, but it made their progress much easier. And another thing
-which was being forced on their notice, was the great number of loose
-stones which covered the floor of the tunnel at this point; it must be
-that the tunnel here had never been finished completely, or it might be
-that the rock, being softer at this point, had crumbled and fallen from
-the ceiling. They were suddenly brought up by Onrai striking violently
-against a rock, which seemed to end the tunnel. For a moment they stood
-still, Onrai having been shocked in being brought up so suddenly.
-
-“What is it, now?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“It is the end of the tunnel,” said Onrai, “or else we have suddenly
-turned in our course and have struck the side wall.”
-
-“Move to your right, and see if there be an opening,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-Onrai did so and then moved forward again.
-
-“It seemed to be a projection,” said Onrai.
-
-He kept his hand on the rock and followed its curves closely until they
-were on the other side of it and at last they were out of the fearful
-wind.
-
-“Have you a match?” asked Mr. Graham of Mr. Bruce. “If you have, light a
-torch and let us see each other. Onrai move about and see what kind of a
-place we are in.”
-
-Mr. Bruce fumbled about his tunic for a moment and then produced a
-match; this flickered for a moment as he applied it to the torch and
-then a bright light lit up the scene about them. They were surprised at
-the strange scene, for they were no longer in the smooth walled and
-floored tunnel, but in a natural cave, which looked very much like the
-great cavern; but whether it was the same or not, they could not say.
-The ceiling was high above their heads and could just be seen in the dim
-rays of light. The wall to which belonged the projecting rock, behind
-which they were now standing, was ribbed and seamed and was the only one
-to be seen. The cavern had widened until they could not see across it.
-
-“If this be the large cave then we are safe, for all we have to do is to
-look for the hidden door,” said Harry.
-
-“But I do not think it is the same,” said Mr. Bruce, “for the reason,
-that never, in the large cavern, did we feel this draught or wind.”
-
-“That is so;” said Harry, “we must have struck another cave altogether,
-and it is probably all the worse for us that we have.”
-
-“Why do you think so?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Why, because we knew how to get out of the other, but how to find an
-opening to the outside world here, we have no idea.”
-
-“I believe, though,” said Mr. Bruce, “that if we can hold out longer, we
-will come to a shaft leading up to the surface.”
-
-“There must be some great hole leading to the surface, which causes this
-draught.”
-
-“It would be well for us to take some rest before trying it again,” said
-Mr. Graham.
-
-“But what of the poor native?” asked Onrai.
-
-They had forgotten him in their surprise at finding themselves where
-they did, and the poor fellow had laid on the floor of the cave almost
-dead with pain and fatigue. They went to work on him, though, and used
-very nearly all of the little water left, bathing his wounds. Then they
-rearranged the bandages and fixed them as comfortable as possible, so
-that he might rest; then they also laid down and were soon asleep.
-
-The native laid for a long time with his eyes closed, completely
-exhausted; but he could not sleep, and after a while his eyes again
-opened, and he looked about him. The torch had been left in a crevice in
-the projecting rock, and it threw its fitful glare about them. The
-ceiling arched far above them, the torchlight throwing long shadows
-along its rugged crevices; the wall at his side he could follow with his
-eyes for some distance, but it was then lost in the gloom. He tried to
-penetrate this gloom and look far beyond and find there a ray of that
-same light which he had heard his friends tell about. If he could only
-see such a light, then he would know that these kind companions, who had
-done so much for him, when they could have left him behind to die, he
-would know then that they were safe, and that they would again reach
-their friends. He cared little for himself, for his life had never known
-any of that strange feeling which he had heard his present companions
-speak of. He was nothing but a burden and retarded their progress. Oh,
-if he could but die before they again awakened, it would be so much
-better for both him and those who had so long kept him with them, even
-when they would have been fully justified in leaving him behind.
-Suddenly he starts and half rises. What was that he saw away off there
-in the darkness? Was it a light? Yes, several of them. They were very
-dim; in fact he could hardly say they were lights, but they surely
-resembled the lights of torches in the distance, and they were growing
-thicker. He could see great numbers of them moving about like
-will-o’-the-wisps, or was it his fevered brain which was calling up
-these phantom lights? He raised a little higher to look at the things
-about him so as to assure himself that he was still in his right mind
-and would then let his gaze penetrate the gloom, seeking the strange
-lights.
-
-Yes, he could not be mistaken, they were torchlights; but did they
-belong to his people or some other strange people, who inhabited this
-part of the cave. He could not tell this, and as he was not certain that
-there were others near them, he determined to awaken his companions.
-Leaning over and touching Onrai, who was lying next to him, he wakened
-him and then pointing into the darkness said, “Look, do you not see the
-lights?”
-
-Onrai looked long and carefully before he spoke, then said, “Yes, they
-must be,” and waking his other companions he bade them look also.
-
-It was soon decided by all that there were others in the cavern beside
-themselves, but who these others were was the question, and could only
-be answered by getting closer to them. Eating a small lunch of fish and
-merely wetting the lips with the little water which they had, they again
-started, Onrai carrying the native. They blew out the torch before
-starting, thinking it best not to attract attention with it.
-
-The strong wind, too, which still blew from out the tunnel, would make
-it almost impossible to keep the torch lit. So they stumbled along in
-the darkness, feeling their way as best they could, but receiving
-frequent bumps, which bruised their bodies and exhausted their patience;
-but they kept the flickering lights in view.
-
-The air was, for some reason or other, getting much cooler, and the
-explorers began to shudder, and hurry as they would, the exercise would
-not keep them warm. Every moment now the wind blew colder, and seemed to
-come from a direction to the right. The scant clothing, which had
-covered their bodies at the start, had mostly been torn away in the
-rough experiences which they had had, and their bodies were almost laid
-bare to this merciless cold. And the poor native had nothing on
-whatever, excepting a bandage, which bound his side.
-
-They were nearing the lights very rapidly, and now dark forms could be
-seen moving about. But the cold had grown so intense, they doubted if
-they would be able to hold out until they reached the strangers. When
-these were reached what might they expect? Would they be antagonistic or
-friendly; they could not be a body of the tribe which they had already
-found, for the native now with them had never heard of such a cold
-region as this, and had never seen one of his tribe wearing clothing,
-and it would be an utter physical impossibility to remain here and not
-wear clothing.
-
-But who were they then? It mattered little, for they must seek aid of
-them. So stumbling and falling, their benumbed flesh freezing to the
-bone, they hurried on as fast as they could. They had again clasped
-hands for fear of getting lost one from the other, and in this way one
-helped the other.
-
-A horrible rumbling sound now broke on their ears, and grew louder as
-they advanced. They were getting closer and closer to the men, and far
-beyond them they could now see one bright ray of daylight. This spurred
-them on until completely exhausted, their bodies frozen and bleeding,
-they fell at the feet of the surprised torchbearers.
-
-They had come to the cave of ice.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII.
- AGAIN IN THE WORLD OF LIGHT.
-
-
-The ice-cutters, for it were they, had never before in their lives been
-surprised. They saw coming out of that inky blackness, from far up that
-windy quarter, where none of their people had ever dared to go, a party
-of half-clad human beings, who staggered on as if intoxicated and, at
-last, falling at their feet. They hurriedly gathered about the fallen
-fugitives and throwing restoratives in their faces, tried to make out
-who they were and if they were any of their people, but these had been
-rolled about the floor of the windy cavern so long, that what with
-bruises and dirt, they were unrecognizable. Onrai, who still had enough
-life left to whisper a few words, motioned for one of the men to stoop;
-the man did so and started back with still greater surprise, as Onrai
-said:
-
-“Hurry, get us out of here into the sun. Don’t you know me? I am Onrai.”
-
-The man could not speak for a moment, but then, regaining his senses,
-said:
-
-“It is Onrai, the King, and his guests; hurry or they will perish.”
-
-In an instant those about them began to take from their bodies the warm
-garments and place them about the half-frozen bodies of our friends.
-Then, taking them in their strong arms, they hurried towards the
-entrance of the cave. This was soon reached, and in the villa just
-outside, the attendants were soon working hard with their benumbed and
-bruised bodies. They were first plunged in a bath of warm water and then
-rubbed down thoroughly; then their wounds were dressed, after which they
-were placed on comfortable couches and made to rest. The poor
-underground native was treated likewise, and a suit of the cool silk was
-thrown about his body after his wound was dressed. He could not
-understand why all this was being done to him, but he could appreciate
-the delicate touches and the comfort which he was deriving from the
-treatment. Everything was strange to him; the peculiar white light of
-the sun, the green fields, the great shady trees, the high elephants,
-which he could see from his apartment stalking about the garden, and
-this grand house, to which he had been brought. And the food which they
-had given him was so different from the fish, which had always been his
-only diet; and the cooling honey wine, which they poured down his
-throat.
-
-There was comfort in all this though and very shortly, his wound dressed
-and pain gone, his weary body soothed by the bath and treatment which
-the natives had given him, he fell asleep at last; his troubles ended,
-with no care on his wearied mind.
-
-It had been early morning when our friends had emerged from the cave and
-after being thoroughly revived, they fell asleep and it was late in the
-evening before they awakened.
-
-“Onrai,” said Harry, “will you ask one of the attendants what day this
-is?”
-
-Onrai did so, and turned to him and said:
-
-“We have been gone just six days, according to your method of measuring
-time.”
-
-“Six days,” exclaimed they all in chorus, “impossible.”
-
-“But then,” continued Mr. Bruce, “when we consider how far we have
-traveled, we can hardly expect that we have been gone less time than
-that.”
-
-“Yes, it has been just six days,” said Onrai, “but remember where we
-were when we started and see where we are now. Why, our friends are
-three days march from us, that is, easy marches, but I think we can
-overtake them in two days by not taking too long rests.”
-
-“But when shall we start?” asked Mr. Bruce, “our friends must be worried
-about us.”
-
-“Just whenever you wish to,” answered Onrai, “to-night if you choose.”
-
-“Why not to-night?” asked Harry, “we still have some hours left and
-going through the cool avenue at night would be grand.”
-
-“Well, so it shall be,” said Onrai, “we will travel with elephants so
-that, if we get sleepy, we can rest in the howdahs.”
-
-“And can I go with you?” asked the stranger.
-
-“You can, my good man,” said Onrai. “Our friends would want to see and
-thank the one who has saved us; for if you had not helped us out that
-night, or day in the tunnel, we might have been wandering until now and
-on until death relieved us, in that awful hole.”
-
-Elephants were brought and the party again took up their way. The
-elephants had been kept in an easy gait and had covered many miles and
-our friends hoped soon to reach the rest of the party.
-
-“When shall we take up the journey again to the fields of diamonds,
-Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce, as they rode along.
-
-“Just as soon as you are all ready to start,” answered Onrai.
-
-“And how far are we from the field,” asked Harry.
-
-“Fully two hundred miles, as you would compute it,” answered Onrai.
-
-“Then it will take us about ten days, will it not?” asked Harry.
-
-“Yes, unless we make longer marches,” said Onrai, “and that is hardly
-necessary.”
-
-“Not at all necessary,” answered Mr. Bruce, “and we can, by taking easy
-stages, better see the strange country through which we are passing.”
-
-“Yes,” said Onrai, “and the scenery will be wilder and different in some
-respects.”
-
-“Ten days to go and fourteen days to return,” said Harry. “That will
-take pretty near a month.”
-
-“Yes, it will be fully that long before we return,” said Onrai, “and
-besides we will return by a different route, which will take us
-considerably longer. The new route will be over the regular macadamized
-roads, which, for many miles, are used very infrequently; but they are
-always kept in first-class repair, so that we will experience no
-discomforts for having left our onyx-floored avenue.”
-
-“It is surely delightful riding over this perfect avenue,” said Mr.
-Graham, “everything though is delightful in this fair land. How
-different from that fearful country far down below us.”
-
-“Probably only to us who know the difference,” said Onrai. “They may
-have their pleasures and comforts and hopes and Day of Resis. We know
-only what this man has taught us, and he has told us little.”
-
-Again Onrai had mentioned The Day of Resis. What did it mean?
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV.
- AGAIN WITH FRIENDS.
-
-
-The day came to a close; the stars came out and the cavalcade came
-nearer its destination. They had traveled now nearly twenty-four hours
-constantly, and if it were not for meeting their friends, they might
-wish that the journey would last as long again. It had been more than
-pleasant and was so restful, after the long tramp underground, that they
-appreciated it more for this reason. A little longer and they were in
-sight of the hole through which they had gone into the underground
-world. It was dark now and they could not see very far through the
-fields, but near where they thought the hole ought to be, there were
-lights flickering about. It seemed strange that there should be lights
-here at this time in the evening, for there was nothing to call them
-there.
-
-“What do you suppose brings these lights here?” asked Mr. Bruce of
-Onrai.
-
-“I can’t tell,” said Onrai, “but we will ascertain.”
-
-He gave the leader of the caravan orders to turn into the field on the
-left and make for the lights. As they came nearer they could see that a
-number of men were standing about the hole, while others were lying
-about in the grass as if resting. Near by stood a group of women
-attendants and standing with them were Enola, Nellie, Mrs. Graham and
-Sedai. The parade of elephants seemed to attract their attention and
-they were now watching them closely and had even started to move toward
-them. The cavalcade stopped, the elephants fell on their haunches and
-our friends scrambled from their howdahs and ran towards the ladies.
-
-“Oh,” they cried, as they, too, hurried towards the travelers.
-
-Mrs. Graham threw herself into her husband’s arms, Nellie fell on
-Harry’s shoulder, and Enola? Well, she seemed for a moment to be
-puzzled, but then walked up very gracefully and placed both hands in
-Onrai’s. Onrai, however, was not satisfied with this and pulling Enola
-toward him, he threw his great arms about her and pressed her to his
-heart.
-
-“Are you glad to see me back again, Enola?” said he.
-
-“Why, certainly, Onrai,” said Enola, as soon as she could extricate
-herself from his arms, “more than glad, for we thought you were lost.”
-
-“We were,” answered Onrai, “and the thought of perishing without again
-seeing you, nearly drove me mad.”
-
-“But did it not grieve you, too, to think that you would not again see
-your own people?” asked Enola, trying to call the conversation from
-herself.
-
-“Yes,” said Onrai, “but it was a different grief. My religion has taught
-me to expect that I will meet my people again in the next world, and
-this softened the pain caused by parting from them. But you,” and here
-Onrai again clasped her in his arms, “I have just found you and learned
-to love you, with all that love, which has been kept locked in my heart
-for years waiting for you to come and break the locks which held it
-captive. It seemed my life had only commenced when I met you, Enola, and
-the thought that, at the very beginning of our happiness, I was to be
-taken from you forever, was maddening; and you, Enola, did you not
-grieve when you thought I was lost?” and Onrai asked this with all the
-simplicity of a child.
-
-“Yes, Onrai,” answered Enola, “I grieved for all of you.”
-
-“We found a strange people, Enola,” said Mr. Bruce, “but their
-attractiveness lay only in their strangeness.”
-
-“What did you say, Mr. Bruce?” asked Enola, “a strange people in the
-bowels of the earth? It is hard for me to believe this. Are you not
-jesting?” and Enola seemed incredulous.
-
-“No,” said Onrai, “we fell in with a strange race of people down there,
-and it was they who detained us.”
-
-“Tell me all about them,” said Enola, and she was all attention at once.
-
-“Not now, Enola,” said Mr. Bruce, “wait until we have reached the villa,
-and all are together, and we will give you a full account of our six
-days’ jaunt in the Land, not of, but under On.”
-
-“I think,” said Mr. Graham, “this is the happiest moment of my life.”
-
-“Why, my dear,” said Mrs. Graham, “I have often heard you make the same
-remark concerning the eventful time when you first met me.”
-
-“Why, certainly, wife,” answered her husband, “that was the happiest
-moment which I had known even up to the present time, but now you see I
-am happier for having been brought out of a position where I never
-expected to see you again.”
-
-“And was it as bad as that, father?” asked Nellie.
-
-“Quite,” answered her father; “in fact, it was dollars to cents that we
-would never again see daylight, but it all goes to show how little we
-know of what will transpire in our little lives.”
-
-“Yes, things looked pretty dark in every way,” said Harry. “In fact, we
-couldn’t see our hands before our eyes. And all chances for escape were
-equally dark and obscure. Where do you suppose we were, mother?”
-
-“Why, somewhere down there in the bowels of the earth,” answered Mrs.
-Graham.
-
-“Well, we were in the great cave, which so nearly cost us our lives.”
-
-“Where did you come out of this wonderful place?” asked Enola, “I have
-not heard that yet; and here you have been back nearly twenty minutes.”
-
-“Why, we came out in the ice cave,” said Harry.
-
-“The ice cave,” exclaimed Enola, “and is this then a part of the great
-cavern?”
-
-“All the same,” said Harry; “or no, not the same, but connected by a
-tunnel. But if we don’t reach the villa shortly, Mr. Bruce will have
-little to tell.”
-
-They had now reached the grounds surrounding the villa, and after a
-short walk through these, they mounted the terrace, and taking seats,
-Mr. Bruce told the strange story.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV.
- A BLACK SURPRISE.
-
-
-The party rose early the morning following the story of Mr. Bruce. All
-were happy now that they were together again and all were eager to take
-up the journey.
-
-“What do you think about starting to-day?” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I am perfectly willing, if the others are,” answered Onrai.
-
-“We have been here now about eight days,” said Enola, “and the time has
-seemed long without you all, and the place has become lonesome. Why not
-start this morning?”
-
-“Well, we will, if that is the way you look at it,” said Onrai.
-
-“I would like to extend this journey much farther, if such a thing could
-be possible,” said Mr. Bruce, as they rode along.
-
-“But why?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Well, because it has been so full of pleasant surprises and adventures.
-It is these things which have made our stay in On a pleasant one, and we
-have found many of them on this journey and elsewhere.”
-
-“It has been fruitful of these things,” said Onrai, “but even these
-might grow monotonous in time.”
-
-“Yes, I suppose so, but I could not imagine so at this time,” said Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“To us, of course,” said Onrai, “none of the things in On are new; but
-the adventures under this land were of a very startling nature, and I
-would not care to have many like it.”
-
-“It is not at all likely that you will ever experience another such a
-one,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“I cannot tell,” said Onrai. “There is still a mystery to solve which
-worries me considerably.”
-
-“And what is that?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“Have you forgotten the black woman and child which you found lying in
-the track of the storm?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Oh,” exclaimed Mr. Graham, “I had forgotten it for the time.”
-
-“It has puzzled me not a little, and I do not know now whether it be
-woman or beast, but if it be woman, where did she come from?”
-
-“The storm comes from the heavens,” said Mr. Bruce, “and could not the
-woman have been brought with it from one of the distant worlds?”
-
-“Yes,” said Onrai, “but why should she come to us dead?”
-
-“The storm, in its great fury, killed her,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I cannot understand why it should,” said Onrai, “for it killed none in
-our world.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but you forget that it nearly killed Enola.”
-
-“No, I can never forget that,” said Onrai, and he looked up quickly at
-Enola, as if afraid now, that she might not be with him.
-
-“Hush, do not speak of unpleasant things to-day,” said Enola. “We can
-put in our time to so much better advantage. See, is not the country
-beautiful hereabouts?”
-
-“It grows wilder as we go farther and the scenes change very frequently.
-We can just see the great cliffs on the western side of On and they do
-not look so far away, do they? And we can hardly believe in looking at
-them that it would take ten days to reach them. And look, there is a
-column of smoke arising from them. What causes that?”
-
-The men looked at the strange sight, but could give no answer. There was
-certainly a column of smoke ascending from what looked like the cliffs,
-but this might have been at a point far this side of them. Still the
-sight was very unusual, in fact, it was entirely unaccountable and it
-puzzled all the natives as well as the strangers.
-
-“It could not be some of your people burning the debris left by the
-storm,” said Mr. Bruce to Onrai.
-
-“No, that smoke comes from far away,” said Onrai, “but it would take a
-tremendous fire to cause smoke which could be seen from here.”
-
-“I should say,” said Mr. Graham, “that the smoke rose from the cliff and
-not from any point this side.”
-
-“Yes, but what would make such a smoke at the cliffs?” asked Onrai.
-
-“I cannot answer that,” said Mr. Graham, “But I think that you will find
-that I am right. Have you ever had any active volcanoes in your
-country?”
-
-“I do not understand you,” said Onrai.
-
-“You do not know the meaning of the word?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“No,” answered Onrai.
-
-“Well, volcanoes, in our world,” said Mr. Bruce, “are mountains, through
-the sides of which great volumes of molten rocks and sand and earth come
-rushing and pouring.”
-
-Onrai looked in astonishment at this, never having heard of such a thing
-before.
-
-For the rest of the day nothing else was looked after or talked about
-but the column of smoke in the far northwest. In the evening, after the
-arrival at the villa in which the night was to be spent and after the
-party had been somewhat separated into little groups, Mr. Bruce found
-himself for the first time during the day, alone with Mr. Graham and
-immediately the conversation reverted to the column of smoke.
-
-“What do you think of it, anyway?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I think there can be but one answer to that question,” said Mr. Graham,
-“and that is that the column of smoke belongs to a volcano, that the
-volcano was the outcome of the earthquake and the first cause of the
-terrible storm.”
-
-At this moment a song rose on the night air, which, for its brilliancy,
-eclipsed anything yet heard by the strangers, and immediately after
-Onrai came on to the terrace and stood with bowed head. Mr. Bruce and
-Mr. Graham watched him for a moment and then going up to him Mr. Bruce
-asked, “What is it, Onrai?”
-
-“It is the song of joy,” answered Onrai, “of those who will participate
-in the chiefest ceremonies of the coming Day of Resis.”
-
-The party had now been out nine days on this last stage of the journey,
-and to-morrow would bring them to the villa near the field of diamonds.
-The column of smoke had grown in size, and was much blacker at this
-point than when first seen. There was no longer any doubt about its
-coming from the top of the cliffs, or else from a point directly back of
-them, and there was scarcely any further doubt about its coming from a
-volcano, for even at this distance, some thirty-five miles, as near as
-Mr. Bruce could calculate, a regular storm of flying cinders began to
-fall, covering them completely.
-
-They watched the great volume of smoke anxiously, and as they came
-nearer to it, and as it grew larger and blacker, and as they could see
-no real cause for it, they began to regard it with superstitious awe.
-Nothing else could be talked about. The great belching cliff stood
-directly in their pathway, and the black smoke rose some thousands of
-feet above it. A great shower of ashes came rolling down on them, giving
-them all a grayish coat.
-
-“If it is like this all the way it will be far from pleasant,” said
-Enola.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “but think of the field of diamonds at the end of
-our journey; we could undergo much worse trials at home than this, to
-get to a field of diamonds, and think nothing of it.”
-
-They were stumbling along now, almost blinded by the dust, and the
-zebras were getting fractious. At times they would stop, refusing to go
-further, and it would take all the persuasion the men could muster, to
-get them started again. But they were nearing the villa where they were
-to stop and still had hopes of reaching it. It lay very near to the
-field of diamonds, and would also be near the volcano, which the men had
-resolved to visit before returning.
-
-It was awful work, though, this blindly stumbling along, only the solid
-pavement of the avenue letting them know that they had not lost their
-way. But a light loomed up in the darkness at last, and they decided
-this must be the villa, where some of the men working in this part of
-the country had taken refuge. They made for it as fast as possible, but
-as they came nearer to it the light grew brighter, until a flame shot up
-and they knew that it did not come from the villa. Slowly they
-approached it, having left the avenue and taken their way through the
-fields. They came closer, but suddenly all pulled up their steeds as of
-one accord. Ahead of them was a camp-fire, and about it, dancing and
-throwing their arms in the air, were a hundred naked black Africans.
-
-The scene was a weird one, and the whole thing was such a complete
-surprise to our friends, that they could do nothing but stare in
-open-mouthed wonderment. The negroes were naked, with the exception of a
-cloth about the loins. There were but few women among them and these
-were seated about the fire, while the men clasped hands and danced in a
-circle about them. The dance was wild and the yells, which broke from
-the large mouths of the men, were terrible. Their black bodies had been
-covered with oil of some kind and shone in the firelight like polished
-ebony. They were of average height, probably five feet five or six
-inches, and their bodies showed good feeding; they looked half
-intelligent.
-
-Each one carried, slung over the back, a shield, made of some kind of
-hardened hide, and a spear with a long arrow-point made of bone; another
-strange instrument of war, or for the hunt, was a sort of stone hatchet
-with spear-point. This hatchet had a stone head or blade, with one side
-sharpened, and the butt end or side, running to a sharp point; the
-handle, which was about eighteen inches long, passed through the head
-and extended beyond this about six inches, ending in a point of bone as
-sharp as the point of a stiletto; to the other end of this handle was
-fastened a long piece of leather string, which was now wrapped around
-the handle.
-
-All these things were taken in by our friends before the negroes seemed
-to see them, for they had stopped well back among the trees, and the
-negroes were making such a fearful noise with their hideous yells, they
-could not hear the rather quiet approach of the cavalcade. But when they
-caught sight of them at last, they stood as if paralyzed, and then moved
-up a little nearer, as if to get a better look and satisfy themselves
-that they were not mistaken. When they at last caught a good glimpse of
-the huge elephants and great zebras, all beautifully trapped, and the
-large men and women, they seemed suddenly overcome with fear, and
-turning, ran off into the darkness. Our friends would have pursued them
-but for Onrai, who said that such a move would be simply suicidal in
-such dust-laden darkness. They accordingly started for the avenue again
-and following this for a short distance further, saw another light, and
-coming up to this, found that their dusty ride was at an end.
-
-The inside of the villa was a pleasant change to them after the
-dust-filled air of the outside, and the bath was first sought by all,
-and then the meal-table. There was no great mirth at this meal to-night,
-though, for the different scenes of the day and night, had had their
-effect, and all were thinking. The last adventure of all had clapped the
-climax. What could it mean? Where had the negroes come from, and how had
-they entered the Land of On?
-
-That night the party was attacked by the negroes, but they were on the
-lookout and repelled them. About fifty of the negroes had been killed,
-or mortally wounded by the forty Onians, as nearly as Mr. Bruce could
-estimate, and there, were now about fifty of the black bodies fleeing
-over the rock-covered plain. They had dropped their assagais and
-hatchets in their fear, and their yells now was something pitiful. They
-evidently supposed that they were being followed by a whole army of the
-powerful men, which they had seen that evening. Fear lent them wings and
-they actually flew over the hard flooring of the plain, and were
-increasing the distance very perceptibly between themselves and their
-pursuers. Still the Onians kept up the race determinedly, their feet now
-being torn and bleeding with the tramp over the sharp pebbles of the
-plain. The stone wall bordering the hunting ground was reached, and a
-long hole was found in it, broken probably by the storm. The river was
-crossed by a stone bridge at this point and still they hurried on.
-
-The light was getting brighter as they neared the volcano and the
-negroes could easily be seen away ahead of them. They were nearing the
-great cliffs and they could now be seen looming up far into the heavens.
-A little while longer and the negroes had disappeared. Our friends
-hurrying forward nearly fell into a great gulf which opened at their
-feet.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVI.
- CLEFT BY THE EARTHQUAKE.
-
-
-Our friends pulled up just in time, or they would have gone tumbling
-into the black chasm. They moved back hurriedly, almost expecting to see
-the hole open still further and engulf them as it had the negroes, for
-they could make no other explanation of the negroes’ disappearance. The
-light from the volcano made most objects discernable about this point,
-and our friends could look into the great gulf for some distance, but
-then the further view was lost in the darkness.
-
-“What shall we do now,” asked Onrai of Mr. Bruce. “We can no longer
-follow the negroes.”
-
-“No, this hole has swallowed them up,” said Mr. Bruce, “but we cannot
-tell whether they have dropped to eternity, or have followed a path into
-its depth, of which they alone know. Has the chasm always been here?”
-
-“I can remember no such crevice,” said Onrai, “nor have I ever heard any
-of my people speak of it. I think it is another of the mysteries which
-seem to abound now,” said Onrai, and his face seemed in the half-light
-to wear a very troubled look.
-
-“These mysteries as you call them, Onrai, are only such to the
-uninitiated,” said Mr. Bruce. “They are all understood by those who are
-acquainted with the great principles of nature. This crevice is
-undoubtedly caused by the earthquake, as this very often occurs during a
-disturbance of this kind.”
-
-“But these strange people,” said Onrai. “Can you explain their
-presence?”
-
-“If you cannot understand it, Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, “don’t worry
-yourself in trying to, but look on those negroes as I have before told
-you to, as wild beasts, and treat them as such if they should break down
-a portion of the retaining wall and intrude upon your inhabited country.
-These beings are human, of course, but they have never felt the quieting
-hand of civilization, and they are but little removed from the wild
-beasts which inhabit the forests.”
-
-“Then we shall kill them all as we did those last night,” asked Onrai.
-
-“Yes, as opportunity offers,” replied Mr. Bruce. “Listen; these people
-must never be allowed to gain a footing in your land, or the result
-might be your extermination. You must fight them from the first and
-never allow them to rest for a moment in your domain. You may lose many
-men in thus defending your country, but it is your only chance to retain
-it. So, imbue in your men the necessity of fighting with all their
-hearts, and souls, and might, and strength, for God and their country,
-and impress them with the fact that only in so doing can they ever
-expect to again enjoy those privileges and that great freedom which has
-always been theirs.”
-
-“I will do this,” said Onrai, “but what shall we do now?”
-
-“We must wait here,” said Mr. Bruce, “until daylight and see what we can
-make of the hole, and whether the negroes have been killed or have used
-it as a means of escape. We will also investigate the volcano while
-here. But you must send men back to the villa immediately, to bury those
-dead negroes before the women see them; and tell this body of men to
-inform the women that we will return in a day or two; that we started
-early to look into the volcano or would have bade them good-bye. Don’t,
-by any means, let them know of the fight of last night. Impress upon
-your men the necessity of secrecy; it would only worry the women
-unnecessarily if they knew that the negroes were making trouble.”
-
-The other men now laid down on the hard ground, making themselves as
-comfortable as possible, to rest until morning, when they could explore
-the hole and the volcano. They had tramped nearly twelve miles during
-the night and were now well up against the cliffs. The black cloud of
-smoke was still being blown to the north, however, and they were saved
-the extra misery of the falling ashes.
-
-At last the east began to show signs of returning day, and long before
-the sun had crept into the heavens, our friends were up and looking down
-the great crevice. They were surprised to see the strange formation of
-this hole in the ground. It had undoubtedly been made by the earthquake,
-and was probably about ten feet broad at the top and narrowed in width
-as it went down, until it had reached a depth of two hundred feet, where
-it was only a narrow crack hardly six inches in width. But along one
-side had been left a natural foot path, about eighteen inches in width.
-This run up and down in a very irregular fashion and was narrower in
-some places than in others, but there was enough space at any point of
-it on which to walk, and it was this which had probably been followed by
-the negroes. They had known of this then, or they could never have found
-it in the darkness of night. Mr. Bruce and Mr. Graham followed the
-crevice for some distance, and then had returned and taking the
-footpath, had determined to follow it until they had learned what had
-become of the negroes.
-
-They were accompanied by Harry and several of the Onians, Onrai
-remaining behind with the others. The footpath would bring them very
-near the surface at times, and again it would carry them so deep into
-the crevice, they could almost touch the opposite side by stretching out
-their hands. Taken on the whole, the chasm ascended with the foothills
-of the cliffs, or in other words, it kept a mean depth throughout its
-length until reaching the face of the cliff, where it ascended very
-rapidly, and upon looking up, our friends were not surprised to see the
-great cliff a thousand feet high, cleft as clean as if cut by a
-monstrous knife. And this cut was at straight as a die, our friends
-being able to see through it in a direct line a great distance. Still
-the footpath continued as it had commenced, along one side of the
-crevice. When once inside of the cliff the explorers could look up
-through the cavern, far above their heads and see the stars, for the
-crevice here was narrow and of such a depth, the light of the sun could
-not penetrate it.
-
-“I think it would be better to return,” said Mr. Bruce, “we can only
-follow this path through the mountain and that is too great a journey
-for to-day, especially when we have had no breakfast.”
-
-“I think as you do,” said Mr. Graham. “These negroes must certainly have
-escaped by this route, and it will be an easy matter to keep them from
-again entering the Land of On, for ten men could guard this pass against
-an army.”
-
-They turned and retraced their steps and were soon with their companions
-again. They now turned their attention to the volcano. As the morning
-advanced and the wind changed, the smoke was again driven over them, and
-the ashes fell in great sheets about them. They had to cross the crevice
-and tramp some distance to the north to reach the base of the cliff,
-over which towered the cloud of smoke. The question as to how they
-should cross the crevice was easily answered by their going to the end
-of it; which was a mile distant from where they now were. The whole
-party joined in this exploration tour, the attendants keeping their eyes
-open for any small game which might be induced, by some cause or other,
-to enter these bad lands. They were now in the Hunting Reserve, but the
-land here was so barren, and of such great extent, these animals would
-not come into it for any reason, unless it might be to cross it. Just at
-this time, too, it was made worse by a thick covering of ashes which had
-deluged everything. And the same shroud of ashes was now coming down in
-a blinding sheet, and was worse than it had been the night before,
-because of the heat which now went with them.
-
-They were very near the belching crater now, and when the wind would
-change for a moment, blowing the cloud in a different direction, they
-could see the great black mass of smoke coming from the cliff, and
-bringing in its folds, very often, live coals of considerable size. The
-wind did not change very often, however, and most of the time our
-friends were engulfed in the awful dust and ashes, which at times were
-so thick, they were even hid from each other. But by perseverance, they
-reached the foot of the cliff right above which rose the volume of
-smoke. They stood here for a moment gazing up at the towering wall of
-rock, it being, at this point, fully two thousand feet high, and
-perpendicular, and wondered how they were going to scale its great
-height. They could not possibly do it; there was not even a foothold on
-the face of that rock wall, and our friends turned away disheartened.
-
-They had hoped to find fissures or rents in the rock, caused by the
-earthquake, which might allow them to reach the summit; but their hopes
-in this direction were all shattered by that one glance up the palisade.
-It was now beyond noon and they had had nothing to eat that morning, and
-they were all beginning to feel desperately hungry. This, too, puzzled
-them, for they could not expect to find anything to eat here or anything
-to kill nearer than two miles, where the good lands began again. But
-something must be had, so three of the attendants were sent to the
-woods, two miles away, to procure, if possible, a deer or something
-light, which they might carry back with them, and which would be so
-palatable in their present condition of hunger.
-
-They took up a position just at the base of the cliff, at a point where
-they were sheltered from the shower, and prepared to await the hunters.
-
-“What do you think of our chances for reaching the summit of the cliff?”
-asked Mr. Graham of Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Well, I should say they were bad,” answered Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Bad,” said Harry, “well I should say so. There is no chance at all.
-That cliff rising above us is duplicated throughout the entire
-circumference of On.”
-
-“So Onrai says, and it is true,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“There is but little difference in the face of the cliffs,” said Onrai.
-“Those about here are seamed to a greater degree than those at other
-points, but one can just as easily scale those as any of the others.”
-
-“That is not very encouraging,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I do not think you
-have taken into consideration the earthquake and the changes which it
-might have made. We have already found one place where the earthquake
-has split these mighty walls and I think we may find others. At any rate
-I will not give up trying to find a place where I can reach the summit.”
-
-“I will follow the base of these cliffs for miles but what I find a
-place,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“You forget that the base of the cliffs lie, throughout their entire
-length, in the Hunting Reserve,” said Onrai, “and I do not think that
-they could be followed closely for ten miles, let alone their entire
-length.”
-
-“True, I had forgotten that,” said Mr. Graham, and his face fell.
-
-“It is only here,” continued Onrai, “that we can follow them at all, for
-the animals do not bother us here, and there is no underbrush to hamper
-us.”
-
-The men talked on in this way until the hunters returned, two of them
-with a small deer, and the third with a bear cub. Their burdens were
-heavy and the trip had been quite long, but the prospect of the feast
-which would be theirs when they again reached their friends, buoyed them
-up and the party greeted them with cheers, and all fell to and cut the
-choicest parts of the deer and bear to roast; but one important thing
-had been forgotten. They were in a barren waste and not a sprig of wood
-could be found with which to make a fire. They were looking at each
-other in blank amazement, when a huge boulder flew through the air and
-fell in their midst.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVII.
- IN THE CRATER.
-
-
-They jumped back in affright, as the great rock rushed through the air
-and half buried itself in the soft earth before them. They looked from
-one to the other, as if seeking an explanation of this new surprise, but
-none could answer. They could not suppose for a moment that the rock had
-been broken from the great cliff, for the surface of these was so
-smooth, nothing could come from this source. They looked above them, but
-the air was so full of the ashes and dust, they could not penetrate it
-over a hundred feet. They hurriedly moved away from such a dangerous
-position, taking the bear and deer with them.
-
-“Where could this rock have come from?” asked Harry.
-
-It puzzled them to answer this question, and they kept their gaze
-fastened on the cliff above, hoping to see the wind change for a moment,
-and the cloud of smoke blown from them long enough to see the top. After
-waiting for some time, the cloudy atmosphere did break for a moment, and
-far up, so high that they looked like pigmies on top of the cliff, they
-saw a number of negroes, their bodies half hanging over the edge.
-
-“Ah! the mystery is solved,” exclaimed Mr. Bruce. “They are probably the
-same band which we drove from here last night.”
-
-“Yes, and now we can feel assured that there is a way to reach the
-summit. Look out!” said Harry, as he saw the negroes start another large
-stone from the summit.
-
-Down it came dangerously near to the party, and they decided to go back
-to the old position of the morning, for there they would be out of the
-way of these falling stones, and they could also drive back any of the
-negroes if they again tried to return. Back they trudged, taking a part
-of the deer and bear meat with them, and upon reaching the old stand,
-and while looking around, they saw, not far away from them, a monstrous
-tree, which had probably been blown from the summit of the cliffs by the
-storm. A fire was soon built and the meat roasted and eaten, after which
-they laid down for a night’s sleep, their day having profited them
-little but experiences which might do them some good in the near future.
-They had learned that there was a way to the summit of the cliff, and
-the finding of this way was to be the work of the morrow. The night was
-passed as comfortably as could be, on the fearfully hard bed of stone
-and earth, and early in the morning they were astir again, and after a
-meal of the roasted venison, they all started for the small pathway in
-the crevice.
-
-They soon reached this, and falling into single file, with Mr. Bruce in
-the lead, they kept up the march for a couple of hours, when they were
-well into the heart of the cliff. No other footpath had yet been reached
-by which they could gain the summit.
-
-“I think,” said Mr. Bruce to Mr. Graham, who was following him, “that we
-will have to walk right through this mountain, and on to the end of the
-crevice, when we can turn and climb the cliff from the back, which I
-expect to find of easy ascent.”
-
-“I quite agree with you,” said Mr. Graham. “It is quite certain that
-there could be no way of reaching the summit from this crevice; at
-least, not at this point.”
-
-“It has taken a powerful stirring up of the internal fires to cause this
-fearful crack,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Graham, “and that volcano looks as if it might throw out
-something more than dust and ashes very soon.”
-
-“That it will, and sooner than we will want it to,” replied Mr. Bruce.
-“We are treading dangerous ground, and we cannot tell what moment we may
-be overtaken by a flow of molten lava, or a greater shower of ashes,
-such as buried Pompeii.”
-
-“But,” said Mr. Graham, “if we stop to think of such things, we will not
-do a great deal of exploring.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it is always best to bear these things in
-mind, and be ready at any moment to meet them as well as we can under
-the circumstances. But I can scarcely see my way here. Were any torches
-brought along?”
-
-“Yes, the attendants have torches,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-It was true; at this point the crevice was so deep one might think it
-was night, so dark had it grown. The torch was lighted, and Mr. Bruce,
-taking it, they all again took up the march. But from this point the
-path began to widen and ascend, until they were not only again in the
-sunlight but two could walk abreast, and a little further, and the path
-had widened until four and five men could walk abreast. The path
-ascended gradually, so gradually that it was not difficult to climb, and
-in a short while it ran out even with the surface.
-
-This was a great and pleasant surprise to the explorers, for they had
-expected to have to tramp much farther before getting out of the hole.
-They looked about them and saw that they were on the side of a lofty
-mountain, the cliff opposite being but a precipitous side of the same
-mountain. This side was very fertile and wooded with great trees almost
-to its summit.
-
-Below them lay a verdant valley stretching on and on as far as the eye
-could reach. Onrai looked on in wonderment at this unexpected sight. He
-had, and so had his people, been led to believe that the world ended at
-the cliffs, that beyond these was naught but space. He could not have
-told, had he been asked, how this land ended or how it must look to see
-no land or water beyond, nothing but that infinite space. It had never
-occurred to him to think of this himself, but if it had, he would have
-immediately banished the thought as being perfectly absurd. He had been
-told that the end was there, and that was enough; it couldn’t be
-different, and as to how the end might look, that didn’t matter at all.
-So this was a wonderful sight to him, all this land as far as he could
-see, covered with verdure and with occasional streams of water running
-through it. So much like his own fertile country, that he might have
-supposed that he had turned in some magical way on his tramp through the
-mountains, and was now looking upon that Land of On. If this picture,
-which stretched out before him, was real and not a dream, as he was
-almost led to believe, then what of those teachings which declared that
-their land was the only land, and that their people were the only
-people. The very foundation of this teaching was shaken when this idea
-was exploded. He turned and looked at his companions, and then at the
-great landscape which opened out before him. The attendants were no less
-surprised at the strange scene, but none of them made any comments.
-
-Turning and looking far up the mountain or volcano, they could now see a
-round cap at the summit, and out of this poured the fearful smoke. The
-wind was favorable for the ascent, for it was blowing the smoke over the
-Land of On, and they could climb without being hampered by the falling
-ashes.
-
-“We are extremely lucky so far,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Yes, and the ascent looks easy enough,” rejoined Mr. Bruce.
-
-“It may prove otherwise before we reach the summit, though,” said Mr.
-Graham.
-
-“Well,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must get at it, for we should get back to On
-to-day, if possible.”
-
-“How different are the mountains on this side,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“They are different, yes,” said Mr. Bruce. “One would hardly suppose
-that beyond they are so precipitous. The whole Land of On must have been
-the immense crater of some mighty volcano, at some prehistoric period.”
-
-“It is hard to tell,” said Mr. Graham. “In my estimation it has been at
-some remote age a vast inland sea.”
-
-“Either explanation might fit,” said Mr. Bruce. “But let us start. We
-are losing valuable time.”
-
-Turning toward Onrai they saw him still standing wrapped in deep
-thought, with the attendants standing near, also looking at that great
-expanse of field, forest, river and lake before them, with wondering
-faces.
-
-“Come,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must start. From the summit you can get a
-better view both of this and your own country. And now we must hasten to
-reach that summit.”
-
-“You do not seem surprised at the great expanse of land beyond the
-cliffs,” said Onrai to Mr. Bruce.
-
-“No, I am not surprised,” replied Mr. Bruce, “because I knew that it
-existed before we ever came to you.”
-
-“And you did not tell me?” inquired Onrai.
-
-“And why should I tell you, Onrai,” asked Mr. Bruce. “Have you not a
-beautiful country with everything that heart could wish for? Were you
-not happy there in your belief, and could the knowledge of the fallacy
-of the teachings which has helped to make you happy make you any
-happier? You would not have thanked me for such information and I would
-advise you now, as I have before, to try and forget that you have seen
-these things.”
-
-“That I can never do,” said Onrai. “But they may never have any great
-impression on me, further than in making me disbelieve that part of the
-teachings which relates to the end of our world. I cannot believe that
-any longer, of course.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but you can refrain from speaking of it, and you
-can make it a punishable offense for any of these attendants, who have
-also witnessed these scenes, to ever speak of it; and in this way it
-will soon be forgotten, and the next generation will go on in blissful
-ignorance of the existence of the land beyond the cliff. It will be
-better, will it not?”
-
-“I think so,” answered Onrai.
-
-They were now ascending the mountain, the ascent for a way being very
-gradual, but as they proceeded further the ascent became steeper and
-more rugged. No trace of negroes were seen, but our friends knew that
-the negroes seen the day before on the summit, must be somewhere near.
-They had probably ascended the mountain in order to get a sight, if
-possible, of that land from which they had been driven, and in thus
-doing they had spied those who had driven them from it, and had
-immediately conceived the idea of hurling the great stones in their
-midst, and may be, by so doing, kill all, thus giving them an open
-sesame into the coveted country. They had villages near this point,
-according to Sedai, and if our friends should fall in with any of these
-tribes, there would very evidently be more bloodshed, for they were the
-intruders now and the African negro considers this a sacrilege. Nothing
-is so sacred to him as his country, and they will fight for this quicker
-than they will for their wives.
-
-But nothing was seen of these, and no trace was found of a beaten path
-which might indicate that they lived as high as this on the mountain, or
-that they visited this altitude very frequently. The verdure grew
-thinner as they ascended, and great hunks of lava were now cropping
-through the surface soil. The cloud of smoke grew more ominous as they
-neared it, and looked like a huge umbrella spread, and with the handle
-resting on the summit of the mountain. The party were getting very close
-to the summit now, and low rumblings could be heard far beneath the
-surface; hissing noises were also heard, like that made by water
-striking hot coals.
-
-At last, after considerable tortuous climbing, they stood at the base of
-a rugged cliff, which was not more than a hundred feet in height; this
-was seamed and rough as if it had been thrown up hundreds and may be
-thousands of years before by an overflow of lava, which, upon cooling,
-had left this wall about the crater. Following about the base of this
-for some distance, a place was at last discerned where an ascent might
-be made, and after hard work and much slipping backward, and three or
-four narrow escapes from instant death by falling into one of the
-crevices, the summit was reached. The sight which here met their gaze
-was forboding, to say the least. They were standing on the top of a wall
-not more than ten feet thick at this point, and as near as they could
-guess about one and a half miles long, running about a deep hole or
-crater, one hundred feet deep. Looking down into this they could see the
-black smoke issuing from great crevices in the flooring. As it came from
-these crevices, it was lurid with the glow of the hot fires which was
-its cause. These crevices were numerous and in places our friends could
-almost look into them, and into the bright fires burning far beneath.
-After much discussion on the matter, it was determined to try and get
-down to the floor of this fiery hole which might so soon be filled with
-molten lava. A place was found where the descent could be made easily
-and the party started. As they descended, the foul smoke would be blown
-about them occasionally, almost choking them with its density, but the
-bottom was reached and they started to cross it in order to get to the
-opposite side, from which they could look into the Land of On. The
-flooring was found to be warm and really hot in places, and so crumbling
-beneath their feet that it was almost impossible to walk. Several of the
-great crevices were approached, but the smoke would drive them back
-before they could reach the edge and look into the depths. Most of these
-crevices were narrow and ran from east to west, but when the centre of
-the crater was reached a great hole was found, probably the true mouth
-of the crater. The rumbling here was very distinct and the hissing very
-plain. The party tried to reach the edge of this wall but was again
-fought off by the dense smoke. They had passed this and were nearer to
-the opposite side of the crater, when an unusual loud rumbling was heard
-and a great crack suddenly opened before them, the shock throwing them
-off their feet, prostrating them on the ground. Mr. Bruce fell so near
-this new crevice that his head leaned far over the side, and for a
-moment it looked as if he would roll into the fearful hole. But he soon
-recovered himself, and rolling over and over he put a safe distance
-between himself and the crevice before he ventured to rise to his feet.
-
-When they had all recovered from this surprise and fear and had again
-regained their feet, they approached the crevice and peered into its
-black depths. Down, down, down it seemed to open, into the very bowels
-of the earth, and at the bottom they could see a molten mass, boiling,
-and seething, and hissing, but just for a moment and then the scene was
-hidden by the black smoke which came pouring up from it.
-
-“Come,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must get out of this.”
-
-The party then hurried as fast as they could to the opposite side of the
-crater to where the wall was several hundred feet thick, ending on the
-opposite side in the cliff. A long look was taken at the beautiful Land
-of On and then the retreat was ordered. They now followed the top of the
-wall of the crater until they had come to the place where they had
-ascended this, and then, with but very little difficulty, reached the
-sloping side and hurriedly descended. It was growing late and already
-the sun was throwing long shadows over the mountain side.
-
-They had several miles of the strange footpath to cover yet through the
-dark crevice. They began to feel anxious and hurried still faster as
-they neared the bottom. The sun sank into the distant valley as they
-reached the crevice. They were hurriedly following the side of this,
-looking for a beginning of the footpath, when they heard a loud yell as
-if from a hundred throats, and looking down they saw a great crowd of
-black demons holding the end of the footpath.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVIII.
- KILLED IN THE CREVICE.
-
-
-The fearful yell startled them, and they fell back out of sight of the
-wild band.
-
-“They have watched us ascend the mountain,” said Mr. Bruce, “and have
-held this vantage point awaiting our return, knowing well that they had
-us here.”
-
-“Yes, but we can’t stay here,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“I am afraid that we will have to,” said Mr. Bruce, “until these fellows
-will kindly consent to go away.”
-
-“But can’t we beat them off?” said Harry.
-
-“No. I think not,” said Mr. Bruce. “We are about twenty-five, and they
-must number fully one hundred.”
-
-“We ought to be good for that number, I should think,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“I don’t know,” said Mr. Bruce, “they may fight better in daylight. They
-were taken by surprise the other night, and had but little else to do
-but run. I am in for giving them a chance to show their fighting
-qualities at any rate. As you say, we can’t stay here; if we do, we may
-be attacked by such a horde of these blacks that we could do nothing but
-surrender.”
-
-“Then we had better get to fighting at once,” said Mr. Graham. “It will
-be better, perhaps, for us three to head the column, for with our
-fire-arms we may scare them away, leaving the road open to us.”
-
-“I think as you do in the matter,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-Onrai was told then, to form his men into columns of threes and not to
-make a rush, or use the daggers until they were attacked by the negroes.
-The men formed, and Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry heading the column,
-they started for the crevice. Here they saw the negroes, still waiting
-for them, their black faces grinning hideously in the semi-light. Slowly
-our friends advanced with their revolvers in position, ready to start at
-a given signal from Mr. Bruce. The negroes seemed to consider this a
-matter of amusement, for they only grinned the broader, and yelled the
-louder when they saw the queer column approaching them.
-
-The party advanced until only a few feet from the negroes, who were so
-confident of capturing their enemies alive, they had not even brought
-with them the ugly-looking hatchet. They took no concern at the
-approaching column then, but looked on, as though the whole matter was a
-huge joke. So when Mr. Bruce said deliberately: “Now make ready, fire,”
-and the three leaden missiles went on their mission of death, the
-negroes jumped backward, and several, losing their balance, fell into
-the ravine. Again the pistols were raised, and three more shots were
-fired.
-
-“We are disturbing them,” said Mr. Bruce. “Once more, and we will have
-them on the run.”
-
-And again the pistols were fired, this time at very close range.
-
-The expression on the negroes’ faces had changed now, and they looked at
-the slowly approaching party with eyes almost standing on their cheeks,
-and mouths wide open, showing their white ivories. They stood still
-after the first shots, paralyzed with fear, but when the last shots were
-fired, and they saw three more of their companions topple over, their
-fright induced them to seek safety in flight, and they turned and ran
-down the footpath, crowding, shoving and jostling each other in their
-frantic efforts to get farther away from these death-dealing missiles,
-many of them being pushed off into the crevice in the wild rush. Our
-friends fell into line with Mr. Bruce again in the lead, and followed
-slowly after the negroes.
-
-It was now quite dark and as they descended further into the ravine, it
-became so dark that they could no longer see the path, and a torch was
-lit. The negroes had long since passed out of sight and hearing, and our
-friends were giving them little heed, having enough to think about in
-looking after themselves, for they were in a very dangerous position,
-the pathway being so narrow at places, that a misstep would undoubtedly
-hurl them into eternity. They kept close to the side of the crevice and
-moved slowly, and the mountain was passed through without a mishap.
-
-The light from the volcano now lit up the scene somewhat, and our
-friends began to congratulate each other on getting out of the several
-difficulties so easily, when a shout was heard, and looking through the
-semi-gloom they saw the negroes coming hastily toward them, and a band
-of Onians following them along the top of the crevice hurling stones at
-them. The party halted, and raising their arms fired, when the negroes
-came within range. The negroes stopped and in a moment realized that
-they were between two fires; but the pistols were too much for them, so
-they again turned and ran toward the Land of On. The Onians, seeing them
-do this, started for the end of the path to head them off. This they
-did, and one of their number, a mighty fellow, jumped into the path and
-with his dagger began plunging it into the backs of the unfortunate
-negroes who had again turned toward their own land. As one would receive
-his death-wound and would fall over the side of the crevice, this great
-Onian would stab another, and he kept this up until his arm was red to
-the shoulder with the blood of his victims.
-
-[Illustration: “As one would receive his death-wound and would fall over
-the side of the crevice, this great Onian would stab another.”—_Page
-293._]
-
-The head of the column now came up within range of the pistols again,
-and they were shot down like sheep, the few who were not killed with the
-knife of the Onian. The slaughter did not last long, for in a short time
-the negroes were all killed and the bodies lay at the bottom of the
-crevice. It had been a onesided fight, for the negroes had not raised a
-hand to defend themselves.
-
-The party were finally out of the crevice and found quite a number of
-Onians camped near the base of the cliff, and with them Enola. Their
-surprise was great when they saw her with the party, and upon asking her
-why she was here, she told them that she had gotten tired of remaining
-at the villa and as she had come to this land to see all that there was
-in it, she did not intend being cheated out of any part of it.
-
-“Your departure was so unexpected,” she continued, “and the attendants
-had been so mysterious in their movements ever since, I began to fear
-that all was not right and came to see for myself. Are you not all glad
-to see me? But where have you been? Your faces and garments are as black
-as the skin of the negroes which have just been killed.”
-
-It was true, they had been so long exposed to the smoke of the crater
-that they had become perfectly black, and it might have been this which
-made the negroes laugh so when they saw them approaching. They had seen
-the white skins before and they must have thought that it was a ruse to
-fool them, in thus blacking their faces.
-
-“But Enola, this has been a long, hard tramp for you,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Tramp, Uncle,” said Enola, “have you so soon forgotten the zebras and
-elephants? I came on a zebra.”
-
-“Oh, that is so,” said Mr. Graham, “I had forgotten for the moment. You
-look tired though, nevertheless, Enola.”
-
-“And I am tired,” said Enola. “It is quite a journey even on the back of
-a zebra. But I see little chance for a comfortable night’s rest here.”
-
-“The only bed is this stony surface,” said Mr. Bruce, “but you surely
-cannot expect to stay here over night.”
-
-“And why not, pray,” said Enola. “And am I better than are you? Did I
-not withstand the hardships of the jungle? I want to remain here
-to-night and to-morrow and see this crevice and more of these stony
-surroundings.”
-
-“Very well,” said Mr. Graham, “I know there is no use in talking to you
-when you once get a notion in your head; but you will find this the
-hardest bed you ever slept upon.”
-
-“Don’t worry about me, Uncle, I will get along all right, but I brought
-you all something to eat and you had better get at it.”
-
-“I will forgive you now for having come,” said Mr. Graham, “for I, as
-well as the rest of us, am just about starved.”
-
-“I am glad that you look on my sin as pardonable,” laughed Enola, “but,
-believe me, bringing food was a secondary thought. I came only to see
-the strange things in this part of the world, and when about to start,
-thought that, as I was coming here, I might as well bring this food with
-me.”
-
-“I know you too well to believe any such story,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-The attendants had now gotten their meal ready and a hungry party it was
-who sat down to it. They had eaten nothing since morning and their
-fatigue of the day but added to their hunger.
-
-“What are we to do to-morrow,” asked Mr. Graham, as they all sat down on
-rocks which had been placed for them, holding their platters of food in
-their laps.
-
-“I know of no reason why we should remain here any longer,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “I think the negroes are done for, for awhile at least. This
-band, which has been entering the land of On, are wiped out; they cannot
-return and there is hardly a chance now of other bands or tribes knowing
-of the new passage-way through the cliff.”
-
-“But it is only a matter of time until they will know it,” said Mr.
-Graham.
-
-“True,” said Mr. Bruce, “but before that time the crevice might be
-filled and the Land of On made impregnable again.”
-
-They all looked up in astonishment at this.
-
-“Do you think this possible?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Possible, yes,” said Mr. Bruce. “It would be a stupendous work and
-would take a long time to carry it out, but it can be done, and this
-fair land will be forever free from intruders, unless of course some
-such like occurrence as the one, which has made this fissure in the
-rock, should cause a like one.”
-
-“Then you would commence on this work immediately?” asked Onrai.
-
-“Just as soon as possible,” said Mr. Bruce, “but the sooner you do it
-the less chance there will be for invasion.”
-
-“It shall be done,” answered Onrai.
-
-The party, after the meal, stood up in groups and it was but natural
-that Enola and Onrai should be together. They walked to a point well up
-toward the cliff, and seating themselves on a large rock, Onrai again
-told Enola of his great love and of his intention of making her his wife
-on the Day of Resis. But when she asked him why he had chosen the Day of
-Resis for their wedding day, he made her no answer.
-
-Onrai sent messengers throughout the country and to the city, for men to
-build this wall across the crevice. He sent for all of the available men
-in On, ordering all other branches of work to stop for the time being.
-
-“It will take a considerable body of men to do the work,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “But more than a wall must be constructed. The crevice at the
-face of the cliff must be at least three thousand feet deep, and this
-has to be filled for considerable distance to get a safe foundation for
-the wall. It will take many men and most of them will have to work from
-the crater of the volcano, casting large rocks into the crevice from the
-first, until it is filled up as high as the shelf or footpath, from
-which point I think it would be well to commence the solid masonry.”
-
-“But if this work goes on and is finished before we leave, chances are
-against us ever again reaching civilization,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“That is true,” replied Mr. Bruce, “for we have seen enough of the
-rock-bound country to know that the cliffs cannot be scaled. It would be
-an utter impossibility to get out by that way, and we would have to
-resort to a balloon.”
-
-“You have suggested a way which is always available,” said Mr. Graham.
-“The silk of this country is especially adapted to this purpose, I
-should say, and the other materials can be had easy enough. And these
-people could raise no objections to our building such a conveyance, even
-if they objected to our leaving them, and we would be up and away before
-they could possibly know what we were about. So we need not worry about
-the means of escape.”
-
-“The volcano is throwing off more rock and ashes than ever, to-day,”
-said Mr. Bruce, as he glanced up at the ominous cloud of smoke.
-
-“Yes, and there seems to be a new element this morning,” said Mr.
-Graham. “Look at that white vapor. Would you not say that that was
-steam?”
-
-“It looks like it,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“If it is,” said Mr. Graham, “it will but hasten the coming eruption.”
-
-“The eruption is not far off, anyway,” said Mr. Bruce, “for the lava is
-already near the surface, as was shown by its running through the crack
-of the tunnel to-day.”
-
-“This alone will be well worth the trip,” said Mr. Graham; “but we must
-be well out of the way before it takes place.”
-
-“I think we will be safe at the villa,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-As he ceased speaking, the earth trembled beneath their feet, and,
-looking at the volcano, they saw a huge mass of red-hot cinders and
-smoke shoot high in the air.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIX.
- THE FIELD OF DIAMONDS.
-
-
-The rumbling was heard fully five minutes before the shock came, and our
-friends had stopped when it had first reached their ears, wondering what
-could make such a noise. It was all explained, however, when the earth
-trembled beneath them, nearly throwing them from their feet. Thoughts of
-the volcano immediately rushed into their minds, and they turned just in
-time to see a great mass of stone, rock and molten lava mixed with steam
-and smoke, shoot into the air. It rose to a height of nearly a thousand
-feet above the mountain, and then fell back into the yawning abyss from
-which it sprang. Then came another shock and another discharge of rock
-and ashes, and another and another in such rapid succession that our
-friends were afraid to move for fear of being thrown flat on the ground.
-
-The air was black with ashes, and smoke, and dust, and a vapor seemed to
-be rising from the ground, which, with the rest, nearly suffocated them.
-From where our friends now were, they could not see the crevice in the
-cliff, but they could see the summit of the mountains, and saw huge
-rocks tumbling from the top and rolling over the edge, being lost to
-view in the thick atmosphere as they descended.
-
-“We must get out of this,” said Mr. Bruce, “for that volcano may belch
-forth a stream of lava which will take but a few moments to reach us.”
-
-“Do you think it would flow this way?” asked Mr. Graham. “The opposite
-side of the mountain would give it a freer channel, I think.”
-
-“It is impossible to tell,” said Mr. Bruce. “The whole side of the cliff
-might open up and let the lava flow into this slope, entirely
-unobstructed. These volcanoes change their craters and channels so
-frequently, there is no telling from what direction the lava will come,
-or which way it will go.”
-
-“It is quieter now,” said Mr. Graham, “and as we cannot be far from the
-villa, we had better try and reach it.”
-
-Everybody at this started again and were groping along in the
-dust-filled atmosphere, when they saw, right ahead of them, the bridge.
-It took them only a minute to cross this and to get through the break in
-the wall, and to reach the villa and get into its cool and ash-free
-atmosphere. It was certainly a great relief for these weary, hungry and
-dust-besmeared travelers to enjoy once more the delights of a bath, and
-the splendid cuisine of the villa. They were tired out, and had inhaled
-the thick atmosphere so long, that their lungs had become almost raw,
-while their eyes were nearly closed, being swollen and sore. But a bath
-and several applications of sweet honey and wine had made them feel like
-new persons, and after the evening meal was over, they all declared that
-such delights as On could offer, were all the more welcome and could be
-better appreciated after a few days separation from them.
-
-The evening was spent on the terrace, the wind having again shifted,
-leaving the atmosphere free from the dust and ashes. The column of smoke
-was very bright to-night, the fire seeming to be nearer the surface,
-lighting up the great black mass as it poured forth from the crater. In
-fact at this distance it cast its light, making objects at some
-distance, quite perceptible. But our friends were surprised to see to
-what depth the ground about the villa and all the barren waste had been
-covered by the ashes and dust. Fully one foot of this lay over the
-surface of the country for miles around. The beautiful lawn here was no
-more, and the large fields adjoining the villa, which had been used as a
-pasture for the zebras and cattle were now made useless by the volcano.
-But this extended only a mile beyond the villa, so said the attendants
-who had arrived that evening, bringing fresh provisions and ice. This
-being so, the zebras, cattle and elephants, would be able to find
-pasturage close at hand, and they were taken there immediately as they
-were already suffering for food.
-
-But the depth of ashes destroyed the beauty of everything about here;
-the green lawn, the beautiful trees, all bore the same dull, gray
-appearance. There was but little enthusiasm then shown by the party on
-this night, as they walked on to the terrace. The volcano attracted all
-the attention with its lurid glare, mass of smoke and bright red rocks,
-which were thrown into the air at times.
-
-“I am afraid we have forgotten our object in coming here,” said Enola to
-Onrai, as they came on to the terrace.
-
-“No,” said Onrai, “I have not forgotten, but I am afraid the brilliants
-have met the same fate as all else about here. They are buried beneath
-the ashes of the volcano.”
-
-“What a pity!” said Enola. “We have thus lost one of the most beautiful
-sights of On.”
-
-“I am afraid so,” continued Onrai. “But wait, let me think. The field of
-brilliants extends far to the north, if I remember rightly, and we may
-reach a point beyond this circle of ashes; but you are too tired to go
-over there to-night, are you not, Enola?”
-
-“How far is it?” asked Enola. “I am tired, but if there be a chance of
-seeing this beautiful sight, then we had better accept it, for a delay
-may mean to lose this pleasure, for the possibilities of that volcano
-are beyond reckoning.”
-
-“It is about three miles due north of here, as you would say,” said
-Onrai, “and if you wish to go we will find elephants plenty to carry all
-of us.”
-
-“But we will have no moonlight to enhance the beauty of the brilliants,”
-said Enola.
-
-“No,” said Onrai, “but we have the light from the volcano, and this may
-have a grander effect.”
-
-“That is true,” said Enola, “let us go immediately.”
-
-Onrai gave the order, and several elephants were soon standing in front
-of the terrace, awaiting the pleasure of the party. The other ladies
-also decided to go, not having been out of the villa since their
-arrival, and the men jumped at the chance, surprised to think that there
-might be a field of these diamonds still uncovered by the ashes.
-
-The elephants followed a road, or path rather, which led almost due
-north for a distance of three or four miles. The easy motion of the
-elephants had most of the tired party asleep before the point was
-reached, and they were awakened from their sleep when the elephants
-stopped. They were entirely unprepared for the beautiful sight which met
-their gaze. As far as they could see to the north, the ground was strewn
-with brilliant sparks of light, looking up from its black surface, like
-bright eyes from a dusky face. The red glare of the volcano made the
-scene all the more beautiful, in bringing out so many varied lights from
-the diamonds.
-
-“How far are we from the volcano?” asked Mr. Graham.
-
-“Only about a mile farther from it than we are when at the villa, I
-should judge,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“And is the land here as barren as it is at the villa,” asked Mrs.
-Graham, of Onrai, as he came up.
-
-“Quite,” answered Onrai, “and the field which you see here is but a
-continuation of the field directly back of the villa. We were just too
-late, or we might have had this scene closer at hand.”
-
-“It is indeed too bad,” said Mr. Graham, “but it has lost none of its
-beauty by having the volcano’s light thrown on it.”
-
-Mr. Bruce here stooped and picked up one of the twinkling stars; it was
-about the size of a hen’s egg and almost the same shape; rough on all
-sides but one, this being polished to a brightness which was hard to
-account for.
-
-“Can you account for this smooth side,” asked Mr. Graham, as he walked
-up to Mr. Bruce with another diamond very much like the one he had
-picked up.
-
-“I have been trying to solve the riddle,” replied Mr. Bruce, “and can
-only offer one solution of the mystery. These stones probably have been
-thrown from the bowels of the earth by the last eruption of the volcano.
-How many years, or thousands of years ago this has been, we cannot say,
-but since that time a part of these diamonds have been exposed to the
-storms and all kinds of weather. These have gradually polished the
-stones until they have reached this state of smoothness. You will notice
-that the polished side is somewhat flatter than the others, and as this
-side is always turned upward, I think these things but emphasize my
-theory.”
-
-“I can only interpose one objection to your theory,” said Mr. Graham,
-“and that is, that diamonds are so hard that it is a question as to
-whether the wear of the elements would affect them at all.”
-
-“The dropping of water for long has washed away great cliffs, has bored
-holes in monstrous rocks, and why should diamonds alone be proof against
-this influence?” argued Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I do not say that they are,” replied Mr. Graham, “and I am willing to
-accept your explanation for the want of a better one.”
-
-“They are diamonds, I think, without a doubt,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“If they are not,” said Mr. Graham, “then we have discovered a jewel,
-the brilliancy of which is superior to that of diamonds, and there lies
-about us fortunes,—thousands of fortunes.”
-
-“But fortunes which will never benefit the civilized peoples,” said Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“Probably not,” said Mr. Graham, “unless it be ourselves, for I shall
-surely not leave here without a generous supply of these beautiful
-gems,” and he and Mr. Bruce proceeded to each gather a bag full of the
-precious stones, the ladies doing likewise.
-
-At this point Onrai came up and Mr. Bruce asked: “Onrai, do you not use
-these stones for aught else than for the sling-shots, and ornaments, and
-decorations?”
-
-“Yes,” answered Onrai. “We find here a peculiar brilliant, which the
-direct participants in the ceremonies of the Day of Resis wear as an
-emblem,” and the King here remounted, and the remainder of the party
-doing so, they started toward the villa in silence, our friends thinking
-what fortunes they carried in the little bags at their waists, and what
-immense sensations they would create when these stones were brought
-before the world.
-
-Two weeks had now elapsed since the night of the visit to the field of
-diamonds, and our friends were still at the villa near the volcano. This
-had remained about as active as it had on the night in mention, and our
-friends had stayed on to see the development of the eruption.
-
-At times the earth would tremble slightly, and at such times the volcano
-would always become more active. The fall of ashes had become much less
-in this part of the surrounding country, but this was due to the wind
-which had blown steadily from the northeast, carrying the cloud of smoke
-over the country beyond the cliff.
-
-Onrai was daily expecting the arrival of his army of subjects to perform
-his bidding.
-
-At the end of two weeks, after an exciting day hunting the jungles of
-this strange new land, the party one day approached the villa, and saw
-encamped about it thousands of men, elephants and zebras.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XL.
- THE CAMP OF THE ONIANS.
-
-
-Yes, there were thousands of these. The great field on the opposite side
-of the avenue was completely filled with them and their animals. Tents
-of beautiful colors spread over the plain, their peculiar shape
-suggesting scenes of the Orient. These tents were large and roomy, one
-side being half turned back so as to admit plenty of air; the floor was
-covered with soft, skin rugs, and in the centre was a small, round table
-of wood, on which was resting a lamp.
-
-As our friends approached, the scene was so strange and novel, they
-thought they had never before seen anything quite so interesting. The
-glare of the volcano half lighted the level plain giving a reddish glow
-to everything within its rays, and the lights inside the tents throwing
-out the varied colors of the beautiful cloth, made these tents look like
-huge, Japanese lanterns. The ashes had been removed from the floor of
-each tent and piled up at one side, thus giving a clean floor for the
-rugs and small mattresses which were used for sleeping on.
-
-As our party came up the whole body of men, who had been informed of the
-King’s approach, drew up in front of the camp in a line along the
-avenue, and waited for him to say something to them.
-
-“My men,” said the King, “you are called here on a mission which had
-never before fallen to the lot of Onians. A great storm has visited On
-and has left as a legacy of its mighty strength, a great crack in the
-wall which surrounds our world. This must not remain so, for it is meant
-that we should be guarded by the wall, and consequently we must close up
-the trench. It will be a mighty undertaking, the great wall about the
-hunting reserve being nothing in comparison to it. It will require a
-great length of time to do this work and you who have come to do this,
-will have to remain here at the same work until it is finished, as it
-will be impossible to go from here each day and take up other duties. We
-are a great distance from the city, and it will not be possible for you
-to return frequently, but this you shall do as often as you decide upon
-among yourselves. To-morrow we will move to the pit where the great work
-is to be done, and after finishing all preliminary arrangements we will
-commence at once.
-
-“This is to protect our good country and I know the work will be done
-well and quickly. Until to-morrow, then, I will bid you farewell.”
-
-The men bowed in their stately way and the King and his party moved on
-to the villa.
-
-The volcano seemed to be especially active to-night, the smoke not being
-as black, but more steam seemed to be mixed with it. The fires, too,
-seemed to be very active, for the glare would be very bright at times
-and illuminate the entire heavens, and then dying until scarcely a ray
-of light could be seen. And several times during the evening a low
-rumbling was heard, and the earth trembled slightly; then the volcano
-would throw forth an immense shower of hot ashes, rocks and stones and
-make the hissing noise, reaching over this great distance to the party
-at the villa, who were on the terrace watching the scene which was ever
-changing and ever interesting.
-
-“It is more fitful to-night than ever,” said Mr. Bruce, to Mr. Graham.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Graham, “and I think we are foolish in staying so close
-to this seething mass of lava, rock and ashes which may overflow its
-bounds and engulf us at any moment.”
-
-“But we are far enough away to escape if we should be threatened,” said
-Mr. Bruce.
-
-“So the Pompeiians and even those of Herculaneum thought, as they
-laughed and jested on, while old Vesuvius was preparing to bury them,”
-said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Then you think we had better leave this place?” asked Mr. Bruce,
-convinced himself that they were playing with fire by remaining here.
-
-“I do most assuredly,” replied Mr. Graham, “but I hate to do so, for
-this sight is grand and one which we may never see again.”
-
-“Would it not be well to conduct the ladies to some villa at a safe
-distance and then return and see the thing out. I confess it has a
-strange fascination for me, and I would like to see the grand climax,”
-said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“That may be a long time coming,” said Mr. Graham, “for these things are
-very uncertain.”
-
-“That is true,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I have a strange premonition or
-something, whatever you might call it, that this grand finale will come
-very soon.”
-
-“If it does,” said Mr. Graham, “and catches us here we are doomed.”
-
-Onrai and Enola then came up and turning to the King, Mr. Bruce said:
-“Aren’t you a little hasty in sending your men to work on that dreadful
-volcano?”
-
-“I may be,” said Onrai, “but I have taken your advice in the matter.”
-
-“I did give you such advice,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I did not think at
-the time that the volcano would assume such a lively attitude. You may
-be interested in knowing, Onrai, that that great seething mass of ashes
-and melted rock, may overflow its confines at any time and destroy every
-man in this party, if he were near enough to it.”
-
-As Mr. Bruce finished speaking, an unusually severe shock was felt, and
-great showers of red-hot coals were driven high into the air, and then,
-falling back into the crater, all was dark for a moment, after which the
-volcano assumed the same appearance as it had ever in its quieter
-moments, for the last twenty-four hours.
-
-“I do not think it is advisable to send the men to the mountain just
-yet,” said Mr. Bruce. “We will want them.”
-
-The party remained on the terrace until far into the night, witnessing
-the weird sight. The volcano might be said to be in a state of eruption
-now, but not a violent state of eruption.
-
-“It is certainly throwing off enough matter to be considered in a state
-of eruption,” said Mr. Graham, as he and Mr. Bruce were about to retire
-for the night. “But if it grows no worse than this, we are safe.”
-
-“But it will get worse,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-But, notwithstanding this prediction, on the following morning when the
-party arose and looked at the volcano, the first thing that had been
-their wont to do ever since being here, they were surprised to see only
-a thin column of smoke rising from the volcano. The black cloud had
-entirely disappeared and a vaporous volume now rising might be taken for
-that coming from a camp fire, so small and insignificant was it. Mr.
-Graham and Mr. Bruce looked in astonishment at this new freak in the
-rather prolific volcano, and were unable to offer any explanations.
-
-“It is beyond explaining, I think,” said Mr. Graham, after the two had
-stood for a long time contemplating the now almost lifeless volcano.
-
-“It is more than I expected, at any rate,” said Mr. Bruce, a little
-slowly, as he remembered his last words of the night before.
-
-“You were not alone in your belief of yesterday,” said Mr. Graham, “for
-we all expected to see a mighty eruption.”
-
-“It is better as it is, probably,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I am
-disappointed. If it remains as tranquil as this another twenty-four
-hours, I shall make another visit to its crater and see if it is really
-as quiet as it looks.”
-
-“And I will go with you,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-So the day wore on and night came and went and another day broke fresh,
-beautiful and sunshiny, and the volcano was as quiet as on the morning
-previous.
-
-“What do you think of the volcano, to-day?” asked Onrai of Mr. Bruce.
-“Will it be advisable for me to start the men to work?”
-
-“I think you can send them to the volcano to-day with perfect safety,”
-said Mr. Bruce. “The danger is past, I think, for the present, but may
-not be for good, for the volcano, now that it has again broken out, may
-become active frequently.”
-
-“Enough,” said Onrai, “I will get the men in readiness, for they can
-work but a week at this time, as they will have to return to the city to
-celebrate the Day of Resis. All are required to be there on that day.
-During this week they can get well started, and upon their return they
-can begin where they left off. Would you like to accompany me?”
-
-“With pleasure,” added they all in chorus, and together they started for
-the camp on the other side of the avenue.
-
-The men had been up for sometime, the morning meal had been eaten and
-the remains cleared away, and they were now awaiting orders from the
-King. The party crossed the avenue and immediately upon the word being
-sent around the camp that the King was with them, all were attention and
-awaiting orders. One of the men, who seemed to have command, came
-forward and received orders from the King to get in readiness at once,
-and proceed to the cliff to begin operations. It took but a moment for
-the word to be sent flying around the camp, and in an instant, almost,
-the tents were lowered, rolled up and placed upon the backs of the
-zebras and elephants, and the men in line to start.
-
-“If these men are as practical in their fighting as they are in this
-kind of work, what an army they would make,” said Harry, who had spent
-five years in one of the crack regiments of the O. N. G., and thought he
-understood the art of breaking camp.
-
-“These men could be made regular fighting machines,” said Mr. Bruce.
-“Did you see how they fought on the nights when the negroes tried to
-make the attack on the villa? They stood like statues until the hot
-breath of the negroes were in their faces, and then their arms rose and
-fell like automatons, and each stroke killed its man. I never saw a
-cooler piece of business in my life.”
-
-“Their great ability in this direction is to be wasted though, if such
-an ability can be wasted,” said Harry; “for with the crevice closed
-again, they will never have a chance to try their powers in this
-direction against invaders.”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it is far better as it is.”
-
-The men had now fallen into line, none of them riding, for only the pack
-animals were to be taken. In a column of tens they started on their
-march over the bad lands toward the crevice. There were fully five
-thousand of these, and they made a most imposing sight as they marched
-in perfect order, each man having slung over his shoulder, his
-cross-bow, and in his belt, his dagger and ax. These equipments had been
-brought along for two reasons; they might have to fight off the negroes,
-and then they had to make hunting tours to get meat for the camp. In
-perfect step, this army of giants moved toward the cliffs. They had gone
-several miles, when, looming up before them, they saw an immense body of
-negroes, speared and hatcheted, and ready for the fray.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLI.
- THE SLAUGHTER.
-
-
-The leader of the large body stopped short and those in the rear craned
-their necks to see what had caused the sudden halt; but they could see
-nothing, for it was only the leaders, who had just reached the top of a
-slight eminence, who could see the large body of negroes, standing with
-shields in place and spears in hand as if expecting the Onians. The men
-looked again and could hardly believe their eyes. No, they could not be
-mistaken; there they were; an array of black, grinning devils,
-brandishing their spears, or pounding their shields with them.
-
-Onrai and his friends, who had been riding in the rear, hurried forward
-when the column stopped, to see what was the matter. It took them
-sometime to do this, but when they arrived at the head of the column and
-saw from their high position on the elephants’ backs, the great body of
-negroes facing them and only half a mile distant, their surprise knew no
-bounds. The Onians looked at the King and his white companions, as if
-wondering if they had been led to this point by a lie, to fight these
-black animals, for none of them realized that these black, shiny-skinned
-and nude beings were human. But why should the King lie to them? They
-were perfectly willing to come here on any mission for the King, and it
-was not necessary to get them here by a ruse.
-
-Again that superstitious fear of the whites took possession of them, and
-their faces began to assume that startled look as if afraid that some
-unknown calamity was about to overtake them. They kept their eyes on the
-whites as they advanced and consulted with the King. Why were they
-talking in such low tones? Why did they not address the men and explain
-this new mystery? Not a word had passed between the Onians, but the same
-fear seemed to take possession of them at the same time, and they looked
-from one to the other and knew that the same thoughts had come to all.
-
-Mr. Bruce looked over the men and noticed that hunted look in their
-faces, and he knew that immediate action must be taken or they would be
-lost; that these men, crazed for the moment by a superstitious fear,
-might turn on them first and, getting them out of the way, turn and flee
-from the strange enemy.
-
-“Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, as he rode up hastily beside the King, “Quick,
-don’t lose a moment, but order the pack animals to the rear. The men are
-becoming demoralized and need immediate action or all is lost. The old
-suspicion in regard to us has again taken possession of them and they
-may turn on us at any moment. It matters little about us, but the
-negroes must be driven back. Give your orders.”
-
-Onrai turned to the men and he too, saw that dread look on their faces.
-
-“Men,” said he, almost beside himself with fear of the consequences if
-he should lose control of them; “men, yonder horde of black demons are
-here to take your country, to take your lives, but worse, to take your
-wives, mothers, brothers and sisters. They are here to destroy our land,
-to devastate our fields of grain and fruit, to steal and kill our
-animals, to destroy our beautiful city and the many villas throughout
-our land. They know no law, they have no religion, they care nothing for
-the lives of others. They will kill us or drive us from our own land,
-into a distant world where we will starve and die. Will you not fight
-for country, home, loved ones and for the right? These demons have come
-through the crevice which we were this day to commence closing, and they
-must be driven back. If we do not drive them back, killing as many as is
-in our power in doing so, then will they force us to travel that path
-which leads from our old Land of On, and which, when once followed, can
-never be retraced. Come, Onians, quickly; shall it be those black beasts
-who shall leave On, or ourselves?”
-
-The men looked at each other in astonishment. They could not realize at
-first that such a state of affairs could possibly exist, as there being
-the remotest possibility of their being driven from this land, which was
-theirs by right of inheritage and possession. The truth began to dawn on
-them, though, as Onrai continued speaking, and when he had finished, a
-low rumbling sound was heard, like the first faint sound of the
-approaching earthquake, but like this it grew in volume, until it broke
-in a mighty shout, and the men were Onrai’s, to do with as he wished.
-Only let them drive from the beautiful land of On the hated beasts which
-faced them, waiting the end of the parley.
-
-Onrai understood that shout, although he had never heard it before as a
-shout of consent, he had heard it frequently as one of approbation, when
-he or others of the land would perform some particularly hard feat in
-athletics, or show great heroism in the hunt. It simply meant that they
-were pleased with what he said, and they were anxious to get at the
-fray.
-
-“I will give you orders at first,” said Onrai, “but you must obey those
-of my companions when they give them. They have had invaders in their
-land and have learned to repulse them, and drive them back. Do as they
-command you and we will be victorious. Are you ready?”
-
-Again that shout.
-
-“Then get the pack animals to the rear quickly.”
-
-Without a word the elephants were driven to the rear, and the men
-awaited further orders.
-
-“Mr. Bruce,” said Mr. Graham, “we think you are better capable of
-handling these men and we will act as your subordinates.”
-
-“I accept the commission,” replied Mr. Bruce, “not because I feel myself
-superior to yourself or Harry, but because some one must act at once. We
-will divide our men into three battalions and march in line of battle.
-Harry, you will take the right. Mr. Graham, you will take the left and I
-will take the centre. If the negroes, as I expect them to do, charge
-straight for the centre, you will each close in on their flanks; but if
-you see the centre giving way, rush for that point at once for we must
-hold the position. Now we will divide our men.”
-
-They divided the men into three battalions and formed them into the line
-of battle, explaining to them, in the meantime, that they must hold fast
-together, and not allow the negroes to break their line. The men went
-about the different manœuvres like old soldiers, when they once saw
-through them.
-
-The line now drew up and Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry, each in front
-of his battalion, mounted on elephants, with Onrai riding next to Mr.
-Bruce in the centre, they marched slowly toward the negroes. Every man
-had his cross-bow in position and arrows ready for use. The formidable
-hatchet and daggers were in the belts handy, and where they could be
-gotten at the most easily. The negroes’ faces had lost the grin, and the
-yells had ceased for the moment as they saw the array of giants
-advancing. They had never before, in all their many wars, stood before
-such a formidable body of men, and their courage was failing them. But
-they had a chief, a wild, barbarous fellow, who knew not what fear was,
-and seeing that cowardly look stealing over the faces of his men, he
-jumped before them and racing up and down in front of the line, halloed
-and yelled, pounding his spear on the shield, and in this way worked the
-men into such a state of bravery, which was only equaled by his own.
-
-Then again facing the army, which was moving silently toward them, he
-gave a few words of command, and with a yell and a rush, they came
-tearing toward the Onians.
-
-“Halt!” thundered Mr. Bruce. “Stand fast and do not let them force your
-line.”
-
-And the black demons came, never stopping until within range, when Mr.
-Bruce, giving command, a volley of arrows poured into the negroes and
-nearly the entire front line of these fell. This checked the negroes but
-rallying in a moment they again charged, and before the Onians could
-raise their bows, the negroes had raised their spears and hurled them at
-their enemy. The volley made most frightful havoc with the front rank,
-and the Onians fell back for a moment, for the first time in their lives
-seeing a body of their men killed in this way. They looked at the dead
-and wounded, not knowing what to think of this fearful slaughter, and
-again the strange fear began to creep over them.
-
-“On, men, do not stop!” commanded Onrai, seeing them falter, “or they
-will kill you all. Don’t you see they have killed your comrades? Avenge
-them!”
-
-And the men, looking up, and seeing the black demons on them, and
-fearing the same fate which had met their companions, made a rush, and
-with the daggers uplifted, on they went at the blacks, meeting them with
-a crash as they came forward, and hurling them back by their superior
-weight. Then began a most fearful slaughter. The Onians, remembering the
-death of their companions, became as Bruce had said they would, regular
-fighting machines. Even he and his subordinates were swept on by the
-irresistible ranks from the rear as they pushed their companions
-forward. Perfect order was kept, however, and those in the front ranks
-wielded the dagger with fearful force and alacrity. The negroes,
-overpowered, and almost crazed with fear at the slaughter going on among
-their people, forgot all about fighting or even defending themselves.
-
-The one great desire to escape these fearful daggers took complete
-possession of them; they turned on their countrymen who were crowding
-them forward, and using their hatchets, fists or feet, they walked, ran,
-rolled or crowded over these, trying to get out of reach of those
-muscular arms which were now as bloody as the knives they wielded, but
-stained with the blood of the negroes. At last they broke into a run and
-started for the crevice, which was a good four or five miles distant.
-The Onians needed no orders now, but rushed wildly after the fleeing
-negroes. The negroes being light of limb, however, and probably used to
-such rough fields as this, gained on the Onians and were some distance
-ahead, when, looking ahead of them they saw another band marching toward
-them. This proved to be a reinforcement, and the chief of the routed
-band, after haranguing his tribe for a moment, prevailed on them to
-turn, and with the reinforcement again give the giants battle.
-
-The flying Onians were again brought to a halt by Mr. Bruce, and formed
-in regular line of battle. The remaining negroes also formed in line of
-battle and advanced, as nearly as could be judged, almost in equal
-numbers to the Onians. Their chief was again running up and down in
-front of the line crying, and soon had the men worked up into another
-fiendish frenzy. Mr. Bruce halted his men, determined to wait for the
-negroes. The negroes came tearing forward until within a few feet of the
-Onians, when the latter again raised their cross-bows and sent a volley
-of arrows into the front ranks of the negroes. But the negroes were
-expecting them now, and turned the arrows aside with their shields,
-scarcely a dozen having fallen. They did not stop, but kept up the mad
-rush until within twenty-five feet of the Onians, when they stopped
-suddenly and their right arms shooting out quickly the fearful, sharp,
-spear-pointed hatchets, flew toward the Onians, and striking the
-unprotected bodies of the giants, passed clear through them. Then, with
-a sudden jerk of the wrist, the hatchet was wrenched from the gaping
-wound, and pulled back to the negro by the leather string which was
-attached to the handle of the hatchet. Then again would the deadly
-weapon be hurled, and again buried in the breast of a fresh victim; and
-again and again, the whole fearful thing being done so quickly that the
-weapon could scarcely be seen flying through the air. The slaughter was
-worse than had been that of the negroes by the knives of the Onians. The
-horribly lacerated bodies were being piled up high on the ground, but
-the brave Onians still stood perfectly helpless in front of those
-merciless hatchets.
-
-Mr. Bruce was nonplussed for a moment. This style of warfare was so new
-to him and so horrible, he could but look and wonder at the horrible
-ingenuity of the weapons.
-
-“Send a volley of arrows into them,” cried the King, who seemed to come
-to his senses first.
-
-The men mechanically raised their bows, but before they could spring
-them, the deadly hatchets struck them full in the chests or bodies, and
-torn and bleeding, with a hole clean through them, in which an arm could
-have been shoved, they fell headlong over the bodies of their
-companions, who had met the same miserable fate. The situation was
-becoming desperate. Men who had shown such bravery, and who could on
-equal terms annihilate the army before them, were beginning to quail
-before that fearful onslaught, and were unconsciously probably, falling
-back. Still that fearful, never-ceasing charge of flying hatchets.
-Slowly the men fell back, but the movement was becoming quicker each
-moment. In a few minutes more they would be in a run, and all would be
-lost.
-
-Mr. Bruce was growing desperate, as he saw this grand army being
-demoralized by one which was so inferior in every respect. Riding down
-the line with the huge elephant, which was pierced by the hatchets as he
-passed before them, he called to the men to take courage and rally once
-more. Onrai, too, rode before them, and by every word he knew, tried to
-imbue them with new courage. But he understood how these poor men, who
-had been kept in ignorance their whole lives, of the existence of other
-races, and the art of fighting, could not understand why this awful
-slaughter should be, or who these demons could be who were mowing them
-down by hundreds. The horrible dread was taking possession of them
-again, and Onrai and his companions saw this.
-
-“Men of On,” said Onrai, in despair, “these devils will not only kill
-you and your companions, but they will kill your wives, sisters and
-brothers; they will throw down your houses, they will destroy the land.
-Brave men of On, who turn not from the lion, tiger or elephant, do not
-let these black beasts show themselves the greater. Turn on them, cut
-them, chop them, beat them, hammer their foul bodies into the earth,
-slash them until not a piece large enough is left to feed a jackal. On
-to them.”
-
-Mr. Bruce had given Harry and Mr. Graham orders to close in with their
-battalions, as soon as Onrai could again encourage the men to advance,
-and show no mercy; to ride into the black ranks with the elephants, and
-crush them beneath their feet. Accordingly, when Onrai had ceased
-speaking, and had turned and had himself led the way into the black
-ranks, the men went with a rush, notwithstanding that hundreds of them
-dropped in the advance. Harry and Mr. Graham closed in on their flanks,
-and were slowly surrounding the now emboldened blacks.
-
-Still they plied the frightful weapons, and scores of the Onians were
-dropping. It was a fearful advance, but the men were sticking to it
-bravely; but there were great chances against their ever overcoming this
-hellish tribe, with their fiendish weapons. The Onians were again losing
-ground, they could not withstand that awful massacre.
-
-But what is this coming up in the rear? The earth trembles as with
-another earthquake, but there is no rumbling with it now. The men looked
-back. Ah, yes, it is Sedai mounted on Gip, and with a hundred immense
-elephants back of him, all being hurried on by their riders. Quickly the
-elephants come forward, their swinging gait turning their bodies from
-side to side, the earth trembling with each fall of their huge feet.
-Straight for the blacks they made the ranks of the Onians breaking away
-to allow them to pass. The blacks look and see the awful enemy coming
-straight for them, on which their murderous hatchets could have no
-effect. They hurled once more the hatchets at the Onians, and pulling
-these back, dropped them at their sides, and tried by flight to escape
-the crushing feet of the elephants. But the elephants rushed into their
-midst, not only killing with their fearful feet but using their trunks
-and tusks as well, slaying and crushing as they went. Now the Onians
-made a charge, and clutching their daggers in one hand and the hatchets
-in the other, done as Onrai had told them to do, and hacked and chopped,
-and cut and beat and pounded the enemy, their faces and arms being
-covered with the blood, but still showing no mercy; they were for the
-time merciless brutes. They had fallen on to the flanks of the negroes,
-and such was their fearful onslaught, and so fast were these hacked and
-mutilated bodies piled up, that it looked as if the awful carnage would
-not cease, until every black carcass was heaped up in one fearful mass
-of reeking and quivering flesh.
-
-But a low, rumbling sound is heard, which grows louder and louder, and
-comes nearer and nearer. It is another earthquake. The Onians stop for a
-moment in their awful massacre, and in this one moment the remainder of
-the black horde turn and make for the crevice. The earth was shaking
-fearfully though and the men could hardly keep their feet. On they
-staggered, until the Onians, finally realizing that the blacks were
-escaping them, made a rush after them. But the earth still trembled and
-it was suddenly growing dark. What was wrong with the volcano? A huge
-mass of stones and smoke came forth in a rush in a greater volume than
-it had at any time before, and great showers of rock and ashes were
-pouring from its hellish mouth. On the negroes ran, and on the Onians
-sped after them. The negroes had now reached the crevice, and were
-fighting for a foothold on the ledge. Some of them were successful, but
-most of them were forced over the side, falling into the yawning abyss
-below. The Onians were about to dash after them, when a fearful,
-deafening report was heard, and looking up to the volcano, they saw a
-mighty mass of molten lava thrown far into the heavens, and then
-dropping back into the crater, overflow the wall of this, and fall in a
-great stream into the crevice. Our friends, spellbound, watched the
-sight, while the immense flow of lava rolled over the sides of the
-mountain, and into the crevice, filling up that great hole. It was
-running in a monstrous flow, easily five hundred feet wide, and twenty
-feet deep, as near as our friends could calculate. It came pouring
-through the crevice, well up toward the party, and they started back, in
-alarm; but it gained on them, and to make it worse, a terrible shower of
-hot ashes and water was pouring down on them. They were blinded and
-gasping for breath, turned toward the villa. They were being burned and
-scalded, their feet becoming blistered; they could not see, they could
-not breathe.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLII.
- BURIED ALIVE.
-
-
-And so they stumbled blindly on, blindly, for they could not open their
-eyes because of the fearful dust and ashes. The thick cloud of dust and
-ashes came forth in a mighty avalanche, burying the land and filling the
-air with its death-dealing particles; making such a darkness as could be
-felt; a close, suffocating darkness more like the blackness of an
-unventilated dungeon than the open darkness of night; a darkness which
-was penetrated only by the mighty light of the belching volcano, the
-light varying with every phase of the eruption; now a lurid glare which
-gave the dust-covered earth the appearance of a blood-stained floor;
-again it would change to a blue which would almost equal the soft rays
-of the moon; then it would die away to a faint green, casting a
-death-like glow over all.
-
-And the fearful rumbling continued and far down in the bowels of the
-earth, could be heard that great lake or river of molten rock and ore,
-rushing to the outlet which would free it; and the earth would tremble
-with the fearful fight of the mass as it surged and burned and crushed
-its way through its underground channels. Then again could be heard the
-hissing and blowing off of the steam as it escaped from the crevice in
-the crater.
-
-About the fleeing army fell the hot ashes and steam. They had made a
-wild rush toward the villa when the first shower had struck them, and
-they were still hurrying as fast as their bleeding feet could carry
-them. They had covered miles, and this was wonderful when it was
-considered, that the ashes had fallen almost to the depth of a foot; and
-each step that they took they would sink into the hot, ragged substance
-which would burn and blister their feet, protected only by sandals. And
-their progress would be suddenly checked now and then, by great
-fragments of rock, having been hurled by the awful power of the volcano,
-falling directly in their path, perhaps crushing one of the poor Onians
-beneath its weight. Then in their blindness they would rush into each
-other, knocking each other down, and burnt and bleeding, and almost
-smothered by the fearful dust, they could hardly regain their feet. But
-hurry as they would their progress was growing slower each moment and
-they were not getting out of the fearful shower of dust and ashes. This
-seemed to grow worse as they advanced, and the survivors, who were still
-left to suffer on, were fast giving out.
-
-It looked as if they could not possibly survive the terrible struggle,
-this unequal fight with the forces of the earth’s interior. The
-atmosphere would clear for a moment, and the lurid glare of the volcano
-would again light up the scene, giving a momentary hope which would be
-killed again by a heavier downpour of ashes and dust. Then the struggle
-would recommence; a silent struggle, for no sound was made by these
-helpless creatures, as they fought on, gasping for breath, reeling in
-their weakness, falling now; but putting forth another great effort and
-standing erect once more they would stumble ahead again and so on,
-until, strength exhausted, they would fall for the last time, the shower
-of ashes and dust soon choking their last breath, and burying the burned
-and bleeding bodies beneath their awful folds. But these Onians were
-more than ordinary men, they had more vital life in their bodies, they
-were strong to the last muscle; their every sinew was developed and
-health and exercise made them powerful, and so they kept up the struggle
-longer than would our friends had they been on foot. But they had been
-mounted on great elephants during the battle. They at first mounted them
-upon leaving the camp in the morning, expecting only to accompany the
-men to their scene of labor when they would return. So when the negroes
-were met, and they saw that a battle was inevitable, they remained
-mounted so as to better conduct the fight.
-
-At first it had been suggested that they should ride zebras, but it was
-decided to take the elephants, as they would stand the hard journey over
-the bad lands better. And it had been a lucky decision on their part,
-for now they were saved the fearful fight with that hot shower of ashes,
-which not only filled the air, making it almost impossible to breathe,
-but which also made a bed which was nearly impossible to walk over or
-through, as the bed had grown to such a depth, that it was nothing more
-than wading, Sedai had been foremost, in the charge of the elephants
-into the negro band, and had gotten far ahead of his friends, reaching
-the volcano even before some of the negroes had. When he saw that awful
-sea of lava pouring over the side of the crevice, he had turned and
-motioned his comrades to follow, and had made Gip understand that he
-must travel as he had never traveled before. The intelligent animal
-seemed to understand, and hurried on, too, by the heat and burning ashes
-as they fell on his back, he started on a run which would have soon
-brought them safely to the villa, if the air and road had not been
-obstructed by the miserable ashes.
-
-But the elephants, all of which had followed Gip, were, too,
-experiencing the torture of the awful cloud and shower, and they had
-stumbled many times, over the rocks and in the soft bed which was
-getting deeper each moment. The elephants had kept close together
-though, and had in this way, kept trodden a very good path. Our friends
-could see, during the few intervals when the cloudy atmosphere would
-break and the light of the volcano penetrate this, the poor Onians
-stumbling along in the darkness and scorching cinders. They had called
-to them to keep up courage, but it was needless advice to these men, for
-they would not give up until the last moment.
-
-They had tried to get the elephants to kneel, and take on their backs,
-as many as they could carry; but the animals, crazed by pain and fear,
-dashed on, often crushing beneath their feet, those whom their riders
-would save. And so the elephants rushed on and as the light would break
-through the awful blackness, the riders could see that the number of
-poor pedestrians was growing less and less, until at last, none were
-seen. They had all succumbed to the overpowering cloud of ashes, and
-their bodies now strewed the ground, which but a few hours before they
-had passed over, strong in healthful life; and of the five thousand who
-had started on the march that morning not one was left; all, all had met
-their fate. Some by the deadly hatchets of the negroes, others by the
-fearful downpour of hot cinders.
-
-The Land of On had met its first great catastrophe; it had for the first
-time in his history, experienced some of those adversities, which had so
-frequently befallen the other countries of the world. But our friends
-were still alive. Onrai, Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce, Harry and Sedai, were
-being borne through the blackness by the elephants. Their throats were
-parched, even their lungs seemed burning up with the great heated shower
-of ashes, which they had been compelled to breathe so long. Their eyes
-were almost swollen shut, their faces and bodies were covered with
-blisters where the cruel, hot cinders had struck them. Even they, who
-had not been exposed wholly to the storm, and who had been spared the
-awful struggle of limping through the hot bed of cinders, even they
-began to despair of ever getting out of this radius of dust and ashes.
-
-And the elephants were now beginning to stumble and sway from side to
-side, growing weaker and weaker with the terrible exertion, their
-strength being sapped by the plungings into the ash-bed, which was now
-beyond their knees. They would rock from side to side striking each
-other, but, again bracing up, try it once more. The position of our
-friends was becoming unsafe, as the elephants were liable to fall at any
-moment and crush them beneath their huge bodies; but it meant sure death
-to leave their backs, so expecting death to overtake them each moment,
-either from the burning air which was scorching their very lungs, or
-beneath the prostrate animals which were now struggling so bravely to
-save them. They were hurrying on, but where? Only to death. Again there
-was a fearful rumbling, the very bowels of the earth seeming to be
-disjointed and ground to fragments. It grew louder and louder; it almost
-deafened the sounds of hissing steam and ashes which fell around the
-little group, and the sucking sound caused by the sinking in and pulling
-out of the feet of the fast-failing animals.
-
-Finally the earth began to shake and the exhausted elephants, unable to
-withstand this new enemy, fell to their knees and then flat on their
-sides. The men had strength enough left to jump and save themselves from
-being crushed, but they were forced nearly to the hips into the ashes,
-and they could not extricate themselves. Then this was the last, this
-was the end of the happy sojourn in the Land of On. No, it could not be,
-they must not die here in this miserable way and be buried by the
-never-ceasing shower; they must struggle on.
-
-“Up,” said Mr. Bruce to his elephant, as the rumbling ceased and the
-earth again became steady. “Once more, now,” he halloed out as he
-reached forward and struck the poor beast across the ear with his hook.
-But the elephant, after making several ineffectual struggles, gave a
-plaintive cry and let its head drop into the relentless ashes. As in a
-quicksand, the five men stood perfectly helpless, and their lives fast
-going out. The elephants had, one by one, given up the struggle, and
-were now panting and gasping and waiting for the end. They seemed to
-realize that they were doomed and the plaintive cry would break from
-their gasping throats, as if asking aid of those whom they had tried to
-save, but all were powerless. Hope was fast failing them. They could not
-possibly last much longer, but what mattered it whether they went now,
-or lived to suffer for a few moments longer. There was no power on earth
-that could save them now, and they must look death square in the face.
-It seemed hard surely, to die so near to friends, and life and sunshine,
-for they knew that this death-dealing shower could not extend many miles
-unless it be worse than was that other.
-
-They knew that the dear ones were safe in the villa, for, though they
-were in the radius of the shower, they were sheltered from this, and the
-flow of lava had not run toward the villa, or they would have seen it.
-It was some consolation then to know, that if they must die, these dear
-ones at least were safe. But what will become of them alone in this
-strange land? They would have to entrust themselves wholly to the
-people, who had once looked upon them with superstitious fear, and who
-might again, after this dreadful catastrophe, turn on them, and having
-no longer any one to protect them, or having no defense to offer as they
-had before, destroy them. It was not pleasant to think thus as the awful
-ashes continued to pile up around them, burying them alive.
-
-The pain which this thought gave them of possible danger to their loved
-ones, was worse than the physical tortures which they were now
-suffering, and they turned and wrenched their bodies in their living
-graves, in very agony of mind. And Onrai, too, seemed to be suffering
-more than bodily pain. If his thoughts could have been read, they
-probably would have told the story of baffled hopes, and of the death of
-aspirations which the love for Enola had kindled in him. It was harder
-for him to die thus than for any of the others, for he had been so
-strong and mighty, and his life was full of such bright hopes, and he
-had so much to live for, but it was ended. All, all was lost.
-
-But may be not, thought Mr. Bruce, for Gip, who had laid for a moment
-perfectly quiet, had now begun to again exert his awful strength and was
-twisting and plunging about, as if to make a place on which he could
-stand. He accomplished this finally and rose to his feet. He had had a
-short rest from the fearful struggles of the flight, and he could again
-commence the fight. Sedai, who was near him, caught the howdah as he
-rose and was lifted out of the ashes. He then made Gip understand that
-he was to help the others, and one by one the great elephant, lifted by
-his trunk, raised them to his back. Then starting in the direction,
-which they had kept since starting on the awful ride, the great beast
-fought on; they had been moving thus for several moments, when he
-suddenly stopped and refused to move further. Just then the sky became
-light for the moment, and a zebra was seen lying in their path, and
-lying beneath it, the body of Enola.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLIII.
- LOST.
-
-
-But what of those who had been left behind? What had been their fate,
-and how had they spent those dreadful hours, when they could but
-reasonably expect that their companions, who had left them only that
-morning alive with hope and health, had met the most miserable death?
-The morning had been beautiful, and all had gone to see the striking of
-the tents and breaking of camp, and they had followed the marching army
-for some distance over the bad lands; but at the earnest request of the
-men they had at last turned and gone back to the villa. They had noticed
-the continued inactivity of the volcano and had hoped, woman fashion,
-that the worst might be over, and their spirits had been, accordingly,
-bright.
-
-But the long morning hours grew tiresome, and the women became restless,
-and could find no way to pass the weary time. They spent a while on the
-terrace, but the garden had lost all its beauty by the shower of ashes.
-They ate their luncheon mechanically at midday and then tried to sleep
-awhile, but made a sad failure of this, and at last, not knowing what
-else to do, they had ordered their zebras and started for a ride down
-the avenue. It was not long before they were well beyond the radius of
-falling ashes, and it was a great relief to them to see green fields and
-shady trees again, and the beautiful smooth pavement of the avenue. They
-rode for a long distance, forgetting, in their pleasure, that they were
-getting a long way from the villa. But the sun was so bright here, and
-everything so fresh and green, and the air so pure, they dreaded
-returning to the rather doubtful atmosphere of the villa.
-
-But they must turn now, for the sun was getting well down toward the
-west, and what is that? The question was easily answered, for they had
-become quite accustomed to the rumbling sound of the earthquakes. Still
-it startled them, and they urged their beasts forward. The sound grew
-nearer, and then the earth began to shake so violently the zebras
-tottered and almost fell. And then another awful shock came, and the
-zebras became frightened, and, taking the soft bit between their teeth,
-they tore down the avenue. Then the awful explosion came like the report
-of a thousand cannons, and the riders saw the awful spout of dust,
-ashes, steam, smoke, pouring from the volcano, and almost immediately
-afterward they were engulfed in that fearful black atmosphere which
-choked and blinded them.
-
-The zebras stopped so suddenly that their riders almost lost their
-seats, but by kind words, and by gently patting them, they were
-persuaded to proceed carefully. Here the avenue was plain to see, and
-there was little fear of losing the way, but the ashes were falling with
-such force and such volume, the roadway was fast becoming blocked. Still
-the zebras were light-footed, and their riders had hopes of their being
-able to reach the villa. But the borders of the avenue continued in that
-unbroken line of trees, and the surrounding country was so much alike,
-it was hard to tell just where to turn off to the villa. The thought had
-occurred to Enola that they might be carried by this, and on and on
-until the beasts, overcome, would sink to the ground, leaving the riders
-to their fate. It was impossible to see anything, excepting now and
-then, when the light of the volcano would break through the awful gloom
-for a moment. Even then the air was so thick with the cinders and dust,
-they could not penetrate it more than a few feet.
-
-And so they plodded along, each moment the gloom becoming more dense and
-the avenue pavement harder for the zebras to traverse. They must
-certainly have reached the villa by this time, but for all they could
-see, they might still be ten miles from it. They could not place any
-dependence on the zebras, for they were too badly scared to act
-rationally; besides their senses of smell and sight were entirely lost
-in this stifling atmosphere.
-
-The situation was becoming desperate, but there was positively nothing
-to do but ride on with the forlorn hope of riding beyond the circle of
-the shower. But if they could not reach the villa, why not turn and ride
-back to the green fields and open country again? Aye, why not. The
-thought had occurred to Enola, and the more she thought of it, the more
-feasible the idea seemed to be, and at last it occurred to her that this
-might be their only chance of escape. Waiting until the volcano’s light
-broke through the gloom for a moment, she motioned to her friends to
-follow her, and after a moment she managed to turn her zebra’s head, and
-when this was done, and they had gotten started in the opposite
-direction, they seemed to have the wind at their backs and they could
-ride with a little more comfort. But the darkness was intense now, for
-night had closed in, and if possible, had added to the Egyptian
-blackness. The riders could only see each other at very infrequent
-intervals when the volcano’s light would, for a moment, melt the gloom
-and give the almost exhausted women a moment’s respite.
-
-They were moving very slowly, the ashes getting so thick over the avenue
-pavements, that the zebras found it almost impossible to further beat
-their way through it. But one of the infrequent light spells now allowed
-them to look about again, and Enola saw that they had left the avenue.
-On an ordinary dark night this could have been easily detected by the
-sound of the zebras’ hoofs, but now the grass sod and the hard onyx
-pavement were the same; they were both lost beneath the carpet of ashes.
-This new aspect of things did not please our friends. They were being
-overcome very rapidly by the thick atmosphere; it was killing them by
-inches. They could scarcely breathe any longer; every breath was like
-the stab of a stiletto, the sharp particles of the ashes had penetrated
-and cut the soft membranes of the throat and lungs, and then that steamy
-air, upon touching the raw flesh would cause the most acute pain. Their
-hands and faces were blistered, and their eyes seemed to be burning out
-of their heads.
-
-Enola and Nellie stood it better than Mrs. Graham. She had almost fallen
-from her zebra several times, and Nellie and Enola were now trying to
-ride on either side of her, to save her from falling, if possible. But
-it was growing worse each moment, and hope was nearly dead. They were
-staggering along in the darkness, the zebras every now and then
-stumbling up against a tree, and nearly rubbing their riders from their
-backs. They felt satisfied that they had lost their way, and if this was
-so, and they could not again reach the avenue, then, indeed, might all
-hope be abandoned. Black as Erebus, the air was not only laden with the
-death-dealing ashes, but was so hot and humid, that no living thing
-could withstand it for any length of time.
-
-It seemed an age since that first awful rumbling of the earth, and this
-fearful darkness overtook them; it seemed that night ought to have given
-way to day and the day to night again. So acute was their pain, so
-fearful the darkness, so quiet all else but the rumbling of the earth
-and the hissing of the steam in the volcano, that time itself seemed to
-stand still waiting for the hellish scene to pass. In such a moment one
-could imagine that a lifetime had been passed, and if youthful features
-should be changed to those of old age in such a night of suffering, it
-would not seem strange, for in those few short hours more suffering is
-crowded than in many years of ordinary life, and when it is all over
-with, one cannot realize that this could be in such a short space of
-time. Then these women were fast losing consciousness; their brains were
-in a whirl; they could no longer think; they had almost grown insensible
-to their pain; their eyes no longer tried to penetrate the darkness
-about them; they no longer tried to guide the zebras as they had done
-heretofore, notwithstanding that the zebras were more likely to know the
-right path than themselves. They still clung to the mane and rein and
-tried hard to retain their seats on the backs of the zebras, but they
-did this mechanically and not because they were guided by any spirit of
-self-protection.
-
-They had now became separated too, and each of the zebra was trying to
-pick out a path for itself. But it was dreadful, for the zebras were now
-also wandering on from a mere sense of habit, and not because they had
-any longer any hope of escaping. Their heads dropped until their noses
-almost touched the ash-covered ground. Their eyelids seemed frozen in a
-cramped position over the eyes and the balls of their eyes looked out
-like pieces of glass which had been rubbed with sand paper. There was no
-longer any sight in those eyes; there could not be after being exposed
-to the beating ashes and dust as long as they had. The legs of the poor
-beasts were raw to the knees, but still they plodded through the ashes
-which must have set them crazy with pain, if they too had not lost all
-sense of pain.
-
-Such dreadful sufferings could not help but make one helplessly mad. It
-was a hell, an awful, reason-destroying hell, but a merciful hell in a
-way, for although it lacerated the poor, tortured bodies of its victims,
-it at the same time destroyed all consciousness of their suffering. So
-like poor, undying spirits in a helpless state of painless suffering, if
-such a thing could be, the zebras wandered on, bearing the almost
-lifeless bodies of the women.
-
-Suddenly Enola half roused herself and opened her swollen eyes. Only for
-a moment, however, for they soon closed again and she lapsed into that
-comatose state, and then had dropped to the zebra’s neck as before. But
-again the eyes half opened and this time she showed signs of returning
-consciousness.
-
-But the eyes closed again for a moment and then she starts as if having
-been struck; no, she had not been mistaken, there it was, a light
-burning through the darkness. Could she call for help? Her throat was
-dry and parched; she had not tried to make a sound in hours, days it
-seemed to her, but she must try now; so opening the baked lips she made
-an effort, but it was useless. She could not articulate. But the zebras
-were moving slowly toward the light and they might see her yet. It must
-be the villa and they were safe at last. She turned to point the light
-out to her companions, but they are gone. She looked again, for just at
-that moment, the flash of light broke through the gloom. But no, her
-companions were no longer with her. Had they found their way to a place
-of safety and had she been lost in the darkness, or had they been lost?
-She tried to remember when she last saw them, but she could not. She had
-a faint recollection of their having all been together sometime during
-this awful night, or, was it night? She could not say. It might have
-been years ago, so indefinite had grown the flight of time. She again
-turned toward the light; yes, it was still there, and then she tried to
-turn the head of her zebra towards the spot. Her arm was stiff and she
-could hardly move, but she managed to slap the zebra on the side of the
-neck, but he did not turn. He still wandered on in that aimless way,
-seeming to heed nothing.
-
-Oh, this was fearful. She tried again and again but the only response
-the poor beast made, was to drop dead in his tracks. She felt him giving
-way under her and made a last effort to save herself, but too late; the
-beast caught her limbs as he fell and half burying her in the soft
-ashes, held her fast. She tried hard and wrenched the tender limbs until
-torn and bleeding, but to no purpose; she was held as secure as if tied
-to the side of the beast. She was too exhausted to make much of an
-effort, and the little she had made, had caused her to lose
-consciousness for the moment.
-
-The moments flew by but all unknown to the poor, insensible girl and
-death seemed inevitable. There was no hope now, there could be none,
-unless it came from where that mocking light still gleamed through the
-darkness. But it would have been as helpful to the dying woman had it
-been ten miles away. It was better then, that the poor wanderer should
-never again wake to consciousness, for she would be saved the helpless
-suffering caused by knowing that she was near help and yet was beyond
-it.
-
-The ashes still fell in torrents, the humid air was growing more
-intolerable each moment with the hot steam and dust, and the blackness
-had grown more intense. Yes, it could be felt, and here in the midst of
-all its hellish night, lay Enola dying.
-
-But no, what is that huge mass which has almost tramped on her, but
-which stops just in time? It is Gip.
-
-[Illustration: She tried hard and wrenched her limbs until torn and
-bleeding, but to no purpose.—_Page 338._]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLIV.
- OUT OF THE ASHES.
-
-
-Yes it was Gip. Great, strong and faithful Gip. The only surviving
-animal of all that vast number which had started on that fateful morning
-for the cliffs. His great strength had enabled him to overcome all
-dangers and obstacles thus far, and on his back he bore the few whom he
-had saved. And his almost human intelligence, coupled with his animal
-sagacity, had enabled him to direct his course straight for the villa,
-through the almost impenetrable atmosphere and fearful darkness.
-
-Each moment the riders had expected to see him overcome by these
-obstacles, but he stumbled on, going down on his knees at times, when he
-would become too exhausted to move another step; but after resting for a
-moment, he would struggle to his feet again and make another effort. He
-was almost blind; he must be for he had been exposed for so many hours
-to this cyclone of ashes. But he could still see a little, or else he
-would not have stopped when he was about to crush out the little
-remaining life left in Enola. Or, was it that animal instinct that made
-him realize that he was about to tread on a human being? But the light
-from the volcano which now half lit up the weird scene, must have
-enabled him to see the prostrate zebra and Enola, for he had only stood
-for a moment, when he lowered his monstrous trunk and catching the zebra
-firmly about the neck, lifted him completely from off Enola and laid it
-at one side. Then he caught up Enola as tenderly as a mother would lift
-her babe, and raised her to his back, where Onrai, who seemed to be the
-only one who had retained consciousness, took her in his arms, and after
-patting the noble beast gently on the end of his trunk to make him
-understand that he appreciated this last noble deed of his, he settled
-back in the crowded howdah and also lost consciousness.
-
-Gip stood for a moment longer and looked about him. Yes, he must have
-seen, for his head turned until it was in range with the light seen by
-Enola, and then he starts towards it. The light grew larger as he drew
-nearer to it, and he was finally stopped by the terrace of the villa. He
-had only hesitated for a moment, however, and then had mounted the few
-steps and crossed the terrace to the high arched doorway of the villa.
-Over this had been drawn a silk covering, to keep out, as much as
-possible, the ashes and dust. Gip did not stop for this, however, but
-pushed right through it. Two or three frightened attendants saw the
-great beast enter with its burden of unconscious human beings, and
-hurrying up to it they stood for a moment, while Gip kneeled for those
-whom he had so bravely rescued, to step from his back. He was weak and
-almost exhausted; his great body heaved with a short quick respiration,
-which the heated air and over-exertion had caused. His back was covered
-with a thick coating of the ashes, and those who were lying or sitting
-in the howdah were almost buried in this awful death-dealing substance.
-
-But Gip could no longer keep the tiring position, and giving a last
-short pant, he fell over on his side.
-
-Those in the howdah were thrown upon the hard stone flooring and laid
-there in a heap. The attendants now recognizing the King and his white
-companions, hastened to their assistance, and in a very short time they
-were laid upon couches and after the scorched garments had been removed
-from the bodies, they were deluged with cool water and oil. No part of
-their bodies had escaped the tortures of the hot ashes and steam, and
-they were almost raw. The limbs of the men who had been buried for some
-time in the bed of cinders, were horribly burned and blistered, and even
-Enola, who, having laid under the dead zebra for quite a while, had
-escaped with hardly less injury. Gently the attendants worked on the
-bleeding bodies, not knowing whether life had left them or not. It
-matters little, they thought, for it was but a question of a little
-while longer until all would be buried beneath the shower of death,
-which was slowly but surely burying them.
-
-But their love for the King and their regard for his guests still
-dominated over all other feelings, and they worked hard and faithfully
-on the survivors. Enola was the first to recover consciousness, and when
-she had fully recovered, and she remembered the awful ride and that Mrs.
-Graham and Nellie had been her companions, she tried hard to make the
-attendants understand that she wanted to know something of her friends.
-But the poor, bewildered women could not comprehend her meaning and
-sadly shook their heads. But Enola did not despair, and kept at them,
-until, in their desire to help her, they sent for one of the men who
-managed to grasp her meaning, and going out made inquiries about her
-companions.
-
-They had not returned with the others who had been saved, and he now
-gave this information to Enola. She almost became frantic and made such
-pitiful signs for the attendant to go and search for her friends, that,
-notwithstanding his awful fear of the dust-laden atmosphere outside,
-which had killed so many of his companions, he went for Enola, promising
-to make a search for Mrs. Graham and Nellie. And he did. He persuaded
-two of his companions to accompany him, and with them he managed to
-reach the stables, where the only three remaining elephants had been
-left before the eruption. It took considerable time to persuade the
-beasts to leave their comfortable quarters and go into the darkness
-outside. But the darkness cleared in a short time, and the lurid light
-from the volcano made things as light as day. The shower of ashes
-ceased, and the atmosphere became comparatively clear, and the elephants
-strode forth into the deep covering of ashes.
-
-The attendant had been able to get but little information from Enola, as
-to what direction they had come from when they turned their zebras back.
-She could give them positively no information and could not even make
-them understand that her zebra had wandered from the avenue, some
-distance, she thought from the villa; for she could not articulate a
-word, and the men were not accustomed to reading signs.
-
-But the men started, each taking a different course from the front of
-the villa, hoping in this way to find the lost women. One of the
-attendants stumbled over the body of Enola’s zebra the first thing, but
-after examining this and learning that neither of the women were with
-it, he again took up the tramp and had gone but a little distance
-further, when his elephant stopped. The man looked about him but could
-see nothing. He tried to urge the elephant forward, but he would not
-move. He then slid from its back and was half buried in the soft ashes.
-But his foot had struck something which was soft and giving, and
-stooping down, just above the surface he saw a woman’s head. It was Mrs.
-Graham. He gently pushed the ashes away from her body, and speaking to
-the elephant, it kneeled, and the man, after much trouble, managed to
-crawl into the howdah with his lifeless burden. He continued a short
-distance further, when, not finding the body of Nellie, he returned to
-the villa.
-
-Mrs. Graham was carried carefully into one of the apartments and given
-the same treatment as had been the others. It was only a few moments
-later when one of the other men brought in Nellie. He had found her in
-much the same position as had been found her mother, but nearly a mile
-distant from her. It was thought for a long time by those who were
-working on them, that they were surely dead, but after very hard rubbing
-and frequent applications of native restoratives, they began to show
-signs of life, and after a little they opened their eyes and looked
-about them. That these women had withstood the dreadful experiences of
-the past few hours, could scarcely be believed, but so they had, and had
-regained consciousness long before the men.
-
-They too, though, had been brought back to life and their first
-inquiries had been of the women. The attendants had told them that the
-ladies were safe but had been somewhat overcome by the close atmosphere,
-and were slightly indisposed as a consequence. But Onrai knew that he
-had seen Enola and had assisted her in some way, but how he could not
-tell, for the whole fearful experience seemed, in some way, like a
-horrible nightmare. He could not yet fully realize that the events of
-the day had really occurred. They seemed too horrible to be real. He
-shuddered as he thought of the massacre of his men and later, the
-horrible slaughter of the negroes, and then the last occurrence, when
-the remainder of his men had perished. Then the fearful ride for life,
-the last hope, when the elephants gave out, and then the terrible fear
-that Gip would give out after he had once more renewed hope in them.
-
-Then he saw Enola lying there nearly buried beneath the dead zebra; he
-had seen Gip raise her with his trunk, then he had clasped her in his
-arms; but all was a blank from here on, until he had wakened and found
-the attendants standing about him, and had felt himself bandaged from
-head to foot. Yes, it must be, the whole fearful story must be real;
-else why this terrible weakness and soreness and all these bandages. He
-was convinced at last, that it was no dream, but a terrible reality. But
-he marveled that he and his companions yet lived. The whole thing now
-passed before the mind’s eye and as he remembered the flying assagais
-and the formidable spear-pointed hatchets, and later, the death-dealing
-shower of ashes; when he thought of how men and beasts had dropped about
-him like sheep, he could but wonder that they, of all the others, should
-survive.
-
-But that brought him to Gip, and he wondered what had become of the
-noble beast. He signed to his attendant that he wished to know of the
-elephant which had brought them back. The man left the apartment for a
-moment, and then returning, said that the elephant had borne them
-directly into the large hall of the villa, and had dropped dead a moment
-later. But this did not please Onrai, and he gave orders to see that the
-elephant had restoratives given him, and to be sure that he was dead
-before they gave him up. The man had taken several of his companions,
-and they had gone to work on the great beast. He was turned on his back
-with great difficulty, and buckets full of stimulants were poured down
-his throat. His head was deluged with water, and everything was done to
-restore the brave animal to which the survivors owed their lives. And
-their work was rewarded at last by the animal showing signs of life, and
-a little later, by his again turning on his side and attempting to rise.
-This he finally did, and staggering about for a while, he then laid down
-in one corner of the hall and was now resting quietly.
-
-So all the survivors were doing as well as could be expected after the
-dreadful experiences through which they had passed. But what of the
-eruption?
-
-Shortly after Gip had burst into the villa with his precious load, the
-shower had ceased, as if the volcano had known that now there were no
-more victims for it to destroy, and it was useless for it to further
-keep up the terrible strain which had shook the earth and covered a
-great part of the surrounding country with a layer of ashes. But the
-internal fires were still raging, for the great, lurid light flashed
-into the dark heavens above, and made all bright within the radius of
-several miles. There were no more shocks, and the violent eruption
-seemed to have spent its greatest force. From the cliff to a point some
-three miles beyond the villa, in which lay our friends, the ground was
-covered with a layer of ashes well mixed with a sort of loam, which
-would probably make a fertile soil in time. Some large rocks of a lava
-formation lay here and there, having been hurled by the mighty internal
-fires to this distance.
-
-The lava flow had ceased, too, as far as could be seen, for none of the
-red stream was now visible coming over the side of the cliff.
-
-It had been very fortunate for the survivors that the flow of lava had
-confined itself to certain channels, for if it had taken the old course,
-which was shown plainly by the bad lands, there would be no hope of
-their escaping. It had run over the sides of the great crevice when our
-friends stood looking at it, and it, together with the falling ashes,
-had been fast filling the awful crevice. But would the great eruption
-end here? Truly it had done damage enough, but would the internal fires
-be satisfied with this temporary vent? It seemed hardly possible that
-they would, and if they did burst forth again, what would be the further
-outcome? But now it was quiet. The hot bed of steam and ashes were fast
-cooling into an almost solid mass, and there would be no more plunging
-and falling when walking over its surface, hereafter. It would be as the
-surface had been before, only a few feet higher.
-
-A few days longer, and if the party had convalesced sufficiently to
-allow them to travel, they would start on their return to the city, for
-Onrai had said that all must be in the city on the Day of Resis. Then,
-after the ceremonies of the day, after its mysteries had been learned,
-on the evening of that day, Enola was to become the bride of the King.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLV.
- SEARCHING FOR BODIES.
-
-
-One week had passed away since the fearful eruption, and our friends had
-convalesced rapidly under the care of the attendants, until now all were
-entirely recovered. The sun had shown brightly for a week, its light
-unobstructed by any further shower of ashes. The fire and smoke from the
-volcano had subsided, until now but a faint blue line was seen slowly
-ascending into the heavens from the summit of the mountain. All about
-the villa, as far as could be seen, was a bed of ashes, or not so much a
-bed of ashes now as it was a cinder soil. But the trees had been
-stripped of their verdure and no green thing was seen. If it were not so
-excessively hot, our friends could have easily believed that they were
-in some temperate zone and winter was on them.
-
-But the cooling of the thick mass had made the air hot and humid, almost
-suffocating; still, notwithstanding this, the air had not seemed
-unhealthful, for our friends declared that they had never felt better in
-their lives, with the exception of the stiffness and the soreness, which
-was the direct outcome of the bruises and the burns. But if the eruption
-had lasted but a few hours, its consequences had been fearful.
-
-The slaughter of human beings and beasts had been terrible. On that
-fateful morning, five thousand men, one hundred elephants and nearly as
-many zebras, had left the villa, strong in perfect health and vigor; but
-a few hours later, and but one elephant and five men were left to tell
-the fearful tale. Those who had not been killed in battle, had been
-slaughtered or had been buried beneath the hot shower of cinders and
-steam. And fully as many of the negroes had perished also, in all making
-a fearful total.
-
-It had had an awful effect on the King for a few days. He had wandered
-about the villa like one demented, and had spoken to no one, keeping
-well to himself, his head bowed and face pale, and eyes sunken. One
-could hardly imagine that this was the great and powerful King of On.
-But Enola had been persevering in her efforts to draw his mind away from
-the saddening events, and he could not long remain insensible to her
-pleadings, to try and forget. She would tell him pleasing stories of the
-life in her own world; would relate strange tales of adventure and
-daring, which, for the time, would blot out the thought of his fearful
-loss. And when he would turn to Enola with words of love, she would no
-longer turn from him, but would encourage him in this. She had wanted to
-make him forget, knowing that if his mind brooded on these events, he
-would surely go mad, and then what would become of her and her friends?
-
-Such fears had already taken possession of them, for they knew that such
-an occurrence as this would impress the Onians fearfully, and this
-impression might be as it had once been before, namely: that they were
-in some way the cause of the fearful event. If such a belief should
-become fully established in their minds, nothing could save them they
-knew, unless it would be the interference of the King, whose desires
-they held in high regard.
-
-So Enola, although now determined never to marry the great King, would,
-to save her friends and herself, humor him in the belief that she loved
-him. It was a deception which was loathsome to her, but so much depended
-on it that she could not help herself.
-
-It was one week ago to-day that the volcano had belched forth, and the
-few survivors were sitting at their morning meal.
-
-“Well, shall we venture to the volcano, to-day?” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, we must go to-day, or give it up altogether,” replied the King,
-“for our provisions are fast giving out and we must get back to the
-country that has not been devastated by the eruption.”
-
-“Yes, let us leave this horrible place as soon as possible,” added Mrs.
-Graham.
-
-“I confess that I, myself, am desirous of leaving the place which has so
-nearly been the scene of our deaths,” rejoined Mr. Graham. “But Mr.
-Bruce thinks that we ought to look over the ground where so many of the
-Onians have fallen.”
-
-“I will find no pleasure in thus going,” said Mr. Bruce, “but we should
-know the exact state of things here before returning to the city. The
-relatives and friends of all these buried thousands, will want to know
-if it will be possible to recover their bodies. And then it would be
-well to see the crevice. I think Onrai still holds the idea that this
-should be closed.”
-
-“Yes, it will be one of my first duties, now,” said Onrai. “But what a
-task it will be for the men who do the work. The first unpleasant task
-they have ever had to perform.”
-
-“The hole may have been closed somewhat by the stream of lava which
-poured into it,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, I feel quite sure that it has,” said Mr. Graham, “for it poured
-into it in such a volume it could hardly be otherwise.”
-
-“Yet there will be much to do,” said Mr. Bruce, “and it will mean a
-great deal of hard work before the break is made impassable.”
-
-“Let us start,” said Onrai, “so as to be able to investigate as much as
-possible and return before nightfall. To-morrow we must start for the
-city in order to be there for the Day of Resis. It will be a sad
-return;” and again the King fell into that melancholy condition out of
-which Enola had tried so hard to draw him.
-
-“True, Onrai,” said Enola, “but the only sadness which has ever darkened
-your life. It will cast a gloom over your life for awhile, but as time
-goes by and you see those about you again happy, and your life falls
-into the old routine, then will you also grow contented and happy once
-more. In our world we have so much sadness that we at last become
-accustomed to it, and expect it. But here you hardly know the meaning of
-the word. This experience has been fearful, I know, but it is better
-that you lose a few of your mighty men, than that all should lose
-country and, may be, life too, and even be sold into slavery. That must
-certainly have been the fate of your people, if they had fallen into the
-hands of the negroes. But that time has forever passed and out of this
-sad experience, which will cause so much grief, comes this grand
-assurance. The men who have been thus slain might have been spared until
-they had the wall on the way, and while in the country beyond the cliff,
-for they would have had to be there some of the time, they might have
-been overpowered by the natives, and the land been overspread with these
-hated negroes, before the majority of your people could have learned of
-their presence. In such a case your country would have been destroyed
-with all its villas and its beautiful city. But such a thing can never
-occur now. God has simply taken the work out of your hands, and in his
-own way has avenged your people and has also, by turning the lava into
-the crevice, helped to close to the outside world, the only means of
-ingress into your country. The present generation will die, and as it is
-forbidden your people to ever mention or talk of such things to those
-who will live beyond your reign, the thing will die from memory, the
-same as has all of the previous events of your history. This fearful
-occurrence has been ordained to come during your reign, but it casts no
-reflection upon you or your people, for it has been wholly the work of
-God.
-
-“If He has chosen to take the men before their time, He has had a good
-purpose in it and I think that purpose has been shown. So don’t give up
-to despair in this moment, but be the brave, noble King which we have
-all learned to love. Be superior to the events which would crush most
-other men. Be strong, and set such an example before your people. They
-will look to you for strength and comfort, and you must be able to give
-them both.”
-
-The King had listened quietly to the words of Enola, and seemed much
-impressed by her strong, clear-cut remarks and the sound advice which
-she had given. For the first time he realized that it would not do for
-him to give way to his feelings, in this hour of trial, for, as Enola
-had said, his people would look to him for comfort and strength, and he
-must be able to give them both. Somehow or other he felt better after
-Enola had talked to him in this way, and he felt that he could meet the
-inquisitive looks of his people and answer their mute questions without
-flinching.
-
-“But come, we must be off,” said Onrai.
-
-So the men-folk went to the terrace, where the only four elephants,
-which had been left, were awaiting them. Gip had entirely recovered, and
-was now with the three which had been left in the stable on that fateful
-morning. The five men mounted, and were soon making good time over the
-smooth surface of the bad lands. This new covering was of better soil
-than the old, and would some day become very productive. The elephants,
-heavy as they were, hardly made an impression in this, so solid had it
-become. They jogged along for nearly an hour, when they came on the body
-of an elephant lying on its side, nearly covered with the new soil.
-Digging away some of the dirt from his back the body of an Onian was
-disclosed to view. He had been one of three who had leaped to the
-elephant’s back when the eruption first broke forth. Further on they
-came across all of the one hundred elephants and a few of the zebras.
-Only one or two Onians were found with any part of their bodies above
-the soil. They were buried almost completely. It was thought at first
-that they would take these bodies back to the villa, and cremate them as
-was the custom this land, but Mr. Bruce had dissuaded Onrai from this,
-saying that as all of their companions were lying here in one common
-grave, there also might better be they. The King declared his intention
-of exhuming all of the many bodies which filled the immense graveyard,
-but his companions also made him change his mind in regard to this,
-saying that such an undertaking would take a great amount of time, and
-would be next to an impossibility.
-
-At last the crevice was reached, but little of it remained. The hole in
-the ground was not even ten feet deep. It had been filled by the flowing
-lava up to that height. The party followed the crevice to the cliff,
-where a most unexpected scene met their astonished eyes. The crevice in
-the cliff was entirely filled, for the lava had run into the crevice
-until on a level with the surrounding country, after which it had still
-dropped its flinty substance into the hole and gradually cooled until
-the chasm had been entirely filled, when it had turned its stream into
-the country beyond, leaving the face of the cliff as straight and
-impregnable as it had been before the earthquake.
-
-“It is more than I expected,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, it is the handiwork of God,” answered Onrai.
-
-“You need have no further fears about your country being again invaded,
-Onrai,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“It is as Enola has said,” replied the King. “A blessed assurance that
-we are safe from those who would molest us.”
-
-“Come, let us move on up to the cliff,” said Mr. Bruce. “I would like to
-see where the stream of lava has ended in the cavern.”
-
-“I wonder how it has affected that part of the Hunting Reserve which the
-storm has covered,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“It must have driven the animals farther back into the jungle,” said
-Onrai. “But there is plenty of room for them all. A few miles, as you
-would call it, cut off of this great tract, amounts to but little.”
-
-“But the whole tract will again be fertilized now, I think,” said Mr.
-Graham. “Those ashes have a great deal of good loam mixed with them, and
-it will be very productive, I think.”
-
-“Yes, the animals will find as good grazing here as in any other part of
-the Reserve, at some future day,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Look,” said Mr. Graham, “what is that black object away there in the
-distance? It is moving, is it not?”
-
-They all looked and came to the conclusion that it must be some sort of
-animal, but what, they could not say. As they proceeded the black spot
-grew larger and larger, but they could now see that the animals, or
-whatever they might be, were not moving but standing still. They had now
-come to the hole in the side of the mountain and concluded to enter this
-first, and investigate the black spot later. Accordingly they entered
-the hole and lighting a torch turned to the right and moved toward the
-upper end of the cave. From where they were, they could see no change in
-the crevice, but there might be nearer the crater, for it was from this
-that the stream of lava was running. They hurried on for they had much
-to look after before returning, and already half of the day had passed.
-The end wall was at last reached and they turned to follow this until
-they had reached the small tunnel, through which had run the lava.
-Arriving at this they were not surprised to find it considerable wider
-than it had been before the lava had found its way through it. The lava
-had raised the floor of it to quite a height, but this new flooring was
-cool now and they decided to follow up the tunnel for some distance, and
-see what had taken place in the farther end.
-
-As they advanced up the tunnel the air got somewhat warmer, but still
-not excessively so: The lava bed also grew thicker as they advanced
-until the floor had become so raised, they could extend their hands and
-touch the ceiling. They at last reached the end of the tunnel and were
-surprised to see that the crack had widened until it was nearly five
-feet broad.
-
-“Shall we enter?” asked Mr. Bruce, as they all stood looking at the
-crack rather hesitatingly.
-
-“Most assuredly, if there is no danger,” replied Mr. Graham.
-
-“I cannot answer for the safety of it,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I can say
-that it would be interesting to look into it a ways.”
-
-“Let us proceed then,” said the King, who was fast becoming as curious
-as his white companions.
-
-The party then, headed by Mr. Bruce, stepped rather gingerly into the
-passage-way, and moved along slowly. The side-walls were still very hot
-and very soon the soles of their feet became almost burned with the hot
-flooring, for the hot lava had passed through there so recently, that it
-could hardly be expected to be very cool yet. They had gone some
-distance into the crack when Mr. Bruce suddenly stopped and said:
-
-“Look ahead, can’t you see a ray of daylight?”
-
-All heads were immediately screwed to one side and a glance thrown
-ahead.
-
-“Yes, that is surely daylight,” said Mr. Graham, “but how in the world,
-or in this hole, does it get there?”
-
-“Shall we go on and see?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Yes, by all means,” answered the King.
-
-So the party again pushed on, now at a little livelier gait, for they
-could no longer be mistaken that that was the light of day penetrating
-this dark crevice. Hurriedly now they advanced, so anxious had they
-grown to see what sort of hole it was that admitted the sunlight; and
-after a short walk further they burst out into the bright open light of
-day. They looked above them and there, sure enough, was the bright, blue
-sky.
-
-“What do you make of it, Mr. Graham?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Well,” replied Mr. Graham, “I should say that we are looking up out of
-one of the crevices which opened into the crater of the volcano.”
-
-“That’s so,” replied Mr. Bruce, “I did not think of that. But I supposed
-these cracks must have opened far into the bowels of the earth, and were
-vents for the steam, ashes and lava.”
-
-“Some of them undoubtedly are,” said Mr. Graham, “but this is surely
-not. This may have been caused by one of the earthquakes, and was later
-widened by the excessive heat. Whatever the cause, it is here at any
-rate.”
-
-The tunnel at this point was very wide and fully two thousand feet deep.
-
-“Can you notice any peculiarities in this crevice?” asked Mr. Bruce of
-Mr. Graham.
-
-“None,” replied Mr. Graham, “unless it be its crookedness, but they are
-all crooked. But why do you ask?”
-
-“I was just thinking,” said Mr. Bruce, “that we might have occasion to
-use this crevice some day.”
-
-“I hope not,” replied Mr. Graham, “for if we had to trust to scaling
-these perpendicular walls, I am afraid we would perish here at the
-bottom.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it is well to have several strings to your
-bow.”
-
-“It might be possible,” said Mr. Graham, “to lower one’s self into this
-cavern, but I don’t believe it would be possible to hoist one’s self out
-of it.”
-
-“We may have occasion some day to lower ourselves into it,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “At any rate, we have found another way to enter the Land of On.”
-
-“But one never to be used as long as the other is open,” said Mr.
-Graham.
-
-“As you like,” said Mr. Bruce. “Shall we return, Onrai?”
-
-“If you are ready,” answered the King.
-
-They accordingly turned and retraced their steps until again in the
-cavern. Instead of turning to the left and following the wall as they
-had done previously, they followed the lava bed which had gradually
-spread over a very wide area in the cavern, in one place being fully a
-mile wide. They followed this until opposite the hole, when they moved
-over to this and left the cavern.
-
-The large black group again attracted their attention, and they
-determined to see what it was before returning to the villa. The sun was
-getting well down toward the western horizon, and they had a good
-fifteen miles to make, but they must see what it was that could make
-such a mark in the heart of this ash-covered plain. From as near as they
-could make out the animals were nearly two miles away. They hurried on,
-wishing to reach home before it grew very dark. When within a mile of
-the dark object, they saw that it was a herd of elephants, lying down.
-They drew up to these cautiously, so as not to be molested, if possible,
-but they saw that the elephants were undoubtedly very much exhausted, or
-else dead, for they paid but little or no attention to the approaching
-riders.
-
-But just before they came up to them, one of the animals half raised his
-head, but that was all, they made no further sign. The riders now came
-up to them and saw their predicament. These animals had undoubtedly been
-overcome by the shower of ashes, and sinking down had been too weak to
-again rise, and now, after a week of suffering and fasting, they were
-nearly dead. There were fully a hundred of them and they had been
-perfectly wild, but were now as docile as so many lambs.
-
-“If we can save them,” said Onrai, “they will take the place of the
-hundred we lost.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLVI.
- “WE DIE TOGETHER.”
-
-
-The elephants were sadly emaciated, for they had now been seven days
-without food or water. Their great bodies looked gaunt, and their little
-eyes were sunken well into the head. Their bodies were nearly half
-covered with the ashes, and together with this and the fact that they
-were so weak they could only move their heads, turning them from side to
-side, showing that there was still life in their huge bodies.
-
-“Yes, if we could get these elephants to the villa,” said Onrai, “they
-could well take the place of those which were killed.”
-
-“But even if you were to get them there, they would, with returning
-strength, grow as wild as ever, would they not?” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“No,” said Onrai, “hunger always tames an elephant, and if he is taken
-while hungry, and given food and placed with tame elephants, he is
-generally as docile and manageable as any of those which have been in
-captivity all their lives.”
-
-“This is strange,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“Yes,” replied the King, “it is, but nevertheless true. Elephants do not
-seem to have the fear of human beings that many other animals have, but
-seem rather to like the association of man. I have seen wild elephants
-follow us from out of the jungle, right down to the gate of the Hunting
-Reserve, as gentle and seemingly as tame as the ones we were riding, and
-I have no doubt that if we had let them through the gate, they would
-have followed us to the city, and would have been just as happy and
-contented with their tame companions as they had been running wild in
-the jungle.”
-
-“It seems a pity, then, that we have to leave them here,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “when with help they might be gotten to where they could be
-nursed back to life.”
-
-“It would take considerable time and trouble, though, to do so,” said
-Onrai. “Still, if we had men with us they could bring them food and
-water and in this way put life enough into them to get them to the
-villa. But come, the sun is nearly hidden behind the cliffs, and we have
-a long ride before us.”
-
-As if the dying elephants knew that their would-be rescuers were leaving
-them, they turned their heads and watched them as they rode away, the
-most pitiful expression coming into their little black eyes. There were
-easily a hundred of them, and they made a great black spot on the plain
-with their bodies, which were only half covered.
-
-Our friends now hurried toward the villa, and after a ride of two hours,
-again pulled up in front of the terrace. They had entered the villa, and
-were just about to seat themselves to the evening meal, when the
-tramping of many zebras’ hoofs were heard, and our friends, going to the
-front entrance, looked toward the now covered avenue, and there saw in
-the half light, a band of not less than two hundred mounted men. When
-they saw the lights of the villa they turned and came toward it.
-Silently they picked their way between the trees and up to the terrace,
-where, recognizing the King, they gave a loud shout and then began a
-chant, which Onrai explained to his companions, was a chant of praise.
-After the chant was finished, the King stood on the terrace steps and
-said:
-
-“Onians, my countrymen, the sight of your faces, coming so unexpectedly,
-pleases me greatly and draws from my heart some of the sadness which the
-events of the past short while have caused. Your presence makes me feel
-that if some of our dearly beloved men have gone, there yet remains
-their sons and brothers and fathers, who will make this fair Land of On
-yet the same as we knew it before the fearful eruption. We have met with
-a terrible loss, but our men died in a good cause, and died bravely.”
-
-“We do not understand you, oh King,” said one of the foremost.
-
-“Ah, I forgot,” said Onrai, “but enough to-night. Find quarters for
-yourselves and beasts, and on the morrow I will explain further. Prepare
-yourselves, however, for sad news, for such you will hear.”
-
-The men turned from the terrace and the King and his guests again went
-into the villa. Onrai seemed much depressed, for how was he going to
-tell these men that their fathers, sons and brothers had perished by the
-hands of a band of negroes, and the terrible shower of ashes. They would
-not understand either unless they could realize that this new covering
-of ashes had overtaken their friends unexpectedly, and had buried them.
-But then it would be hard to make them understand the eruption and what
-caused it. They were too far away at the time to see or know anything of
-the awful overflow, unless it be a black cloud which they could possibly
-see. They may have felt the shocks of earthquake, but even this they
-might not have experienced. Then they could know nothing of how their
-friends had met death, nor could they understand the means by which they
-had fallen.
-
-So the King had a hard task before him in the morning and it worried him
-fearfully. Enola had seen his downcast countenance, and guessing the
-cause, had followed him out on the terrace. Taking hold of his arm, as
-he paced up and down, she said:
-
-“Onrai, do not give up at the outstart. This is a sad task which you
-have to perform. But it is only the first one of a number like ones
-which will come later, when the mothers and sisters and wives of the
-unfortunates will come to gain information from you, when you will be in
-the city. So if you give up now what will you do after awhile? Be strong
-and make these men understand as well as possible, the real condition of
-things. Try and impress them with the greatness of the deed which made
-such heroes of their dead comrades, and of the fearful consequences if
-they had failed to act so nobly and bravely. Say not too much about the
-eruption, but leave the impression that it buried and burned the hated
-negroes who had invaded this country, and had slaughtered so many of
-their countrymen. Impress them with the fact that all of these brave
-Onians were killed in defence of their country and their loved ones, and
-then, if you can make them understand why these negroes were here, and
-how they entered the country, they will better appreciate the great
-sacrifice of life which has been made for them. Let them still retain
-their old belief that theirs is the only world on this sphere, letting
-them think that the negroes came from another world far away. They can
-better understand the latter for they have seen us and believe that we
-came from another planet, and this too, would leave the old belief
-unshaken, and would insure less unhappiness, than if their life-long
-teachings were destroyed.”
-
-“You are right,” said Onrai, “as you always are, and I will act upon
-your advice. But Enola, have you thought of the time when we will be
-married? We are about to return to the city and the word has gone forth
-that on the Day of Resis you will marry me.”
-
-“The day has then been fixed?” questioned Enola. “I had not learned
-this.”
-
-“Yes, it has been decided upon,” said the King. “On that great day when
-so many of my countrymen will meet, with joy and loud songs of praise,
-on the evening of that day, after the ceremonies have been performed,
-you will become my wife.”
-
-Enola had expected that Onrai would make some such announcement soon,
-but she had no idea that he would name such an early day, for, as she
-understood it, the Day of Resis, was but a short time away.
-
-“When is the Day of Resis?” asked Enola.
-
-“Four weeks from to-day, according to your calendar,” said Onrai.
-
-“Is not that very soon, Onrai?” asked Enola.
-
-“Too soon?” exclaimed Onrai; “how can you ask such a question, Enola? If
-you love me as I do you, you would wish, as do I, that the day was
-to-morrow. The time to me seems a long way off. Our days will not be too
-many after our marriage, and it is well we should add to these as many
-as possible. And again, my people have so decreed that we should be
-married on that day.”
-
-“What are the ceremonies of the great Day of Resis?” again questioned
-Enola.
-
-“Hush, Enola, you must not ask me. The secret of the day is never
-divulged, or even spoken of among those who know its secrets. But once
-seen, the secret is then yours, and you will then know the meaning of
-the Day of Resis. It is a glorious day, a day of great rejoicing and
-happiness. Not one on that great day but feels a wonderful happiness,
-even those who are not direct participants in its great ceremonies. It
-falls to the lot of all, though, to be principal participants in the
-proceedings of the day, one day of his life, and this is the greatest
-day of all his or her days. Their joy is supreme, and their happiness
-knows no bounds.”
-
-“It must, indeed, be a great day,” said Enola, “and the people have
-chosen this day to be my wedding day. How they must love their King!”
-
-“Yes, the King and the fair stranger whom he is to marry,” said Onrai.
-
-“I doubt the latter,” said Enola, “for they were too ready to kill both
-her and her friends when they thought that she had been the cause of the
-storm.”
-
-“Don’t, don’t, Enola, mention that fearful time. I would blot it from my
-mind. It was the one time in my life that I lost confidence in my
-people, and the one time when I would have turned against them. I feel,
-though, that they have now bitterly regretted their action, for they
-have seen the folly of it.”
-
-“Will we be married in the Temple?” asked Enola, wishing to take Onrai’s
-mind from such a painful subject as the one she had mentioned.
-
-“Yes,” said Onrai; “in the Temple, surrounded by my people, and the
-ceremony will be grand in the extreme. I am, I suppose, the first King
-who has ever been married, but this, of course, I cannot say positively,
-for we know nothing of the reign or history of past Kings. Still, the
-high priest has said as much. Our marriage ceremonies are mostly of a
-religious nature, and are accompanied by much song and music. Our
-marriage garments are made of pure cloth of gold, and those who will be
-with us, will be robed much in the same way.”
-
-“Shall we live in the Temple?” again asked Enola.
-
-“Yes,” said Onrai; “but in apartments which you have never seen;
-apartments grand beyond description. These apartments were made by the
-builder of the Temple, for the King in whose reign an unusual event
-would occur. So says the high priest; and he further says that my
-marriage is an event never before heard of, and that it must have been
-this which the founder of the country foresaw when he had these chambers
-planned and held for this purpose. None but the high priest has ever
-entered them, but they must be sublime from what he has told me of
-them.”
-
-“And what will be my life as the King’s wife?” questioned Enola.
-
-“Your life will be much the same as it is now, but you will be called
-upon to take a part in all duties which belong to the King. In the
-ceremonies of the Day of Resis, for instance, you will stand near me and
-perform the same duties which alone belong to myself, and in this way,
-sharing the duties of my office, we go down to our death, happy, knowing
-no sorrows or troubles and assured of that great happiness in the
-eternity beyond.”
-
-“And do we then go together?” asked Enola, as she remembered the mode of
-death of some of the women of India.
-
-“Yes; it is so decreed,” said Onrai.
-
-The horror of this made Enola faint for a moment, and she made a resolve
-to leave this land as soon as possible. Until beyond the rocky cliffs
-again, all happiness for her had flown.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLVII.
- IN THE CITY AGAIN.
-
-
-On the following morning the men were up early and at the terrace,
-awaiting their King and the strange, sad tale which they must hear.
-Onrai came on to the terrace with his friends and told the sad story of
-the battle and the eruption. The Onians stood drinking in every word,
-their eyes changing from curiosity to pain, and then to horror, their
-faces depicting the same emotions. Onrai related all of the fearful
-tale, of how the men had stood up before the negroes even when they were
-being mowed down like wheat before the scythe, and then of how the
-elephants had rushed on to them, thus turning the tide of battle, and
-then of the mad rush for the crevice, and the awful eruption which had
-killed and burned the survivors.
-
-For some time after the King had finished speaking the men stood with
-that look of horror overcasting their faces, their very bodies having
-assumed an attitude which showed the greatest dejection. Onrai then
-continued: “We will start for the city again to-day and will make as
-long marches as possible, as we wish to reach there in time to rest,
-before the ceremonies of the Day of Resis takes place. On the plain,
-some few miles from here, will be found a herd of nearly a hundred
-elephants. They were driven, on this desperate night, into the worst
-part of the downfall of ashes, and half buried and nearly starving, are
-dying there now, on the plain. I wish one hundred of you to go, and if
-possible, revive these elephants and bring them to a place where they
-can receive proper care. The remainder of you will accompany us to the
-city. We start immediately,” and saying this, he again turned to his
-friends and told them to make immediate preparations.
-
-This they did and it was only a short while until they were mounted, and
-on their way from the spot which had become most hateful and loathsome
-to them. To the avenue, which could only be told now by the bordering
-trees, they went, and following its course they headed for the city.
-Hope was rejuvenated as they left the scene of so much pain and death,
-and life seemed again to be putting on a garment of happiness which had
-long since been cast aside. The cavalcade of the witnesses of the recent
-fearful scene, left the place without a regret and without one glance
-backward to either volcano, bad lands or villa.
-
-Their thoughts turned to things more pleasant, of the green fields and
-shady trees; even the lake with its memories of night horrors seemed
-less repulsive than the place they were leaving. But the thought of the
-city and its quiet pleasures were more pleasing than all others. In a
-half hour they could see ahead of them the green fields and trees, which
-they had so longed for. The layer of ashes gradually thinned until there
-was no longer any trace of it, and the hard, onyx-paved avenue again
-stretched before them in all its beauty. An hour later and they could
-see no traces of the eruption at all, and the long track of the cyclone
-had been cleared, until it presented very much the same appearance as
-did the rest of the surrounding country.
-
-The country became more cultivated as they proceeded, and men were now
-seen frequently working in the fields. None of them approached the
-cavalcade, and none were made acquainted with the sad story of the
-battle and eruption. And so day after day passed in much the same way as
-they had on the journey out, the marches being somewhat longer only, and
-the midday rests somewhat shorter. But the evenings were spent in the
-cool villas, the nights of prayer being observed now as usual, for with
-the last body of men who had come to meet them, before leaving the villa
-near the volcano, had been another priest and attendants, and these were
-now with the party.
-
-The lake had been reached and its banks followed. All former plans of
-taking another route back to the city had been abandoned on account of
-the eruption, and the party was not sorry for this, for the avenue, with
-its magnificent shade trees and its beautiful surroundings made it an
-enviable route. The days had passed and with them many miles of the long
-journey, until on the evening of the ninth day after leaving the villa
-in the bad lands they were at the point where they had embarked for the
-island, on the memorable night of the sea-fight. Here they put up for
-the night at the same villa which had held them once before.
-
-“To-morrow,” said Mr. Bruce, after the evening meal had been disposed of
-and all had gathered on the terrace for their regular chat before
-retiring, “to-morrow, if nothing happens, will be our last day’s
-journey. We will reach the city before noon if we start very early in
-the morning.”
-
-“I am not sorry that this excursion is so near an end,” said Mr. Graham;
-“but it has been loaded with adventures and that is what we were looking
-for when coming here.”
-
-“Yes, but the adventures of the past month or so have none of them been
-agreeable ones,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I do not agree with you, Mr. Bruce,” said Harry. “I think the last
-horrible experience has cast a gloom over all of the others, and if it
-were not for the fearful slaughter of the Onians and our own narrow
-escape, we would have considered the other adventures as being at least,
-excitable, if not altogether enjoyable.”
-
-“This land has not seemed the same to me since that fearful day,” said
-Mr. Bruce.
-
-“I have noticed the change in you,” said Nellie.
-
-“It has made this fair land almost hateful to me and I long to get away
-from it,” and Mr. Bruce spoke in such a bitter tone, that all looked at
-him in surprise.
-
-“We have now seen most of the people and their country,” said Mr.
-Graham, “and it would be well for us to leave as soon as possible,
-especially as the King has decided that Enola shall marry him on the Day
-of Resis. By the way, Enola, have you learned anything of Onrai, in
-regard to this red-letter day?”
-
-“Nothing,” answered Enola, “excepting that it is a day of great joy to
-all of the participants in its ceremonies.”
-
-“But do not all participate?” questioned Mr. Graham.
-
-“It seems not,” answered Enola. “That is, they do not all participate on
-the same day; but a day comes to each one when he or she participates.
-It has a strange meaning, this Day of Resis.”
-
-“Yes, and one which will never be learned until the day comes,” said
-Harry, “for Onrai told me himself that none of his people were allowed
-to mention the secrets of the day, but all understood them.”
-
-“And when is this day, which is to make you the wife of the King?” asked
-Mr. Graham.
-
-“It is barely a week distant,” answered Enola.
-
-“And do you think that you could be happy as the wife of Onrai?” asked
-Mr. Graham.
-
-“I have never given the subject much thought,” answered Enola, “until
-the evening preceding our departure from the villa in the bad lands,
-then he spoke of our marriage and told of our apartments in the Temple,
-and of our marriage gowns, and another thing, which makes the very
-thought of marrying Onrai repulsive. He then told me that if he should
-die first that I would be sacrificed on his bier, and the King and wife
-would be buried together.”
-
-“That is certainly fearful to contemplate,” said Mr. Graham, “and it but
-adds to the necessity of our getting out of this country before this
-eventful day.”
-
-“What do you suppose, though, will be the outcome if we should leave the
-country before you become the wife of the King?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“It is hard to tell,” answered Enola, “but these people might object
-seriously to our doing so. It is certain that the King has fully decided
-on marrying me, and that his people have not only sanctioned the
-marriage, but it was they who fixed the Day of Resis as the one on which
-we should be married. They are a strange people. They have gone through
-life following certain laws and rules and have never been crossed in
-anything, and it might be a very serious matter to try and balk them in
-this, probably the most important event which has ever taken place in
-their history.”
-
-“Yes, but if you do not wish to marry Onrai,” said Mr. Graham, “and you
-have just said that you would not, we must get away from here before
-this Day of Resis, in some way or other, whether they object or not.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “and as the time is so short it would be well for
-us to feel around and see just how the land lays.”
-
-Onrai, who had been overseeing some work in another part of the villa,
-came strolling carelessly on to the terrace, his very carriage lending a
-gracefulness to his majestic figure, which was charming, to say the
-least, and Enola thought how easy it could be to love this giant under
-any other circumstances.
-
-“Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, “we have been your guests for many weeks now
-and we feel that to remain with you much longer would be a breach of
-etiquette, to say the least, and as the affairs in our own country need
-our almost immediate attention, we feel that we should leave your
-hospitable country, and return to our own.”
-
-Onrai looked surprised at the very mention of such a thing and made no
-answer for some time; at last, however, he said:
-
-“Your words grieve me; I had never thought of such a thing as your ever
-returning to your own country. I have always supposed that you would
-remain with us for the remainder of your lives. Why should you want to
-leave us? Have we not been kind to you, and is ours not a good land to
-live in? You have told me that you have much care, worry, trouble and
-unhappiness in your world; you have found none of those disturbing
-influences here; that is, until the awful fight and eruption came, but
-even that is over now, and your lives will soon drop into the old groove
-which you have said was the most delightful existence which one could
-desire. My people love you for yourselves alone, and if they forgot
-themselves for once, they must not be blamed, for you can readily see
-how superstition could spring to life in such uneventful lives as
-theirs. But they have forgotten those fears, and are now as much your
-friends as is their King. Then why should you wish to leave us? We love
-you; and as Enola is to marry me, and is to remain with us, it will be
-pleasant for both her and you to be together. Don’t ever again mention
-leaving us, let alone ever putting such a suggestion into action. Why,
-we look upon you no longer as strangers, but as part of us.”
-
-“We thank you for those kind words,” said Mr. Bruce, “but you must
-understand us, Onrai, we have many personal interests in our world which
-would take us there, and we have brothers and sisters and friends who
-would grieve greatly if we should never return. If such were not the
-case, it would be an easy matter for us to take up our life residence
-with you.”
-
-“I have, as I had said before,” said Onrai, “never thought of your
-leaving us, and I cannot now say how such a thing would affect my people
-or myself. I can only say that we have always thought that you would
-remain with us, and we cannot think of anything else just now.” And
-saying this, the King took hold of Enola’s arm gently, and drawing it
-through his, as she had taught him to, they started to promenade the
-terrace. After they had gotten out of hearing, Mr. Bruce turned to Mr.
-Graham, and said:
-
-“Rather non-committal, is he not?”
-
-“I should say so,” said Mr. Graham. “And if I am not mistaken, we will
-have trouble in getting away from here.”
-
-“One thing sure,” said Mr. Bruce, “he has no intention of letting Enola
-leave the country.”
-
-“He is a strange man, this Onrai,” said Mr. Graham, “and, in fact, the
-people are a queer anomaly and hard to make out. They have no secrets,
-seemingly, their lives are like open books, and they have no reason for
-being otherwise; but they can be as mum as oysters, as they say in
-America, when they wish to keep anything from you, and as evasive as a
-man paying taxes, when they take such a notion. For a race who has never
-had occasion to use any deception, they are certainly without a peer.”
-
-The talk now turned onto other subjects, and after a short time, all
-retired to their apartments to take their last sleep in the country, or
-away from the beautiful Temple. All were up very early the following
-morning, for they desired to reach the city before noon, so as not to
-have to stop before getting there for the midday rest. There was more
-life and gayety in the party on this morning than had been seen among
-them for weeks. All seemed happy and glad that the long journey was so
-near an end, and there was much joyous conversation and singing as they
-rode out before the sun had yet risen.
-
-Straight to the beautiful avenue, which had been their guide for so
-many, many miles, and the trees of which had given them such shady
-comfort, they rode. Even the animals seemed to realize that their long
-journey was at an end, for they started off at a good lively gait and
-maintained it throughout the morning. Onrai this morning seemed
-depressed; his head was bent and he seemed dejected. He had forbidden
-those who had joined the party, just before starting on this journey,
-never to speak of or mention in any way the things which he had told
-them on the morning of their departure. He had said that it was his duty
-as King and head of the people to impart to them the sad news; that the
-details of this great calamity were better known to him than to any
-other of his people, and he could the better tell the story for this
-reason. Therefore, his men had said nothing during the long journey, and
-those of the Onians whom they had met had learned nothing of the
-horrible event. Onrai now realized that the time had almost come for him
-to stand up before the mighty throng which would gather at his command,
-and tell them of the fearful death of five thousand of the fathers,
-sons, husbands and brothers of On.
-
-He had seen in his mind’s eye, the look of utter despair and great pain,
-and had heard the cries of the sufferers, and all this saddened him. He
-felt that it would be next to an impossibility for him to explain so
-they could understand, and the doubt which would accompany his
-explanation would but add to the pain of those who had lost loved ones.
-
-But the elephants and zebras were bearing them fast toward the city, as
-if mocking the King and being desirous of hurrying him to that time and
-place so dreaded.
-
-The sun had nearly reached its zenith, when the first one of the
-beautiful city villas was seen through the green trees in the distance,
-and not long after they were once more, after many weeks’ riding,
-between rows of the pink villas. All was quiet, for this was resting
-hour; but as they got nearer the heart of the city, numerous ones of the
-Onians would show themselves, and upon seeing that it was the King and
-his party, they would make a respectful obeisance and watch them until
-lost in the distance.
-
-At last the Temple was reached, and our friends were once more in their
-delightful apartments. Every comfort had been found in the villas en
-route, but none that they were ever in had such large and magnificent
-apartments as this grand Temple. The attendants took them in hand at
-once, and after a bath and light lunch, all of the tired wanderers
-slept.
-
-In the evening all gathered in the dining hall as usual, and it was hard
-to suppose that they had been away for so long. Mr. Graham and Mr. Bruce
-started to take their evening promenade on the terrace, and were
-surprised to see a number of soldiers, so they looked, walking in a
-measured beat about the grounds.
-
-“As I thought,” said Mr. Bruce, “we are prisoners.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLVIII.
- NO HOPE OF ESCAPE.
-
-
-At the usual morning gathering of the adventurers, on the following
-morning, Mr. Bruce said:
-
-“It seems that we are prisoners, but why I cannot understand. It may be,
-though, that the Temple alone is to be guarded, and that when we desire
-to leave it for a walk or a ride, the guards may not follow us. Let us
-make the experiment, Mr. Graham, if we are accompanied by the guards we
-shall know that extra effort is needed.”
-
-“I wonder,” said Mr. Graham, “if this custom of guarding a prospective
-bride, which this seems to be, applies to their courtiers as well.
-Anyway we can ascertain this, by ordering our zebras and taking a ride,”
-and stepping to the curtain which separated the apartment from the one
-which he occupied, Mr. Graham called one of his attendants, and told him
-they wanted their zebras at once. In a short time the zebras were
-awaiting them, and Mr. Bruce and he went to the entrance, and were not
-surprised to see ten mounted men standing near, seemingly waiting for
-them to start. Apparently unconcerned, our friends mounted and rode
-leisurely down the main avenue. And the ten men followed.
-
-“As I supposed,” said Mr. Graham, “our escape is going to be a serious
-matter after all.”
-
-“Yes,” answered Mr. Bruce, “we will undoubtedly be guarded by these men
-wherever we go, and it is hardly reasonable to believe that they will
-allow us to go to the cave, and make our escape without trying to stop
-us.”
-
-“There is Sedai,” said Mr. Graham, “he may be able to offer some
-suggestion.”
-
-They stopped their zebras and motioning to Sedai, he came up and asked
-what he could do for them.
-
-“We are virtually prisoners, Sedai,” said Mr. Graham, “and we need your
-help. The King has announced his intention of marrying Enola on the Day
-of Resis, and to avoid this, we shall have to leave the city; but a
-guard has been placed about the Temple and a guard is now following us,
-and it may be hard for us to get away.”
-
-“I have heard of this intended marriage,” said Sedai, “but I thought
-that Miss Enola must have given her consent.”
-
-“Far from it,” said Mr. Graham, “she is most desirous of getting away
-immediately. Exert your thinking powers, Sedai, and try to devise some
-means by which we can leave the country. If you think of anything, come
-up to the Temple and give us the result.”
-
-“I will do so,” said Sedai, as he walked away.
-
-“Mr. Bruce,” said Mr. Graham, “our friends in the rear do not seem to be
-appointed as guards to ward off danger, but more as a guard of honor.
-This is probably what they are for, simply to announce to the people
-that we have marriageable children,” and Mr. Graham smiled.
-
-“I think myself that they have no idea of danger befalling us, but it
-looks to me as if they had some suspicion of our intended escape. You
-know we mentioned the matter to the King a few evenings since,” said Mr.
-Bruce.
-
-“That’s so; I wonder if that can have anything to do with it. It may be
-that he intends to keep us prisoners, at least, until he has Enola
-secure,” said Mr. Graham.
-
-“It is hard to tell,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-They turned their zebras and headed for the Temple, and upon arriving
-there told their companions of how they had been followed.
-
-Sedai came up in the afternoon, and, after talking with the guard for
-awhile, reported what he had learned. The guard was changed every four
-hours, and the old guard marched to the house used by them as
-headquarters. Here they reported, and a relief was sent to the Temple.
-From the time the old guard left until the relief arrived, fifteen
-minutes elapsed, and during this fifteen minutes escape must be made.
-This was their only chance. It was not allowing much time for accidents,
-but they might be some distance before their escape was discovered, and
-a guard sent after them. This might not take the right direction at
-first, and in this way some time might be gained.
-
-It was decided to have Sedai carry the provisions to the cave, since he
-would not be watched; consequently, he left them to make preparations.
-No time was to be lost, and Sedai went directly to the provision
-storehouse and asked for four days’ provisions for himself, as he
-intended going to the large lake on a fishing excursion. The provisions
-were given him, but, to his surprise, when he came out of the storehouse
-and mounted his zebra, five mounted men, who were near and who were seen
-awaiting him, started just after he did and followed him. Straight on he
-went in the direction of the secret door, and upon arriving at the gate
-of the wall, his followers rode up and stopped him, saying, that as none
-of them had weapons they could not think of entering that wild part or
-of letting him do so. He made no objection, and leaving his bundle of
-provisions in a shady place near the gate, rode back to the city and
-went directly to the Temple to notify his friends.
-
-“It begins to look very serious,” said Mr. Graham, “but we must go,
-provisions or no provisions. It may be that some of the dried food which
-we left along the way as we crossed the cave, may be in good condition
-still, and if so, this would sustain us for quite awhile.”
-
-“I have an idea,” said Enola, “which is not pleasant to contemplate, but
-which may mean the saving of life. The opening into the mountain is
-large enough to admit the zebras, and if we can get them through it, our
-journey will be much easier and quicker; and if the worst comes, we can
-sacrifice them.”
-
-“A splendid idea,” said Harry, “but we must be ready to start by
-to-morrow night. But five days remain for us before the Day of Resis,
-and we must not put off our first attempt until the last moment. It may
-be that we will make some miscalculation the first time and have to try
-again, so let us be ready by to-morrow night.”
-
-During that day and the next they made as many preparations as they
-could without being observed. Each secreted some dried meats and a
-bottle of the exquisite wine and honey. Sedai had visited the guard
-frequently, and had learned when the changes were made. The stables,
-where the zebras were kept, was about three hundred yards to the rear of
-the Temple. They were guarded by one man, the attendants of our friends
-grooming and taking care of them during the day. This man would have to
-be overcome, or called from the stable on some pretense.
-
-The day intended for their escape drew slowly to an end. The evening
-meal had been eaten, as usual, with the King, but Enola had declined to
-accompany him to the terrace. They had gathered in Mrs. Graham’s room,
-and were waiting anxiously for Sedai to announce that the time had come
-and all was in readiness. Sedai at last came, but the moment he entered
-they saw that some slip had been made in the arrangements, or that
-something had gone wrong.
-
-“What is it, Sedai?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“This,” said Sedai. “The guard, as usual, had left for their
-headquarters, and I had sent the stableman on an errand which would take
-some time to carry out. I started to the Temple to notify you, when, to
-my surprise, twenty men came up to the stable, and when I asked their
-leader why they were there, he told me that the Day of Resis was but
-three days off, and that all zebras and elephants were sent into the
-country to carry into the city those working in the fields, quarries and
-mines, one day’s journey hence; and saying this, they took the zebras
-and elephants and went away with them.”
-
-The friends looked from one to the other speechless. The zebras being
-away they could no longer calculate on their help, but something must be
-done. They could not think of walking to the cave, for their escape
-would soon be discovered, and the inhabitants, having found out their
-intentions, would guard against any further attempt.
-
-“When will the zebras be returned,” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“He said that the men who were to use them were one day’s journey from
-here,” answered Sedai. “If they come to this city immediately, they will
-be here the evening of the day after to-morrow.”
-
-“Let us see,” said Mr. Bruce, “that will be two days before the Day Of
-Resis. Cheer up friends, we shall yet escape,” and telling Sedai to keep
-his eyes open and to report to them the moment the zebras were returned,
-they dismissed him.
-
-The next two days were spent by Mr. Bruce in the Secret Chamber, for he
-determined to learn from the tablets more of the history of this strange
-people and country. Harry and Enola scarcely left each other, for Enola
-now realized that she loved Harry, and now that there was a possibility
-of their being separated from each other forever, they determined to see
-as much of each other as possible in the few remaining hours before the
-Day Of Resis.
-
-Mr. and Mrs. Graham and Nellie walked about the beautiful Temple and
-tried to calm their anxiety.
-
-On the second afternoon Sedai came to them and said that the zebras had
-been returned, but that the young men who had come with them had been
-given quarters in a villa adjoining the stable, and some of them were
-constantly lounging about and would undoubtedly see them, and give the
-alarm if they tried to escape. It seemed as if they must remain until
-the dreaded day. Sedai was told to try and find some means to get rid of
-the men about the stable, and to endeavor to have everything ready for
-that night. Night came but Sedai reported that the men had ridden a long
-distance that day, and were lying on the lawn of the park and could not
-be persuaded to move, so comfortable were they in the cool evening
-breeze.
-
-“When is the next relief?” questioned Mr. Bruce.
-
-“At twelve o’clock,” said Sedai, “and they may go to their apartments
-before then, thus enabling us to get away.”
-
-“We will wait,” said Mr. Bruce, who had constituted himself the leader
-of the party.
-
-Slowly the evening wore into the night and twelve o’clock came. The
-attendants had all been dismissed. Sedai came in at last but his face
-showed disappointment.
-
-“The men are still lying in the garden,” said he, “some asleep, while
-others are awake and talking.”
-
-“How many of them are there?” asked Harry.
-
-“Thirty,” said Sedai, “and that many more in the large villa near the
-stable, so that it would be foolish for us to try to overcome them.”
-
-“No, we must not resort to violence,” said Mr. Bruce, “for that would
-only hurt our cause. To-morrow these men will be thoroughly rested, and
-we can reasonably expect that they will go about the city visiting their
-friends. We must not lose courage but hope for better results
-to-morrow.”
-
-On the afternoon of the next day our friends, mounted the zebras and
-with a guard of fifty following them, rode through the principal streets
-of the city. The city was crowded owing to all work in the fields, mines
-and quarries being suspended for five days. The people never seemed
-happier, for singing and laughing was heard on every side. Just as our
-friends reached the large square, the King mounted the pedestal from
-which he had greeted them upon their arrival in the city. From a tablet
-of wood in his hand he read the law proclaiming the Day of Resis to be
-the only holiday, and, being now at hand, the direct participants in its
-ceremonies must prepare for them. He did not mention the secrets of the
-day, or did he give them idea as to what the ceremonies would be.
-
-On the bare wrists of the right arm of the older men and women could be
-seen a peculiarly-shaped diamond of a reddish cast. This was about half
-an inch in width and held to the wrist by a chain of gold. Mr. Bruce
-turned to one of the guards, and asked:
-
-“Why do certain ones wear this peculiar stone and chain of gold about
-their wrists?”
-
-“It is the mark of Resis,” answered the man. And upon Mr. Bruce asking
-what this meant, the man made no further answer.
-
-The faces of those wearing these bracelets were radiant. They seemed the
-happiest of the whole vast multitude, and the younger people appeared to
-look on them with envy. Truly, the happiness of the day must be supreme
-to those who participated in its ceremonies.
-
-The King, after reading the law twice, descended from the pedestal,
-mounted his zebra and joined Enola and her friends. Carefully the zebras
-picked their way through the throng of people crowding the streets.
-Girls were dancing, men were giving exhibitions of skill in athletics;
-others were singing quaint, harmonious songs, and all were happy and
-joyous.
-
-They soon reached the Temple and retired to the dining hall. After the
-meal the King excused himself, saying that he would have to go among his
-people, as on the Eve of Resis all were in the city and were anxious to
-have him appear at their games and pastimes.
-
-Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry walked toward the stables, and to their
-dismay saw their zebras again being taken away.
-
-“Where are they taking the zebras?” asked Harry of Sedai, who stood
-near.
-
-“To the great square,” answered Sedai. “These zebras are trained to do
-certain tricks, and are to give an exhibition to-night before the
-people.”
-
-Harry almost broke down in despair. All hope of their escape on that
-night had fled, and all were thoroughly disturbed. Enola’s despair could
-be seen in her white face, but she said nothing. A resolve had taken
-shape in her mind, that if all else failed, before she would become the
-wife of the King of On she would end her life, for the thought now of
-marrying this man had become abhorrent to her, and the longer she
-brooded over it, the more hateful did it become to her, and hence this
-determination.
-
-Slowly the night grew on, and all listened with bated breath for Sedai,
-for they still had a faint hope that the zebras might be returned in
-time for them to get away at the midnight relief; but midnight came and
-passed, and our friends knew that their last hope was gone. They
-separated for the night without a word, even Mr. Bruce, who was usually
-so hopeful, now not having a word to say.
-
-The morrow was the Day of Resis, and after its mysterious ceremonies had
-been performed, the King of this strange people was to demand Enola for
-his wife.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLIX.
- THE DAY OF RESIS.
-
-
-“The Day of Resis” had come, and long before the sun had shed its golden
-beams on the Temple of On, the people were astir. The tramp of many
-zebras and the rumbling of chariots could be faintly heard by the
-adventurers as they lay tossing on their couches, the night having
-brought them but little rest. They listened with bated breath to the
-sounds as they floated through the wide arches of the Temple, and
-wondered what the day would bring forth. That it would be fateful, was
-certain, for if they did not effect their escape, Enola would become the
-unwilling bride of the King of On; and what would be the subsequent
-events? Would they longer be held prisoners, or, would they be allowed
-to go and come as they saw fit?
-
-But if they failed to get away before the eventful ceremony should take
-place, would there be any further inducement to leave this beautiful
-country? Would not Enola be the wife of Onrai, and would not the bonds
-be binding, having been welded by the laws of this country? Would she
-not still be the wife of Onrai, even if she should go back to
-civilization, and would it not be better for her to remain here with the
-man whom she had been forced to marry? It was a difficult question to
-answer, and puzzled and troubled, the small party of adventurers rose,
-and after the morning bath, the last, they hoped, in the Temple, they
-repaired to the dining hall.
-
-“The night has been a disappointing one in every respect,” said Mr.
-Graham, as he took a seat by the side of Enola, “for I had hoped that
-after the suspense and failure of the early evening, we would at least
-forget for awhile in our sleep. But I see in the haggard faces about me
-traces of unrest, and I know that we have all spent the night in
-worrying and in wondering as to what the day would bring forth.”
-
-“The night has been a fearful one to me,” said Enola; “but it has seemed
-all too short, for I could remember only that with its darkness went all
-hope of mine.”
-
-“Come, Enola,” said Mr. Bruce, “do not give up entirely. Remember that
-it is on the eve of this day that you are to marry the King, and there
-are many hours left us yet in which to escape.”
-
-“No,” said Enola, “I feel that all hope is gone. We will be the central
-figures of attraction to-day and all eyes will be upon us, thus making
-it an impossibility to escape.”
-
-“I differ with you,” said Mr. Bruce, “for we have learned that this is
-the greatest of all days with these people, and the ceremonies of the
-day may call attention from us, thus giving us a chance to get away.
-Listen, even now, the avenues seem crowded with the chariots and zebras,
-and the sandaled feet of the multitude can be heard shuffling over the
-hard pavement. The day for me has the greatest interest, for I long to
-fathom its mysteries, but not at the expense of your happiness, Enola,
-and I will watch every chance, as will all of us, to get you away from
-the hateful ceremony.”
-
-“I had forgotten, in our trouble,” said Mr. Graham, “that there were
-secrets to be learned to-day. What can they be?”
-
-“They must be of an exceedingly happy nature,” said Harry, “for I have
-seen the faces of those who have spoken of the day, light up as if with
-pleasurable anticipation.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “Onrai has said that the day was the happiest one
-in the lives of the people, and that must mean a great deal, for these
-people are always happy, or, have been so until the news reached them of
-the great battle and eruption. Hark,” and as Mr. Bruce ceased speaking,
-a song rose on the morning air so exquisitely beautiful and grand, that
-our friends almost held their breath, for fear of losing one note of its
-delightful harmony. It rose and fell one moment loud and powerful,
-ringing through the entrance and wide hall of the Temple, and the next
-dying away almost to a whisper.
-
-“Ah,” said Enola, as the voices ceased, “it is beautiful. Oh, why could
-not Onrai have left me in peace, so that we might enjoy even yet awhile
-the delights of this grand country and people.”
-
-“It is indeed too bad,” said Mr. Bruce. “But has Sedai been here this
-morning?”
-
-“No,” said Mr. Graham, “but it is time that he was. Perhaps he is afraid
-of losing a chance for escape by coming to us,” but the curtain moves at
-this moment and Sedai enters.
-
-“We were just speaking of you, Sedai,” said Mr. Bruce. “What are the
-chances this morning?”
-
-“Better, I think,” replied Sedai. “I was sitting near the stables last
-night waiting for the watch to sleep, when Ephmer came to me and said:
-
-“‘Listen, Sedai, your friends of the far-away country would escape, for
-the fair one whom Onrai the King, would marry, can see no happiness in
-becoming his wife. To-morrow is the Day of Resis, and on that day is the
-first King of On to marry. But you would escape. I have seen the look of
-fear and suspense on the faces of your friends since they have again
-arrived in the city, and I have seen you here day and night watching
-closely the movements of the men who have been placed to watch your
-friends. Now listen. I have longed to leave my native land and go to
-that far-away country, of which I have heard you speak, and I will help
-you escape. I only ask that you take me with you, and also my friend
-Shal, of the underground world. I cannot promise to effect your escape,
-but I will do all in my power to help you. Will you accept my help?’
-
-“I looked at the Onian for a moment, but did not answer, for fear that
-if I should admit that we were trying to escape, he would report the
-matter to the King.
-
-“Don’t mistrust me,” he continued, “and I decided to accept his offer.
-Have I done right?”
-
-“You have,” said Mr. Bruce, “and if this man can help us, he shall see
-that great world beyond the cliffs to which he has so longed to go.”
-
-“’Tis well,” said Sedai, “Ephmer will be near you to-day during the
-ceremonies and will explain all to you. I will immediately notify you if
-an opportunity affords for our escape,” and with this Sedai withdrew.
-
-Onrai was heard outside a moment later, and very shortly he came into
-the apartment. His face wore a happy smile, as he walked to where Enola
-was sitting, and taking her hand, said:
-
-“Greeting, Enola. This is the greatest day of my life and the happiest.”
-
-“The day seems strange to me,” said Enola.
-
-“Why strange, Enola,” asked Onrai, his face troubled for the moment.
-
-“Because I cannot realize that in this strange land, so far from our
-own, and where the customs are so very different, I have found the one
-whom I am to marry, and that on this day I am to become his wife. I
-cannot accustom myself to the idea, that is all,” and Enola tried to
-smile, knowing that she must still keep up the miserable farce in order
-to avert suspicion.
-
-“The strangeness will wear off with the day’s ceremonies,” said Onrai,
-“and now the ceremonies are about to commence, and places on the terrace
-are awaiting you.”
-
-“Then we are about to learn the day’s mysteries,” said Mr. Bruce.
-
-“They are mysteries to you only; to my people, the day’s ceremonies are
-well-known,” said the King.
-
-“Then why are they never mentioned?” questioned Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Because they are too sacred,” answered Onrai, solemnly, as he left the
-apartment.
-
-“Ah, they are mysteries still,” said Mr. Bruce, after the King had left.
-“Not even at this late hour will he explain them to us, but leaves us to
-learn them ourselves, and that we are willing to do. Let us go to the
-terrace and there learn what it is which makes the day one of mystery.”
-
-They all now left the dining hall and stepped into the large court. Here
-attendants were awaiting to conduct them to their seats. Ephmer, who was
-one of these, stepped up as they approached, and asked:
-
-“Has Sedai spoken?”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “and we have consented. You will not fail us?”
-
-“I shall do all in my power,” and saying this, Ephmer led the way to the
-terrace where they found seats awaiting them.
-
-The scene which now met the gaze of the adventurers was strange, yet
-grand. The populace thronged the court of the Temple, the garden, the
-avenues leading to it, and even the tops of the villas were crowded with
-the happy-looking people. Before many of the villas could be seen a
-square pile of wood about ten feet high. These had been placed during
-the night, and our friends could but wonder what part these played in
-the ceremonies of the day. Turning to Ephmer, Mr. Bruce asked:
-
-“Why are these piles of wood placed before some villas and not before
-others?”
-
-“In these villas with the biers before them, live the principal
-participants in to-day’s ceremonies,” answered Ephmer.
-
-“What did you call these? Biers?” asked Mr. Bruce, with a puzzled look
-on his face.
-
-“Yes,” answered Ephmer, “for on these are burned the bodies of those who
-have this day met their Day of Resis.”
-
-“Burned? Day of Resis? Why, what do you mean, man?” asked Mr. Bruce, and
-they all looked at the man with troubled faces.
-
-“Only this,” said Ephmer, “that all Onians who have reached the age of
-sixty-five, since this day last year, will to-day be put to death by the
-hand of the King.”
-
-Our friends looked at the Onian, as he said this, with fearful
-wonderment depicted in their faces. Could it be that the man told the
-truth? Could this race of enlightened people do this thing?
-
-“But why are these put to death?” asked Mr. Bruce, as soon as he could
-find his voice.
-
-“Because they have reached that time when old age creeps on; and having
-reached this age, too, they have earned the reward which is rightfully
-theirs, by having lived a sinless life,” answered Ephmer.
-
-“But why should you kill a man because he has seen his best days?” asked
-Mr. Bruce, now interested in spite of himself.
-
-“Because we would leave none but the strong and vigorous to bring
-children into our world, and, also, because our world would become
-over-populated if the old were not killed. The same law governs our
-domestic animals.”
-
-And this, then, was the secret, or one of the secrets of the great
-height, strength and healthfulness of this people, and it also explained
-the absence of all aged people in this strange land. Yes, such a law
-could have but this effect, but at what a cost was the beautiful stature
-and healthfulness acquired?
-
-“But do not those who are to be killed, object?” asked Mr. Bruce.
-
-“Never,” answered Ephmer, “it is the happiest day of their lives. Look
-at them. The ceremonies are about to commence.”
-
-“I cannot stand this,” said Mrs. Graham, and she and Nellie rising,
-entered the Temple. Enola also arose intending to go to her apartment,
-but at that moment the King came on to the terrace wearing a long,
-crimson robe, and seeing Enola about to retire, said to her: “It is
-important that you witness the scenes of the day, because hereafter, you
-will have to perform the same duties which I am this day performing.”
-
-“I cannot look on this wholesale murder,” answered Enola, with a
-shudder.
-
-“It is the law,” replied Onrai, as he moved away. And Enola again sank
-into her seat. It was fearful, but what could she or the others do?
-Nothing.
-
-Suddenly the blare of a trumpet sounded over the city, and the vast
-throng burst forth in a weird chant which rose and fell in great waves
-of sound, and almost stopped the beating of the heart with its
-impressive solemnity. Up the long avenue came a procession of men and
-women, and across the wrist of each was the gold chain and peculiar
-diamond, which symbolized the bloody ending of the day. A white bag of
-goat skin was suspended by a silken cord which encircled the wrist just
-below the gold band. All were in spotless white with golden girdles and
-fillets of gold about their brows.
-
-The King, in a crimson robe, accompanied by seven priests, took his
-place in the court and faced the line of the doomed. At the sound of
-another trumpet the singing ceased. An onyx pedestal was brought from
-the Temple and placed before the King. On the pedestal was a shallow
-basin of gold.
-
-[Illustration: “Again the flashing dagger was raised in the air.”—_Page
-393._]
-
-At a given signal the lines of the doomed moved forward, keeping the
-right foot foremost, and again the chant of the multitude rose higher
-and higher, growing wilder and wilder, until the front rank of the
-victims was ranged before the King. He drew from his girdle a glittering
-dagger, that flashed in the sunlight when he held it aloft, as the
-doomed men and women thrust out their naked wrists over the golden
-basin. One swift stroke severed the main artery and the goat-skin bag
-was instantly drawn up and tied above the wound, scarcely a drop of
-blood falling into the shallow golden vessel on the pedestal.
-
-Again the flashing dagger was raised in the air as two members of each
-victim’s family stepped from the throng and assisted the doomed into the
-chariot which stood waiting. On the faces of the vast throng no horror
-was depicted, but rather the intent look of serious and solemn interest.
-Even upon the faces of the victims a beatified look of hopeful
-expectancy, was the only evidence that they were not to mingle again
-with their fellow-men, in the duties and pleasures of the Land of On.
-
-For a time Enola was enabled to keep her face turned away from the
-actual sight of the massacre, but under the influence of that wonderful
-music, she at last stole one brief glance at the King as the gleaming
-knife crossed the wrist of a victim, and from that time until the long
-procession had passed the pedestal of death, she was held as if by the
-glittering eyes of a serpent.
-
-As the last man received his death-thrust, the King dropped the knife
-into the basin, and holding aloft both hands, intoned the words of the
-ceremony which were supposed to justify the deeds of the day, and speed
-the departing souls into the sublimity of the hereafter. At last Mr.
-Bruce exclaimed hoarsely:
-
-“It is over!” and he looked up just in time to see Enola fall fainting
-into Harry’s arms. She was immediately borne to her apartments and was
-soon revived. As the men left the terrace, there was not a sign to show
-that the day had been one of dreadful tragedies. No drop of blood, no
-confusion. Simply the orderly dispersing of the multitude engaged in
-low-toned conversation.
-
-All now met in Mr. Bruce’s rooms and breathlessly awaited Sedai’s
-arrival. The news which he would bring from the stables would decide how
-much or how little of hope they might have, for effecting an escape
-before Onrai should come.
-
-Suddenly the curtain stirred and Sedai’s face appeared. He beckoned to
-them to follow, and noiselessly they crossed the starlit terrace and
-entered the garden. Here they found Ephmer and Shal awaiting them with
-zebras. Enola was about to mount her zebra when she heard a peculiar
-cry, and turning she saw the great white body of Gip looming up in the
-half light and coming toward her.
-
-“Oh, Gip,” she cried, “this is my only regret in leaving On. I cannot
-take you with me,” and patting the great noble beast, which had saved
-her life on two different occasions and the lives of her friends, she
-turned and mounted her zebra and rode away with tears streaming from her
-eyes, afraid to look back, fearful of the pitiful look on Gip’s face.
-
-Cautiously they picked their way through the park toward the road to the
-mountains. Along this road, which was used only for bringing the fodder
-for the stables, Sedai led them, explaining that it joined the main road
-leading to the cave a short distance from the city. As soon as they
-reached the main road they urged on their zebras with all speed, for,
-turning to look back at the city, they could see torches glittering
-about rapidly and could hear a confused murmur of sounds which indicated
-that their escape had been detected. Here and there a steady flame
-shooting straight into the air, denoted the burning funeral pyres of the
-day’s victims. Sedai motioned them to stop for a moment, and listening
-intently, he said:
-
-“We are pursued.”
-
-On they flew again over the hard road, through bits of forest, past the
-shores of small lakes and over green fields. Far ahead they could see
-the dark forest on the side of the mountain. Through the gate of the
-mighty wall they sped, and Sedai dismounted to hastily close and
-barricade it from the inside. Their pursuers would have to climb the
-wall, or seek one of the other gates and every moment was precious now.
-They crossed the bridge and plunged into the woods that intervened
-between them and the cave. The roar of a lion was heard to the right,
-but they did not hesitate.
-
-The eastern horizon was growing brighter and brighter, and by the time
-they had passed the forest, the moon had risen high above the mountains.
-The rapid gallop of zebras could be heard and looking back, they saw a
-large body of mounted men struggling at the barricaded gate. Finding the
-gate impassable, they formed a pyramid and in this way the men reached
-the top of the wall, and then used ropes to let themselves down into the
-Hunting Reserve.
-
-Harry first reached the secret door, but strove in vain to find the
-hidden spring. The pursuers were gaining upon them, and Enola, urging
-her zebra forward, sprang to the ground and, grasping the lever, pressed
-hard on it, but the stone door of the cave failed to open. Her heart
-sank within her. She remembered the last revolution it had made, and the
-difficulty with which she had rescued Sedai from its stony embrace.
-Could it be that the mechanism was then injured? The mighty spring
-broken, perhaps? She reeled for a second, as the dreadful possibility
-suggested itself to her. Then seizing Harry’s rifle she dashed its butt
-against the lever and the heavy stone door began to revolve.
-
-Sedai, seizing a heavy branch, struck the zebra upon which Mrs. Graham
-was riding, and the frightened animal sprang through the opening,
-followed by the one ridden by Nellie. One after another they were driven
-through, and as the leaders of the pursuing party dashed into the open
-glade, Sedai drove the last unmounted zebra through the opening.
-Springing to the ground, the foremost of the pursuers sought to grasp
-Sedai, but with a swing of his club about his head, the assailant was
-laid low, and Sedai disappeared. Through the crack of the door, as it
-swung shut, came a heart-rending cry of “Enola, Enola,” from the King.
-
-Once more, with pale faces and beating hearts, the explorers stood
-within the great subterranean cavern, which had so nearly been their
-tomb, but which now was a place of refuge. The hidden City of On had
-been discovered, its history and its people were known to them, the
-object of their journey had been accomplished.
-
-
-After the party had rested, they took their way across the cave, and
-with the zebras this was found easy to do. These trained animals easily
-leaped across the break in the bridge, but when it came to the small
-entrance at the opposite side of the cave, it was feared that they would
-have to be left here to die, as the hole was too small for them to pass
-through. Our friends were greatly grieved to think that they would have
-to leave these noble beasts to die in such a cruel way, in the cave, but
-there seemed no other alternative, and they dismounted and passed
-through the hole, but they had not calculated on the training of these
-animals, and they had hardly stepped into the open air, when one of the
-zebras came crawling through on his haunches, and shortly after the
-others followed him. These had been trained to do this, and our friends
-now remembered having seen them perform this trick on the night
-preceding the Day of Resis.
-
-It took them but a short time to reach the village of Umsaga, where they
-found the carriers still waiting for them, and in a few weeks they were
-again in Zanzibar, and had no difficulty in getting passage to England,
-from where they sailed for home.
-
-A few weeks after their arrival in New York, a double wedding was
-announced, and on the evening of the happy day, carriage after carriage
-rolled to the door of the Graham mansion, depositing richly clad women
-and courtly men. Under an arch of flowers, a little later, stood four
-people, arrayed in strange robes of silk, with bands of gold binding
-their brows and with girdles of gold about their waists.
-
-In the costume of the Land of On, the double wedding was in progress,
-and in the faces of the women could be read a story of trust and
-confidence and love supreme, and in those of the men, the satisfaction
-of proud manhood fitly crowned.
-
-
- THE END.
-
-
- MRS. MARY J. HOLMES’ NOVELS.
-
- Over a MILLION Sold.
-
-As a writer of domestic stories, which are extremely interesting, Mrs.
-Mary Holmes is unrivalled. Her characters are true to life, quaint, and
-admirable.
-
- Tempest and Sunshine.
- English Orphans.
- Homestead on the Hillside.
- ’Lena Rivers.
- Meadow Brook.
- Dora Deane.
- Cousin Maude.
- Marian Grey.
- Edith Lyle.
- Daisy Thornton.
- Chateau D’Or.
- Queenie Hetherton.
- Darkness and Daylight.
- Hugh Worthington.
- Cameron Pride.
- Rose Mather.
- Ethelyn’s Mistake.
- Millbank.
- Edna Browning.
- West Lawn.
- Mildred.
- Forrest House.
- Madeline.
- Christmas Stories.
- Bessie’s Fortune.
- Gretchen.
- Marguerite.
- Dr. Hathern’s Daughters. (_New._)
-
- Price $1.50 per Vol.
-
-
- AUGUSTA J. EVANS’
-
- MAGNIFICENT NOVELS.
-
- Beulah, $1.75
- St. Elmo, $2.00
- Inez, $1.75
- Macaria, $1.75
- Vashti, $2.00
- Infelice, $2.00
- At the Mercy of Tiberius (_New_), $2.00.
-
-“The author’s style is beautiful, chaste, and elegant. Her ideas are
-clothed in the most fascinating imagery, and her power of delineating
-character is truly remarkable.”
-
-
- MARION HARLAND’S
-
- SPLENDID NOVELS.
-
- Alone.
- Hidden Path.
- Moss Side.
- Nemesis.
- Miriam.
- Sunny Bank.
- Ruby’s Husband.
- At Last.
- My Little Love.
- Phemie’s Temptation.
- The Empty Heart.
- From My Youth Up.
- Helen Gardner.
- Husbands and Homes.
- Jessamine.
- True as Steel.
-
- Price $1.50 per Vol.
-
-“Marion Harland understands the art of constructing a plot which will
-gain the attention of the reader at the beginning, and keep up the
-interest to the last page.”
-
-
- MAY AGNES FLEMING’S
-
- POPULAR NOVELS.
-
- Silent and True.
- A Wonderful Woman.
- A Terrible Secret.
- Norine’s Revenge.
- A Mad Marriage.
- One Night’s Mystery.
- Kate Danton.
- Guy Earlscourt’s Wife.
- Heir of Charlton.
- Carried by Storm.
- Lost for a Woman.
- A Wife’s Tragedy.
- A Changed Heart.
- Pride and Passion.
- Sharing Her Crime.
- A Wronged Wife.
- Maude Percy’s Secret.
- The Actress’ Daughter.
- The Queen of the Isle.
- The Midnight Queen. (_New._)
-
- Price $1.50 per Vol.
-
-“Mrs. Fleming’s stories are growing more and more popular every day.
-These life-like conversations, flashes of wit, constantly varying scenes
-and deeply interesting plots, combine to place their author in the very
-first rank of Modern Novelists.”
-
-
- JULIE P. SMITH’S NOVELS
-
- Widow Goldsmith’s Daughter $1 50
- Chris and Otho 1 50
- Ten Old Maids 1 50
- Lucy 1 50
- His Young Wife 1 50
- The Widower 1 50
- The Married Belle 1 50
- Courting and Farming 50
- Kiss and be Friends 50
- Blossom Bud 1 50
-
-
- JOHN ESTEN COOKE’S WORKS.
-
- Surry of Eagle’s Nest $1 50
- Fairfax 1 50
- Hilt to Hilt 1 50
- Beatrice Hallam 1 50
- Leather and Silk 1 50
- Miss Bennybel 1 50
- Out of the Foam 1 50
- Hammer and Rapier 1 50
- Mohun 1 50
- Captain Ralph 1 50
- Col. Ross of Piedmont 1 50
- Robert E. Lee 1 50
- Stonewall Jackson 1 50
- Her Majesty the Queen 1 50
-
-
- CELIA E. GARDNER’S NOVELS.
-
- Stolen Waters. (In verse) $1 50
- Broken Dreams. Do. 1 50
- Compensation. Do. 1 50
- A Twisted Skein. Do. 1 50
- Tested 1 50
- Rich Medway 1 50
- A Woman’s Wiles 1 50
- Terrace Roses 1 50
- Seraph—or Mortal? (New) 1 50
-
-
- A. S. ROE’S NOVELS.
-
- True to the Last $1 50
- A Long Look Ahead 1 50
- The Star and the Cloud 1 50
- I’ve Been Thinking. 1 50
- How could He Help It 1 50
- Like and Unlike 1 50
- To Love and Be Loved 1 50
- Time and Tide 1 50
- Woman Our Angel 1 50
- Looking Around 1 50
- The Cloud on the Heart 1 50
- Resolution 1 50
-
-
- CAPTAIN MAYNE REID’S WORKS.
-
- The Scalp Hunters $1 50
- The Rifle Rangers 1 50
- The War Trail 1 50
- The Wood Rangers 1 50
- The Wild Huntress 1 50
- The Maroon 1 50
- The Headless Horseman 1 50
- The Rangers and Regulators 1 50
- The White Chief 1 50
- The Tiger Hunter 1 50
- The Hunter’s Feast 1 50
- Wild Life 1 50
- Osceola, the Seminole 1 50
- The Quadroon 1 50
- The White Gauntlet 1 50
- Lost Leonore 1 50
-
-
- POPULAR HAND-BOOKS.
-
- The Habits of Good Society—The nice points of taste and good
- manners $1 00
- The Art of Conversation—For those who wish to be agreeable
- talkers 1 00
- The Arts of Writing, Reading and Speaking—For Self-Improvement 1 00
- Carelton’s Hand-Book of Popular Quotations 1 50
- 1000 Legal Don’ts—By Ingersoll Lockwood 75
- 600 Medical Don’ts—By Ferd. C. Valentine, M.D. 75
- On the Chafing Dish—By Harriet P. Bailey 50
- Pole on Whist 1 00
- Draw Poker without a Master 50
-
-
- POPULAR NOVELS, COMIC BOOKS, ETC.
-
- Les Miserables—Translated from the French. The only complete
- edition $1 50
- Stephen Lawrence—By Annie Edwardes 1 50
- Susan Fielding Do. Do. 1 50
- A Woman of Fashion Do. Do. 1 50
- Archie Lovell Do. Do. 1 50
- Love (L’Amour)—English Translation from Michelet’s famous French
- work 1 50
- Woman (La Femme)—The Sequel to “L’Amour.” Do. Do. 1 50
- Verdant Green—A racy English college story. With 200 comic
- illustrations 1 50
- Doctor Antonio—By Ruffini 1 50
- Beatrice Cenci—From the Italian 1 50
- Josh Billings His Complete Writings—With Biography, Steel
- Portrait, and 100 Ill. 2 00
- Artemas Ward. Complete Comic Writings—With Biography, Portrait,
- and 50 Ill. 1 50
- Children’s Fairy Geography—With hundreds of beautiful
- Illustrations 1 00
-
-
- AUGUSTA J. EVANS’
-
- MAGNIFICENT NOVELS.
-
- BEULAH, $1.75
- ST. ELMO, 2.00
- INEZ, 1.75
- MACARIA, 1.75
- VASHTI, 2.00
- INFELICE, 2.00
- AT THE MERCY OF TIBERIUS, 2.00
-
- A Prominent Critic says of these Novels:
-
-“The author’s style is beautiful, chaste, and elegant. Her ideals are
-clothed in the most fascinating imagery, and her power of delineating
-character is truly remarkable. One of the marked and striking
-characteristics of each and all her works is the purity of sentiment
-which pervades every line, every page, and every chapter.”
-
-
- Mrs. Mary J. HOLMES’ Works.
-
- TEMPEST AND SUNSHINE.
- ENGLISH ORPHANS.
- HOMESTEAD ON HILLSIDE.
- ’LENA RIVERS.
- MEADOW BROOK.
- DORA DEANE.
- COUSIN MAUDE.
- MARIAN GREY.
- EDITH LYLE.
- DAISY THORNTON.
- CHATEAU D’OR.
- QUEENIE HETHERTON.
- BESSIE’S FORTUNE.
- MARGUERITE.
- DARKNESS AND DAYLIGHT.
- HUGH WORTHINGTON.
- CAMERON PRIDE.
- ROSE MATHER.
- ETHELYN’S MISTAKE.
- MILLBANK.
- EDNA BROWNING.
- WEST LAWN.
- MILDRED.
- FOREST HOUSE.
- MADELINE.
- CHRISTMAS STORIES.
- GRETCHEN.
- DR. HATHERN’S DAUGHTERS.
- MRS. HALLAM’S COMPANION. (_New_.)
-
-OPINIONS OF THE PRESS.
-
-“Mrs. Holmes’ stories are universally read. Her admirers are numberless.
-She is in many respects without a rival in the world of fiction. Her
-characters are always life-like, and she makes them talk and act like
-human beings, subject to the same emotions, swayed by the same passions,
-and actuated by the same motives which are common among men and women of
-every-day existence. Mrs. Holmes is very happy in portraying domestic
-life. Old and young peruse her stories with great delight, for she
-writes in a style that all can comprehend.”—_New York Weekly._
-
-THE NORTH AMERICAN REVIEW, vol. 81, page 557, says of Mrs. Mary J.
-Holmes’ novel “English Orphans”: “With this novel of Mrs. Holmes’ we
-have been charmed, and so have a pretty numerous circle of
-discriminating readers to whom we have lent it. The characterization is
-exquisite, especially so far as concerns rural and village life, of
-which there are some pictures that deserve to be hung up in perpetual
-memory of types of humanity fast becoming extinct. The dialogues are
-generally brief, pointed, and appropriate. The plot seems simple, so
-easily and naturally is it developed and consummated. Moreover, the
-story thus gracefully constructed and written, inculcates without
-obtruding, but only pure Christian morality in general, but, with
-especial point and power, the dependence of true success on character,
-and of true respectability on merit.”
-
-“Mrs. Holmes’ stories are all of a domestic character, and their
-interest, therefore, is not so intense as if they were more highly
-seasoned with sensationalism, but it is of a healthy and abiding
-character. The interest in her tales begins at once, and is maintained
-to the close. Her sentiments are so sound, her sympathies so warm and
-ready, and her knowledge of manners, character, and the varied incidents
-of ordinary life is so thorough, that she would find it difficult to
-write any other than an excellent tale if she were to try it.”—_Boston
-Banner._
-
-☞ The volumes are all handsomely printed and bound in cloth, sold
-everywhere, and sent by mail, _postage free_, on receipt of price [$1.50
-each].
-
-[Illustration]
-
- G. W. DILLINGHAM CO., Publishers,
- 33 WEST 23d STREET, NEW YORK.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
-
-
- 1. Silently corrected obvious typographical errors and variations in
- spelling.
- 2. Retained archaic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings as printed.
- 3. Enclosed italics font in _underscores_.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DAY OF RESIS ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/67479-0.zip b/old/67479-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index aafaa3d..0000000
--- a/old/67479-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h.zip b/old/67479-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index f512d02..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/67479-h.htm b/old/67479-h/67479-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 1abddbb..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/67479-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,16076 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8" />
- <title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Day of Resis, by Lillian Frances Mentor</title>
- <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover" />
- <style> /* <![CDATA[ */
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .lg-container-r { text-align: right; }
- .x-ebookmaker .lg-container-r { clear: both; }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: justify; }
- .x-ebookmaker .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- .linegroup .in20 { padding-left: 13.0em; }
- .index li {text-indent: -1em; padding-left: 1em; }
- .index ul {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 0; }
- ul.index {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 0; }
- .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1em; }
- ol.ol_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 2.78%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: decimal; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- .x-ebookmaker hr.pb { display: none; }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- .figleft { clear: left; float: left; max-width: 100%; margin: 0.5em 1em 1em 0;
- text-align: justify; }
- div.figcenter p { text-align: center; text-indent: 0; }
- .x-ebookmaker .figleft { float: left; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .figleft img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:80%; }
- .id002 { width:10%; }
- .id003 { width:40%; }
- .id004 { width:10%; }
- .x-ebookmaker .id001 { margin-left:10%; width:80%; }
- .x-ebookmaker .id002 { margin-left:45%; width:10%; }
- .x-ebookmaker .id003 { margin-left:30%; width:40%; }
- .x-ebookmaker .id004 { width:10%; }
- .ic003 { width:100%; }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .table1 { margin: auto; margin-left: 0%; margin-right: 0%; width: 100%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: justify; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c001 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c003 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c004 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c005 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c006 { vertical-align: top; text-align: justify; text-indent: -1em;
- padding-left: 1em; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c007 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c008 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c009 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c010 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.25em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c011 { margin-top: .5em; }
- .c012 { vertical-align: bottom; text-align: right; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:thin solid silver; margin:2em 10% 0 10%; font-family: Georgia, serif;
- }
- .covernote { visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- div.tnotes p { text-align: justify; }
- .x-ebookmaker .covernote { visibility: visible; display: block; }
- .figcenter {font-size: .9em; page-break-inside: avoid; max-width: 100%; }
- .figleft {font-size: .9em; page-break-inside: avoid; max-width: 100%; }
- .x-ebookmaker img {max-height: 30em; max-width: 100%; }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .section { page-break-before: always; }
- .ol_1 li {font-size: .9em; }
- .x-ebookmaker .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: 0em; }
- body {font-family: Georgia, serif; text-align: justify; }
- table {font-size: .9em; padding: 1.5em .5em 1em; page-break-inside: avoid;
- clear: both; }
- div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always;
- page-break-after: always; }
- div.titlepage p {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold;
- line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 3em; }
- .ph1 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large;
- margin: .67em auto; page-break-before: always; }
- .ph2 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; margin: .75em auto;
- page-break-before: always; }
- .ph3 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: large; margin: .83em auto;
- page-break-before: always; }
- .x-ebookmaker p.dropcap:first-letter { float: left; }
- .colwidth7 {width: 7%; }
- .colwidth92 {width: 92%; }
- /* ]]> */ </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Day of Resis, by Lillian Frances Mentor</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Day of Resis</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Lillian Frances Mentor</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrator: Harry L. V. Parkhurst</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: February 23, 2022 [eBook #67479]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DAY OF RESIS ***</div>
-
-<div class='tnotes covernote'>
-
-<p class='c000'><strong>Transcriber’s Note:</strong></p>
-
-<p class='c000'>The cover image was created by the transcriber and is placed in the public domain.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_frontispiece.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='titlepage'>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c001'>THE DAY OF RESIS.</h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>BY</div>
- <div><span class='xlarge'>LILLIAN FRANCES MENTOR.</span></div>
- <div class='c002'>ILLUSTRATED BY</div>
- <div><span class='large'>HARRY L. V. PARKHURST.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id002'>
-<img src='images/i_logo.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>NEW YORK:</div>
- <div><span class='small'>COPYRIGHT, 1897, BY</span></div>
- <div><span class='large'><i>G. W. Dillingham Co., Publishers</i>.</span></div>
- <div class='c003'>MDCCCXCVII.</div>
- <div class='c003'>[<i>All rights reserved.</i>]</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CONTENTS.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0'>
- <tr>
- <th class='c005'><span class='small'>Chapter</span></th>
- <th class='c006'>&#160;</th>
- <th class='c007'><span class='small'>Page</span></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>I.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Strange Document</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_7'>7</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>II.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Into the Heart of Africa</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_17'>17</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>III.</td>
- <td class='c006'>In the Cavern</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_27'>27</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>IV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Death Faces Them</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_35'>35</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>V.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The City of “On”</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_43'>43</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>VI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Banquet</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_50'>50</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>VII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Law of the Land of On</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_59'>59</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>VIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Royal Hunt</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_73'>73</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>IX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Gold Mine and Cave of Ice</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_81'>81</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>X.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Journey to the Lake</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_89'>89</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Fight of the Sea Monsters</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_94'>94</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Night of Prayer</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_101'>101</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Accusation</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_107'>107</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Storm</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_114'>114</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>In the Track of the Storm</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_121'>121</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Enola Found</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_129'>129</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>“She is Mad.”</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_134'>134</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Onrai Visits the Priest</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_139'>139</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Onrai Confesses his Love</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_148'>148</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Agony of Onrai</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_156'>156</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>In Peril</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_162'>162</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>“They must Die”</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_168'>168</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>A Message from the Priest</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_179'>179</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Crisis Past</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_185'>185</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span>XXV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>“He will Marry You”</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_189'>189</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>A Strange Discovery</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_195'>195</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>In the Hole</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_201'>201</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Prisoners in the Cavern of the Dead</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_209'>209</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Death-Trap</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_219'>219</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Cave Dweller’s Funeral</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_225'>225</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Lost in the Cavern</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_235'>235</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Tortuous Tramp</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_248'>248</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Again in the World of Light</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_256'>256</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Again with Friends</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_261'>261</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>A Black Surprise</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_265'>265</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Cleft by the Earthquake</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_273'>273</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>In the Crater</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_280'>280</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Killed in the Crevice</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_290'>290</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Field of Diamonds</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_298'>298</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XL.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Camp of the Onians</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_303'>303</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Slaughter</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_312'>312</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Buried Alive</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_323'>323</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Lost</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_331'>331</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Out of the Ashes</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_339'>339</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLV.</td>
- <td class='c006'>Searching for Bodies</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_347'>347</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'>We Die Together</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_358'>358</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>In the City Again</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_366'>366</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'>No Hope of Escape</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_376'>376</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'>The Day of Resis</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_385'>385</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='chapter ph1'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c008'>
- <div>THE DAY OF RESIS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER I.<br /> <span class='large'>THE STRANGE DOCUMENT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The following letter and document were the first
-causes of the long journey, and strange adventure.</p>
-
-<p class='c009'>“<span class='sc'>Dear Miss Cameron</span>:—You will probably be
-much surprised to hear from me in this out-of-the-way
-place, but knowing the pleasure you take in everything
-pertaining to Africa, I thought you might be interested
-in a matter which came before my notice recently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Some months ago I joined a hunting party bound for
-the interior of Africa, and on our return march at Rehenoko
-we fell in with another caravan bound for the
-coast. Having a common destination, Zanzibar, we
-travelled together. An Abyssinian, Sedai by name,
-was in charge of this caravan. He is a large, powerful
-man, and very intelligent. I often talked with him during
-the long marches, and one day he told me that he
-had on this trip, come across a strange manuscript, a
-part of which he had been able to decipher, but some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_8'>8</span>words of which he could not make out. He asked me
-to help him decipher the difficult phrases; so that evening,
-after everything had been made snug for the night,
-Sedai produced a piece of goat-skin, on which was inscribed
-the following strange tale.</p>
-
-<p class='c009'>‘Name Philip Harding—English—left England July
-6, 1801—Zanzibar, February 16, 1802—expedition just
-left Bagamayo—myself and nine other sailors started to
-overtake it—on 26th, lost our way—wandered long and
-far—hostile tribes—fight—four men killed—others escaped—three
-die with fever, reach mountains—one man
-killed by lion—discover opening into mountain—make
-torches and enter—companion starved—discovered
-line of broken stones—followed these—found bridge—crossed
-this—followed stones again—found secret door—Land
-of On—people thought me from another
-planet—lived in temple—strange people—no knowledge
-or connection with outside world—highly civilized in
-their way—have strange Day of Resis—mysterious ceremonies
-on this day—people never mention it—day sacred—here
-nineteen years one month and sixteen days—made
-escape—looked five days for opening key—removed
-stone set in cliff behind palm tree under eagle’s
-rock mountain—lifted lever seen in spring—rock door
-turned giving time to pass through—passed into cave—crossed
-bridge—dropped torches in lake, am lost—exhausted—starving—if
-document ever found write
-friends—growing weaker—can write no mo——’</p>
-
-<p class='c009'>Here the writing ended. The first part, or that
-part which had been written before entering the cave
-was in regular lines, but the last was evidently written
-after entering the dark cave, or passage, as the characters
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>were scattered and very irregular. Sedai intends
-placing the matter before the next party who are about
-to enter the interior, and have them look up the mysterious
-cave and land. He says that the old man, of
-whom he got the manuscript, is still living, and knows
-the entrance to the cave, in which he found the body
-of Harding still warm, and on it this strange document.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai is a trustworthy fellow, or otherwise I would
-take no stock in his story, or manuscript.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hoping you may find some interest in this strange
-tale, I am,</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Very Sincerely Yours,</div>
- <div class='line in20'><span class='sc'>Frank Boyd</span>.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Such was the letter and weird tale which came in
-Enola Cameron’s mail one morning in the early nineties.
-Only the fact of hearing from Frank Boyd in
-Zanzibar surprised her. The story in itself did not
-surprise her, for she had so long made a study of
-Africa and its dark secrets, that nothing pertaining to
-it seemed strange to her. She was as enthusiastic in
-this research as most women were in studying the art
-of dress and beauty. She had met the great explorer
-Stanley during his late visit to New York, and had
-read the story of his travels again and again. She had
-met Herbert Warde socially, had overhauled his trophies
-to her heart’s content, and his books had also been
-added to the long shelf of African works in her library.
-Here poor Jameson’s story had filled her eyes
-with tears, and here, too, she had escorted Glave that
-she might, in confidence, reveal to him the one great
-desire of her heart, and to learn from him the possibility
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>of its fulfillment. She had studied the history of
-the dark continent from every obtainable source.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Works, which for the average woman held no attraction,
-aroused in her the liveliest interest. Her enthusiasm
-had reached such a pitch that but one course
-seemed open to her, namely, to experience the adventures
-which had made the names of Baker, Grant,
-Speke, Livingstone and Stanley famous. She had
-passed her twentieth birthday; she was of medium
-height and well-rounded figure, brimming over with
-health and strength, as was shown by her clear, rosy
-complexion and bright eyes, which lighted up with
-enthusiasm as new thoughts opened to life in her
-active brain.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was nothing of the so-called New Woman
-about her; far from it; she was a womanly woman
-with a great sympathetic heart and kindly nature.
-She was an orphan, her parents having died when she
-was yet a child, leaving her with a life-long friend of
-the mother. This was Mrs. Graham, a most estimable
-woman, wealthy and moving in the best circle in the
-city in which they lived. Enola had long since learned
-to look upon Mrs. Graham and her kind husband as
-her second parents, and she was as dearly loved by
-them as were their own children. She had a snug fortune
-of her own and was thoroughly independent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But now that she had made up her mind to go to
-Africa and ascertain the truth, or fallacy, of the tale
-which had just reached her, she felt a little hesitancy
-in broaching the subject to her friends. But she was
-not the one to be intimidated so easily, so went direct
-to the library, where she knew that Mr. Graham and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>Harry, the son, would be, and opened the subject at
-once.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Uncle,” she said (she always called her second
-parents uncle and aunt), “I am going to Africa, and
-will want your help.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham’s glasses fell from his nose, so suddenly
-did he look up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To Africa,” said he; “Well, has it come to this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Exactly,” said Enola. “Now don’t look as if I
-had declared my intention of committing suicide, although
-in your eyes I suppose the two are synonymous.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When do you start?” asked Mr. Graham. Having
-long since learned that to cross Enola was to make
-her the more determined to carry out her own plans.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To-day or to-morrow, or as soon as you can make
-preparations. Now remember, I am only suggesting
-this adventure; you are the real instigator of the
-project, and have asked me to accompany you, you
-know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, if that isn’t a woman for you,” said Mr.
-Graham, laughing in spite of himself. “You come
-here declaring your intention of going to Africa, asking
-my help and then tell me that it is I who must assume
-all responsibility. Well, I will do it for your
-sake, but I hope it is not to be out of the regular
-beaten paths of travel in Africa, for it might not be
-pleasant, you know, fighting hostile natives with a
-woman about.” And Mr. Graham again laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The woman will take care of herself, never fear,”
-said Enola. “But seriously, uncle, I never would
-have asked you to accompany me on this journey, but
-for your having spoken some time ago of your intention
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>of going to France to spend your vacation, and
-the thought occurred to me that you might care to go
-with me for two reasons. First, of course, to be my
-escort, and secondly, because the adventure would
-please you. And as for the danger, from what I can
-glean from Mr. Boyd’s letter, I should say that we
-will not meet with any great amount of this, for, from
-the coast to the mountains, the road leads through a
-comparatively open country, and if we start now we
-will get to Zanzibar about the right time to enter the
-interior. I anticipate but very little trouble in reaching
-the mountains. What will happen after that I
-cannot say.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The adventure will just suit my ideas of such
-things,” said Mr. Graham, “and I will go with you
-gladly. And you want to start immediately?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, yes,” said Enola. “This man Sedai was to
-present the matter before the first party entering the
-interior, and if we should wish to be the ones to discover
-this strange land, we must lose no time in getting
-to Zanzibar. It will not take long to make preparations,
-will it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, no,” said Mr. Graham. “We will take but
-very little with us from this country, for everything
-can be obtained in Zanzibar. Let us see,” and he
-consults a New York paper. “To-day is Friday and
-the Paris sails from New York next Wednesday. We
-can leave here on Sunday evening if you wish to, and
-mother and Nellie can get packed in that time, and
-arrive in New York Tuesday morning. We can make
-what few purchases we need, and go on the steamer
-that same night. Now what do you think of that for
-quick work?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>“I see you are quite as enthusiastic as myself in
-this matter,” said Enola. “But where will we leave
-Auntie and Nellie while we are making our longer
-journey?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, they can stop somewhere in Europe,” said
-Mr. Graham, “or go on to Zanzibar if they wish, and
-wait there for our return. I am afraid, Enola, that
-you will have harder work to convince them of the
-advisability of this trip, than you have had with me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid so,” said Enola, “but you must
-help me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will do the best I can,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But look here,” said Harry, who had kept
-perfectly quiet up to this time. “Where do I
-come in?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, Harry, I supposed you understood that you
-were to accompany us,” said Enola. “Your father is
-perfectly willing, I know, and your mother will not
-object when she learns that I am determined on going.
-It will be pleasanter to have you with us, for there
-will be so few of us at the most, and among strangers
-home faces will be very comforting.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It will have to be pleasant or otherwise,” said
-Harry, “for I intend accompanying you, most certainly.
-I wouldn’t see you take such a journey without
-me. There ought to be two of us with you anyway
-Enola, so that in case anything should happen
-one of us, you would still have another to protect you.
-It is a serious thing I should judge, to have to trust
-wholly to the half savage negroes who will make up
-your escort. So we must guard against any contingency.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>“Very well,” said Enola, “then it is settled that we
-start on Sunday night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sunday night if you can get ready and I can get
-accommodations on the steamer,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t worry about me, uncle,” said Enola.
-“Look out for yourself and Auntie. I will be ready,”
-and saying this Enola turned and left the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry had long since learned to love Enola, but she
-had told him positively when he approached her on the
-subject of marriage, that she only thought of him as
-a brother, but that sometime she might learn to think
-of him in a different way; until that time, however, he
-must not mention the subject again. Harry had
-promised, and so the matter had rested; but he had
-not forgotten her words, and he now saw a chance,
-while on this long journey, to win the love he craved.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He was twenty-eight, and by hard work, and strict
-attention to his duties, had been promoted to the position
-of cashier in the bank of which his father was
-president. He and his father had both left the
-bank for an indefinite period just a few days before
-our story opens, fully decided on taking a long vacation,
-spending the time in Europe. So Enola’s plans
-had not upset theirs to any great extent; they would
-now take a trip into Africa, instead of through Europe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When they had thought the matter over for some
-time, they came to the conclusion that the African
-trip would be more to their liking, for they were both
-good hunters and lovers of adventure. So Harry
-and his father lost no time but went out that same
-afternoon and made purchases of shotguns, rifles and
-pistols, fishing tackle, and some of the more necessary
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>medicines. They trusted to getting everything else
-which they might need in New York and in Zanzibar.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That evening at the dinner table, the subject was
-brought up before Mrs. Graham and Nellie. Both objected,
-but when Mr. Graham and Harry both avowed
-their intention of accompanying Enola, then the ladies
-gave their consent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sunday came around and the party had gotten all
-ready and started for New York. Arriving there some
-few purchases were made, and then in the evening
-the party boarded the great steamer which was to
-carry them to Southampton. The following day
-opened up bright and beautiful, Enola remarking that
-this foretold success. The steamer left the dock early
-and moved slowly down the bay, past Governor’s
-Island, Bedloe’s Island, the Statue of Liberty, and
-then along the Staten Island shore, past Quarantine,
-the forts, Fire Island, Sandy Hook, and then, after a
-glimpse of Coney Island, Brighton, Manhattan Beach
-and Far Rockaway, the steamer turned her nose
-toward the Old World, and land was soon out of sight.
-The trip was an enjoyable one, the steamer not breaking
-her record, but still reaching Southampton in less
-than seven days. They did not tarry in England, but
-took one of the Channel steamers for Boulogne Sur
-Mer, and arriving here boarded a train for Paris, which
-city was reached the same night. The following day
-Mr. Graham looked up a steamer for Alexandria, and
-learned that one sailed for that port on Saturday from
-Marseilles. This was Thursday, so no time must be
-lost in reaching Marseilles. Sleeping accommodations
-were secured on the night train, and the following
-morning found them in the quaint old city. The day
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>was spent in taking a drive along the Mediterranean.
-It was at a time when the Reviera is generally crowded,
-and the beautiful driveway was filled with elegant
-equipages.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The following morning they took the steamer for
-Alexandria.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This was the most delightful part of the trip. The
-sky never looked so blue, the water never so calm, the
-sun never so bright, and the air never seemed so pure
-as on this two weeks’ trip, from Marseilles to Alexandria.
-Stops were made at Algiers, Tunis and at several
-other points before reaching Alexandria, and at
-these different places, the boat stopping for a few
-hours, our friends disembarked, and made short excursions
-over the towns.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At Alexandria a freight steamer was found bound
-for Madagascar, and arrangements were made with
-the Captain to give the ladies his cabin, Mr. Graham
-and Harry being satisfied with humbler quarters.
-Down through the Suez Canal, into the Red Sea, out
-through the Gulf of Aden and then into the Indian
-Ocean, and the little steamer headed due south. This
-trip was rather slow but without much hardship, the
-Island of Zanzibar was at last sighted, and, later in the
-day, they were taken off in lighters.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The civilized part,” as Enola called it, of the
-journey was finished, and it remained now to make
-preparations for that other journey, which might prove
-less agreeable and a great deal more dangerous.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER II.<br /> <span class='large'>INTO THE HEART OF AFRICA.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>After landing at Zanzibar, the labor of equipment
-began. Bales of cloth and boxes of wire, innumerable
-colored beads and trinkets were shipped to Bagamayo
-in charge of reliable Zanzibari, the most trustworthy
-of African carriers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry first looked up the reputation of Sedai, the
-Abyssinian, and finding this to be good, he then went
-in search of the man himself. He was found on the
-quay with a lot of natives, and upon Harry telling him
-what he wanted, he followed him to the hotel. Sedai
-was a monstrous fellow, standing fully six and a half
-feet high, and built like a Hercules. His skin was of
-a bronze color, smooth and shiny; his eyes were piercing
-black, his forehead high, and his face above the
-average in intellect for one of his race.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You remember Mr. Boyd, do you not?” asked
-Mr. Graham, when the hotel had been reached.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Perfectly well,” answered the Abyssinian.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And you believe that the mysterious Land of On
-exists?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wish to make that belief a certainty. Will you
-join us and get together a proper number of carriers
-and natives to insure comparative safety in making the
-journey?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gladly,” said Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You shall have something more than the usual
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>amount paid for such services, for the journey may
-entail more than the usual amount of work and danger.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I shall expect nothing more than I have been accustomed
-to getting,” answered the Abyssinian.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We will decide on that later,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but tell us now of the finding of the goat-skin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will do so,” said Sedai. “When on my last expedition,
-far up in the country, I heard this story from
-the mouth of an old man. It may be false, but I believe
-it to be true. Umsaga, that is the name of the
-old man, said: “One day when I was quite a boy I was
-out hunting on the mountain side, and among the undergrowth
-disclosed a flat stone, which had at some
-remote period covered an opening about four feet
-square, in the side of the mountain. Being curious to
-know whither the hole led, I entered, but had gone only
-a short distance when I heard a groan. This scared me
-but I determined to learn what it was that had made
-the noise. I returned to the outside and procuring a
-torch, again entered the cave, and followed in the direction
-from which the sound came, and had not gone
-far when I almost stumbled over the prostrate body of
-a man. I felt it and found it still warm, but upon
-close examination found that life was extinct. He
-was of the white race, but exposure and starvation
-had tanned and drawn the skin tight over the bones.
-By his side was a knife, and clutched in his hand was
-a piece of goat-skin, on which he had cut strange characters,
-which I could not decipher. I took the goat-skin
-and never again entered the cave.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This was the old man’s story,” continued Sedai,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>“and offering him a piece of cloth for the goat-skin,
-he eagerly accepted it and I left him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And you could read it?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I was for a time in the service of an Englishman in
-my own country and knew some English. I have
-learned more since, but I could not make out all of
-the letters. With Mr. Boyd’s help, however, all was
-made plain. It is here,” and Sedai saying this, handed
-the parchment to Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party gathered around Mr. Graham and examined
-the goat-skin closely.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And the old man never sought to solve the mystery?”
-said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“So he said,” answered Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This parchment tells us how to leave this strange
-country, when once it is entered,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but it does not tell how to find the secret door
-which is to admit us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The sailor found it,” said Enola, “and it seems
-to me that we ought to.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, we will never know until we get to the
-point where we may expect to find it,” said Mr.
-Graham. “How far is it, Sedai, to this mountain,
-through which we will have to go to find the strange
-country?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“About three hundred miles,” said Sedai, “through
-a country not difficult to travel, and among natives
-not usually hostile.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you be ready to start to-morrow?” asked
-Mr. Graham of Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can,” said Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then be at Bagamayo to-morrow at daybreak,
-ready to start.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>“I will be there,” answered Sedai, and with this he
-left.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That day a Mr. Bruce called on Mr. Graham, making
-a request to accompany the expedition, and Mr.
-Graham, having looked up his reference and found
-that he was a Scotchman of first-class standing both
-socially and financially, he consented to his accompanying
-them. Later in the day the party crossed
-over to Bagamayo, so as to be there for an early start
-in the morning.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Early on the following morning the caravan was
-drawn up and carefully inspected by Mr. Bruce, Mr.
-Graham, Harry and Enola. Twenty donkeys and one
-hundred carriers, with one cart, were to transport the
-goods of barter. A double relay of six carriers was
-detailed to carry each of the sedan chairs of Mrs.
-Graham and Nellie, after having learned that the
-country through which they would pass would be
-open, and the tribes not hostile had decided to accompany
-the caravan. They were desirous of seeing the
-strange land and people. Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and
-Harry had procured horses from an Arab in Bagamayo,
-and when the caravan was drawn up it made an imposing
-sight, and one well calculated to inspire hostile
-tribes with a wholesome fear.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At six o’clock, with the sun shining brightly, and
-amid the shouts of many Arabs and natives who had
-assembled to see them depart, the caravan moved
-slowly out of Bagamayo. The American flag was unfurled,
-and floated merrily in the breeze at the head
-of the column. Out through a narrow lane they
-passed, the sun speeding to the west, beckoning them
-on. Loveliness glowed around them, the fertile fields,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>rich vegetation, strange trees bordering their path, the
-jubilant sounds of many insects, the cry of cricket and
-pewit, all seemed to tell them that they had started.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The first camp was only five miles distant, and the
-next few days were spent in completing the preparations
-for their long land journey. After all was in
-readiness the caravan again started. From here on
-the roads were mere footpaths, leading through fields
-in which naked women were at work, who looked up
-and giggled as they passed. Passing on they entered
-an open forest. Reaching the Kingimi, they passed
-over a bridge of felled trees, made by some previous
-party.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry came to the side of Enola’s chair and laughingly
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“One would think from the half-sad expression in
-your eyes, that you were already regretting having
-taken this trip.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are mistaken, Harry; I was simply lost in admiration
-of the beautiful scene about us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it is beautiful,” said Harry, “but it is so different
-from what I have been used to, that I often
-find myself thinking, or wondering if it is not all a
-dream, and if I will not wake up some morning in my
-room at home, and find that I have only visited these
-lands in my dreams.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it is decidedly out of the ordinary,” laughed
-Enola, as she saw the serious look in Harry’s face;
-“but if you were as well read in African history and
-lore of the people as I am, you would accept all this
-as genuine at once. Listen. For centuries Africa
-has been known as the Dark Continent. The edges of
-this immense tract have been known as far back as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>history goes. Egypt, on the North, is the oldest
-government on earth; while the nations bordering on
-the Mediterranean and Red seas, were actors in the
-earliest recorded histories. Still, Africa to-day is an
-unknown land. That Africa was a rich country, was
-proven by the treasures brought from the interior by
-the rivers Nile, Niger and Congo. That it was populous,
-was demonstrated by the millions of slaves furnished
-by the native tribes to the outside world. For
-curiosity alone, explorations were made in the early
-part of the century; but it remained with Livingstone
-to first open up the Dark Continent, and with Stanley,
-to pierce its very heart. Africa is to-day, however, a
-mystery which, it seems, will never be penetrated.
-Strange stories come to us of people never seen by
-white men, of customs foreign to all history, of abandoned
-cities, of desolated countries. Africa is synonymous
-with mystery and darkness, and nothing seems
-strange to me which is connected with it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Such words should be convincing,” said Harry,
-“but my education in life has been too practical to
-realize that there is so much mystery left in the world
-in this, the nineteenth century.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It will all be real enough before we get back to
-civilization, I have an idea,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, it looks real enough now,” said Harry.
-“This moving caravan, those hippopotami in the river,
-and the antelope in the forest, all scout the idea of
-there being anything uncanny about our present surroundings.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so days passed, some amid pleasant surroundings,
-and others in a part of the country not so agreeable.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>One day they passed through a continuous jungle.
-The path was only a foot wide, each side being bordered
-with thorny plants and creepers, the spiky twigs
-of which were as sharp as needles. The entire party
-was badly scratched with these irritating twigs, and
-the caravan was in a sad plight when it reached Msuwa
-that night. The chief of this tribe was very kind to
-the tired and wounded party, however, and they remained
-in this camp two days. After leaving here,
-the country was open and beautiful, presenting a natural
-park, and the roads were good.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They reached the Ungerangeri River on the evening
-of the twenty-fourth day, where they encamped, and
-on the following morning crossed the river and entered
-the Wakami territory. Five days later they reached
-the Wassagahha district. Here several of the party
-were stricken with fever, and several days were lost,
-but all getting better at last, the caravan again moved
-on. Away off to the North and West, could be seen
-a long range of mountains, in which, Sedai informed
-them, was situated the hidden country of “On.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Shortly after leaving here they entered a very wild
-tract. Numberless antelope, spring-bok, zebra and giraffes
-were seen, but upon their approach they would
-scamper away. Here was a hunter’s paradise. What
-nobleman’s reserve in civilization could compare with
-this vast expanse of field and forest? How small and
-insignificant would they seem in comparison! The
-first herd of elephant was also seen here, but they
-passed them by without disturbing them. That evening
-they entered the Usugara district, and although
-the mountains were a considerable number of miles
-nearer, they still looked just as far away. The atmosphere
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>in this country is so clear it makes distances
-very deceiving. It was a mountain world which they
-looked upon, for peak beyond peak, cone beyond
-cone, fold above fold, they rolled away like so many
-waves.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We shall soon descend into the valley and across
-this to those distant mountains directly west of us, at
-the base of which we shall find the village in which
-lives the old man of whom I obtained the parchment.
-We will reach there in four marches,” said Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And you say there are lions and tigers in the
-valley?” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Sedai, “and this part of the journey
-will be very dangerous.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And this proved to be true, for two evenings later,
-when the supper had been eaten and all had been
-made snug for the night, Harry and Enola came very
-near falling victims to one of these ferocious beasts.
-They had wandered a little distance from the camp,
-and had sat down on a mossy bank for a few moments’
-talk before going to bed. They had been here only a
-short time when they heard a rustle in the bushes,
-and turning they saw, standing not ten yards away,
-with his yellow eyes glowing through the semi-darkness,
-and his long tail swaying from side to side,
-an immense lion. Harry had not brought his rifle,
-and they were at the mercy of the beast. The lion
-seemed to realize this, for he quietly settled down on
-his haunches and watched them intently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Listen,” said Harry, and his lips hardly moved,
-“he will make a leap for us, and when he does, stoop
-low and run toward him. We will try to pass under
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>him while he is in the air, and before he alights and
-turns we may be able to reach camp.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I understand,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lion again rose to his feet, and then settling
-on his haunches prepared to spring.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Be ready,” said Harry. “Now,” and he darted
-forward, but stopped again as soon as he could, for
-Enola’s hand had left his and she had fallen. There
-she lay with the lion’s paw resting across her breast.
-Harry could see that she had neither lost consciousness
-nor presence of mind, for she was gazing steadfastly
-into the eyes of the huge beast.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was a terrible moment. Harry was afraid to
-move or cry for help, for fear of the lion seizing
-Enola and making for the bush.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All this time the lion was watching Harry intently,
-seeming to know that interference would come from
-that quarter. But he was as powerless to help Enola
-as if he had been bound hand and foot. He could see
-that she was becoming weak from terror and loss of
-blood, and that she could scarcely breathe owing to
-the weight of that fearful paw on her breast. Her
-eyes closed several times, and Harry could see that
-she would soon be unconscious. Something must be
-done. Would the lion, if he made a rush for him,
-turn his attention from Enola long enough for her to
-get out of reach? It mattered little what became of
-himself if he could but save Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry seized a short piece of wood lying near him
-and made a rush for the lion. The lion raised on his
-haunches as Harry struck him a powerful blow between
-the eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Roll out of the way,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>Enola rolled over once and then staggered to her
-feet, but sank down again too weak to move farther.
-The lion was dazed for an instant by the blow, but
-only for an instant, and with a lightning stroke of the
-paw, struck Harry on the shoulder, knocking him
-senseless and bleeding on the ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Help,” cried Enola, but the sound was so faint
-that she despaired of its reaching the camp. Nevertheless
-it was heard, and the commotion caused the
-lion to turn to see what was happening. That look was
-his death warrant, for a bullet struck him squarely in
-the eye, and he rolled over with scarcely a groan,
-dead. One paw was lying across Harry’s neck, as
-though defying them even in death to take his prey
-from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce rushed up gun in hand, and with several
-of the carriers bore Enola and Harry to the camp. Restoratives
-were administered and Enola soon regained
-consciousness, but Harry lay in a stupor for hours.
-Both were badly torn by the claws of the lion, and it
-was several days before the caravan could move on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The journey from here on, was through an open
-forest, watered by numerous streams which sprung
-from the mountains. Their progress was somewhat
-impeded by these streams, but two evenings later they
-camped near the village in which dwelt the old man,
-who was going to show them the entrance to the cave.
-Was he still alive and would they find him?</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER III.<br /> <span class='large'>IN THE CAVERN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Early the following morning, Sedai went into the
-village to find the old man Umsaga. After much inquiry
-he learned that the old man still lived but was
-very feeble. He went to his hut and telling him what
-he wanted, and that he would be well paid for the information
-which he would give to the party, the old
-man agreed to go. Sedai had to support him,
-for he was too feeble to walk alone. They reached
-the camp and Sedai acting as interpreter, Mr. Graham
-asked Umsaga:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you know where the opening to the cave is?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The old man made quite a long speech, which when
-interpreted ran as follows:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will show you the opening on condition that you
-take none of the carriers or soldiers with you, and for
-this service I demand one hundred yards of cloth, and
-one pack of beads. The opening is about four hours’
-march from here, and one of your men will have to
-carry me to the place, as I will not allow either my
-countrymen, or your carriers to accompany us. If you
-will agree to this I will go with you to-day, to-morrow,
-or any time that you wish.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We will remain here to-day to settle up with our
-carriers, and to-morrow morning we will have him
-show us the opening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai interpreted this to Umsaga, and then helped
-him back to the village.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>The caravan had only been engaged to go this far,
-but it was decided to have it wait three months for
-them. If they had not returned at the end of that
-time, the carriers need wait no longer. They had paid
-the natives well for their work, and had promised
-them still more for the return trip if they would but
-wait for them. They hoped that these inducements
-would hold them until the expiration of the three
-months. Arrangements were made with the chief of
-the village to give sustenance and shelter to the members
-of the caravan during this time.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Late in the afternoon, the goods promised Umsaga,
-besides a liberal present to the chief were sent to the
-village, after which the remaining bales and boxes
-were carried up the mountain side to a place designated
-by Umsaga. This place was near the opening
-of the mountain, and here the party camped for the
-night.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Early the following morning, Sedai went into the
-village and helped the old man up the mountain. Umsaga
-directed them in the way to go, and it was not
-long before they reached a level spot well up on the
-mountain. The trees in this vicinity appeared to have
-been planted in the far distant past, with a peculiar
-regard for regularity. A broad avenue of stately trees
-of an unknown species to the travelers, led directly to
-the face of the cliff. It suggested that the hand of
-man had long ago intended that they should serve as
-a hint of the possibilities within the mountain.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party moved through the avenue and halted at
-the extreme end. Here the high cliff seemed to stop all
-further progress, but Umsaga hobbled up to the rock
-barrier and with the help of Sedai, removed some of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>the bushes growing at the base, and disclosed a large
-flat stone leaning against it. This, Sedai with difficulty
-moved aside, opening to view an entrance about
-four feet in diameter. All started forward and gazed
-intently into the darkness. It required considerable
-courage to even think of entering this dark passage
-which the sunlight penetrated but a few feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For hours the men labored in transferring the bales
-and boxes to the cavern, where they were to remain
-until their return. Torches had been procured from
-the natives, and lighting one of these the party started
-on their long underground journey. The passage was
-very narrow for about twenty yards, and was very
-smooth and clear cut, but at the end of this distance a
-vaulted cave, lofty and wide, opened before them.
-The dim light of the torch lit up this vast subterranean
-cavern but indifferently, the roof being so high that it
-could just be seen in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The goods were stored safely and the journey commenced
-in earnest. The men carried what provisions
-and torches they thought would be needed in the
-march across the cave. They had gone but a short
-distance when Enola and Harry, who were a little in
-advance of the others, stumbled over something, which
-the light of the torch revealed as the body of a man.
-The skin, dry as parchment was drawn tightly over
-the bones; the eyes were sunken; the head was
-covered with a growth of long hair; the hands, which
-with their long finger-nails looked like talons, clutched
-the garment at the throat, as if the man, when dying,
-had tried to tear it away, in order to gain greater
-freedom to breathe. This garment was all that the
-body was clothed in, but around the neck of the dead
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>was a chain of gold engraved in a peculiar manner and
-in which diamonds and opals were set. The ends of
-the chain were attached in front to a strange red
-stone, that resembled liquid fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham unfastened the garment, and slipped it
-off. A solid substance was discovered inserted in the
-middle of the back, and slitting the garment with a
-knife, a piece of thin, highly polished hard wood was
-revealed. Tracings were found on it which seemed to
-be the diagram or map of a country; but these were
-so dim it was difficult to discover what they represented.
-After studying further, however, a circle was
-seen in the corner with the word “ON” written in its
-centre. This then told the tale; this was a map
-showing the location of the mysterious country. On
-the other side were more tracings. A straight line
-was drawn from one corner to the centre, where a hole
-about an inch deep was cut. On the opposite side of
-this hole the tracing continued in a straight line, but
-just before reaching the corner it turned to the left
-and ended at the edge of the block. Nothing more
-could be made out until Mr. Bruce, who had looked at
-it more closely, and whose eyes seemed keener than
-those of the others, discovered the letter “u” and a
-little ways further the letters “g” and “e.” All
-looked at the tracing intently for a few moments trying
-to guess the riddle. It was finally decided that
-the “u” was the first letter of underground, and
-“ge” the last two letters of passage. This then
-was the path to be followed through the cave. Along
-the edge of the block could be faintly discerned
-the name “Philip Harding;” this was the body of
-the man who long ago had visited the mysterious
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>land, and had suffered and died in this cave. This
-was he who had given them the knowledge of the hidden
-country, and who, years after, was staring at them
-with those sightless eyes that seemed to warn them
-back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How terrible,” said Mrs. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Enola, “my heart turns sick at the
-sight. And to think that he died so near help and
-liberty.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And do you still feel like going on?” asked Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Enola, “for now my doubts are at rest;
-all the fears that I had of this strange country being
-a myth are gone. Success seems sure now and all our
-long journey has not been in vain. But how strange
-that this body should have lain here all these years
-and not decayed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There must be some preserving quality in the
-atmosphere of this cave,” said Mr. Bruce, “or else the
-body would have turned to dust long since.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But come,” said Mr. Graham, “we must yet find
-the line of broken stone which is mentioned in the
-document.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “the block would be of
-little use to us in this vast cavern without some better
-guide than its tracings.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So the party began looking for the string of broken
-stone, and found it but a short distance from the body.
-From here on the cave widened, and the roof became
-too lofty to longer be in the rays of the torch. Monstrous
-stalactite formations hung from the ceiling, and
-tremendous stalagmite pillars reached from the floor
-into the darkness far overhead. These pillars were of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>fantastic shapes. Some were perfectly symmetrical,
-others irregular, but all were of wondrous beauty,
-their surfaces being covered with delicate tracery as fine
-as lace. On every hand could be heard the dropping
-of lime-water forming new pillars. Ages must have
-passed since this cave was cut out of the solid rock by
-the action of some subterranean sea, or by a weakening
-and wasting away of the lighter strata, or by some
-tremendous convulsion of nature, which, raising but the
-upper part of the mountain, had left this vast open
-space.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A little further on a halt was made for the midday
-meal, and after this had been partaken of, Harry and
-Enola walked a little apart from the others, and sat
-down on some of the broken stone to talk over their
-future plans.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Harry,” said Enola, “I am a little slow in doing so,
-but I want to thank you for having saved me from the
-jaws of that fearful lion. While I was lying beneath
-the paw of that awful beast, I for one short moment
-wished that I had not come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And what did you think I would do?” asked
-Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Just what you did do,” said Enola, “A brave man
-could not have done otherwise. But there are few
-brave men when it comes to a question of their own
-lives, or those of others. There must be no selfishness
-where bravery is to play a part, and it is this unselfishness
-that must be rewarded, and I can only do this
-by thanking you, and by telling you that I appreciate
-the brave act.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us forget that fearful moment,” said Harry.
-“It was little enough to do for a life-long friend, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>I would do the same thing over again a thousand
-times if the opportunities should offer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us hope that they will not,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is hard to tell in this strange country,” said
-Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this moment, they heard a loud shout to the
-right. They could see their friends rushing in the
-direction of the sounds, and Enola and Harry hurried
-to join them. Nellie was standing wringing her hands
-and trying to explain how she and Mr. Bruce were
-walking along leisurely, when he suddenly dropped
-out of sight, the torch being extinguished leaving her
-in utter darkness. She had called to him, but receiving
-no answer, had shouted for the others, whom she
-could just see in the torchlight some distance from
-her. Taking torches they went to where Mr. Bruce
-had so mysteriously disappeared, calling to him constantly.
-They proceeded carefully for fear of falling
-into the same pit; and it was well that they did so,
-for before them, gaping as if anxious to swallow up
-the whole party, was an abyss opening into the very
-bowels of the earth. They leaned far over the edge
-and peered into the darkness, calling, but no answer
-came to them, and they felt assured that Mr. Bruce
-was lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry brought a coil of fine silk rope, and fastening
-one end to a stalagmite, prepared to descend into the
-darkness. Sedai pushed him gently aside, however,
-and taking one of the torches between his teeth, he
-let himself down. Down, down he went, until he
-could see a black torrent rushing madly through the
-crevice. He saw a rock near him, and swung so as to
-land upon it. He could see but a few feet about him
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>and Mr. Bruce was nowhere visible. He called
-again and again, and once he thought he heard a
-faint answer. He grasped the rope and jumped into
-the stream and let it bear him down until, clinging to
-a jagged rock he saw Mr. Bruce. He swung toward
-him, and catching him under the arms, began working
-his way back. This was tedious work, and would
-have been an impossibility to a man not endowed with
-Sedai’s herculean strength, but happily Sedai was
-equal to the task and soon had Mr. Bruce on the rock.
-He gave the signal to those above, and tying the rope
-under Mr. Bruce’s arms, he was pulled to the surface.
-The rope came falling back, and Sedai, hand over hand,
-rejoined his companions. It took some time to restore
-Mr. Bruce to consciousness, but he was finally
-brought around.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After he became stronger he said that he had fallen
-head first, but hearing a rush of waters, he clasped his
-hands above his head in the manner of divers, and
-thus broke the blow which his head otherwise would
-have sustained. He had gone down a hundred feet
-he thought, but had then began to rise again, and
-reaching the surface he had grasped the first object
-which his hand came in contact with, which proved to
-be the rock upon which Sedai had found him. Then
-he saw Sedai coming and lost consciousness. The
-party moved no farther that day but on the following
-morning they took up the journey with renewed vigor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had but one fear, and that was as to the possibility
-of their finding a door when they had reached
-the other side of the cavern. This did not worry
-them a great deal, for the path laid out for them to
-follow both by the broken stones and the tracings on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>the block of wood, led to one point and this would
-undoubtedly be near the stone door, but the secret of
-the spring had not been learned, and they might have
-trouble in finding it.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER IV.<br /> <span class='large'>DEATH FACES THEM.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The next morning they had gone but a short distance
-when they came to a vast inland lake. The
-bridge mentioned in the manuscript stood before them,
-and mounting this they startled to cross the lake. They
-had followed this about four miles when they came to
-a break in the solid masonry. The hole was fully
-eight feet wide, and it was a serious question as to
-how they were to get to the opposite side; but Sedai
-offered to tie the rope to his arm and leap across.
-The end of the rope could be fastened and the ladies
-and Mr. Graham could cross over, while Mr. Bruce
-and Harry could make the leap as did Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This Sedai did, and fastening one end of the rope to
-one of the huge stones, which had evidently come
-from the break, Mr. Bruce and Harry held the other
-end, and Mrs. Graham and Enola worked their way
-slowly across. Nellie then grasped the rope and was
-half way over, when a terrible commotion was heard
-near the bridge, and a spout of water was sent thirty
-feet into the air. The whole party was deluged; the
-torches were put out, and when their first surprise was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>over, they saw with horror that Nellie had loosened
-her hold on the rope and had dropped into the water.
-Hastily relighting the torches, they saw Nellie disappearing
-in the swift current. It took but a second for
-Mr. Bruce to throw off his jacket and plunge in after
-her. He hoped by the help the current and his long
-easy strokes to overtake her. He could just see her
-above the surface of the water about one hundred
-yards ahead of him, evidently fast giving out. He
-strained every nerve, put forth every effort, resorted
-to every means to force himself through the water, and
-he could see that he was gaining slowly. He called
-to her to keep her hands and feet moving and to keep
-up courage. He could see her beating the water
-making frantic efforts to keep afloat, but her struggles
-were becoming weaker and weaker, and at last they
-ceased altogether and she began to sink when he was
-only a few feet away. Making one grand final effort
-he caught her by the hair just as she was sinking
-beneath the surface.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Grasping her about the waist, and holding her head
-above the water with one arm, he tried to swim out of
-the current. This was a hard task, but he was an
-excellent swimmer, and nearly succeeded. But the
-struggle was an unequal one and having but one hand
-to use, he soon found that the current was getting the
-better of him. He now threw Nellie over his shoulder
-and grasping her dress between his teeth, he in this
-way gained the use of both hands, and soon made his
-way into more quiet water. Turning he saw the
-flickering torches far in the distance, but close at hand
-were two round balls that shone like fire. The
-water was terribly agitated and he soon found himself
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>struggling against waves like those thrown up by the
-paddles of a steamboat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nearer and nearer came those fearful eyes, and Mr.
-Bruce thought all was lost. Happily for Nellie she
-had fainted, so she was spared the terror of this new
-danger. Mr. Bruce was not one to give up, however,
-as long as there was a shadow of a hope, and he was
-thinking hard to devise a means to escape this monster.
-Those eyes were nearing him, and in an instant he
-would feel the hot breath in his face. Down he sank
-holding Nellie about the waist. Rising to the surface
-again he started for the lights. He was afraid to
-look back for fear of seeing those fearful eyes following
-him. Larger and larger grew the lights, nearer
-and nearer he came to his friends. His strength was
-fast failing but he must not give up when so near to
-those who could rescue them. A few strokes more and
-he was in the radius of the torchlight, and a shout of
-encouragement from his friends greeted him. This
-seemed to rouse Nellie for she gave a long sigh.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Throw your arms about my neck and hold on for
-your life,” said Mr. Bruce, and Nellie having done this
-it left his mouth free, and he breathed with greater
-ease.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look behind you,” called Mr. Graham, and looking
-over his shoulder, he saw those awful eyes again, with
-the huge black body, following them. He turned and
-faced the monster again, just as it was opening its
-cavernous jaws. Once more he sank bidding Nellie to
-hold her breath. The huge mass passed over him, and
-coming to the surface he saw the great black body
-going straight ahead at a fearful speed. The serpent
-made a big circle and then turned and came toward
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>them again. Mr. Bruce was nearly exhausted and
-felt that he could not risk again that terrible plunge
-under the passing monster, and still have strength
-to reach the pier. He could see Harry and Sedai
-preparing to swim to them, and knew that Nellie
-and he were safe if the terrible serpent did not make
-another charge on them. Sedai now came towards
-them holding a flaming torch. Back of them but a
-few yards could be seen the sea monster again making
-for them. They were fast nearing the bridge. The
-rope was thrown to them and Mr. Bruce fastening this
-around Nellie’s body, she was pulled out of the water.
-It was then thrown to Mr. Bruce and Sedai, just as the
-terrible monster opened his jaws. Sedai thrust his
-blazing torch into the creature’s mouth, and then with
-Mr. Bruce, hurried hand over hand up the rope.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The water was lashed into foam by the struggles of
-the serpent, and bullets from Harry’s revolver seemed
-to have no effect. They got a good look now at the
-monster. The largest part of the body was just back
-of the head and tapered from this to the end of the
-tail. The head was at least six feet long, and flat, or
-nearly so. The wide jaws, when open, showed a
-double set of irregular teeth. The tongue was forked.
-A large horn about three feet long sprang from the
-head just back of the nostrils, and from this to the
-point of the tail was a succession of smaller horns.
-Just back of the large horn or tusk, was a hole through
-which the monster forced a stream of water high into
-the air. Three great fins on either side of the body
-were tipped with long claws looking as if they might
-be used for crawling. Its rage was terrible when maddened
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>by the flaming torch and by the escaping of its
-prey.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party now hurried on over the bridge after they
-had transferred the packs by a succession of leaps
-across the break. The monster followed them for
-awhile but finally turned and swam away. They
-reached the end of the bridge about two hours later,
-and calculated that it must be about ten miles long.
-Leaving the shores of the lake they again followed the
-line of broken stone, and two days later reached the
-opposite wall.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For awhile they sought a possible opening in the
-wall, but could nowhere detect any evidence of human
-handiwork. To and fro they went, pressing hard upon
-every piece of rock which projected from the wall.
-This they kept up all of the first day, and they laid
-down to rest that night pretty well disheartened.
-Their provisions were getting low for they had calculated
-in getting through in much less time. They had
-been living on short rations for the past twenty-four
-hours, but now they had but a few crackers left. They
-still had hopes, however, of finding this secret door on
-the morrow, when they would find food in plenty on
-the other side of the wall. The following morning
-after a frugal repast of dry crackers, they again began
-the search. They first examined the wall directly in
-front of them, but could see no crack or crevice which
-might indicate the presence of a door. They had carefully
-followed the line of broken stone, and they might
-reasonably expect to find the door at the end of this.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Striking on the rock with a hammer at different
-places, they could not distinguish any difference in
-tone, which would indicate a thinner part of the rock
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>wall. They examined the rock for about four hundred
-feet, and all seemed perfectly solid. They discovered
-in their search many holes about four feet square, two
-feet wide, and three feet deep. These were arranged
-along the side of the cavern, having been cut in the
-wall, and upon close inspection they found them to
-contain what proved to be mummies. These were
-wrapped in heavy sacking, many of the envelopes
-being of fantastic colors. Harry took one of these
-bundles from its place and cut it open. A number of
-cloth coverings were found under the outside wrapping,
-and then came a covering of large leaves which
-crumbled into dust when exposed. Next to the leaves
-was a wrapping of fine silk. This having been removed
-the body was discovered. It was that of a man who
-must have been more than six feet in height when
-alive. The head was brought forward between the
-knees, which were drawn up; the skin was dry and
-hard and drawn closely over the bones; the hair was
-long and still retained a beautiful lustre. The head
-was small but beautifully formed; the hands and feet
-were also small and symmetrical. Inside the covering
-were a number of gold balls about one half inch in
-diameter; two characters were engraved on one side
-of each of these balls. Examining them closely, Mr.
-Bruce declared that the hieroglyphics were undoubtedly
-Egyptian. Around the neck of the mummy was
-a chain of gold set with diamonds and opals. This
-chain was similar to the one found around Harding’s
-neck, but the bright red stone was missing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Eight o’clock had arrived and they were still searching
-for the opening. A supper of crackers had been
-eaten. They were already suffering from the pangs
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>of thirst. The water gourds which had been refilled
-before leaving the lake were again empty. The food,
-with the exception of a few crackers, was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Graham and Nellie laid down to get a few
-hours’ rest, but Enola, with the men of the party, kept
-bravely on in search of the opening. Midnight came
-and found them still searching. Hungry and thirsty,
-they, too, at last lay down, feeling that they must reserve
-their strength as much as possible. Their few
-hours of sleep, however, did not seem to refresh them,
-for the thirst had made them restless. The whole
-party arose about the same time and the search was
-soon taken up again. They examined the wall more
-closely, going farther on either side, but with no success.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Late in the afternoon Mrs. Graham became so
-feverish for want of water that Sedai started with two
-large gourds for the lake. If they should find the
-opening in the meantime, they were to leave directions
-as to how to open the rock door, and then pass on.
-About midnight Mr. Graham also became delirious,
-and Mrs. Graham’s and Nellie’s lips were so swollen
-that they could scarcely articulate. Mr. Bruce and
-Harry, although suffering terribly, still kept up the
-search. All night they tramped up and down the
-cave, trying to find the secret opening. Toward
-morning they became so famished and their tongues
-and lips were so parched and swollen they could not
-make each other understand what they were saying.
-Enola alone seemed to retain her clear and unfailing
-senses.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce and Harry had thrown themselves on the
-ground at last, thoroughly worn out, their lips and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>tongues swollen terribly. Mrs. Graham and Nellie
-were mumbling something in their delirium which was
-unintelligible. This drove Mr. Bruce and Harry
-nearly frantic, and again they arose and took up the
-search. Their breath came hard through their parched
-throats, and their eyes were wild and glaring. Mr.
-Bruce walked over to where Mrs. Graham and Nellie
-were lying, and suddenly drawing his knife, he slit the
-sleeve of his jacket and shirt, and made a deep incision
-in his arm; then carefully raising Nellie’s head
-with his other arm he let the warm blood from the
-wound drop between her half-open lips; then going
-to Mrs. Graham he partially alleviated her sufferings
-in the same way. Finally overcome with weakness
-Mr. Bruce fell back, and Harry, who had stood by
-looking at the strange sight, but hardly realizing what
-Mr. Bruce was doing, now came up, and tearing off
-the sleeve of the shirt, bound the arm tightly above
-the wound. Enola stood watching this self-sacrificing
-act on the part of Mr. Bruce, and when Harry had
-bandaged his arm, she turned and walked toward the
-wall, mumbling something to herself. Harry saw that
-she, too, was fast becoming delirious, but he was
-powerless to help her, he being almost too weak now
-to again take up the search.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He arose to his feet, however, and again joining
-Enola, they together staggered from point to point of
-the wall, feverishly looking for some indication of a
-revolving stone. Hours had passed since Sedai had
-left them, but they seemed like years to his suffering
-companions. Praying for his return, praying for deliverance
-from this cavern, Enola felt her senses leaving
-her. She fought against this but to no purpose.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>Harry finally sank to the ground in a delirium.
-Enola gazed at him for a moment, and making one
-final effort, stumbled along leaning against the wall for
-support. She had gone but five or six paces when her
-strength gave way entirely, and she sank back upon
-the rock floor. Death seemed inevitable.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER V.<br /> <span class='large'>THE CITY OF ON.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>But Enola had not lost consciousness entirely when
-she sank to the floor. She had rested there only a
-moment, when she thought she felt something pushing
-her. She half rose, and looking over her shoulder
-thought she saw a ray of light. Could she be
-dreaming? Was this some awful torturing vision
-come to torment her in her fearful suffering? No.
-She could see the sun, the sky, and far away she
-caught a glimpse of a beautiful city. She now realized
-it all; her weight upon this particular part of the
-floor had set the door to moving. She must move
-through the opening quickly. Her senses were roused
-to action by this revelation. She knew the door
-would revolve and close again perhaps forever.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She had by some strange fatality accidentally found
-the means of opening it, for which they had searched
-so vainly, but while in such a semi-conscious state she
-might not be able to repeat the operation. She knew
-where to find the spring on the other side, and as the
-opening began to grow smaller, the door slowly swinging
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>into its place again, she gave one frantic leap and
-turned to find herself cut off from the rest by the
-solid wall of rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>From the ground she began to tear bits of grass
-and succulent weeds, and partially allaying her thirst
-with these, she hurried to the point which might be,
-she thought, the hiding place of the spring. Almost
-tearing the flesh from her hands in pulling the underbrush
-away, she was rewarded by seeing a loose piece
-of rock set into the solid cliff. Removing this the
-lever was before her. It took nearly all the strength
-she had left to move the lever, but she was rewarded
-at last by seeing the door swing on its pivots again.
-Peering through the opening she saw the light of a
-torch moving quickly toward the door, and she knew
-that it was Sedai returning. Sedai had caught the
-glimpse of daylight, and hastening his steps, he had
-moistened the lips of the sufferers, and when the door
-again swung open he hurried through with Mrs.
-Graham, and as often as Enola would lift the heavy
-lever he would carry out another of the prostrated
-companions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>One by one, all were carried out, and Sedai returned
-for the arms and accoutrements. Ladened with these
-he lacked the rapidity of motion necessary, and the
-massive stone as it revolved, caught him squarely between
-the shoulders. Slowly the grinding mass
-pressed closer, while Enola, petrified with horror for
-the moment, pressed her hands to her throbbing temples.
-Finally, realizing the fearful position that Sedai
-was in, she seized one of the rifles, and using it as
-a lever, placed it in the crack of the door and threw
-her whole weight against it. At the same time Sedai,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>with a herculean effort of his mighty muscles, strained
-every nerve, pushed himself through, and fell on the
-ground bruised and bleeding. Enola, taking one of
-the water gourds which Sedai had tramped so far to
-fill, placed it to the lips of the noble fellow, and then
-gave the others a very little. Her strength now gave
-out again and she sank down thoroughly worn out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The few drops of water had partially roused the
-others, and Mr. Bruce especially seemed to have regained
-complete consciousness. He looked about him,
-but it had grown dark and he could see nothing; but
-he could hear, and the cries of many beasts reached
-his ears. He tried hard to remember how he had
-come here, and wondered where his companions were.
-The cries of the wild beasts, however, brought him
-back to himself, and he knew that a fire must be built
-or the beasts would be on him. He rose and began
-looking for some dry twigs with which to build the
-fire; he stumbled over something, and stooping, he
-found it to be one of his companions. He felt about
-him and found a torch, and lighting this, he saw the
-rest of the party lying about him. He started a fire,
-and not a moment too soon, for the cries of the animals
-were growing dangerously near; and a little while
-after he saw two bright eyes looking at him from out
-the darkness; then all about him he could see those
-glaring eyes. The number was growing, and Mr.
-Bruce becoming thoroughly alarmed, roused the
-others, and all gathering near the fire, waited for further
-developments. They were jackals, as nearly as
-the party could make out; and occasionally one a little
-bolder than the rest, would come within the circle
-of light; but a ball from one of the rifles would stop
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>him, when his bloodthirsty comrades would jump on
-the body and devour it in an instant. They increased
-in numbers until those in the rear, crowding
-forward, pushed the foremost nearer and nearer the
-fire, it became necessary to use the rifles as clubs and
-beat them back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The situation had become most alarming when the
-roar of a lion almost in their midst struck terror to
-the hearts of the travelers, and made the jackals scamper
-off into the jungle. A crashing of the underbrush
-was followed by another mighty roar, and looking,
-our friends could just see, in the outer edge of light,
-two tawny monsters about to engage in a combat, evidently
-over the possession of a beautiful lioness which
-was moving about urging the lions on. The two lions
-sprang at each other simultaneously, and meeting in
-midair, down to the earth they fell, fastened together
-by teeth and claws. Over and over they rolled, biting
-and snarling, and striking murderous blows with
-their powerful paws. It was a magnificent battle, and
-in spite of bleeding wounds, raged furiously for a quarter
-of an hour, when, through loss of blood, the blows
-became weaker, and the biting less fierce. The royal
-combat was drawing to a close. Suddenly, as though
-determined to win or lose all in one final struggle they
-separated and once more came together in savage
-fury. A terrific blow from the paw of the one laid
-open the neck of the other, but not soon enough to
-check the fearful crunch of the powerful jaws upon the
-throat of his opponent, and in a moment the writhing
-mass lay quiet on the ground, dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends had stood gazing at the awful fight
-with a horrible fascination, and it was some minutes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>before they could take their eyes off the fallen foes.
-When they did, and looked at the east they saw that
-dawn was breaking.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the shadows faded before the rising sun the
-sounds from the forest grew less and less, until nothing
-was heard but the songs of the wakening birds.
-Slowly the dawn crept into the heavens. The gray
-turned to pink, the pink to a rich red and then to a
-yellow, and the sun rose in all its equatorial splendor.
-A mist hung over the landscape, but gradually this
-was dissipated before the hot rays of the sun, and the
-country and city of On lay before them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were standing on a small plateau on the
-eastern slope, a lofty range of mountains or cliffs.
-As far as the eye could reach westward, these mountains
-rose in perpendicular cliffs, thousands of feet into
-the air. A few miles east of them the range turned in
-a northerly direction, and extended on and on until
-the eye could follow it no farther. The mountain descended
-about six hundred feet from where they were
-standing, and ended in a beautiful valley.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In their immediate vicinity was a dense jungle, and
-to the north of a magnificent forest. At the base of
-the mountain was a wide river, and on the opposite
-bank of this was a stone wall fifty feet in height. Beyond
-this wall stretched a beautiful valley, dotted with
-numerous groves and small lakes. To the northwest
-of them a few miles rose the tall towers of a vast and
-beautiful city, all glistening in the sunlight. The city
-rose from the valley to the top of a high hill on the summit
-of which was a grand structure, probably a temple.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The scene was ineffably grand, and our friends looked
-on it in wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>“Are you now convinced, Harry, that there are a few
-real things in Africa?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The scene before me would hardly convince me
-of this,” said Harry, “for everything seems too beautiful
-to be real.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Disabuse your mind of its being a dream?” said
-Enola. “It is a most sublime reality, and a happy
-ending to the horrors and sufferings of the cavern.
-But look, do you not see a body of horsemen yonder?
-Probably they saw our fire last night and are coming
-to investigate.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The horsemen were lost to view for a moment but
-again appeared to the party as they came out on a
-clear stretch of road. In a short while the men had
-arrived at the wall, and opening a gate in this which
-was at the end of the bridge, they waited for our
-friends to approach. The travelers moved slowly
-toward them, and as they came nearer the men dismounted
-and made a respectful obeisance. These men
-were the handsomest and most beautifully formed
-ever looked upon. They were fully seven feet high,
-and their figures showed great strength and suppleness;
-their heads were rather small but beautifully
-shaped; the skin was a light bronze color, soft and
-healthful-looking; the face was covered with a short
-beard of dark brown color; the eyes were large, dark,
-and full of expression; the nose straight and well-proportioned.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Each wore a loose garment with large flowing
-sleeves; this tunic was belted in at the waist by a
-girdle of gold; sandals were fastened to the feet by
-golden lacings extending to the knee; a round helmet
-was worn on the head, but as our party approached
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>these helmets were removed disclosing short curly
-heads of hair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Their steeds were of the same species but much
-larger than the ordinary zebra, standing at least eighteen
-hands high; they were beautiful creatures, with
-small heads, arched necks and finely shaped bodies
-and limbs; stripes encircled them from the tip of the
-nose to the tail; the manes and tails nearly touched
-the ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The trappings of the animals were gorgeous; the
-bridle was of polished gold wire with large ostrich
-plumes reaching up from the head-piece; the reins and
-martingales were made of white leather heavily
-studded with precious stones which glistened in the
-sunlight; the saddle was flat, being nothing more than
-a pad made of cloth-of-gold and without stirrups.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As our friends approached them, the men stood
-leaning against their steeds, holding their helmets in
-their hands. The rest of the party having halted, Mr.
-Graham went up quite close to the natives and by
-signs made them understand that they were tired, and
-hungry, and wanted food and shelter. One of the men
-showed by signs that he knew that which Mr. Graham
-wished to convey, and that they would send to the
-city and get other beasts to carry them there. Four
-men now left the band and rode off toward the city,
-and about two hours later the adventurers were surprised
-to see approaching them a body of at least one
-thousand zebramen and in front six monstrous white
-elephants.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With the greatest care all were helped upon the backs
-of the royal beasts, but Enola was given the largest,
-whitest and most richly caparisoned. These elephants
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>were partially covered with cloth-of-gold, and
-on each of their backs was a comfortable howdah
-shaded by a canopy of palm branches.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When all was in readiness they started with Enola’s
-elephant in the lead. The cavalcade moved slowly
-over the beautiful highway on through green fields,
-along the shores of miniature lakes, over low eminences,
-past well-cultivated farms, under stately palms
-and eucalyptus trees until the white city was seen but
-a short distance away. Here some of the party left
-the cavalcade and rode on ahead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Shortly after this the road widened into a wide well-paved
-boulevard, lined on each side by lofty trees, and
-bordered by beautiful villas built of an exquisite pinkish
-white stone which resembled Mexican onyx.
-These villas were broad and deep, and moderately
-high; a wide flight of steps led up to each entrance
-which was easily twenty-five feet high, and which was
-sheltered by a portico, with immense pillars supporting
-its roof. The surrounding grounds were large, delightfully
-shaded and bright with flowers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the cavalcade moved, through the broad avenue,
-the houses becoming larger and more magnificent as
-they approached the centre of the city.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER VI.<br /> <span class='large'>THE BANQUET.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>They came at last to a large opening, at least one
-thousand feet square and paved with exquisite onyx.
-In the centre of this square was a huge column, surmounted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>by a statue of magnificent workmanship.
-Surrounding this statue were five immense fountains.
-In each was a heroic statue of a woman with her
-head thrown back, from whose mouth spouted a stream
-of water high into the air. The arms were outstretched
-with the palms of the hands turned upward,
-and from these also sprang streams of water. Beyond
-the fountain, facing the avenue through which
-they had entered the square, was a stone sphere ten
-feet in diameter, on the top of which was a beautifully
-carved chair of onyx inlaid with gold. A man was seated
-in this chair who was probably thirty-five years old
-and of immense build. As the cavalcade approached
-he arose, showing to the full his magnificent figure.
-This personage afterwards proved to be the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The square was thronged with the inhabitants of the
-city, the porticos and roofs of the surrounding houses
-being filled with the populace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men were magnificent specimens of the human
-race. The women were six feet six inches in height,
-of stately figure and dignified bearing; their heads
-were small but well-shaped; the hair was of a dark
-brown color fastened in a coil at the back of the neck.
-A band of gold passed around the forehead just below
-the hair and was studded with precious stones. They
-wore loose, flowing robes of white silken cloth drawn
-in at the waist with a girdle of gold; around each neck
-was a golden chain set with diamonds and opals; these
-chains were similar to those worn by the men but of
-finer workmanship.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the King raised his hand the mighty throng
-broke forth in beautiful song, the King moving his
-hand right and left as if directing. The voices of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>men were deep and melodious, and those of the women
-soft and musical. When the song was finished, the
-King turned his back to our friends, and facing the
-magnificent building on the summit of the hill, made
-a movement with his right hand. The doors of the
-temple were thrown open, and a band of beautiful young
-girls came forth singing the same song that the populace
-had sung. Merrily these maidens came tripping
-toward the square, the great throng of people making
-an opening through which they could pass.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Upon reaching the space before the great sphere of
-stone, they waited for the occupant of the throne to
-descend, then fastening gold cords to the tusks of the
-elephants they led them toward the temple, the populace
-falling in behind. Slowly the maidens led the
-animals over the beautiful square, through the mass of
-eager and interesting people, all of whom made deep
-salaams as they passed on through the wide avenue
-which led to the temple and past the magnificent
-buildings to the summit of the hill. When nearing
-the temple ten men came forth, each wearing a long
-robe of embroidered white silk.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The elephants were stopped at the main entrance of
-the temple, and immediately fell to their knees, when
-the party dismounted. Carefully the priests assisted
-them to the pavement and then walked before them
-burning sweet smelling incense from silver vessels,
-which they swayed to and fro. Through a wide court
-with a lofty colonnade on either side, up a broad
-staircase with battlemented towers they proceeded,
-and then entered a hexagonal hall, one hundred and
-fifty feet square. From here they passed into a second
-court of quadrangular form. All around the court ran
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>arcades, forming chambers or recesses open in front,
-with long silken curtains hanging from the top of the
-arcade, and caught up at the sides to be used when
-needed. The roofs of the chambers were supported
-by columns, the beauty of conception, and the exquisite
-finish of which, astonished our friends. The decorations
-were most elaborate. Nobly sculptured statues
-occupied spacious niches, and showed that those who executed
-them were masters of their art. The quadrangle
-itself was about three hundred and fifty feet square.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola was led by a priest to one of the semi-circular
-chambers and the curtains were drawn. Each of the
-others was shown to one of these recesses.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola, upon entering the chamber, looked about her
-and was surprised to see the preparations made for her.
-In the centre of the chamber was a beautiful designed
-square onyx table, supported by four spheres. Upon
-this table, in great profusion lay girdles and circles of
-gold, all heavily studded with diamonds and opals,
-similar to those worn by the native women but of more
-exquisite design; also gold pins, bottles of gold, filled
-with delightful perfumes, golden combs and highly
-polished mirrors of silver. Upon a smaller table at
-the far end of the chamber was a ewer filled with perfumed
-water. Near this table, resting on an onyx
-sphere, was placed an extinguished lamp of fine workmanship.
-Couches were in various places in this
-luxurious apartment; upon one of them lay a gown of
-silk and gold with short flowing sleeves, and near it
-another gown of pinkish white silk which was evidently
-meant to be worn as an undergarment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Across the end of the chamber were hung heavy
-silk curtains, which, when parted, disclosed a bath
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>sunken in the floor. About the bath stood six of the
-maidens who had conducted the party to the temple.
-The maidens stood motionless watching Enola as if
-waiting for her to come to the bath. Enola hesitated
-for a moment, then determined to accept the situation
-and walked towards the bath. The maidens disrobed
-her, and leading her into the bath, forced her gently
-backward in a reclining position with her head resting
-on an onyx head-piece, and then poured the perfume
-from the golden vessels over her body, rubbing her
-gently with a silken towel while doing so.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She being tired and worn out, the luxury of the perfumed
-bath, with the pleasing treatment of the maidens,
-rested and refreshed her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After remaining in the bath for some time the
-maidens raised her in their arms, and carrying her to a
-couch laid her down and rubbed the moist skin until it
-was perfectly dry. They then sprinkled scented
-powder over her body, rubbing it gently; then motioning
-her to arise, the undergarment was thrown
-over her shoulders, after which one of the maidens
-dressed her hair in a low knot on the back of her head.
-A band of gold was placed over her forehead and then
-the outer robe was donned. This was fastened in at
-the waist by a girdle of gold; the necklace from Harding’s
-neck was brought to her, but Enola noticed that
-none of the maidens touched it with their naked hands,
-and she soon divined that in some way her royal reception
-was connected with the necklace and its flame-colored
-stone. Enola was then led to an alcove before
-which a curtain was hung, and then the curtain being
-drawn aside she found the alcove faced on either side
-with polished silver mirrors. She was surprised at the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>lovely picture she presented, in rich gown and golden
-bands around her head and waist, making her appear
-like an ancient Egyptian goddess.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The long tramp through the cavern with its scarcity
-of water and clean garments had left Enola in a pitiable
-plight, and this sudden change was most gratifying
-to the natural pride of the woman. Enola was next
-conducted to a couch and a pair of sandals were fitted
-to her shapely feet; these were laced as far as the
-knee with silken cords. One of the maidens left them
-for a few moments, and upon her return, motioned to
-Enola and the others to follow her. They passed into
-the quadrangular court and from here into one of the
-other semi-circular chambers. Here on a long onyx
-table was spread a sumptuous repast.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola was led to a seat or couch at the head of the
-table, and half reclining upon the soft cushions, while
-waiting for her friends, looked in wonderment at the
-elaborate prodigality in the equipment of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The sides of the chamber were hung with heavy
-silk curtains alternating white and red, on which
-scenes of the chase, of banqueting and of worship were
-gorgeously embroidered with gold thread. Exquisite
-sculptures rested upon spherical pedestals. Lion,
-tiger and leopard skins covered the floor, and upon
-the ceiling, beautifully carved, was an immense eagle
-with outstretched wings, the tips reaching almost to
-the ends of the chamber. In the talons of the eagle
-was a scroll upon which were engraved strange hieroglyphics.
-At one end of the chamber a human
-skeleton was standing, the only discordant object in the
-entire furnishings. The table was of semi-circular form,
-and was covered with flowers, fruits and chalices of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>wine. The flowers were held in high, beautifully
-carved vases of gold and were profuse and fragrant.
-In the center of the table a tiny fountain threw forth
-a spray of perfumed water.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola was lost in admiration and did not hear a
-slight noise behind her, and was suddenly startled by
-the immense figure of the King as he entered and
-stood before her. She motioned him to the couch
-and he sank down beside her. He kept his eyes intently
-upon her, but noticing his look of respectful
-admiration Enola was half amused, and soon began a
-conversation by signs all of which were readily understood
-by the King. The rest of the party now came
-in, each of the ladies accompanied by three maids, and
-the men by two male servitors each.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nellie and Mrs. Graham were attired much the
-same as Enola; Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry
-were dressed as the native men, but their garments
-were of a finer quality of silk.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Upon entering the chamber the male servitors
-retired and six maidens took their places. Nellie was
-given a seat next to Enola, and next to her came Mr.
-Bruce and then Harry; Mrs. Graham sat next to the
-King with her husband at her left.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When all were seated, a strain of exquisite music
-from some hidden orchestra of stringed instruments
-burst forth. The King gave a command and fifteen
-maidens came tripping in singing a pretty song, their
-harmonious voices blending deliciously with the music.
-Seven of the maidens carried gold dishes containing
-chipped ice, while the others carried cups in one hand
-and a vase of honey in the other. They rested the
-cups on the tables and after filling them partly with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>honey added wine from the chalices and then dropped
-into the cups some of the chipped ice, stirring this
-gently with small golden ladles. This done they
-stepped back and the King raising his cup, waited for
-the others to do so; when they had done this the
-King arose and looking toward the skeleton at the end
-of the room, raising his cup and saying a few words,
-drank the contents. All had followed the King in his
-movements, and as the cool beverage touched their
-lips it seemed that they had never tasted anything half
-so sweet or refreshing. Months had passed since they
-had known such luxuries as ice and wine and they
-emptied their cups almost greedily, hoping that the
-etiquette of the feast would allow them to drink long
-and unsparingly of the delicious beverage.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The maidens bore the cups away, and others
-brought in trays containing small silken napkins and
-golden finger bowls filled with perfumed water.
-Other maidens brought in trays, covered with figs,
-fresh herbs, chipped ice and eggs of a peculiar kind in
-tiny cups of gold.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Thus far not a word had been spoken; the King,
-however, seemed surprised at the silence, and probably
-surmising the reason pointed to his lips and then
-to the guests, making them understand that he would
-like to hear them talk. Enola took upon herself to
-instruct the King as far as possible in English, pointing
-to different articles on the table and then naming
-them. Onrai, for this was the King’s name, named
-the articles slowly after her and then gave the names
-in his native tongue.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce, who had listened intently to the names
-given the articles by the King, and who had carefully
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>studied a piece of papyrus upon which the King had
-inscribed some characters when passed to him, declared
-the characters to be Egyptian hieroglyphics or
-closely resembling them. He had been a close student
-of the Egyptian hieroglyphics while at college, and
-had spent many spare moments in the great British
-museum going over the ancient inscriptions in the vast
-collection of that home of relics. He had noticed also
-the inscription upon the pennant held in the eagle’s
-talons on the ceiling, and the characters above the
-skeleton at the end of the room. All these convinced
-him that the strange people around him had originally
-come from Egypt, but it must have been thousands of
-years before, for the language and written characters
-of the ancient Egyptians had been obsolete for centuries.
-The skeleton in the banqueting hall was an
-old Egyptian custom, and this but added to the belief
-that these people had originally sprung from that
-race.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“One would think,” said Harry, “that we had been
-taken from the world of hurry and bustle which we so
-recently knew, and set back two or three thousand
-years into this ancient city.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it all seems very strange,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“but I must admit there is novelty in the change at
-least, and for my part I am enjoying it immensely.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I never expected to find iced wine in the
-heart of Africa,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nor I,” said Mrs. Graham, “nor cups of gold from
-which to drink it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Truly, we must have discovered a city of the
-gods,” exclaimed Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “one could easily imagine
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>from the beauty of the city, the stateliness and
-courtesy of the people, and the delights of the feast,
-that we have dropped into something supernatural.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The music changed to a livelier measure, and the
-maidens tripped more lightly to and fro as the feast
-progressed. Roast kid with wine sauce, composed the
-third course, and when this was removed, the finger
-bowls were again passed among the guests. Then,
-after more iced wine and honey, a delicate kind of
-fish was served, after which came fowl, followed by
-sliced fruits covered with shaved ice, and accompanied
-by a new and delicious wine. The feast ended, the
-King arose, and leading the way with Enola at his
-side, passed into the large court, where they witnessed
-a magnificent entertainment.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER VII.<br /> <span class='large'>THE LAW OF THE LAND OF ON.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Four weeks of constant enjoyment passed. The
-greatest kindness had been shown the explorers by
-both king and subjects. The most sumptuous repasts
-were set before them; the most beautiful robes were
-presented to them, and the most glorious entertainments
-gotten up for their delight. Their attendants
-anticipated their least desires and the King himself
-personally supervised the festivities. Great hunts had
-been projected and carried out; excursions through
-the beautiful country had been made on the backs of
-white elephants; points of interest in the city had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>been visited; moonlight rambles through the beautiful
-groves had been taken, and there seemed no prospect
-of diminution of enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were living under the laws of three thousand
-years ago. Little had been learned of their history
-or religion, for they had not become sufficiently acquainted
-with the language to have these things imparted
-to them. With Mr. Bruce’s help, however,
-they had learned that these people were closely affiliated
-with the ancient Egyptians. Onrai had promised
-to give the party some of the laws that night.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>During the four weeks which had passed so pleasantly,
-the adventurers had studied closely the people
-and their country. The rays of the sun were intensely
-hot during the day, but owing to the thickness of the
-onyx walls of the temple and the system by which air
-was forced over blocks of ice, the apartments were
-delightfully pleasant and cool. The streets during
-the day were deserted, but as evening came on the
-people would leave their homes and promenade the
-principal thoroughfares and squares, enjoying the cool
-and refreshing breezes which sprung up from the
-south as the day declined. The people themselves
-were the most remarkable feature of this strange country.
-The women stood fully six feet and six inches
-high and the men seven feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Another very noticeable thing was the total absence
-of aged people. In all their excursions they had not
-met a man or woman who looked to be past middle
-life. Had they discovered a fountain of youth, which,
-when bathed in, gave them a long lease on life with
-health and beauty? No cripples or infirm people were
-seen, all being robust and healthy. All resembled
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>each other. It could be seen that their dispositions
-varied to some extent but not radically, since all
-seemed inspired by the same motives. They were easy
-in their movements and very graceful.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After four weeks of studying these people and their
-lives, our friends considered them the happiest mortals
-they had ever known, for they did not seem to have a
-care or trouble in the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That evening Onrai took the evening meal with
-them as usual and after this was over, and they had
-repaired to the large court, Enola said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, you promised to tell us of your laws to-night
-and we are waiting patiently to learn the government
-of such a happy people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Our laws are simply nature’s law,” said Onrai.
-“In the first place, the laws governing our physical
-welfare are very strict, for we believe that happiness
-springs from a strong constitution and a healthy body.
-Our tables are spread with an abundance of viands,
-but just so much must be eaten and no more. We
-have certain hours for work and certain hours for entertainment
-and recreation; the hours for work are
-few, because we believe that overwork is injurious to
-the constitution and this we always try to prevent.
-Our people are educated in religious laws and language
-between the ages of seven and twelve.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Who are the teachers?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are all teachers,” answered Onrai. “In our
-temples of learning all above the age of twenty have
-their days for teaching. This is considered one of
-the lightest duties, and we arrange the days so that
-they may come directly after those of the hardest
-toil.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>“But is it with all other occupations as it is with
-teaching?” asked Mr. Graham. “Do you not assign
-certain work to those who are most proficient in that
-work?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have none who are more proficient in one
-thing than another,” answered Onrai. “Between the
-ages of twelve and twenty, our young people devote
-certain hours each day to the study of trades and professions.
-They may work for two weeks on a farm,
-and for the next two weeks study architecture, and so
-on until they arrive at the age of twenty, when they
-are as well versed in one thing as in another.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But are there no differences in the intellects of the
-people?” asked Mr. Graham. “Are not some brighter
-and more clever than others?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai. “Our duties are simple and
-easily learned, and when we have once mastered them
-thoroughly, what difference would it make, if, as you
-say, some should be brighter than others.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But,” said Enola, “Do you not have those who go
-beyond the things taught them and develop new principles
-and invent new contrivances, which might make
-their duties less irksome, their labors less arduous?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, we have none such,” said Onrai, “or, if we
-have, their ideas never take shape or form, for the one
-great law is to be content with what is taught us.
-Look about you, see this beautiful country, the grand
-palaces, the statuary and paintings; could we conceive
-of more beautiful architecture, or grander statuary,
-with which to adorn these beautiful palaces? No, I
-think not. We have certain lines to follow in architecture,
-certain forms to copy in our statuary, and
-certain rules to observe in our painting, and these
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>lead to but the one thing, and that is, perfection,
-which, when once reached cannot be surpassed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell us more of the laws,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“After the physical welfare of our people is looked
-after, we make it imperative that they study, and learn
-and adhere to the laws governing the spiritual being.
-Our religion teaches us that if we abuse the body and
-die before our time we shall not enter the great hereafter;
-we shall be condemned to everlasting punishment.
-This religious law, and the dire future for those
-who break it, makes all observe it, and consequently
-you see no sick or infirm about you. We are taught
-to believe in one God, and live so that we may enter a
-home of everlasting bliss when we have lived out our
-lives on this earth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell us how you punish murder and stealing,” said
-Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stealing, murder?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, taking from another that which belongs to
-him, either property or life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“These are unknown to us,” said Onrai. “We are
-all equal; we have the same duties to perform, the
-same garments to wear, the same things to eat and
-drink. Why should we take from another that which
-we have ourselves?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is there no buying and selling?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai, “We all share alike. When a
-citizen wants a certain article he has but to ask for it
-and it is his. We have an abundance of all things, at
-all times and it is as free to one as to another.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What are your laws concerning marriage?” inquired
-Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>“Our religious laws govern this,” replied Onrai.
-“At the age of eighteen the young people are taken
-before a council of ten and a careful examination is made
-of both physical and mental health. These examinations
-are reported on tablets and at the age of twenty
-they are again summoned and a husband or wife is
-allotted.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But love,” said Mrs. Graham, “does not love enter
-into the compact at all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No”, said Onrai, “We are taught by our religion,
-not to allow ourselves to love until married. Those,
-who from association learn to seek one young person
-more than another, are brought before the council of
-ten and steps are taken to prevent a recurrence. It is
-by this law that we have attained a point in physical
-culture which shows a race of healthy, strong and
-vigorous beings. In the course of events there are
-occasional errors which render it necessary to forbid
-the further production of children. When the young
-people are examined, if any organ seems at all weak a
-companion is selected in whom that organ is at its
-best. If three decided weaknesses are found, the person
-is not allowed to marry. Dispositions and tempers
-are also considered by the council before selection
-is made. We, of course, in our short lives, cannot notice
-the great effects such a method brings about, but
-reason tells us that it must be a safeguard to the
-strength of the people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But what of the history of your people, Onrai?”
-asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Our history is unknown to us,” said Onrai. “The
-history of the people is not divulged. They know the
-events which occur during their own lives, and that is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>all. At the expiration of each king’s reign, the history
-of his reign in inscribed on a tablet of hard wood, and
-this is placed in a secret chamber. Those who are
-living at the time of his death are forbidden to ever
-mention the events of his reign when his successor has
-ascended to the throne.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are greatly disappointed,” said Mr. Bruce.
-“We have become very much interested in your
-country and people, and we had hoped that we might
-learn their history.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai at this moment called an attendant to him,
-and speaking a few words to him the attendant withdrew.
-Presently the High Priest came forward, and
-Onrai held quite a conversation with him, after which
-he turned to our friends, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The High Priest informs me that he knows of no
-law which would forbid your entering this secret
-chamber, and there read from the tablets the history
-of our country and people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends were much surprised at being granted
-this privilege, and thanking Onrai, they repaired to the
-Secret Chamber with the High Priest. While going to
-the chamber with the priest, he informed the party
-that he was entrusted with certain religious secrets
-which the rest of the people were not allowed to know,
-but as far as the history of the country was concerned
-he was forbidden, as were all others, to consult the
-tablets. Upon arriving at the Secret Chamber, a
-secret spring was touched, and an immense stone door
-turned on a pivot, much the same as the door to the
-cave. After entering the Priest showed them the location
-of the secret spring on the inside, and also the
-location of the most ancient tablets, and then retired.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>The great gate swung shut and they were left alone in
-the immense chamber which contained the unknown
-records of the history of On. They removed a great
-number of tablets, until those bearing the earliest dates
-were uncovered, and found them in a state of excellent
-preservation. With Mr. Bruce’s knowledge of ancient
-hieroglyphics he was able to decipher most of the inscriptions;
-by deciphering certain portions it was not
-difficult to fill in between without the labor of actual
-translation. The research stretched over several days,
-but condensed, the account ran as follows:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“During the reign of Amenophis of Egypt, the
-country was scourged by numerous and grievous
-plagues, and the people were sorely tried. These
-plagues were inflicted upon the Egyptians by the God
-of the Israelites, as a punishment for the severe treatment
-of the latter race. One Moyses, who had been
-reared in the royal house of the Pharaohs as a son,
-adopted the religion of the Israelites and was chosen
-by them for their leader to deliver them out of the
-land of Egypt. But they had no remedy at hand and
-still bowed in submission to the fearful task imposed
-upon them until Moyses at last saw a favorable opportunity
-for their deliverance. Reminding them of their
-former freedom, and of the God of their fathers, and
-that their cause was His, he prevailed upon them to
-regard their deliverance as an article of religion, and
-they again became a united people in their determination
-to seek refuge from the oppression of the Egyptians
-in the wilderness, which was the dwelling place
-of their kindred and the seat of their God. Then the
-fearful plagues were visited upon the people of Egypt
-and they became desperate.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>“Many Egyptians in the vicinity of Goshen, the
-dwelling place of the Israelites, had accepted the religion
-of that people, and seeing no end to the plagues
-which were scourging this country, they gathered together
-and determined to emigrate to some distant
-land where they could live in peace and happiness,
-and without fear of molestation from their idolatrous
-countrymen. At the final meeting of these people,
-On, of the city of Goshen, and the land of Egypt, was
-chosen as their leader, and it was determined to follow
-the Nile as far as expedient, until they had reached
-such a land as would suit them for a dwelling place.
-It is I, On, who am now inscribing this record. There
-were six thousand and six hundred of us, men, women
-and children. To leave Egypt together would create
-suspicion, so choosing forty sub-commanders, an equal
-number of companies set out at stated intervals and
-marched until the southern boundary of the country
-had been crossed, when all were consolidated and
-marched into the vast interior. When all were united,
-preparations were made for the great journey. Boats
-were built, and many provisions were procured, for we
-knew not the country into which we were going, or
-how long it would take to reach a desirable land in
-which to take up our abode. When all was in readiness
-we embarked in the boats and followed the Nile
-until coming to the many streams which comprise its
-source. Here we disembarked, leaving the boats in
-the river. Towards the south we marched, the journey
-being very slow, tedious, and fraught with much sickness
-and danger. Strange tribes of people we met,
-much darker in color than we, and very hostile. We
-struggled on for many weary leagues, fighting the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>strange people and being a prey to fever and wild
-beasts. Our band was altogether discouraged; still
-I pleaded with them, telling them that we would,
-sooner or later, come to an uninhabited country with
-fertile fields and cooling streams.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We came at last to a lofty range of mountains, running
-north and south, extending, peak beyond peak,
-far to the westward. Following the mountains south,
-for many leagues farther, the range suddenly turned
-west. Still following along their base, we came to a
-beautiful open country. Here we decided to take up
-our dwelling.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We had been here but a short time when one of the
-men discovered a hole in the side of the mountain. Ten
-men were sent to explore the vast cave which this opening
-led into. At the end of three days they returned and
-told us that an immense lake of water had stopped
-their further progress, and that they had returned for
-boats. These were made, and with them the men
-again started. Many times did the sun rise and set
-before they again returned, but at last they came with
-a story which made us all joyful. They had crossed
-the lake but had been lost on the opposite shore, and
-had wandered for many days until they saw a ray of
-light and making for it found an opening which led
-into a beautiful country, stretching far to the west and
-north. They explored a part of the country, finding
-numerous lakes and rivers, and then returned to tell
-of the wonderful hidden land.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“After a consultation it was determined to pass
-through the mountains and take up a permanent
-abode beyond. Preparations were made and together
-we started. The lake was crossed, the opening found
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>and we reached the country which was to be the scene
-of our remaining life and death. Our numbers were
-taken, and it was found that during the two years’
-march to this land we had lost more than half of our
-band. But three thousand and two hundred remained
-of the six thousand and six hundred which had started
-from Egypt. Fifteen hundred of those remaining
-were men, the women and children having succumbed
-more readily to the hardships of the journey.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A site for a city was picked out and a part of the
-country cultivated. Our land abounded in wild animals
-and fruits so we were well-provided with food.
-A quarry of beautiful hard stone was found and we
-determined to build our city of this. The architects
-drew up the plans for the city and work was commenced.
-The Temple, which when finished will be the
-grandest which the world has ever known, will stand
-in the northern end of the city on a slight eminence.
-The streets are to be broad and paved. At frequent
-distances will be squares for public amusement, and
-parks for recreation will be placed conveniently near
-the city. We made two discoveries which have helped
-us in the manufacture of necessary implements and
-added to our comfort. A mine of gold was found, and
-in a cavern through which the wind rushes like a blast
-from a mountain of snow we found a lake of pure ice.
-This ice was of great thickness and it took us a great
-while to cut through it. We have also a mountain of
-iron, a field of diamonds and a forest of wood so hard
-that we find great difficulty in cutting it. On blocks
-of this wood I am now inscribing the infant history of
-our country.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am growing very old. My people have increased
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>rapidly and great work has been done. The City and
-Temple are fast nearing completion; most of the streets
-are paved with hard stone and cultivated fields are
-about us; we have measured the length and breadth
-of our country and find that it is nearly three hundred
-miles square. We have driven the wild animals from
-our cultivated land into a section near the mountains,
-and at the border of this vast land of jungle and forest
-we are building a wall fifty feet high to keep the animals
-within bounds. We also built a stone viaduct
-to cross the lake in the cavern and several across the
-river which flows at the base of the southern mountains.
-During the building of these viaducts hundreds were
-engaged in keeping the laborers furnished with meat,
-the animals being skinned and dressed for food in the
-cavern. The inhabitants who died during the first
-twenty years of our settlement here were embalmed,
-and their bodies placed in the niches of the rock in the
-cavern. After this date the dead were cremated and
-this is now a law. I am now ninety years old and we
-have been in this country fifty years. The city and
-country has been named “ON,” in honor of me, because
-I led the people to it, and I have been the people’s
-chosen King since we left Egypt. I have laid
-down the laws which are to govern the people for all
-time. These laws I have made simple and just, guarding
-against any contingency or cause for dissension,
-profiting by the experiences of other countries. I
-have tried to formulate laws which will not allow of
-jealousies or covetousness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Again, the laws are aimed to make a race of people
-grand in physical strength and beautiful in moral
-character. All are equal in the eyes of the law. All
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>are made to work at the different vocations. All are
-furnished with the same provisions and raiment. The
-best artisans have laid down rules to be followed by
-the people in architecture, sculpture, painting, and in
-the making of ornaments. The best agriculturists, the
-foremost of our quarrymen and miners have made new
-inventions and laid down rules which will lighten and
-facilitate their labors.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To the religion taught by the Israelites I have
-added nothing. From their teachings I learned that
-they expected to have the Son of their God visit them
-at some future time. They also taught us that there
-was a great and eternal hereafter which was to be entered
-into after death, and I have made this hereafter
-so bright and beautiful that my countrymen will hail
-with delight their day of death. I have also made it
-possible to stop the over-increase of our people by a
-certain law. To guard against intemperate habits of
-any kind, by which so many diseases and so much
-unhappiness are brought into the world, I have established
-a law that all dying because of intemperance or
-over-indulgence in any of the necessary things of life
-will enter into everlasting punishment. I have made
-the delights of our future life so bright that my people
-will guard against everything which might bring on
-disease and premature death. Already the effects of
-these laws have been seen, for disease is passing away
-and my people are striving in every way to live until
-their day of death.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I alone of the many Kings who are to follow me am
-allowed to reign for so many years. I have given
-myself the right to reign thus long because I wish to
-have my laws well-established before abdicating in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>favor of another. I have found that some of the laws
-first laid down were defective and by still retaining my
-sceptre I have been able to correct them. To the
-High Priest I have given certain knowledge which is
-denied the remainder of the people, and this knowledge
-is to be guarded by him as a sacred commandment to
-be imparted only to his successor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The language of my forefathers I have changed but
-little. I have added some few words from the language
-of the Israelites and a few from the Syriac. I
-have made the language as simple as possible as well
-as the hieroglyphics. The history of the reign of each
-King shall be inscribed on tablets of wood and placed
-in the secret chamber of the Temple but the people
-are to know nothing of their former history. This is
-done to keep them from knowing anything of the outside
-world. I wish them to believe that the world is
-bounded by the mountains which enclose their country;
-for thus believing they will remain together and will
-never undertake needless excursions into other countries,
-which would result in war and bloodshed. I
-wish them to be a peaceable, law-abiding people believing
-that they are the people and that theirs is the only
-country.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have fitted to the opening in the mountain a stone
-turning on pivots and opening by a secret spring, of
-which I alone know the secret. Those who fitted the
-stone were forbidden to speak of it and they have long
-since died, and the laws forbidding access to the
-inscribed history have been so well kept that none of
-my countrymen to-day are aware of the existence of
-an outside world.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This is not a history, but a simple outline of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>events which led to our emigration, the long journey,
-and the discovery of the country and the laws which I
-have made. I have inscribed this during my few
-leisure hours more for recreation than aught else. The
-history of our people and country will be found inscribed
-on the King’s tablets.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have made the one holiday of the Land of On,
-‘The Day of Resis,’ and this day, if all of my laws
-are adhered to, will be the happiest day in the lives of
-those who participate in its ceremonies.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER VIII.<br /> <span class='large'>THE ROYAL HUNT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Mrs. Graham had, during the past few weeks, given
-herself up to the comforts of her delightful boudoir,
-seldom accompanying her friends on the many
-excursions which were projected for their pleasure.
-The splendid attendance, the magnificent apartment,
-the sumptuous table, all tended to make her new life
-a happy one. It was just suited to the fastidious
-tastes of such a woman as Mrs. Graham, and she had
-determined to startle her native city with a reproduction
-of many of its delightful features.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nellie had enjoyed the new life quite as much as
-her mother but in a different way. With Mr. Bruce
-she had visited every nook and corner of the Temple,
-and had taken sketches of the principal courts, colonnades
-and terraces, intending to copy them in oil at
-home. Then they had taken long walks through the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>city and visited the schools in which Nellie was especially
-interested; had remained one whole day in
-the provision market, where the inhabitants went each
-morning for the day’s supplies, and another in the
-mills where the cloth for wearing apparel was woven.
-They had spent many happy hours in the fine art
-studio, where beautiful statues were being carved out
-of blocks of onyx, and where pictures were being
-painted on flat pieces of hard wood.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was also the school of architecture, where
-students between the ages of twelve and twenty were
-busy working out the difficult problems and drawings.
-In this building also were made the gold ornaments
-which were used in every household in rich profusion,
-in the shape of girdles for the waist, bands and
-ornaments for the hair. It was noticed that certain
-models were used for all these different works of fine
-art, and that nothing new was ever executed. As
-Onrai had told them, though, the models were perfect
-and nothing more beautiful could be conceived. They
-had also visited the parks, squares and principal
-thoroughfares, and had taken an interest in studying
-the architecture and furnishings of the different residences.
-All places were open to them and the greatest
-attention was paid them wherever they went.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This constant association and similarity of tastes
-had brought these two closer together, and although
-Mr. Bruce had never yet mentioned his love to Nellie,
-still he felt that she reciprocated that love.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham, sometimes accompanied by Harry, but
-oftener alone, had gone everywhere. He was in his
-element, for, astride of a beautiful zebra, he would take
-long rides into the country and spend whole days fishing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>on the small lakes, or at other times, would
-venture a short distance into the great hunting reserve.
-In this grand expanse of wild jungle and forest could
-be found every known species of African animal, and
-Mr. Graham was especially delighted in the hunting of
-large game. The laws governing these hunts were
-rather strange; the smallest of each species of animal
-was killed, the largest always being left. The same
-laws which governed the inhabitants were applied to
-the wild animals and also to those domesticated, allowing
-the larger to mate and bring forth healthy offspring.
-If a colt or baby elephant should be dwarfed at birth,
-or show any ailment afterward, it was instantly killed.
-By observing this law with the domestic animals, and
-in killing only the smaller of the wild animals, the
-whole race had become large and powerful.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry seemed to be the only unhappy one in the
-party. This was easily accounted for. During the
-long excursions the King would be at Enola’s side constantly,
-and Harry had hardly found time to speak
-with her alone since they had arrived in this, as he
-called it, barbarous land. Onrai always dined with
-the party and sat at Enola’s right. Harry had been
-given a seat the farthest from her; whether this was
-done intentionally or not, Harry could not say, but he
-fumed in silence. After the evening meal, Enola
-would invariably accompany Onrai to the terrace
-where they would sit until near midnight. Occasionally
-Harry would have a short talk with Enola in the
-morning, but even then their conversation was of
-Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai had been given a home with one of the inhabitants
-and was enjoying the new life greatly. He had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>been given a zebra and spent most of the time on its
-back. Once each day he would go to the Temple to see
-his friends, and while there would tell of his exploits
-among the fair woman of the city. Because he was
-one of the party he was looked upon with great
-admiration. As he was but little below the height of
-the native men and was only a shade darker in color,
-the inhabitants had been led to believe that he was
-one of their own race, but had in some mysterious
-way left his own land and visited that planet from
-which the strangers were supposed to have come.
-The women smiled on him, the men treated him with
-the greatest respect and he could hardly help liking
-this new life. He had come up to the Temple on this
-morning to join the party in the royal hunt.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The rifles which our friends had brought with them
-they had never used for fear of the natives coveting
-them when they learned their value in the hunt, but
-now they felt, because of the great respect which had
-been shown them, that they and everything pertaining
-to them was held as sacred by the natives, and they
-had decided to use the guns on to-day’s hunt.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The morning was bright and the hour early when
-the party started. Enola and her friends were seated
-on huge black elephants with long formidable tusks
-and trained to the hunt. Around the neck and also
-around the body, just back of the howdah of each
-elephant was a band of gold, in which were embedded
-the handles of large pointed daggers, the blades pointing
-outward. These were placed for the protection of
-the elephants and of those who rode them. The rest
-of the party rode zebras which were to-day only plainly
-caparisoned. The weapons of the natives consisted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>of large cross-bows with quivers of flint-pointed arrows,
-daggers with long, narrow blades and axes with short
-handles.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>About one hundred comprised the party, all well
-armed and impatient for the hunt. They traversed
-the same road over which our friends had been conducted
-when they first came to the city, and very soon
-passed through a huge gate on the border of the hunting
-reserve and then across the long stone bridge. Before
-going through the gate, the zebramen had all dismounted,
-leaving the zebras to graze in a near-by field
-until they returned. These men were to beat and cut
-the bush, to stir up the game and also to make a pathway
-for the hunters. The footmen went forward, and
-with huge clubs in one hand and axes in the other,
-opened up a passage-way. A little while later an
-open forest was reached and passed; the trees of this
-forest were literally alive with monkeys which chattered
-and made grimaces as the party passed. Deer
-were seen scampering away, and occasionally a huge
-boa constrictor could be seen crawling through the
-high grass or suspended from the limb of a tree waiting
-for its prey. On the opposite side of the forest a
-thick and almost impenetrable jungle confronted them,
-but the bush-beaters went to work again and a way
-was opened up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly a roar was heard which was almost deafening.
-The elephants stopped and began to move
-their huge ears forward and back and give short cries
-similar to those of a baby. The men immediately
-scattered, dividing equally and moving to the right
-and left. Soon they had formed a circle about two
-hundred feet in diameter, and then commenced to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>close in toward the centre. This was slow work but
-they knew that it would not last long, as the lion or
-lioness would make a dash for liberty or jump at one
-of the party. Mr. Graham had directed his elephant
-near the circle and from his elevated point of view he
-could occasionally catch a glimpse of a tail above the
-bush. The men were slowly closing in on the lion
-and Mr. Graham held his rifle in readiness to get the
-first shot. Suddenly the lion raised on his haunches
-so that his head appeared above the bush. This was
-enough for Mr. Graham, and taking a quick aim at the
-head, he fired. The lion dropped, and the natives
-stood aghast at the sound of the shot and the sudden
-flash of fire and smoke which followed. Mr. Graham
-slipped from the back of the elephant and made for
-the bush and, with the help of an axe, which he was
-wielding, was fast nearing the lion, when the huge
-beast leaped into the air and struck him fairly on the
-side of the head. Mr. Bruce, who had half-expected
-something of the kind, had been waiting for the lion
-to leap, and as he appeared above the bushes, had
-aimed at a point just behind the brute’s shoulder and
-fired. Mr. Graham had been stunned by the powerful
-blow of the lion and Mrs. Graham screamed and
-fainted. Leaving the backs of their elephants, Onrai,
-Harry and Mr. Bruce hurried to their companion’s assistance,
-and soon reached the spot where he and the
-lion lay together. He was insensible and bleeding
-badly from his wound and with the lion lying dead
-over his lower limbs. Harry and Mr. Bruce called
-some of the natives, and together they moved the
-body of the lion, after which they carried Mr. Graham
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>to an open place where his wound was washed and
-wine being poured between his lips he was soon restored
-to consciousness. Mrs. Graham was revived by
-Enola and Nellie, and Mr. Graham refusing to return,
-he again took his place in the howdah and the hunting
-party proceeded after leaving a number of the natives
-behind to skin the lion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce’s shot had struck the lion just behind the
-right shoulder and the bullet had penetrated the
-heart. It was lucky for Mr. Graham that it did so,
-for the lion, being maddened with pain, would soon
-have torn him to pieces. The King and his men
-looked at the lion carefully, turning it over and over,
-trying to find the marks of wounds such as their
-arrows would have made. Harry took his rifle, and
-handing it to the King, showed him how to hold it
-properly, and then how to aim it, telling him to aim
-at one of the lion’s paws. He did so, and pulled the
-trigger. The King dropped the gun as soon as it was
-discharged, alarmed at the loud report it had made so
-near his ears. Harry and the King went up to the
-lion and pointing to its huge paw, Harry showed
-Onrai the hole made by the bullet. He was greatly
-surprised, but could not understand it. Harry then
-showed him one of the cartridges and explained to
-him how the concussion caused the powder to ignite,
-forcing the bullet from the tube and through the gun-barrel
-with such swiftness as to penetrate anything
-that it came in contact with. Onrai slowly shook his
-head as if it were still a puzzle to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They again took up the march through the jungle,
-and presently came to a large stream which must have
-found its outlet in the river at the base of the mountains.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>They followed the bank of the river for some
-distance, until they came to a stone bridge over which
-they passed. Another open forest was entered, and
-here was seen the first herd of elephants. Upon
-catching sight of the elephants which our friends were
-riding, the curiosity of the herd was aroused, and they
-came crowding about the hunting party by scores.
-So quick had been their movements that the men on
-foot had time to do nothing but climb trees. These
-elephants were huge monsters, but did not seem ill-disposed
-towards our friends. They were very curious,
-and could not understand the queer things on the
-necks and backs of the domesticated elephants. They
-came crowding around our friends, shoving their
-trunks up into their faces and under the saddle-cloths,
-as if trying to find out all they could about these
-strange visitors. Occasionally one would come too
-close to the elephants of our party, and would be
-pricked by the long daggers about their bodies, when
-it would give a cry and retreat. The tame elephants
-paid no attention to the others, seeming to consider
-them as beneath their notice. They probably looked
-upon these denizens of the forest as our friends would
-on a band of savages. Their curiosity satisfied, they
-slowly retreated through the forest, throwing their
-enormous trunks into the trees and breaking off limbs
-half the size of a man’s body. The men came down
-from the trees and the party again took up the march.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had proceeded but a short distance when a
-shriek of terror from Mrs. Graham caused all to look
-in her direction. A huge gorilla had sprung from a
-neighboring tree and seized her with his powerful arm,
-showing his white teeth and chattering wildly. For
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>an instant all was confusion. Harry sprang to the rescue
-and before the animal could drag Mrs. Graham
-from the elephant, his rifle was emptied of its deadly
-load and the gorilla laid writhing on the ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With two such experiences in such a short time it
-was deemed expedient to abandon the hunt for the
-day, and though Mrs. Graham was sorry to cause this
-break in the programme she could not but admit her
-desire to leave a place so fraught with danger. So
-back through the jungle and forest, over the bridge
-and through the gate, and along the white road, the
-cool evening breeze now refreshing them after the fearful
-heat of the day, the party made its way toward the
-city.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER IX.<br /> <span class='large'>THE GOLD MINE AND CAVE OF ICE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The shock of the day before had left Mrs. Graham
-in a very nervous condition. Having arrived at the
-Temple, she was given into the hands of her attendants,
-who soon had her in the perfumed bath, and
-with a treatment much resembling our massage, she
-was soon brought out of her nervousness. Still to-day
-she was far from feeling like herself, and when Onrai
-had proposed a trip to the gold mine and quarries,
-she declined to go.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham, having already visited these places,
-decided to remain with his wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai had each day since their arrival, projected
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>some novel excursion or entertainment for our friends,
-the preparation for these always being both elaborate
-and complete. So much of interest was to be seen in
-this strange city and country, our friends never tired
-of these excursions. Many things were seen which
-contrasted favorably with similar contrivances in their
-own country. The streets were paved with the beautiful
-onyx, and were always scrupulously clean.
-There were no sidewalks, the pavements stretching
-from lawn to lawn. These pavements were cleaned
-once a day with a combination of sweeper, watering
-cart and dirt gatherer in one, which did its work most
-effectually. The contrivance, but for the material
-used in its construction, the striped animals pulling it,
-and the queer costumes of the drivers, would have
-caused no comments on the streets of an American
-city; for it looked like the invention of some modern
-genius.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This had been used, however, as had every other
-contrivance or machine, since the foundation of the
-city. In fact, the city or country must have been
-founded by a race who had reached a high point in
-civilization, for their architecture, their fine arts, their
-implements of manufacture and farming, all showed
-deep thought, careful study, and great knowledge of
-the principles involved. And the laws which were
-made to govern the people were perfect, and, being
-carried out, left perfect results.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But our friends had not seen all the wonders of this
-strange country, or the works of its people; nor had
-Onrai given to Enola or the rest of the strangers, any
-idea of the immense resources of this land. They had
-many things to learn still, and one thing in particular,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>which would startle and surprise them. Our friends
-were happy though, and not one of them had as yet
-given a thought to the returning to their homes. This
-life was so pleasant, every feature of it so enjoyable,
-they had little time or desire to think of aught else.
-The time would come, however, when a longing to
-see their friends left behind, to once more taste the
-delights and pleasures of modern civilization, to be
-where people talked and acted as themselves, would
-take such hold on them that they would wonder how
-they ever could have found any pleasure in this strange
-city and among a people which knew nothing, or
-cared to know nothing, but what had passed down to
-them from the founder of this country, who had lived
-thousands of years before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But as yet this longing had not come to disturb
-their peaceful thoughts, and to-day, as they were about
-to start on another excursion to see more of the wonders
-of this strange country, they were never happier.
-As was customary on such occasions, our friends were
-mounted on the white elephants, accompanied by the
-king and ten zebramen, who acted as on escort.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Their first stop was to be at the onyx quarries, five
-miles distant. They started early, so as to reach the
-farthest point before the middle of the day, when the
-heat was so intense, it was hard to withstand it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Their way led through a broad avenue lined on
-either side by tall palms, back of which were beautiful
-palaces, the large entrances being open, showing their
-dark, cool interiors. Many of the inhabitants were
-also on the street, enjoying the fresh morning breeze.
-Some were lounging about the broad terraces, while
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>others were seated on onyx chairs, in the great gardens
-surrounding each house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The sun, just rising above the eastern mountain,
-the songs of the birds, the perfume of the flowers
-wafted to them by the cool morning breeze, the beautiful
-palaces with the white-robed inhabitants lounging
-about them, the broad, paved avenue with the
-white elephants and beautiful zebras, moving stately
-along it, left but one thought in the minds of our
-friends, namely, that they would willingly brave the
-hardships, trials and dangers of their past journey, for
-this one short hour in the beautiful city of On. The
-paved avenue reached on as far as the Cave of Ice,
-which the party was to visit before their return.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the immense quarry of onyx was reached,
-and our friends stood in wonder, gazing at its great
-extent. At least forty acres of onyx had already been
-taken from the quarry, and huge blocks of the beautiful
-stone lay finished on the broad pavement, while
-others were being placed by means of levers, on rollers
-in readiness to be moved to the new building in course
-of construction in the city. Some of these blocks
-measured twenty feet in length, being five feet square.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>These were moved to the city, and placed in position
-by means of rollers and derricks, the huge elephants
-doing most of the work. About the quarry were a
-great many beautiful columns, capitols, pedestals,
-stones for arches, balustrades, stairs, and roughly hewn
-statues, ready to be moved to the school of fine arts.
-A great many men were at work, all taking the greatest
-interest in their labors. The king explained that
-these men discontinued work at eleven o’clock, and
-were through for the day. At three o’clock another
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>body of men went to work, and continued until seven
-in the evening. The following morning another body
-of men would take up the work, and so on, until each
-company of workingmen had taken their turn at the
-work in the quarries. From the time one company of
-men leave the quarry for any one of the other duties,
-which had to be performed, two weeks elapsed before
-they again returned. Four hours comprised a day’s
-work, and each day found the men at different employment
-from the one preceding it, until all of the
-different vocations had been temporarily filled.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party now continued their journey, passing the
-gold mine on their way to the cave of winds, or ice.
-Arriving at the latter place, before going into the
-cave they were taken into a small house and given
-very warm garments of untanned lion skins, their attendants
-telling them that the air was very cold in the
-cave and the heavy garments would not feel uncomfortable.
-The King taking the lead, they were led to
-a large arched opening into the side of the mountain.
-Torches were carried by the attendants who preceded
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A loud rumbling, which resembled the noise made
-by the great cataract of Niagara, soon fell on their
-ears, and this increased in volume as they penetrated
-farther into the mountain. The passage for some distance
-after entering, was about ten feet wide and that
-many high and large cakes of ice were piled up on
-each side as if waiting transportation. The passage
-soon widened until they found themselves in a large
-cave, the sides of which could not be seen in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The air was growing colder each moment and the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>awful rumbling had become almost deafening. Far on
-ahead could be seen numerous lights flickering in the
-darkness, and upon our friends asking the King what
-this meant, he told them they were used to light the
-lake on which men were cutting ice. Here the torches
-were exchanged for a kind of lantern with a globe of
-mica, and before our friends had proceeded much further
-they realized why this was done, for a howling
-wind struck them broadside nearly knocking them
-from off their feet. The wind and the deafening noise
-it made in its wild rush through this subterranean passage
-was terrible. It was fearfully cold, too, and the
-attendants went among the party and adjusted the
-warm fur hoods over the heads and faces, leaving
-space only for the eyes and nose. Even these precautions
-did not save our friends from the piercing
-cold, for the blood had been accustomed to the equatorial
-heat on the outside and this quick change could
-not but make them shiver. Mr. Bruce calculated that
-the extreme cold would lower the mercury to 40 degrees,
-Fah., below zero, but he might have been mistaken,
-so long had it been since he experienced such
-freezing atmosphere.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On they went, fighting against the wind and cold
-until they reached the shore of the lake. Here about
-one hundred men were at work cutting ice, using a
-sort of long saw and an axe with a very large but narrow
-blade. The men were bundled up very carefully
-and worked very fast. The lake extended as far as
-could be seen in the darkness and was one solid sheet
-of ice with the exception of the place cut by the men,
-and even a film was already beginning to form over
-this. Near where our friends were standing was a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>flume or chute declining towards the entrance of the
-cave. The blocks of ice were brought to a point directly
-under this and being caught in a fork were
-raised by means of a windlass to the flume, where they
-were sent sliding to the entrance. An acre of ice was
-cut one day, and the following day another acre was
-cut, and by the next day, or at the end of forty-eight
-hours the ice had gained a thickness of ten inches over
-the acre that was cut on the first day. Thus had it
-gone on for centuries, each day an acre of ice being
-cut and supplied to the inhabitants. Each palace was
-furnished a quantity of ice sufficient for its needs. It
-was used for cooling the atmosphere as well as for
-drinks and preserving provisions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends now being thoroughly chilled, and having
-seen all they wished to, they left the cavern and as
-soon as the villa was entered, attendants took charge
-of them, and disrobing them, plunged them into a hot
-bath, after which they were given a good rubbing and
-dressed in the clothes which they had worn upon arriving.
-After this a meal was served them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At three o’clock a start was made for the gold mine,
-and upon reaching this they were put into large cages
-and lowered down, down, down, until the very bowels
-of the earth must have been reached. They could see
-by the light of the torches, as they were lowered, the
-abandoned shafts which centuries before had probably
-been mined.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Down they went until the bottom was at last reached
-and they left the cage to explore the mines. The air
-was fearfully hot and would have been unbearable but
-for the cool air forced into the mines from above.
-Miners were at work, wearing nothing but a breechcloth.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>The quartz found at this depth was the richest
-our friends had ever seen or heard of. Mr. Graham
-calculated that it would assay about eighty per cent.
-pure gold, and the quartz was easily mined. Not
-many men were working in this mine, as the quartz
-was so heavy with gold, that but very little was needed
-to satisfy the demand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends wondered no longer at the profusion of
-gold ornaments and implements. Here was enough
-gold apparently to furnish the world for hundreds of
-years. The shaft which they were now working was
-easily one hundred feet wide and ten feet high. Just
-think of quartz assaying sixteen hundred pounds to the
-ton and thousands of tons in sight! Still these people
-did not consider it as valuable as iron, of which latter
-they had plenty, but which they found so hard to work.
-Onrai explained to our friends that the miners only
-worked one hour at a time and there were months at
-times when the mines were not worked at all, owing to
-an over-supply of gold. Truly these people were rich
-if they only knew it, but wealth was an unknown word
-to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party, after being shown through some of the
-unused shafts, where there was also plenty of quartz,
-but of an inferior quality, was hoisted to the surface.
-The mill for crushing the quartz was shown them and
-the process proved very interesting.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They returned to the city in the cool of the evening,
-well satisfied with their day’s excursion. The longer
-our friends remained in this strange country, and the
-more they saw of its beauties and wealth, the more
-they were astonished at its vast resources. But they
-had seen only a small part of its wonders.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER X.<br /> <span class='large'>THE JOURNEY TO THE LAKE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>In the centre of this vast country was an immense
-lake, covering at least fifteen thousand square feet,
-and this was filled with almost every conceivable species
-of fresh-water fish. This lake was undoubtedly fed
-by springs, for no inlet had ever been found. The
-river was its outlet, and this, as has been said before,
-emptied its waters into a large gulf, or hole in the
-ground which had a subterranean outlet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For a long time our friends had wished to visit this
-inland sea, but their days had been so taken up with
-their other pleasures, a visit to the lake had been quite
-impossible, heretofore. However, the day was fixed
-for the long-looked-for pleasure, and they were about
-to start. It was intended that three days should be
-spent on this journey, one in going, one in fishing and
-the next in returning.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham was here in his element, for he found
-more real pleasure in fishing than in any other sport;
-and then, from what he could learn, this fishing excursion
-was liable to have its adventures, for it was said,
-that not only were there small fish in this lake, but
-also marine monsters too fearful for description and
-still more fearful to come in contact with. He would
-rather that the ladies remain in the city, but all were
-determined to go, so he gave his consent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The morning, like all others in this fair land, was
-beautiful, and early, even before the sun had risen, the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>party started from the Temple. The ladies on the
-backs of the huge elephants, and the men riding ahead
-on sleek, well-groomed zebras, made a picture as they
-rode through the beautiful streets.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The populace was already astir, and the royal party
-was greeted on all sides with that respectful salute
-which was so graceful, but which had so little humility
-in it. A road new to the visitors was now taken, one
-which led in a straight line due northwest, and which was
-smoothly paved with onyx. This road, or avenue, was
-lined with tremendous trees, the thick foliage of which
-met and mingled a hundred feet above their heads,
-making a vast shady arch through which the sun’s
-rays could not penetrate. As far as their eyes could
-reach this tree-arched avenue extended.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How far is it to the lake?” asked Nellie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Twenty miles, according to your method of measuring
-distances,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And does this magnificent avenue extend so far?”
-asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not only to the lake,” answered Onrai, “but it
-borders its shores, its entire circumference.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And is it all paved as it is here?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, throughout its entire length,” added Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And has this been done recently?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Recently,” answered Onrai, “I do not understand
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Has it been done during your reign or the reign of
-your predecessor?” exclaimed Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, it has not been done during my reign or during
-my life, so I, as a consequence, know nothing of
-the time of its laying,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But it must have been laid but a short time,” said
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>Enola, “for not one of these beautifully polished
-stones shows the least defacement.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, that counts for naught,” said Mr. Bruce, “for
-they are placed together so carefully, and the onyx itself
-is so hard, there is no possibility of its chipping.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This is called the Avenue of On,” said Onrai, “and
-not only circumvents the lake, but stretches on from
-the opposite side to the farthest corner of On, or to
-the great field of brilliants.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To the field of brilliants? Tell us of this, Onrai,”
-said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Far away in the direction in which we are now
-going is a large field devoid of all verdure. Rocks
-from the size of a zebra’s hoof to those half as large as
-the Temple cover the ground. The cliffs which surround
-our country at this point are seamed and very
-irregular, which shows that at some remote age the
-rocks which now cover the field were torn from
-them, and having been ground and crushed in their
-rush to the level field, have finally there found a resting
-place. But these stones and rocks do not entirely
-cover the field, for there seems to be an ashy substance
-and in places a bluish sandstone, and covering
-these are small, white brilliants as pure, white and
-clear as the water from a spring. During the day
-these stones catch the sun’s rays and gleam forth like
-polished silver but with a brilliancy much more intense.
-But at night when the great white sentinel rises in the
-heavens and throws its soft light on these stones, they
-look like the reflection of stars in the lake. I have
-never looked upon this field but once at night and it
-impressed me then as being the grandest sight in our
-whole land.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>“Diamonds,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“May be so, or they may be nothing but brilliants,
-as he calls them,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But do you use these?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, we use them,” said Onrai, “the larger ones in
-our sling-shots for killing small game; the smaller
-ones we polish and use for ornamentation. They are
-very hard, harder than onyx, and we find it very difficult
-to polish them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are undoubtedly right, Mr. Graham,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “They must be diamonds.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How strange it is that these people think so little
-of everything on which civilization places the greatest
-value,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Mr. Graham, “but it is because
-these articles, gold and diamonds are so plentiful. I
-doubt not but that if these were as plentiful in our
-world we would care but little for them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“May be,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was now high noon, and although the sun’s rays
-did not reach them, still the day was very hot and it
-was decided best to wait over for three or four hours
-in one of the farm villas which they were now opposite.
-They accordingly dismounted, and although the
-house was unoccupied at the time, still the same comforts
-and conveniences which were found in all of these
-charming villas were also found here. After partaking
-of a light lunch of iced wine and honey and cake, the
-party retired for a short siesta.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The sun was well toward the western horizon when
-they again took up their journey and now a cool breeze
-had sprung up which made the ride along the shady
-flower-scented avenue, delightful in the extreme. They
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>now began to meet the fishermen with their day’s catch
-on their way to the city. There were a great many of
-these for the lake furnished most of the fish for the
-entire populace. These fish were carried in a sort of
-kettle which was partly filled with ice; this kettle was
-swung between two zebras, the back saddles of which
-were connected by the rod from which the kettle hung.
-So well-trained were the zebras to this work that they
-went along perfectly and one man was able to manage
-eight or ten of these teams.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Now through the trees in the distance could be seen
-the blue waters of the beautiful lake. As far as the
-eye could reach stretched the calm waters, the surface
-as smooth as glass. As they drew near the shore
-numerous small boats could be seen.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“These are the boats of the fishermen,” said Onrai,
-“and that black speck well down toward the horizon
-is the island Myrrh, on which is a villa in which we
-will spend the night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But can we reach it before dark?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We will have to,” said Onrai, “for it is not safe to
-be on the lake after nightfall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And why?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because of certain sea monsters which inhabit its
-waters,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce looked at Nellie and the thought occurred
-to both.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can these fearful monsters be like the one which so
-nearly proved our death in the cave?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“These marine animals are not seen during the day
-for they lie at the bottom of the lake as long as the
-sun is shining, but when the glorious orb of day has
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>set and can no longer cast its hot rays on their hideous
-bodies, they then come to the surface and very often
-fearful fights occur among them. They prey on each
-other and after one of these nights of terrible battle I
-have seen the surface of the water red as far as the
-eye could reach, and may be several of their ugly dead
-bodies would be floating about the water near the
-island.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is fearful,” said Mrs. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it is the one fearful thing in this fair land of
-ours,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They now reached the shore and Onrai signaled one
-of the boats to approach. These boats, long and narrow,
-were propelled by six oarsman. They almost
-flew through the water and in a very short space of time
-the boat which Onrai had signaled drove its bow far
-up on the shore of the island. Those who had accompanied
-the company thus far, were to wait on shore
-until the following morning when Onrai and his friends
-should return. The boatmen pulled a quick stroke
-and in a half hour the island was reached.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Attendants had anticipated them and had prepared
-the evening meal and all were soon enjoying the delights
-of fair On’s cuisine.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XI.<br /> <span class='large'>THE FIGHT OF THE SEA MONSTERS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The island on which they now were was very small,
-not being more than one half mile in circumference.
-In fact it was a mere dot on the surface of this vast
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>inland lake, but it was of considerable importance,
-nevertheless, for here the King made periodical excursions,
-and often took up his residence for weeks at a
-time in its charming villa. From the shore on which
-the party landed, the island rose gently to the centre,
-and on this slight eminence stood the villa. On the
-opposite side the shores were precipitous, rising in a
-cliff about fifty feet high. Bordering this cliff had been
-built a low, onyx wall and the intervening space between
-this and the villa had been laid out in a magnificent
-garden, filled with the redolent flowers so numerous
-in this country.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was this delightful spot, shaded by immense palms
-and eucalyptus trees, which so pleased the King and
-which brought him here so frequently. From this
-garden could be seen the cliffs far away to the south
-and east and the fertile country lying between, and on
-the opposite side of the lake spreading on and on until
-merged into the blue horizon. Even from the broad
-dining hall, in which the party were now sitting, could
-be caught glimpses of the city as it lay bathed in the
-bright moonlight far away, and occasionally dim lights
-could be seen which shone from the open villa of the
-pink-white city.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look,” said Enola. “Is the scene not grand?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Harry, “the most exquisite picture I
-ever looked upon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is because of this natural picturesqueness that I
-visit this island so frequently,” said Onrai. “To me it
-has no equal, and I can conceive of nothing more
-beautiful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Enola, “nothing could be more beautiful,
-for here we have every element which goes to make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>up a grand landscape; the distant city standing on the
-gentle slope of the foothills, the towering cliffs beyond,
-their jagged rocks softened by the moonlight; the
-broad fields, the noble forests, and about us the blue
-waters of the lake.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Truly a good country to live in,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, a fair country, with which God has dealt most
-kindly,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party arose and through the broad halls and
-lofty entrance they went into the garden; across this
-and near to the stone wall reclining seats had been
-placed for them. The scene which now met their gaze
-was ineffably grand. The lake lay before them like a
-sea of liquid silver the surface scarcely ruffled by the
-soft evening breeze; beyond, the shore of the mainland
-with its flickering lights, dimmed by the bright
-rays of the moon, and beyond these the magnificent
-panorama already described. The party sat for a long
-time lost in contemplation of the magnificent scenery.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look,” said Enola, “a boat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Enola, not a boat,” said Onrai, “for it means
-death to any who may venture on the lake at night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may mean death, Onrai, but nevertheless some
-one of your countrymen has undertaken the hazardous
-journey to-night, for see, the lights in the bow shine
-brightly,” replied Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai had arisen as Enola had spoken, and stepping
-to the wall looked long at the black object coming
-toward them, then resuming his seat, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, it is one of the monsters; those lights are its
-fiery eyes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A shudder ran through the frames of all present
-excepting Onrai, who had long since become accustomed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>to look upon these fearful sea serpents.
-On the black mass came, growing larger and larger as
-it neared them. Remembrances of the fearful race
-with and escape from the monster in the cavern came
-to the minds of those who had participated in this
-dreadful scene, and Mrs. Graham arising, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, you will pardon, I hope, a woman’s faintheartedness,
-but I cannot look upon the scenes which
-we have been told by you will shortly take place near
-us; so with your kind permission I will retire to my
-apartment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have my permission most assuredly, Mrs.
-Graham, and it grieves me to think that I have been
-the cause of this disturbance of mind. When these
-monsters come together the battle will be fearful, and
-if the other ladies feel that they cannot witness it, it
-would be better for them to retire also, for see! other
-monsters are now coming, and the fight will soon commence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this Nellie arose and together with her mother
-they entered the villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As Onrai had said, other black masses were now
-seen and the glow of red eyes shone through the semi-darkness
-from all directions. On came their bodies
-growing larger as they came nearer. Now the foremost
-had reached the base of the cliff and raising its
-huge body half out of the water, threw its ugly head
-back and fastened its glittering eyes on those who
-were watching its movements from above. The moon
-shone full on its long, dragon-like body and the party
-shuddered with horror as they recognized in it the
-exact counterpart of the sea-monster of the cave.
-After gazing on those above it for a full minute, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>then realizing probably that they were out of its
-reach, the monster became enraged and, throwing
-itself back into the water beat the surface with its
-wing-like fins and long tail until almost lost to view
-in the foam thus created. But others had now come
-close to the rock, and as the number increased the
-water was blackened by their dark bodies. It was a
-mass of writhing, horror-depicting sea reptiles, and as
-they wound in and out under and over each other,
-their eyes glowing the while, it was enough to make
-the stoutest heart grow faint.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly one of them, which had been crowded
-close to the rocks by the great number from behind,
-and finding it impossible to extricate itself in any
-other way, dove, and piercing the body of the one
-next to it, held it half out of water, pinioned on its
-formidable horn.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, the battle has commenced,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is fearful,” again said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Horrible but fascinating,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This is but the beginning,” said Onrai. “In a
-few moments the whole seething mass will be engaged
-in one grand battle royal. If, Enola, you think you
-cannot look on this hideous spectacle, it would be
-better for you to retire now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Enola, “I wish to see it all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They again turned their attention to the monsters.
-When the beast had been pierced by the horn of its
-companion, it had given out a fearful groan like that
-of a dying man. This seemed to be a signal, for
-immediately the beast began to beat the water with
-fins and tail, until the spray was forced upward almost
-splashing our friends. In fact the lake looked as if it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>had been struck by a hurricane so turbulent had the
-waters become. All this commotion was but preliminary,
-however, for it soon ceased, and all was perfectly
-quiet for a moment, when, as if moved by a
-common impulse the battle commenced in earnest.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Each had, seemingly, during the short interval of
-rest, selected its prey or opponent, for as far as could
-be seen the fight was a succession of duels, not more
-than two being engaged at once in tearing each other
-to pieces. Fastening their fiery eyes on each other
-they would retreat for a short distance, and then, with
-heads thrown back and their enormous jaws opened,
-would make a rush for each other, coming together
-with sickening force, their huge jaws crunching into
-each other’s bodies, or, perhaps fastening jaw into jaw.
-Then they would writhe and squirm, beating each
-other with their fins and tails. Upon becoming
-exhausted, if one or the other had not been overcome
-with the struggle they would disengage themselves,
-and retreating, rest for a moment and then
-make another rush for each other. Now they would
-dive, ripping each other with their murderous tusks,
-frequently both being beneath the surface, but the
-agitation of the water telling that the fearful battle
-was being continued far beneath.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again they would rise to the surface, their bodies torn
-and lacerated, and blood from the gaping wounds
-dyeing the water a crimson red. One would finally
-succumb and the survivors, after giving their fallen
-antagonists a parting thrust, would swim away until
-outside the seething, battling mass. Here it would
-nurse its wounds, waiting seemingly for the horrible
-struggle to end. Here also it would be joined by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>other victors, but these undoubtedly having the proper
-respect for the fighting powers of those about them,
-would not again take the risk of being annihilated.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The duelling was becoming less fierce each moment
-for the weaker were fast being overcome and the survivors
-joining their victorious comrades. All this time
-the dreadful groans continued. Now the last victor
-had vanquished his foe and joined the others.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, the battle is finished,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, not yet,” said Onrai. “Watch the line of
-victors.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>These had formed a straight compact line, and as if
-by a signal, they charged on the bodies of the dead
-and wounded floating on the surface. Their movements
-were as swift as lightning, and like a body of
-well-drilled cavalrymen they charged, killing the helpless
-wounded, and lacerating the bodies of the dead.
-Then they again retreated and, as the first faint rays of
-morn streaked the eastern heavens, they sank beneath
-the surface, leaving the bodies of their victims to rot in
-the heat of the equatorial sun.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When the party again reached the mainland, they
-were taken to the villa in which they were to spend
-the night. The men returned to the lake in the evening
-and watched the process of cutting up the monsters,
-and taking from them the fat which produced
-the oil. The remains of the animals were then piled
-in heaps and burned. One hundred and four had been
-killed the night before, but how many still remained
-to be slaughtered by their mates?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the men stood watching the scene, Onrai said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This sight is even becoming loathsome to me; let
-us return to the villa.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>As they were crossing the broad avenue, a suspicion
-of music was wafted from the direction of the city. It
-was so faint that our friends could not say whether it
-was the music of distant harps, or the song of some
-night bird, far away. They stopped for a moment and
-listened, but the sound not again being heard, they resumed
-their walk toward the villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai had also stopped and seemed to be listening,
-but had offered no explanation until they again started
-for the villa. Our friends seemed to think he could
-explain this distant music if he wished to, and they
-looked at him inquiringly. Noticing this look, Onrai
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In two months comes the Day of Resis. It is our
-custom during the two months previous to this day to
-sing songs of praise at this hour each evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are they songs of joy and happiness?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are,” said Onrai. But he would say nothing
-further on the subject.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XII.<br /> <span class='large'>THE NIGHT OF PRAYER.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>As the night came on and the glorious moon rose
-high into the heavens, bathing all in its silvery rays,
-the very beauty of the scene made our friends forget
-the horrors of the night before. They had assembled
-in the garden, and the swinging chairs, as they were
-moved slowly backward and forward by the attendants,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>were conducive to rest and comfort. They were far
-enough removed from the lake to be entirely free
-from any suggestions which its busy scenes might
-make.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Near Enola stood the great white elephant, which
-she rode on all journeys, its huge body towering into
-the air and nearly touching the lower boughs of the
-trees. This elephant had become so attached to
-Enola that it seemed happy only when with her, and
-she had requested of Onrai that he allow “Gip,” as
-she had named it, to come into the garden while they
-were there. He had now taken hold of the rope with
-his trunk and was swinging the chair as carefully as
-could be done by the attendants. Occasionally he
-would let out that peculiar cry so much like an infant’s,
-when Enola would hand him one of the sweets
-which she always had about her when he was near.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Several of the zebras were also grazing in the garden
-and the deer, which were numerous, would come
-up now and then, and with their great liquid eyes,
-gaze into the faces of our friends. There was no timidity
-in these animals, for they were all treated so
-kindly, and had so long been made pets of, that all
-fear of the human form had left them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lofty trees, the flower-bedecked garden with the
-animals wandering through it, the perfumed air, the
-pink onyx villa in the background, the silk-robed party
-swinging lazily to and fro, the attendants standing
-near, and above all, the glorious moon, made an enchanting
-scene. Suddenly, as if in a dream, too faint
-almost to be heard, was wafted on the evening breeze
-a strain as sweet and indistinct as the low melody of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>an Æolian harp. Onrai half rose and as the music
-grew stronger he became erect, and bowing his head,
-almost whispered, “’Tis the night of prayer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The attendants discontinued the swinging of the
-chairs and also bowed their heads. Our friends, half
-aroused from the sweet languor into which they had
-fallen, looked with wondering eyes at Onrai. The
-exquisite music was coming nearer and nearer, and
-now could be discerned harmonious voices mingling
-with the strains of the harp. On and on they came,
-the music growing louder and stronger, but losing none
-of its sweetness. Onrai and the attendants still stood
-with bowed heads, and in a subdued voice, Onrai was
-evidently repeating a prayer. So impressive was the
-beautiful music and the devout attitude of those
-about them, our friends were deeply moved, and had
-now also arisen and were standing with bent heads and
-clasped hands, breathing a prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Now those who were making such sweet music had
-reached the villa, and our friends raising their eyes,
-looked upon a picture. Standing in the foreground,
-with his arm thrown over the neck of the zebra, from
-which he had dismounted, and holding in one hand a
-shepherd’s hook, was a white-robed priest. Grouped
-in a semicircle about him, were a number of maidens
-all carrying tiny torches. Back of them was a body
-of men, and still further in the background were the
-elephants and zebras which had brought the party from
-the city.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As they stood there, Onrai approached and spoke
-to the priest in the native tongue. Then, with the
-King leading, they went direct to the villa and entered.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>“How strange,” said Enola, when Onrai with his
-visitors had left them alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Strange indeed,” said Mr. Graham. “Can it be
-that they bring unexpected news from the city?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is hard to tell,” said Mr. Bruce. “But I think
-not. It is evidently a celebration of one of their religious
-rites. From the solemn proceedings I should
-say that this was so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Just then Onrai was seen approaching them and
-when he was directly opposite, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Tis the night of prayer, come;” and turning, he retraced
-his steps with our friends following.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were led through the wide hall to a spacious
-apartment in the rear. This apartment was the exact
-counterpart of the large devotional chamber in the
-Temple, but somewhat smaller. Subdued lights were
-placed at frequent intervals about the sides of the
-apartment, and others hung from the lofty ceiling. In
-the centre was a wide, crescent-shaped platform, and
-standing about its base were those who had so recently
-come from the city.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the King entered with our party the natives
-commenced playing on their native harps, and the low,
-sweet music penetrated to the very souls of our friends.
-Onrai led them to the platform on which seats had
-been placed; then the priest also mounted the platform,
-and facing the King, commenced reading in the
-native tongue from one of the polished tablets of
-wood. He then passed this to the King and he, arising,
-read from it the same inscription. Then the priest
-raised his hand, and all joined in a chant, the maidens
-accompanying the voices on the harps. It was solemn
-but grand and very impressive. The chant ended, the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>priest again turned toward the King and began speaking,
-the maidens in the meanwhile playing a sweet refrain
-on the harps. The priest having finished speaking,
-the King arose, turned his face heavenward and
-prayed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“God our Father, God of the Heavens and earth,
-God of On, God of all, as the flowers turn their faces
-to the great orb of day, so we on this night of prayer,
-turn our faces to Thee. O God, we know that all
-blessings come from Thee and we thank Thee. We
-thank Thee for the fertile fields, the green pastures, the
-silvery waters, the shady forest, the life-giving sun of
-day, the soft-lighted moon and cool breezes of the
-night. We feel Thy presence O God, we know that
-Thou art near us. Still be with us and when our time
-has come take us home to Thee, our God, our Father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai ceased praying and the sweet voices and the
-music of the harps again broke forth. Now the voices
-grew fainter, the music more subdued, the lights growing
-dimmer and dimmer. Now the voices were almost
-whispering, the strains of music are dying, dying,
-the lights are flickering. At last all is hushed and
-dark. Suddenly the Temple was flooded with brilliant
-light, a glorious grand flood of song and music burst
-forth. More brilliant becomes the light, louder and
-grander grows the music, as if from a thousand voices,
-as if from a thousand harps. Now comes a troop of
-maidens robed in shimmering white, singing and playing.
-Lightly they trip over the polished floor, their
-forms swaying and their limbs bending gracefully as
-they dance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends hold their breath for fear of losing one
-strain of the sweet music; they lean forward eagerly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>to catch every movement of the willowy figures. All
-is grand beyond conception. The music becomes
-more soul-stirring, the dance grows quicker, the lights
-blinding in their brilliancy. Our friends arise in their
-eagerness to see and hear. ’Tis glorious!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly the maidens leave the room, the song and
-music cease, the lights are darkened. ’Tis over.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The night of prayer with its grand and imposing
-ceremonies had passed, and now the party had again
-assembled and were partaking of the morning meal
-preparatory to starting on the day’s journey. It was
-yet very early, for in this equatorial climate the journeys
-had to be taken in the cool of the mornings and
-evenings. The sun’s rays in the middle of the day
-were too hot to withstand. Through the open door
-could be seen the elephants and zebras trapped and
-waiting for the start. Nearby stood, not only the attendants,
-but also the party which had arrived the
-night before. Turning to Onrai, Enola asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are those who came from the city also to accompany
-us, Onrai?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Onrai, “it is essential that they
-should go with us, for we shall not have returned to
-the city before the night of prayer shall have again
-come, and on this night we must have a priest and attendants.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XIII.<br /> <span class='large'>THE ACCUSATION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The heat of the day had been excessive, but our
-friends had not suffered to any great extent because
-of the shade which the avenue trees had afforded;
-and then they had rested during the midday hour, and
-had not taken up the journey until late in the afternoon.
-Then, too, the brisk trot of the animals, as they
-moved over the smooth stone pavement, had created a
-breeze which was very cooling to the riders; but as
-they emerged from the forest, dark clouds were seen
-rising out of the west; dark, forboding clouds, which
-portended rain and probably a hard blow. The forerunner
-of this equatorial storm reached them before
-they arrived at the villa, in the shape of quick, rapidly
-moving gusts of wind, which would overtake them and
-moving on would leave the air perfectly calm, hot and
-humid, until the next gust would spring out of the
-ground seemingly, and fly after its leaders.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The riders hurried on, one minute fanned by a refreshing
-breeze and the next almost sweltering in the
-dead calm. But they suffered only a short time, as
-the villa was reached and once inside its cool, onyx
-walls, all thought of the humidity of the outside was
-forgotten, and the on-coming storm was only thought
-of as making the air cool for the morrow’s journey.
-After dinner the travelers went into the garden and
-hardly any signs were seen now of the approaching
-storm; in fact, the evening was much the same as had
-been many others since their arrival. They retired
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>late but had not slept long when the wind rose almost
-to a gale. The storm was a novelty, and our friends
-never having seen an equatorial storm, all arose and
-went on the terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The elephants had already sniffed the approaching
-storm and began to throw their trunks in the air, moving
-their huge ears back and forth, all the time making
-those funny sounds, which seemed so strange in such
-large animals. The storm meant to them a refreshing
-bath, coupled with a feed of grass and herbs washed
-by the cooling rain; they gloried in it. The zebras
-were already grazing, or half buried in the long grass,
-were rolling and kicking, happy to be free from bridle
-and saddle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai alone, of all the party, after going onto
-the terrace, seemed to be worried over the storm. He
-had gone to one end of the terrace, and now stood
-looking intently at the black mass of clouds which
-were rolling on, coming nearer and nearer, and reaching
-out huge, dark arms toward the earth. He was
-muttering in the strange tongue of his people:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“An omen. Is our great God angry? Have my people
-failed in their duties? Have we neglected our
-work? Have we treated lightly our teachings? No;
-but our God is great. He sees all things, and goes deep
-into the hearts of his people, and he knows even if they
-contemplate doing wrong. Oh!——” Onrai raises
-his hand to his forehead, and pressing it tightly against
-his throbbing temples, he staggers and almost falls.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can this thing be?” he gasped. “Is this a warning
-to me, the King of the Land of On? Is this to
-show me that God knows my sinful thoughts and
-would check them before it is forever too late? Oh,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>my God, spare me!” he cries, and sinks into one of
-the onyx chairs near him. His powerful frame shook
-like an aspen leaf; his breath came in gasps; his hands
-twitched nervously; his eyes almost started from their
-sockets as he gazed on the black clouds, which seemed
-to engulf him. Unable to look upon the fearful sight
-any longer, he sprung to his feet, and shading his eyes
-with his hand as if to hide from view those fearful
-clouds, he staggered towards the entrance. He struck
-something as he hurried forward, and started back
-frightened. Looking up he saw that it was Enola, and
-raising his hand as if to warn her back, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You, too? Have you come to accuse me at this
-moment? Could you not have spared me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai again started for the entrance, but Enola
-noticing the pained look in his face, and being totally
-at a loss to know why he should address her in this
-manner, caught him by the light tunic as he was passing
-her. He stopped and looked at her with frightened
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai,” said Enola, “don’t look at me in that way.
-How have I offended you? Tell me, is it I or one of
-my people?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai looked at her, his heroic figure standing erect,
-his shoulders thrown back as if to defy the influence
-which Enola was exerting over him. But his face was
-deathly pale and his hands clutched nervously as they
-hung by his side; his eye never flinched, however, as
-he looked at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, do not look at me so,” said Enola, stepping
-back, growing afraid of that unbending figure and
-steely gaze.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What have I done?” she continued. “I come to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>seek you to-night to thank you for the happy, happy
-day which you have given me; for having suggested
-this pleasant journey. The beautiful music of the
-evening made me forget for a time this duty, but I
-thought of it as I retired to my apartment and was
-glad of the opportunity which the storm afforded me
-to thank you yet to-night. My heart was light as I
-came from the villa, expecting to find that great, noble
-Onrai glad to see me and ready to hear my thanks,
-but I find him excited and nervous, and when he sees
-me he speaks as I never heard him speak before. Tell
-me, oh, tell me, Onrai, what have I done?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola stopped near the entrance and waited for
-Onrai’s answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What have you done?” he said. “Everything.
-You have come from that planet home of yours and
-have stolen into our land in the night; but we have
-received you as guests and have treated you as we would
-those who come from afar and sought our hospitality.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Myself and my people have done all in our power
-to make your sojourn in our world a happy one.
-From that world of yours, far above, in one of those
-shining stars which twinkles and throws its soft light
-on us on the clear beautiful nights, we believe that
-your people have for ages looked down on us, and have
-learned our life, our customs and our secrets. This
-we have learned to believe since you have come among
-us, for before that time we knew nothing of another
-people. And you come to us with the chain of the
-high priest about your neck, and this is proof that you
-know the great secrets of the high priests and those of
-the Day of Resis. For this reason we have looked for
-you to respect our laws and customs. To all but me
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>you seem to have done this. I have just begun to believe
-that you, and may be your people, have no respect
-for the sacred laws that govern me, the King of On.
-To-night has been a revelation to me. Never before,
-during my life, has there come such a storm at this
-season. I looked at the dark heavens and saw the
-black clouds hurried on by the mad winds, almost
-sweeping the earth, and I could see in it only a warning.
-Then it flashed over my bewildered brain that
-the warning was meant for me. I had sinned. But
-why had I sinned? Because tempted by you who
-knew our laws, and knew the fearful punishment which
-would be the King’s who would dare disobey these laws.
-You who cared naught for all these, but still threw
-out your alluring temptations, your subtle fascinations,
-in order to entrap me. But God has spoken in this
-storm and I am saved. Listen to His voice,” and as he
-ceased speaking a fearful peal of thunder broke through
-the air as if in answer to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola stood aghast during this accusation, unable
-to account for this fearful change in Onrai’s conduct
-toward her, until he had mentioned the storm, and
-then she realized that it was this unusual phenomenon
-which had wakened in his mind the sin he was committing
-in loving her; she must let him know that
-these fascinations were only those which God had
-given her, and that the seeming allurements were but
-the graceful acknowledgments of his many courtesies.
-But how to tell him, how to convince him! He still
-stood like a statue, like an accusing Apollo who had
-but little mercy for one who had caused him even a
-moment’s pain. To suffer for even an instant was such
-a new sensation to the man, and it was so acute withal,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>that for the time he could find no forgiveness for the
-one who had caused it, and he stood contemplating
-Enola, for the moment a savage, glaring at the one
-who had caused him a moment’s pain, and whom he
-had in his power to torture as he saw fit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He forgot his love for her for the moment; he only
-remembered that she had hurt him, and when the
-first great fear of the discovery was over, he grew
-hard and cold and wanted revenge. Enola saw that
-she had blind superstition to deal with, superstition
-whose birth was in sin, and she knew that it would be
-hard to convince Onrai of her innocence. But this she
-must do; so taking a step timidly toward him, she
-raised her hand as if she would touch his arm, but
-when he saw this movement he involuntarily drew his
-arm away as if afraid that her touch would contaminate
-him. The movement hurt her more than all his
-harsh words had done, and she partially turned as if
-to walk away, but remembering the fearful consequences
-that might ensue unless Onrai’s mind should be
-disabused of this fearful mistake which he had made,
-she turned again, and placing her hands behind her,
-walked up to him and looking him straight in the eye,
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, look at me. Do you see any guilt or flinching
-in my eye? Do you think that I, who have the
-same faith in the same God that you have, could look
-at you now if I were guilty, and too, when this fearful
-storm is raging, which you call the voice and anger
-of God? No, Onrai; you and your people have a
-mistaken idea when you think we knew your life, customs
-and laws before we came to your world. We
-did not even know that your people existed; but we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>knew that there was a world here and we determined
-to visit it, and learn whether it was inhabited or
-not. So we came and found this glorious land
-and this beautiful, justice-loving people. And never
-until to-night have I learned to think that they had
-any but the grandest minds, with the most charitable
-thoughts for those who had been thrown in with them
-for awhile. I understand your laws but imperfectly,
-and I do not understand why you should treat me
-thus, or accuse me of wishing to make you sin or suffer
-because of an unusual phenomenon. Search your
-mind, Onrai, and see if it was not yourself who sinned
-willingly and not because I have tempted you; ask
-yourself if in any way I have been less modest than
-your native women; whether I have sought you, or
-you me; whether I have not avoided you rather than
-sought you. Ask yourself these questions, and then
-accuse me if you can.” And as Enola finished speaking,
-she drew herself up nobly and started to walk toward
-the entrance. She had nearly reached this when
-Onrai stepped forward and almost in a whisper, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Enola, wait; wait; let me think; let me think;
-my brain is whirling; I cannot see all clearly yet;
-but it is growing brighter. Oh, Enola, forgive, forgive
-me. I cannot now tell you the great sin which I
-thought was your making, but which I can now see
-was all my own. The laws of the Land of On are stringent
-on this point, and if I should give up to the
-temptation I would be killed. To be killed for sinning
-means not only the death of the body, but the everlasting
-torture of the soul. It is a fearful thing for
-any of us to sin, but how much more so is it for the
-King, the chosen one, who is the people’s choice not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>because he is the greatest physically, but the purest
-of mind, if there can be one purer than the others.
-But I have sinned unwittingly, and it is because of this
-that I was so ready to accuse you. But I look at you
-now and see in that clear, unflinching eye, that smooth
-brow and erect body, no guilt. You are innocent,
-Enola; innocent and I ask forgiveness. It seems
-strange that I should use the word to one on earth, for it
-belongs to God, and is never used among us. But I
-have wronged you fearfully and I know not how else
-to make amends. Forgive me, Enola,” and as he finished,
-he took her hand and raised it to his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola was crying, for the pleading words of this
-strong man, this King, touched her strangely.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But tell me, Onrai, of this strange sin, that I may
-know,” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” Onrai answered, “it would be a greater sin
-to tell it to you. But listen; what is that fearful
-rumbling sound?”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XIV.<br /> <span class='large'>THE STORM.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>So absorbed had Enola and Onrai been in their
-talk that the storm had been forgotten for the moment.
-But it had not abated but had rather grown
-fiercer and blacker, until now it was so dark that
-objects only a short distance away could not be seen.
-The elephants could be heard stalking through the
-garden, and occasionally their huge bodies and also
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>the zebras would be lit up by the lurid lightning.
-But the wind had died down to almost a calm a few
-moments before, and nothing had broken the stillness
-of the night but the sharp peals of thunder which
-would follow the brilliant lightning.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But as Onrai spoke, a rumbling was heard, not like
-distant thunder, but less distinct, like the rattling of a
-distant railway train, the sound being regular but
-growing louder each moment. The others of the party
-now joined Enola and Onrai, and the attendants
-grouped themselves about the terrace. There was no
-fear depicted on their faces, or shown in their actions,
-but there was the greatest wonderment. This was
-something unheard of, a storm like this promised to
-be, in the heart of the dry season; still fear was unknown
-to them, or that fear which is caused by a possibility
-of bodily suffering. They simply wondered
-and did not even try to make out the mystery.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Now the elephants seemed to scent danger, for they
-would sniff the air and then give out that peculiar cry.
-The zebras had gathered together in one part of the
-garden and would neigh in a pitiful manner as if expecting
-danger. The rumbling grew louder and more
-distinct and now sounded like the falling of many
-trees. The heavens were lurid with flash after flash
-of lightning, this lending a fearfulness to the scene
-which was awful. Now the elephants came up quite
-near to the terrace as if trying to find a place of refuge,
-and standing together with their backs turned
-toward the storm waited for the worst. Then the
-trees gave out a gentle wail as they were touched with
-the first breath of the wind; then they began to sway
-and groan as if in mortal agony. Each moment the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>wind grew more fierce, the lightning more vivid, the
-rumbling more deafening.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is this not unusual, Onrai?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It has never before happened at this time of the
-year,” said Onrai. “At this season we never expect
-rain and depend wholly on the heavy dews to moisten
-our vegetation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It seems to be very fierce. Are your storms all
-like this?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have very hard storms accompanied by very
-strong winds, but I have never seen, or heard anything
-like this. Listen; is it not growing worse?” and
-Onrai’s face for the first time looked troubled.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, very much worse,” said Harry, “and I would
-advise that we all go inside the villa.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Harry,” said Enola, “let us remain outside
-until driven in. The sight is too grand to lose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am willing to remain but it is much safer inside
-during a storm like this,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Now the noise drowned their voices and conversation
-was given up. The air seemed full of electricity;
-the flesh tingled with it; the nostrils inhaled it and a
-copperish taste was left in the mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look,” shouted Enola, “what is that fearful mass
-approaching, and hear that terrible sound. It is like
-the dashing of thousands of waves against the rocks,
-or the tearing asunder of mighty mountains.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This was true; and now in the lurid lightning could
-be seen the dark clouds flying over Mother Earth,
-crushing all in its way. On the left of the villa was an
-open space, probably five miles broad, and on the far
-edge of this, as Enola spoke, could be seen the black
-cloud approaching. It seemed to take everything in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>its course and now the air was filled with all kinds of
-debris; huge logs of wood and even large boulders
-were seen flying through the air. It was a seething,
-hurling mass, made more awful by the ear-piercing
-noise and the continuous lightning.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A cyclone,” shouted Mr. Graham, but his voice
-could hardly be heard above the fearful din. “Hasten,”
-he continued, “into the house,” and leading his wife
-by one hand and Nellie by the other he hurried toward
-the entrance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai took Enola by the arm and was hurrying with
-all speed toward the large arch, when Enola, looking at
-the elephants, saw Gip looking pitifully at her and extending
-his trunk toward her as if begging her to help
-him. “Poor Gip,” she said, and freeing herself from
-Onrai’s retaining arm, she walked to the edge of the
-terrace and patted the elephant on the trunk stretched
-toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come Enola or it will be too late,” said Onrai.
-But it was even then too late, for Enola had leaned
-too far over the edge and losing her balance, fell to
-the lawn beneath. The distance was not great and
-Enola was not hurt, so she picked herself up and
-started for the steps leading to the terrace. But the
-wind had now grown so fierce she could hardly keep
-an upright position, and before she realized it she was
-being hurried forward with a speed which almost took
-her feet from under her. On by the steps she sped,
-unable to battle against the wind and force her way
-up these.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Gip had followed her, wonderingly at first, but at
-last, seeming to realize her peril, quickened his pace
-and just as the wind was about to hurl her to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>ground, he grasped her about the waist with his powerful
-trunk and turned toward the terrace again; but the
-awful wind was even stronger than this mighty animal,
-and he was losing ground each step. Bravely
-he battled, holding Enola far above his head, his trunk
-encircling her body just tightly enough to keep her
-from slipping through its folds. His great body now
-began to sway in the gale and it looked for a moment
-as if both elephant and Enola would be picked up and
-swept into the fearful, swirling holocaust overhead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Gip knew his danger, so turning his back to the
-storm he hurried on with it. At first he traveled only
-in a trot as if reluctant to give up to the power of the
-storm, but his pace grew faster and faster as this fearful
-power asserted itself, until he was flying over the
-ground, he seemed to no longer touch the ground so
-rapid was his pace. He had thrown Enola over on
-his back so that she could rest her limbs, but he still
-kept a firm hold on her with his trunk, and they kept
-up the mad rush together. The air was filled with
-debris of all kinds and Enola was afraid to open her
-eyes for fear of being blinded. On they rushed, the
-elephant keeping up the mad pace before the wind.
-One moment it would be as black as Erebus; the next
-the lightning’s glare would break through the dirt filled
-atmosphere. It was a seething mass, a hurricane
-sweeping all before it; twisting trees from their roots
-or snapping their huge trunks like straws; sucking up
-great quantities of water as it crossed inlets of the
-lake; picking up in its mighty grasp cows, sheep, deer,
-zebra and all other animals excepting the huge elephants,
-whose great weight kept them from being carried
-from earth.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>Enola was lying flat on Gip’s back, he holding her
-there as if he understood that she would be drawn
-from his grasp if he allowed her to sit up for even a
-moment. Grandly the noble beast fought against the
-fearful storm; the awful pace had now kept up so
-long he was fast giving out, and Enola could feel his
-grasp growing weaker, and feel the weary limbs give
-way when they would strike the earth; his breath came
-quick and he was gasping like a dying human being;
-but he kept on fighting, still fighting that enemy which
-was each moment getting the best of his efforts.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He stumbled and fell to his knees, but he was up
-again in an instant and hurrying before the wind;
-again he fell, and this time his huge body lay flat on
-its side, but he had held Enola aloof and she had been
-only slightly jarred. A groan escaped the noble
-beast as he tried to regain his feet. “Brave Gip!”
-said Enola, as she patted him on the trunk. “Once
-more, Gip, just once more, my noble friend, and we
-may yet escape.” Gip made a supreme effort, and
-regained his feet. The thought now occurred to
-Enola that if she could guide the elephant out of this
-current of wind which was hurrying them on to destruction,
-they might yet be saved. She had seen the
-attendants touch the elephants on the right or left
-side of the head when wanting them to move in either
-direction, and she determined to try it. Reaching her
-hand out as far as she could, she was just able to
-touch the right ear of the elephant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She struck this with her open hand, saying, “Try it,
-Gip, good Gip,” and Gip, with strength nearly gone,
-turned as much to the right as possible, and beating
-against the strong wind, hurried on as fast as his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>weakened condition would allow him. In thus beating
-against the storm in an oblique direction, it
-brought them in a direct line with the flying debris,
-and Enola began to be bruised by the sticks and
-small stones which filled the air. She could hardly
-breathe either, for the dust and dirt which were swept
-up by the swirling current. She tried to protect her
-face with her hands, but these were soon raw and
-bleeding with the sand blast. Her eyes were filled
-with dirt, and her throat was dry and parched with the
-inhalation of the dirt-filled atmosphere.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She was suffering fearful agonies, and her suffering
-was growing worse every moment; she tried to hold
-her face closer to the elephant’s back, but she was too
-weak now to make any exertion at all. On the great,
-brave beast moved, his body swaying with the wind,
-and each minute looking as if he must give up the
-struggle. Now the fury of the storm seemed to have
-grown worse, and the next instant it seemed to be
-abating. This would give hope to the suffering girl
-and to the animal, and a moment’s breathing space in
-which they could recuperate slightly and prepare for
-a renewed effort.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was just after one of these momentary spells of
-comparative quiet, that Gip, reeling and almost falling,
-had tried to pull himself together for another trial.
-His massive body seemed almost rigid as he stopped
-for a moment and braced himself; he half released his
-hold on Enola, and she, almost exhausted, felt that
-the grand fortitude of the animal and his sublime
-strength had given way, and that hope was indeed
-gone. But no; Gip shook all over; and, his nerves
-again relieved, made a last effort to go on. Painfully
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>he strode on, never for a moment leaving the course
-which Enola had started him on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The air seemed to grow thicker with sand and dust,
-while above them and all about them were flying logs,
-trees and stones. Enola was bruised and bleeding
-and she was on the point of fainting, when she opened
-her eyes for a moment, and just in time to see a huge
-tree fly through the air, and strike Gip fairly on the
-side of the head. Down he went like a shot, carrying
-Enola with him, but still holding her in his trunk. He
-had made a brave fight and lost.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XV.<br /> <span class='large'>IN THE TRACK OF THE STORM.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Sedai, who had been such a prominent figure in the
-first part of the journey, and who had played such a
-part in the real cause of the expedition, had not been
-forgotten since reaching the Land of On, but so many
-new and strange things had come up to occupy the
-time and minds of our friends, and so many attendants
-had been placed at their disposal, Sedai had not
-been called upon to perform the many little duties
-to which he had become accustomed, and he was
-left to enjoy himself much as he saw fit. He had accompanied
-the party on the first part of the journey, but
-the King wished to send word back to the city, of the
-change in the programme and of their intention to proceed
-to the far end of the country before their return,
-and Sedai had offered to carry the message. Not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>that native messengers were wanting, but Sedai seemed
-to find more enjoyment in the delightfully cool and
-comfortable city than he did riding through the somewhat
-heated country.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But he had been too long accustomed to the march,
-and the white companions of the past few weeks had
-become too dear to him, to long remain away from
-them; so after spending one day in the city, he determined
-to start out and overtake the party. But now
-a strange thing occurred. Far off in the west, just
-creeping up from the horizon, rose a dark cloud, at
-first no larger than a zebra, but growing in size each
-moment and fast approaching the city. It soon overcast
-half the heavens and the entire populace was
-standing in the streets gazing at this wonder. The
-cloud had cut off the twilight completely and now,
-while it was yet early, darkness was over all, a darkness
-which was appalling. The populace exchanged
-looks of wonderment, but offered no explanation of
-this strange freak of the elements.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai, who had long been accustomed to seeing
-these fearful electric and wind storms, was surprised
-to see the wonderment in the faces of these people.
-Turning to one who was near him, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why do you gaze at the heavens in that way;
-have you never before seen a storm?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Many of them,” answered the man, “but never at
-this time of the year, and never at any time as fierce a
-one as this promises to be.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It does indeed look very threatening,” said Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The night grew even darker, and then the lightning
-broke through the black clouds for a moment illuminating
-the beautiful city which the inhabitants had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>for the first time in their lives, failed to lighten. The
-thunder rolled up from the west, making a deafening
-roar, and still the people stood gazing, so overpowered
-were they by this strange event. And now the fitful
-gusts of wind reached them, and then a few drops of
-rain fell; and listen: what is that fearful sound. It is
-not thunder, for the thunder is roaring peal on peal
-and cannot be mistaken. This is something else. It
-can be heard only when the thunder rests for a
-moment. And it is growing nearer, and a little longer
-and it seems to be almost on them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Like a flash it comes to Sedai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is the simoon,” he cries, in such an alarmed
-voice that all look at him in surprise. Again he
-called out, “the simoon.” And now the natives all
-crowded around asking him what he meant. He had
-not learned the language sufficiently to make them
-understand by words, but by making signs he
-explained to them how the great winds sweep over the
-earth, leveling houses, trees and all else to the ground.
-Even then they showed no signs of fear. But one of
-them happened to remember the King, and that he,
-with the strange guests, was somewhere in the
-country, over which the storm was now approaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The King,” the man cried, and then, the others
-catching his meaning, and realizing the King’s danger,
-the cry of “the King” rose high above the roar of the
-storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai grasped the situation at once and knew that
-the King and his friends must be in imminent peril.
-The storm had come up just at that hour of the evening
-when the party, having rested during the heat of
-the day, might be expected to be on the road. If this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>was true and they were near no villa at the time, they
-must have fallen victims to the storm. But the populace
-was also fully aroused now, and already men were
-appearing in the streets astride of zebras, waiting only
-for others to congregate when they would hurry on to
-the rescue of the King and his party, if it was not already
-too late.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai also brought out his zebra and joining the
-party, they started for the shore of the lake, knowing
-that somewhere near this would be found the King
-and his party. They started down the Avenue of On
-with the hope of reaching the King and his friends in
-time to help them, but the air was now becoming
-thick with sand and even sticks and stones, and the
-rescuing party were riding right in the face of this
-merciless hurricane. The zebras held their heads far
-down and moved on determinedly. Their riders lay
-close to their necks, endeavoring in this way to protect
-their faces. But it grew worse. The zebras, now
-thoroughly blinded, stumbled on, making heroic efforts
-to keep up the uneven struggle, but their pace was
-growing slower and slower and there seemed to be no
-chance for their getting much further. Suddenly
-Sedai’s zebra turned to the right and left the avenue,
-the others followed. The party dared not open their
-eyes to see where the zebras were taking them, but
-after a little while noticing a cessation of the pitiless
-rain of sand and gravel, they opened their eyes as well
-as they could, and found that the animals had left the
-road and had sought shelter from the fearful storm
-near one of the farm villas. They had stopped under
-the east wall which protected them to some extent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men hurriedly dismounted and led the zebras
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>to the large stable in the rear. All realized that it
-was useless to try to proceed further in the pitiless
-storm; it would only be death to do so, and they
-could not help their friends if they were in such a condition
-as the storm promised to put them in if they
-continued. Another hour of that fearful onslaught
-of gravel and sand, and small sticks and twigs, and
-every man would be dead. So they determined to
-wait until the storm would abate, when they would
-hurry on and give assistance to their friends, if it was
-not forever too late.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The inky blackness of the night, lit up only occasionally
-by the lightning, the fearful peals of thunder,
-the roaring of the storm as it rushed madly on, made
-the night one never to be forgotten. It must have
-been several hours past midnight before it abated in
-the least, and after it had once spent its wild fury it
-died quickly, and in a very short time it was perfectly
-calm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sounds of wounded and distressed animals could
-now be heard, pitiful in their mournful cries; trees
-could still be heard falling, and the night-birds which had
-escaped the fury of the storm, again took up their
-flight, giving out most dismal screeches. But the
-storm had passed, and Sedai and his party were again
-moving slowly along the avenue, for the night was still
-dark and many fallen trees now covered this beautiful
-highway.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So hurrying was out of the question, but the zebras,
-who had had their eyes washed out in the stable, and
-keen-sighted and sure-footed now, they went along at
-a good pace, considering the condition of the road.
-But it was so dark, and they had now proceeded far
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>enough on their journey to expect to meet couriers
-from the King and party, if there were any left to tell
-the tale. Torches had been procured at the villa at
-which they had sought shelter, and lighting these,
-they carried them high above their heads with good
-effect. The lights threw weird shadows along the
-avenue as they picked their way through the debris.
-The storm seemed not to have touched the avenue or
-the grand trees bordering it, but had taken a course
-parallel to this, the outer edge of which had come very
-close to the southern border of the avenue. It was
-not, then, the avenue shade trees which occasionally lay
-across it, but the forest trees which covered the fields
-on each side. So close, however, had the tornado or
-cyclone come to the avenue, that some of the branches
-of its bordering trees had been cut off as with a knife.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Occasionally, in the glare of the torches, a wounded
-or dead animal would be seen. In one instance, a
-deer had been killed by a falling tree, and its mate,
-which had probably been with it at the time, now lay
-beside its dead licking the eyes and face. Again, a
-zebra had been torn and lacerated by the fierceness of
-the storm, and as it saw the lights and the familiar
-forms of the zebra in the cavalcade, it made a painful
-effort to rise and follow. Sedai seeing its suffering,
-dismounted and killed the poor beast, thus putting it
-out of its misery. The onyx pavement was covered
-with dead and wounded birds, the storm having played
-greater havoc among the winged inhabitants, than
-among any of the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last faint streaks of dawn lighted up the eastern
-heaven, and gradually it grew lighter, until the great
-hot sun burst forth, its rays disclosing a scene of fearful
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>devastation. But our friends had but little time to
-notice all of this. They were looking for the wounded
-or dead bodies of the King and his party. But look as
-they might, they could not see either a wounded or
-dead zebra or elephant, in this part of the avenue.
-This was probably because these animals had stables,
-into which they could run if they chose, and as all the
-buildings were of onyx, and built to stand for centuries,
-the storm’s violence had no effect on them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The rescuing party’s progress had necessarily been
-slow, for they were not only hindered by fallen trees
-and other debris which strewed the avenue, but a great
-deal of time had been taken up in looking over the
-ground carefully, they fearing that if they did not do
-this, they might pass some of their wounded friends.
-They had now reached the lake, and the numerous
-inlets, or bays, which stretched into the mainland for a
-short distance, showed, from the appearance of their
-banks, that they had also received harsh treatment by
-the storm. Near one of these, lay, with its body half
-twisted in two, one of the sea monsters which had
-been sucked from the stream and hurled against a
-neighboring tree. Many fishermen’s boats were
-strewn along the banks smashed to splinters. The
-villa in which the King and party had spent the night
-of prayer, was visited by the rescuers, but the bewildered
-attendants here could only say that the King
-and his party had left the morning before, and had
-not again returned. Then Sedai, and those with him,
-after exchanging their poor, tired zebras for fresh
-ones, and after a hasty meal, pushed on. They might
-reasonably suppose that the party had reached a point
-at least twenty miles farther to the northwest before
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>the storm broke in its fury; but it might have been
-that they saw the storm approaching even before
-those in the city did, and fearing serious consequences
-had turned back. In this case the rescuers might expect
-to meet them at any time now and especial care
-was taken to look behind each fallen tree or pile of
-debris.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An elephant had been taken along from the last
-villa in hopes that he might be able to sooner detect
-their near approach to any of his companions used by
-Onrai and his party. These animals are very sagacious
-and their senses are very acute, they being able to
-hear the slightest noise or see the most minute object,
-while their scent is only equaled by a bloodhound.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Carefully this great beast picked his way, stepping
-gingerly over the fallen trees and testing each bridge
-with his fore legs before venturing to cross it. The
-distance between the villa and where our friends might
-expect to be found, if safe, was now half covered and
-the rescuers had gained heart with each step forward,
-for if those whom they were seeking were not found
-within the next few miles, they would know that they
-were safe. Suddenly the elephant stopped, and sniffing
-the air gave a sharp, quick cry. Looking to the
-left the party saw the huge body of an elephant, and
-beside it that of a woman.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XVI.<br /> <span class='large'>ENOLA FOUND.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Onrai had seen Enola slip and fall, and then carried
-away from him, with the greatest anguish. He
-stood for a moment gazing at the retreating figure,
-and saw the noble elephant grasp her. He now
-thought her safe and started toward her, but the storm
-caught him in its folds and he was also being hurried
-before it. But the attendants had been watching him
-and Enola from the entrance, and seeing him hurried
-on by the storm, they formed a line by clasping hands,
-and throwing this human barrier across the terrace
-they prevented the King from being blown further by
-the storm, and before he could realize it, he was hurried
-into the villa and was standing among his friends
-and attendants. The action had been so quick that
-he was at first bewildered, but the truth having suddenly
-dawned upon him, he made a rush for the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Back, man,” said Mr. Bruce, throwing himself
-across his path. “What would you do? Do you not
-know that it is sure death to venture forth in this
-storm?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai stopped and looked at Mr. Bruce almost
-scornfully, then said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And would you let Enola perish?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, not if the giving of my life would save hers,”
-said Mr. Bruce, “but to throw myself into that howling
-vortex, would mean instant death, and in no way
-could I help Enola. We must wait until the storm
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>abates and then look for our friend. She has the protection
-of the only living thing which can help her
-now, her good friend, Gip. God grant that his powerful
-strength may prove mightier than the power of
-the storm,” and as he finished speaking, Mr. Bruce
-raised his hand to his eye and brushed away a tear.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai turned away and paced the long hall like a
-caged lion, his hands crossed behind his back, and his
-body slightly bent forward, as if ready to spring
-through the open entrance and run, as soon as the elements
-would permit. Harry, who was also crazed
-with pain because of the fate of Enola, was also on the
-alert to give Onrai a race in his rush to rescue his
-friend.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The storm grew fiercer each moment and the noise
-more fearful. Mr. Graham stepped up to Mr. Bruce
-and with a white face, said, “No human being could
-possibly live in that storm; it is fearful.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, the most terrible I have ever seen,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “But let us hope that in some way Enola has
-reached safety.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I could only hope; but I cannot, that storm
-would kill every hope,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Enola was not in the heart of the storm,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “She was not carried into the centre of that
-seething, swirling tornado. She was only in the outer
-edge, and maybe the elephant was sagacious enough
-to work its way out of danger. Let us hope so at
-least.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But hope seemed futile when they looked into that
-fearful on-rushing storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look,” said Mr. Bruce. They all turn toward the
-door. The elephants had gathered beneath the trees
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>in one corner of the garden, and here, bunched together
-they had resisted the storm, but as Mr. Bruce
-spoke, the storm had reached the height of its fury, and
-the elephants no longer being able to withstand its
-power had been blown forward, some of them falling
-and the others tumbling over them. Those that were
-able to keep their feet had been rushed forward with
-such force, that in striking the trees they were crushed
-and badly wounded; those that were left prone on
-the ground were rolling over and over in their efforts
-to regain their feet, the wind blowing them over again
-before they could stand erect.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Most of the zebras had run to the stables when they
-actually realized their danger, but others, which had
-remained to graze the fresh grass until too late, had
-been drawn into the circling, whirling mass and hurried
-on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai was still pacing the floor, almost crazed with
-the thought that Enola was in fearful peril and he
-unable to help her. Frequently he would walk to the
-door and clasping his hands, cry in an agonized voice:
-“Will it never cease?” It was now three hours after
-midnight and the fierce winds had slackened, and the
-storm seemed broken. All were watching it now with
-an eager look, praying for its speedy death. The attendants
-went into the stables, and in a little while
-brought zebras to the terrace, and Onrai with his
-guests and twenty attendants started in search of
-Enola. But the night was still very dark and the
-torches helped them but little. Every foot of ground
-was gone over carefully. They did not keep in the
-avenue, but to the right, or in a direct line with that
-taken by Gip as he left the garden.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>Several elephants were lying about the garden or in
-the surrounding fields, dead or too badly disabled to
-work. In the clear light of day Gip could have been
-easily distinguished from any of these, but in the darkness
-all looked alike, and each prostrate form was examined
-carefully, and in some cases ropes were thrown
-about the legs and the elephant turned over, the party
-thinking that Enola might possibly be lying crushed beneath
-it. But none of these proved to be Gip, and
-the party moved slowly on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I feel hopeful that the elephant with Enola has
-escaped,” said Mr. Bruce to Onrai, as they rode along.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, I hope so,” answered Onrai, “but it was fearful,”
-and he shuddered.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But tell me, Onrai, when you have such storms as
-these, are many of your people killed?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have never before had such a storm, never during
-my life. We have some storms in this season, but
-never like this, and death has never resulted. The death
-and ruin which I have seen to-night appalls me. Never
-before have I, or any of my race, I believe, experienced
-such sensations as these fearful sights bring forth. I
-cannot understand why this should be. That it is a
-visitation of our God, I know; but why? That the
-punishment is just I cannot doubt; but for what is
-this punishment? I or my people have sinned, but
-I know not what this sin is, unless——” and Onrai’s
-face turned ghastly pale in the glare of the torches.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Unless what, Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Unless it be in a way of which I cannot tell you,”
-said Onrai, “or, unless my people have failed, in my
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>absence, to carry out certain rites preparatory to the
-Day of Resis, which must not be neglected.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce looked at him for a moment with the intention
-of asking him something further regarding this
-strange day, but something kept him from doing so.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The dawn was breaking and it seemed that these
-hours had been spent in a fruitless search. But so
-careful had been the search, that all felt assured that
-Enola had not been passed. They had covered but
-few miles, but in this space the whole width of the
-storm’s track had been carefully looked over.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot see how the elephant could have held out
-sufficiently long to reach this distance,” said Mr.
-Graham to Mr. Bruce, “and I think that it is convincing
-proof, that the beast beat his way out of the trail
-of the storm and took a circuitous route back to the
-villa.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If that was so,” answered Mr. Bruce, “he should
-have reached the villa before we departed, or else we
-would have met him on the way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, I think that we will yet find both the elephant
-and Enola safe,” said Harry, who then joined them,
-but probably too exhausted to return, and awaiting
-assistance. “See there,” and as he spoke all looked in
-the direction of the avenue and saw a party of natives,
-headed by Sedai, approaching.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are coming towards us,” said Onrai. “Let
-us meet them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They started towards the approaching party, Onrai
-in the lead. He turned his zebra to one side to go
-around a pile of debris, when, upon reaching the far
-side of this, he pulled up his zebra so quickly, that it
-nearly dismounted him. His eyes were bulging from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>their sockets and a groan left his lips; he seemed
-paralyzed, so rigid had he grown. The rest of the
-party had now come up, and also Sedai and his followers,
-and all looked in the direction in which was
-Onrai, and there, half hidden by the debris and great
-body of the elephant, lay Enola, her robe almost torn
-from her body and her face and hands black and
-bleeding.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XVII.<br /> <span class='large'>“SHE IS MAD.”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>As both parties met and looked down on the bruised
-and blackened face of Enola, a cry of horror went up
-from each one of them. Hope had still had life as long
-as there was any uncertainty, but now it had met its
-death.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look,” said Harry, “the elephant is not dead.
-See, he is trying to move his head.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hurriedly the party dismounted, and Onrai lifted
-Enola carefully in his arms. She had fallen across
-Gip’s outstretched trunk when the crash came, and
-here she now laid. When Onrai lifted her up, Gip
-tried to raise his head, but this he could not do. The
-whole side of it was crushed in, or the lower part of it
-was, and he looked up with pitiful eyes, begging help
-from the party bending over him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai still had Enola in his arms when Mr. Bruce
-came up and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Lay her down on the grass, Onrai, until I can make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>an examination. Quick, she may yet be living; the
-elephant is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Carefully Onrai laid her on the grass, holding her
-head in his lap. Mr. Bruce bent down, and placing
-his ear to her heart, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She yet lives. Quick, bring me a flask of brandy.”
-A flask was handed him, and placing this to the lips of
-Enola, poured a few drops down her throat. “Bring
-some water,” he again commanded, and this having
-been handed him, he bathed her bruised face and hands
-with it. She was badly lacerated, the cuts not being
-deep, but so many of them that an inch of whole skin
-could scarcely be found.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry looked as long as he could, but finally walked
-away; the sight of his loved one in this condition
-crazing him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But for the faint beating of the heart, all would
-have pronounced her dead, for it could scarcely be
-hoped that one so terribly cut and bruised could survive.
-Even the body had not been spared, and great
-blotches of flesh had been torn from it by contact with
-the flying debris.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is there hope?” almost whispered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot say,” said Mr. Bruce. “But if blood-poisoning
-does not set in, I should think, with her
-splendid constitution, she might get well. But she has
-laid here for hours exposed, and it is greatly against
-her chances for recovery. She must be taken where
-women attendants can help her, and that immediately.”
-And Mr. Bruce had to again place his ear over the
-region of the heart in order to tell whether she was yet
-alive.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>“See, she opens her eyes,” said Harry, as he again
-comes up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, it was true, she had opened her eyes, but only
-for an instant, and then closed them again.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Enola, look; do you not know us?” said Harry,
-as he bent over her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her eyes again opened, and she tried to part her
-parched and bleeding lips, but she had not yet the
-strength.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There may be some hope now, I think,” said Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hurriedly a litter was made from the blanket taken
-from the elephant, and with one of her friends at each
-corner of this, Enola was carried to the nearest villa.
-This was not far away, and, when reached, attendants
-were found in waiting, and Enola being carried to one
-of the large, cool and comfortable apartments, she was
-soon under the care of female attendants. Carefully
-they bathed the bruised and bleeding body, and under
-Mr. Bruce’s orders they anointed and bandaged the
-cuts. Finally, after long and hard work, and after
-hope of resuscitating her was nearly lost, she opened
-her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce was standing at her side at the time, and
-seeing that she had regained consciousness, and that
-danger for the time was passed, he carried the glad
-news to the anxious ones waiting for his report. All
-immediate anxiety being allayed they breathed freer.
-Onrai, who now felt at liberty to return to the city,
-began to make preparations for so doing, he feeling
-that at such a time his presence was greatly needed
-among his people. Accordingly he took a few of his
-attendants, and after making arrangements for hourly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>messengers to be sent him, giving full account of
-Enola’s condition, he started. Just before leaving,
-Enola opened her eyes, and after a moment, uttered
-the one word, “Gip.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was perfectly natural that returning consciousness
-should bring to memory the fearful experiences
-of the night before and of the brave animal which had
-fought so nobly to protect, and save her life. In their
-anxiety for Enola all thought of poor Gip had been
-forgotten, but when she spoke his name and they knew
-that she was anxious about him, and when they remembered
-all that he had done for her, they censured
-themselves for having forgotten him for even a
-moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai gave orders to some of his people to go to the
-assistance of Gip, and to do all in their power to relieve
-the noble beast, if yet alive. Mr. Bruce, not
-being needed for the time in the sick-room, went
-with the party as did also Sedai. The great animal
-heard them coming, and tried to raise his shattered
-head, but could not. A slight movement of the trunk
-was the only sign of life he could give. Mr. Bruce
-had not made a study of the anatomy of the elephant,
-and he understood very little about them, but he determined
-to do all he could for the animal.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Gip had unfortunately fallen on his right side and it
-was necessary for them to turn him over. This was
-no easy task; in fact it looked at first as if this could
-not be accomplished; but Mr. Bruce quickly thought
-out a plan which proved successful. Large ropes were
-tied to the legs of the side on which the animal was
-lying, and by a long and hard pull he was turned over
-onto the unbruised side. A groan, almost human in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>its intensity, escaped the crushed beast, as he was
-pulled over but he seemed to understand that his
-friends were there to help him. Mr. Bruce commenced
-at once to examine his wounds.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lower side of the head had been crushed and
-the body for half its length was lacerated. He had
-fallen on these wounds and the sand and gravel which
-covered the ground had worked into the wounds and
-were now held there by clotted blood. Water was
-brought from the lake and poured into the wounds
-until cleansed of all dirt, and then soothing liniments
-were poured into them. Gip did not make a movement,
-the great intelligent beast realizing that all this
-washing and anointing was being done to help him.
-It was a question as to how they were going to bandage
-the huge body, and after careful consideration
-this was deemed impossible until he could stand, as
-they could not carry the bandage about the body
-otherwise. The head, however, was lifted by the exertions
-of a dozen of the attendants and great, white
-silk bandages were carried around the monstrous hulk.
-Pails of water were now brought and he drew in great
-draughts with his trunk. Food was also brought
-where he could reach it. Everything that could possibly
-be done for his comfort was done, and two men
-were left to watch over the animal until evening, when
-he was to be again bandaged, and, if possible, gotten
-on his feet and taken to the villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce now hurried back to the villa. He had
-been gone for some time and he feared that Enola
-might need his attention. He had considerable misgiving
-regarding her speedy recovery, or even her recovery
-at all, for she had been fearfully bruised and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>cut, and had been so long exposed afterward, that
-there was great fear of blood-poisoning setting in. He
-realized what this wonderful woman had undergone in
-these few short hours, and he doubted if another could
-have passed through such an ordeal and lived. But
-Enola had a perfectly healthy constitution and Mr.
-Bruce had a faint hope that this intrepid girl might
-pull through.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As he entered the villa, Nellie, who had been sent
-for, met him in the hall, and to his look of inquiry,
-said,</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She has awakened but her mind is gone; she is
-mad.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XVIII.<br /> <span class='large'>ONRAI VISITS THE PRIEST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Onrai hurried on to the city. At frequent intervals
-on his journey he met couriers from the city, all
-hurrying to give him the details of new discoveries of
-the storm’s devastation. The track of the tempest, as
-he now followed it, so shortly after its fearful advent,
-showed ruin and death everywhere. But so far no loss
-of human life had been reported and the King felt more
-than thankful for this. As the inhabitants would meet
-the King, they would look at him in the same wondering
-way as they had at the storm the night before,
-they were evidently seeking an explanation from their
-King, of the phenomenon. When they did ask him why
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>such ruin had overtaken them, he would invariably
-answer by saying that there was sin among them.
-Then they would look one at the other as if wondering,
-if it were he or she who was guilty.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Arriving at the city, he found the populace awaiting
-him. On all previous occasions when Onrai had been
-away from the city for a season, upon his return the
-people had been glad to see him and had met him at
-the city limits with harps and glad songs. But now
-they stood and looked with no joy in their faces; but
-this was easy to account for. The people had never
-before in their lives had one little thing to occur to
-disturb the even tenor of their existence. Their lives
-were simply one long, happy or perfectly contented
-existence, they knowing no pains or sorrows.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The seasons came and went, each occupying just so
-many months, never varying greatly one from the
-other, for it was perpetual spring in this delightful
-country. But at one season more rain fell than at
-another, and for several months of each year rain
-never fell. Severe storms were very infrequent and
-such storms as the one of the night previous had never
-been known before. And this had happened right in
-the middle of the dry season. It was not so much this
-latter fact probably which made the people wonder,
-as it was the death and ruin which it left in its wake.
-This the people could not understand, for life to them
-was a sacred thing, even those animals of a meat-serving
-kind, never being allowed to be killed wantonly,
-or where there was no use in the slaughter. Why had
-the poor dumb beasts been killed in this way? There
-was a world of inquiry in their looks as they stood
-perfectly still, and saw the King pass.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>But Onrai heeded them not. He hurried on past
-the great square and up the broad avenue to the Temple,
-where the head priest was awaiting him, and as the
-King drew up, the priest approached him, saying, “You
-have come, oh King. Throughout the night I have
-prayed for you and those with you. You are safe, God
-be praised,” and taking Onrai by the hand he led him
-into the Temple.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was your prayers then which brought us to shelter
-before the storm overtook us,” said the King.
-“But tell me, you who know all of the sacred writings,
-what has caused this death-dealing and destroying
-storm. I can only believe that our people are sinning.
-Tell me, do you not think this so?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have made research, knowing that both you, King,
-and the people would want to know the cause of the
-storm, and I too have wished to learn the reason. I
-find among the sacred writings words admonishing us
-to do right at all times and if laws were broken and
-the inhabitants of this great Land of On treated lightly,
-the commands laid down for their good and prosperity,
-they would be made to suffer in such ways as God
-would devise. I also find that God will give warning
-to the good of coming events. I do not know what
-to think, but I hardly believe that our good people are
-sinning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are there any motives which might make us break
-the laws?” asked the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think not,” answered the priest, and as he said
-this, he looked at the King and was surprised to see
-his face so pale. “No, it must be a warning,” he continued.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>“But what unusual event can come to our country?”
-asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Was not the storm of last night an unusual event?”
-asked the priest, “and should this not be a sufficient
-warning to us to guard against all such? I believe
-that naught else can come to the Land of On but the
-wars of the elements, and if these visit us, it is God’s
-will and they purpose some good.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If it be God’s will, he must have some object in it,”
-said Onrai. “But tell me, priest, did the Kings of On
-ever marry?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The question almost staggered the priest and he
-started back for the moment unable to answer. But
-controlling himself he came forward and looked Onrai
-straight in the eye, asking sternly, “Why do you
-ask? Do you not know that it means death to the
-King who even contemplates marriage? Were not
-the sacred teachings imparted to you when you were
-yet young, and have these not been told you many
-times since and expanded on, and explained? And
-does not the law say that the King shall not marry?
-I cannot understand you, King.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai’s face was puzzled as he looked at the priest
-as he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I hardly understand myself,” said the King.
-“I have indeed read the great laws and have heard
-them read since my earliest childhood, and I know
-that the King cannot marry and that there are great
-and good reasons given for his not marrying. But
-God forgive me if I have thought for one moment that
-this law was unjust. I am King, chosen by the people
-because of my physical attainments and stature. I
-am strong, powerful; through my veins courses the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>blood of endless generations of perfect manhood;
-every nerve, every tissue, every muscle tingles with
-life; I have been trained until my naturally healthy
-sinews are as hard as the black metal which we dig
-out of the foothill of the cliffs; my whole being vibrates
-with health and vitality and for these reasons I am
-chosen King and denied a wife; I of all men who
-should be granted a mate,” and as he ceased speaking
-he strode up and down the Temple, his powerful form
-shaking like an aspen; his breath came quick and
-short; his hands opened and shut nervously.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The priest looked at him in wonderment and seemed
-at a loss to know how to answer him. But he must
-say something to this rash man, this ruler of the
-people, who was supposed to be pure, to be sinless. If
-others should hear him talk in this mad way the consequences
-might be fearful. He stepped in front of
-the King as he came near him and said, “Onrai, are you
-not mad? Do you not realize the consequences of such
-ravings? Do you not know that death awaits you if
-you give up to such sinful thoughts? Oh, Onrai, King,
-brother, great and good, strong and beautiful, drive
-these fearful thoughts from your mind; smother these
-emotions, which can only lead you to destruction. Remember
-that endless line of ancestors of whom you
-speak, and let not an act of yours disgrace their memory
-or make sorrowful the people who chose you for
-their King. Tell me, oh my brother, what it is which
-has wrought this great change in you,” and then, seeming
-to remember the strangers, he clutched Onrai’s
-arm nervously and said, “Tell me, is it they?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Of whom do you speak,” asked the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Of the strangers,” answered the priest.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>“Why should you suspicion our guests,” asked
-Onrai. “Is it just to them, who for the time may expect
-only the kindest treatment from us? I do not
-like this,” but as he spoke, his heart smote him for being
-the first to suspicion the good motives of the
-strangers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Forgive me, King,” said the priest. “I had but
-your interest at heart and thought only of you when I
-spoke; but I could not suspicion you of fostering such
-thoughts unless encouraged by some one. And I
-could not suspicion any of our people, for they have
-too great a reverence for our holy laws to ever speak
-on such subjects. Then, who could I think of but they
-of the fair skin? But I was wrong, forgive me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, it has been nature itself, this strong vital
-power which permeates my being, which has prompted
-the thoughts. I cannot be held responsible for these
-thoughts, but only for nurturing them, and allowing
-them to influence me in doing wrong. It has not
-reached this point yet and it never shall. If I am
-weak in the body I am strong here,” and Onrai tapped
-his forehead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, you are the Onrai I have known since a boy,”
-said the priest. “But Onrai be careful; guard against
-temptation, as our sacred writing commands us to do.
-Come to me and tell me if you are again tempted;
-I have never had such thoughts as yours and I can
-better counsel and advise you. And if others should
-hear you vent such thoughts, the whole populace
-would soon know it and the end would be death. Let
-me again admonish you, my King, to fortify your mind
-against such temptations. If certain ones create such
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>thoughts, go not near them,” and the priest, with this
-advice, left him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai walked down the main hall of the Temple, his
-mind trying to throw from it the gloomy thoughts
-which the priest’s negative assertion had raised. So
-the hope, which sprung into being when he saw Enola’s
-innocence, could not be cherished; the fulfilment of
-it could never be realized. The thought was maddening
-and Onrai groaned aloud in his fearful agony.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“God help me in this struggle,” he cried, “is it sin,
-can it be sin, this longing to be like other men, be allowed
-to take unto myself a wife? I cannot believe
-that it is, but the law says “No,” and I, with every
-impulse fighting against it, must comply.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He now left the Temple and walked down the
-broad avenue. Word had gone forth that the King
-would speak at the large open square, and crowds who
-had seen the King come to the city had now, with
-their friends gathered and were waiting with those
-same wonder-depicting countenances, for the King to
-come and tell them why the strange storm had come
-and ruined the Land of On. Walking straight to the
-fountain, Onrai mounted the dais and glancing about
-him for a moment at the hushed, bewildered Onians,
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It has pleased our great God to give us a warning;
-this warning admonishes us to be careful, watchful and
-diligent. If any among you have sinned or are sinning,
-this fearful storm tells you to turn from the evil
-of your ways; if you have intentions of sinning, it
-speaks to you a warning, but I cannot believe that my
-people are sinning. I look among you to-day and see
-not one guilty face. You are bewildered, in wonderment,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>but this is not guilt. It can be a warning to us
-of some disastrous event which may visit our fair land.
-It may be that it will all be revealed to us later, but
-let us not be worried, but obeying the laws, go on in
-our happy way. The fearful storm has caused no loss
-of life of our people, and we may believe from this
-that God was not angry with us. Let us be watchful
-of coming harm, but let us not live in dread, for such
-will destroy happiness. The storm has left a vast track
-of ruin behind it, but ruin easily righted. We must,
-for the time, give up all other occupations and repair
-the damage done by the storm. Only let the food be
-furnished and the city kept clean. All traces of the
-devastation will soon be gone and we will forget, or it
-will only be a memory to us after a short time. Our
-guests from the far-away planet escaped injury, all
-but one and that one was the fair and sweet Enola,
-who is so much loved by you all. But I left her
-better and she will recover, for God would not take
-one of our guests, and leave our people unharmed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As if in denial of Onrai’s words, a messenger stepped
-to the edge of the crowd and waved a piece of papyrus
-over his head. Onrai saw him at once and raising his
-hand, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A courier has just arrived from the villa in which
-lies the fair Enola. I must hasten to this villa as these
-people are our guests, and I should be with them.
-Again I pray of you, be watchful, and keeping from
-sin, be happy and contented as in the past.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai ceased speaking and descending to the pavement
-took the message from the courier. It read as
-follows:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Enola lives, but her reason is dead.” His face
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>turned ashen and he jumped on to the zebra held for
-him by an attendant, and dashed off madly down the
-avenue. The populace watched his retreating figure
-in still greater wonderment, and the attendants who
-followed him were soon left far in the rear, as the
-zebra which he rode was fleeter than any other in the
-land. On the King rode, each moment urging the
-zebra to greater efforts, each moment shortening the
-distance between Enola and himself. The avenue had
-been almost cleared of fallen trees by the large body
-of men who had immediately gone to work after the
-storm, and Onrai hardly met with any obstructions in
-his mad rush. It was growing dark now and Onrai
-had ridden nearly fifty miles that day, but he showed
-no fatigue as he bent well over the zebra’s shoulders
-and urged it on. He had but one thought, an excruciating
-one: “Enola was mad.” The agony of that
-thought. She would no longer look at him with those
-beautiful eyes or speak to him in those charming
-accents, or smile on him with those lips which seemed
-only made to kiss. Mad, mad, mad; the word rang
-in his ears, the zebra’s hoofs seemed to pound it out of
-the flinty pavement, the birds in the air were screeching
-it; everything seemed to be telling him the fearful
-story. On, on he rushed with unabated speed, the
-zebra reeking with sweat and panting as if it would
-drop each moment, its eyes bulged and glaring, until,
-pulling up in front of the villa, and Onrai jumping from
-its back, the beast falls dead.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XIX.<br /> <span class='large'>ONRAI CONFESSES HIS LOVE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Yes, it was only too true. The sufferings of that
-mad ride before the storm and the long exposure had
-unbalanced Enola’s reason. As Mr. Bruce entered the
-apartment after visiting Gip he found two women attendants
-struggling with her trying to prevent her
-leaving the couch, while Mrs. Graham was standing
-near trying to reason with her. But there was no
-longer any reason in Enola. She had awakened to
-oblivion, her mind groveling in darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce walked up, and looking at Enola closely,
-saw that she was in a high fever; feeling her pulse he
-knew that she was in a very dangerous condition. His
-troubled look told the story to Mrs. Graham and Nellie
-as they stood watching him anxiously. He sent
-for the small medicine chest which they had brought
-with them from the States, and which they had thought
-to place with the equipments when starting on this
-excursion. From this he took medicines that would
-allay the fever, first giving Enola a quieting powder.
-This had to be forced down her throat as she closed
-her teeth tightly and refused to take anything. It
-soon had its effect and as her muscles relaxed and
-bruised limbs became quiet, Mr. Bruce could better
-diagnose the disease.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After a careful examination he came to the conclusion
-that she was suffering more from a nervous fever
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>than anything else, caused by the fearful suspense, suffering
-and exposure of the night before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is there any hope for her?” asked Harry, who had
-come into the apartment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot say,” said Mr. Bruce, “but we will hope
-until the disease has run its course and the change
-comes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But of her reason,” questioned Harry. “If she
-lives, will her mind always be clouded?” and Harry’s
-look of agony was fearful.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That I cannot say, for unfortunately, I am not an
-expert in mind diseases,” answered Mr. Bruce. “It may
-be though only the ravings of a fever-racked brain,
-and when this has passed she may regain her reason.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“God grant that this may be true,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce was a great advocate of ice in cases of
-fever and he had at once ordered a liberal use of this.
-Fortunately Mrs. Graham and Nellie were with Enola,
-for they had both had experience as nurses and knew
-just what to do, and then their love for her would
-insure her the very best of treatment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The day rolled by and Enola had not yet come out
-of the long sleep into which the morphine had thrown
-her. Harry had strolled up and down before the
-door of the sick chamber, stopping occasionally to
-listen, hoping to hear signs of returning consciousness
-from within. But all had remained quiet and Harry
-had kept up the vigil from without. He had suffered
-fearfully in those few short hours since Enola, snatched
-by the storm, had been carried away, giving her up
-only after it had destroyed the greatest gift of God—reason.
-It seemed an age to him, these few short
-hours and the suffering had grown more intense as the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>day advanced, and the possibilities of returning life
-and reason grew less. Harry was not one to say much
-or to carry his heart on his sleeve, but his love for
-Enola was deep and sincere, and his suffering now
-fearful as a consequence. He had seen Enola’s growing
-friendliness or infatuation for the King and this
-had wounded him terribly. Still he had so much faith
-in her that he could not doubt but that she would be
-perfectly true to herself in the matter, and if, in the
-meantime she should learn to love Onrai, she would
-tell him candidly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the thought was torturing, the very possibility
-of his losing her after these long years. The barbarous
-grandeur, so it might be called, of the King and
-his people, was enough to turn the head of any woman
-or man, for that matter, and he could not blame Enola
-if she should turn from him to the King. Yet there
-was something about these people which could not be
-understood, a certain mystery unsolved and unsolving;
-they had now been among them several weeks, and
-had been let into all their mode of life, their customs,
-habits, and nothing, seemingly, had been kept from
-them; but there had been mentioned a certain day, the
-Day of Resis, over which there hung a cloud. This had
-only been mentioned unguardedly, and there seemed
-to be a secret connected with it, which was not to be
-divulged to the vulgar ears of the strangers. Harry
-had hopes that the uncertainty of this mystery would
-guard Enola from allowing herself to form an alliance
-with the King, an alliance which might make life a
-hell ever afterwards.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry was not superstitious, but there was a certain
-dread of the future with these people; a sort of premonition
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>of coming evil; that before long this pleasant
-life would end, and a something would occur which
-would make the party forever regret the day they
-entered this strange country. These thoughts might
-have been occasioned by the fear that Enola was being
-infatuated by the subtle influence of the King; an influence,
-which he, Harry, thought lay in the mystery
-overhanging the entire race. But when Enola would
-once come to believe as he did, that there was a future
-life with these people, which was the very reverse to
-the one they were now enjoying, she would at once
-turn a deaf ear to the love-making of Onrai. But had
-he made love to her? Harry could not make himself
-believe that Enola would allow this from one whom
-she had known but such a short while; and then Onrai,
-when Harry came to think of him, was such a great,
-powerful man, so straightforward and free from all deceit,
-so brave and strong; he looked a lover, and yet he
-did not know. One thing Harry was assured of: Onrai
-did not make love to Enola with those simple nothings
-which make up the wooings of modern lovers in civilized
-countries. And it might be the total absence of
-these idiotic expressions which won her friendship and
-esteem, and finally, love. It might be the grand physique
-and strength of the man which attracted her.
-But at any rate, Harry would not relinquish all hope
-of yet winning Enola, and when he thought of that
-mysterious something which threw a sort of shroud
-over the future of these people, he felt almost confident
-that Enola would not allow herself to become entirely
-infatuated, or, as it has been said, allianced with this
-King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But now this slender hope had been shattered.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>Enola lay at death’s door physically and mentally,
-with but slight hopes of regaining bodily health, and
-less of her ever regaining her reason. For the
-first time Harry regretted their ever having started on
-this hazardous journey, but when he thought of the
-determination of Enola, and realized that she would
-have come at any rate whether he had or not, he felt
-glad at least that he was now here to help her. He
-must be resigned and await the future. But this was
-easier said than done, especially when the one great
-loved one was lying at death’s door. Again he stopped
-and listened, and hearing no sound, walked to the
-entrance, and looking out saw Onrai dash madly up
-on his winded charger and dismount. Onrai almost
-stumbled over Harry as he hurried through the entrance.
-Looking up almost angrily, he was about to
-make some passionate remark, when, seeing that
-it was Harry, he grasped him by the shoulders, and
-said, hoarsely:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell me quickly, how is she?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The same,” answered Harry. “Still mad, and no
-hope.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is fearful!” cried Onrai, as he dropped his hands
-from Harry’s shoulders and commenced pacing the
-floor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry watched the suffering of this strong man, and
-for a time, almost gloated over the thought of this
-rival’s agony. But why should he feel this way? Had
-not Onrai been open and above board with him, and
-did he, Onrai, ever suspect that he had a rival in himself?
-So if they were to be rivals, let it be an open
-and square fight, and not for a moment harbor such
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>miserable jealous thoughts. Going up to Onrai, he
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell me, King, why do you take such an interest
-in us—in Enola? We are your guests, certainly, but
-your interest in us is even greater than we might expect
-from you, our host.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot answer you,” said Onrai, “further than
-as you have suggested, it is because you are my guests.
-You come to us strangers; you knew not what to expect
-when you threw yourselves on our bounty, but
-you trusted us, and for that reason you are deserving
-of every attention which we can give you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But pardon me, Onrai,” said Harry, “if I ask you
-a pointed question. I saw your fearful agitation as
-you witnessed Enola being borne away from you last
-night in the teeth of the storm; I saw that you suffered
-far more than if you had only a friendly interest
-in her; and I saw you to-night when you came tearing
-up the driveway and then up the steps of the terrace,
-the dead zebra testifying that you must have ridden
-like mad: I see you now, your face pale, your eyes
-bloodshot, your whole appearance displaying mental
-anguish. Have you not a personal interest in Enola,
-and is not this interest prompted by a feeling deeper
-than friendship?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai now stood with his arms crossed over his
-breast, his bearing erect and scornful, as if to give
-Harry the impression that he was accountable to himself
-alone for his actions and did not recognize Harry’s
-right to question him. He stood looking at Harry
-for some time after he had finished speaking, as if debating
-with himself as to whether he would answer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>him or not. But his just nature asserted itself, and he
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your question is a strange one, but I feel that you
-have some right to ask it; for you have been Enola’s
-companion for years and must have a brotherly regard
-or love for her. I cannot blame you, now that I remember
-the difference in our lives, for this solicitation
-for her future. But have not my attentions to Enola
-been honorable? Do you think that I, the King of
-the Land of On, chosen by the people because they
-knew that I was pure of mind, do you think that I
-could so far forget my natural traits or early teachings,
-as to have any but the purest thoughts of Enola, and
-do you not know that the Kings of On cannot marry?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“So I have learned,” answered Harry, “but are you
-not still a man, and as a man have you not human
-emotions and passions? Because you are a chosen King,
-is the ruling passion, love, driven from your heart?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, I would to God that it was,” answered Onrai,
-and his face betrayed his fearful agony of mind. “No,
-this passion is still ours, but sufficient strength is given
-us to keep it in check. We must smother it and cast
-it out. We must so interest ourselves in our people as
-to forget all else.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But can you do this?” asked Harry. “Is not love
-all-powerful? Even among your people, who are supposed
-to keep it in check until after marriage? You
-have lived, Onrai, thirty-five years; have you not in
-that time felt the delightful sensations of love, and
-have you found it possible to smother it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I have loved,” answered Onrai. “But it
-came over me like a dream and was so subtle in its
-movements that I did not realize that it had taken possession of me until a long time afterwards. But an
-unlooked for event opened my eyes to my sin and the
-knowledge of it nearly crazed me.”</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id003'>
-<img src='images/i_154fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic003'>
-<p>“No, I would to God that it was.”—<i>Page <a href='#Page_154'>154</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>“Your sin?” asked Harry. “Do you consider it a
-sin when you did not realize that it was love that had
-taken possession of you? I would not call it by such
-a name.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Still it was a sin,” said Onrai, “for I had allowed
-myself to be drawn into its meshes without even making
-an effort to extricate myself. To escape this
-tempter it is necessary that we guard against the influences
-which lead to it, and I have not done this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But, King, could you, after your discovery, tear
-this love from your breast and go on as if you had
-never experienced this grand emotion?” questioned
-Harry again.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I must,” answered Onrai, “for it would be death
-for me to nurture it and allow it to influence my life,
-which it would do if I did not kill it. Still, the struggle
-will be terrible, and I know not how it will end. It is
-too early now in the fight, perhaps, to expect great
-results, but I almost doubt my strength to overcome
-its machinations. But I must see her,” and Onrai
-hurried toward the door of Enola’s apartment, Mr.
-Bruce having beckoned him to come.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XX.<br /> <span class='large'>THE AGONY OF ONRAI.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The day must have seemed interminable to the
-wounded elephant as he lay on the hard, sand-covered
-earth. All that could be done for his comfort, however,
-had been done; his wounds had been dressed
-again in the evening and repeated efforts had been
-made to get him on his feet, but without success.
-They had, though, gotten him on his haunches and he
-seemed easier in this position. They had gone to the
-villa and procured ropes and a sort of pulley, which
-they were now rigging to one of the trees above Gip.
-They thought that by getting him on his feet he might
-be able to walk to the villa stables, as the trouble all
-lay in the right foreleg, which had been sprained by
-the log striking it. The block and fall had been rigged
-and the rope worked under the immense body and
-fastened in a loop; then two other elephants were
-hitched to the other end of the rope and started.
-They moved slowly, and as the rope tightened about
-Gip’s shoulders, he did all in his power to help regain
-his feet. But his help was not needed for the two
-elephants lifted him bodily until his forelegs were
-pulled from off the ground, his hind feet alone touching;
-then he was lowered until the forelegs again
-touched the ground, and after awhile, when he had become
-used to the weight, the rope was taken from about
-his body and the other two elephants taking up a position,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>one on either side of him, he was gently urged to
-take a step forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was painful to see the effort he made to walk.
-His right foreleg was stiff and he had to limp in a
-distressing manner. It took a long time to reach the
-villa stables, where a soft bed had been made for
-him with a sling rigged above, so that he could be
-raised or lowered as the attendants saw fit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I declare,” said Mr. Bruce, “it does me good to
-see the brave animal housed. If it were not for him
-we would not now have even a small hope of Enola
-again being with us, alive and well.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is a small hope, indeed,” said Mr. Graham.
-“But it is a hope, and even that is better than knowing
-that the bruised and mangled body lay buried under
-a pile of debris. Gip, you do not realize the full
-significance of your brave act. It may mean health
-and happiness or it may mean suffering and mental
-death. God forbid that it should be the latter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham and Mr. Bruce now turned and went
-into the house and direct to Enola’s apartment. She
-lay still in that death-like sleep into which she had
-fallen after taking the morphine. Mr. Bruce looked
-at her anxiously, and stepping up to her couch, felt
-her pulse.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Her fever is abating,” he said, “and I can now say
-there may be some hope of her recovery. When I
-first felt her pulse this morning it was beating at the
-rate of 105; but the smallest rise in this and she could
-not have survived,” and saying this, Mr. Bruce proceeded
-to rebandage the swollen and inflamed face
-and limbs. Now that the fever was checked he feared
-blood-poison, and especial precaution against this had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>to be taken. As Mr. Bruce and the attendant unwound
-the old bandages, Enola opened her eyes and
-looked about her in a half-dreamy way, but there was
-no intelligence in that look; the eyes were dull and
-seemed to recognize none of the friends about her;
-her lips parted and she again breathed the word
-“Gip.” That was all. Everything else was forgotten,
-friends, past, all was wrapped in darkness now.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The experiences of that night must have been
-terrible,” said Mr. Graham, as he looked upon Enola
-with tearful eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“More terrible than we can even imagine,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but the strong constitution may bring her
-back to health and happiness again; I feel more
-hopeful now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nellie, who was standing by one of the large curtained
-arches at the far end of the room for a moment,
-breathing the fresh air from the garden, exclaimed hurriedly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, come quickly, it is Onrai dashing madly
-up the drive. Look, he is now at the terrace. Oh!
-his poor zebra has dropped dead, and he hurries up
-the steps. He looks wild, crazed by the experiences of
-the past few hours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He will come directly to the apartment,” said Mr.
-Graham. “Mr. Bruce, warn him back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce stepped into the wide corridor and motioned
-to Onrai to remain where he was. Coming
-back into the room, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Care must be taken when the King comes in, for
-he is not the Onrai we have known for the past few
-weeks. One short night and day has changed him
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>wonderfully. He may, in his impetuosity, do something
-which will injure our fair patient.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How strange,” said Mrs. Graham, “that he should
-have changed so. Why, only yesterday, as we rode
-along, happy and without a care, I thought to myself
-that I had never seen a man so thoroughly free from
-all care and trouble as Onrai.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think,” said Nellie, “that an explanation is easy
-enough to find.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then tell us, Nellie,” said her mother.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, he has fallen in love with Enola and the
-events of the past few hours have crazed him. We
-do not wonder at ourselves for being buried in grief at
-Enola’s sufferings, and it is but natural that Onrai
-should feel the same.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t say that,” said Mrs. Graham. “It would
-grieve Harry deeply if he suspected such a thing to be
-true.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I doubt not that but Harry has seen the trend of
-things, for I have watched him closely lately and he
-seems to be worried,” said Mr. Graham, “but he would
-never admit it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola had fallen into the stupor during this short
-conversation and this was probably better so, for any
-violent movement would loosen the bandages and open
-the wounds afresh, and this must be avoided. As she
-lay partially on her side, a full view of her bandaged
-face could be had; nothing but the eyes could be seen
-however, the remainder of the face being entirely
-covered. She looked like one dead and with scarcely
-a breath stirring the gauze over her nostrils, and with
-the white silk robe falling about her, one could easily
-believe that she had succumbed to the excruciating
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>sufferings. Just at this moment Mr. Bruce stepped to
-the arch and motioned Onrai to enter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Be very quiet,” said Mr. Bruce, as the King came
-forward hurriedly. Harry also came up quickly, and
-together they entered the apartment where the dearest
-one on earth to them, lay at death’s door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Both stepped up to the couch, and as Onrai’s eyes
-fell on the white bandages and saw only the discolored
-eyelids, he fell back exclaiming in an agonized voice,
-“Dead;” then, almost beside himself with grief, he
-rushed forward and falling beside the couch would
-have clasped her in his arms had not Harry, who was
-also suffering untold agony, caught him by the arm
-and held him back. Mr. Bruce also stepped up and
-said calmly;</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, what would you do. Do you not realize that
-such an act on your part would endanger her life?
-Calm yourself and do not ruin the small chance which
-this poor girl has for recovery.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai arose and stepped back slowly, his whole
-frame convulsed with strong emotion. Drawing his
-hand over his eyes he said slowly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She is not dead then, thank God. Forgive me, I
-should not have acted thus for her sake and my own.”
-Then looking about him and seeing several native
-women attendants in the apartment, his glance fell on
-the floor, for the first time in his life ashamed of his
-own actions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham noticing the look of humiliation and
-guessing its cause, felt for this strong man to the bottom
-of his heart, and taking his arm, said;</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Onrai, she is not dead; but come with me, I
-would talk with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>Onrai, with his glance still resting on the floor, went
-out with Mr. Graham. When they had reached the
-terrace, Mr. Graham said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, I saw your suffering to-night, and, believe
-me, it touched my heart. But do you realize what
-you are doing? Are you doing this with your eyes
-open? Have you forgotten the laws of your land? I
-know but little about these, but I do know that you
-cannot marry. Then, are you doing yourself or that
-dear one inside, justice, by harboring such feelings?
-It can only bring unhappiness to both of you; therefore,
-banish such thoughts from your mind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is easy enough to say, do this, and I found it
-easy enough to resolve to do this, but I cannot do it.
-I cannot understand my weakness. My life has been
-spent, like my people’s, adhering to the laws laid down
-for us to follow. I have never questioned these, and
-have, by living up to them, been perfectly contented,
-as are all of my people. But you come to us from
-afar, and my life is changed immediately; at first I was
-pleased with you all, and then I found myself happier
-when alone with Enola and discontented when away
-from her; and not until last night did I realize that it
-was love which had wrought this change in me. Since
-then, what with the discovery of my sin and the fear
-for Enola’s life, I have suffered the tortures of hell.”
-As Onrai ceased speaking a noise like the marching of
-a heavy body of cavalry reached their ears. It was
-coming nearer and nearer. What did it mean?</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXI.<br /> <span class='large'>IN PERIL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The rumbling noise came nearer and nearer, and
-Onrai and Mr. Graham stood without saying a word.
-In some respects the noise resembled that of the night
-before, but it came from the opposite direction. Involuntarily
-the two watchers looked at the heavens,
-but seeing the stars shining brightly, all fears of another
-storm were allayed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What can it be?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot tell,” said Onrai. “It sounds like the
-tramp of many zebra, but I cannot understand why
-there should be any riders out to-night, unless it be a
-body of men who are on their way to to-morrow’s work.
-But even they would have started so as to have reached
-their destination long before this. It puzzles me
-greatly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Could it be a body of men coming to you on a
-mission of some kind?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, none would come to me at this time of night,”
-said Onrai. “And then there is no reason whatever
-for any of my people coming to me. The people
-know my wishes regarding the repairs to be made
-where the storm has brought ruin, and this is the only
-thing which they could wish to consult me upon. But
-they come nearer, and now we can distinguish the different
-sounds; yes, it is a body of riders, but where
-they are bound I cannot say,” and as Onrai finished
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>speaking, a hundred flickering lights could be seen far
-down the avenue toward the town.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it is a large body of men,” said Mr. Graham,
-as the riders came in sight, “and they are riding fast,
-as if their mission, whatever it may be, was important.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, they seem in earnest,” said Onrai, “and they
-are turning toward the villa. They are coming here.
-I cannot understand,” and Onrai looked puzzled.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There seemed to be thousands of them as they rode
-toward the villa, winding in and out between the trees,
-for they disdained the single roadway. The leaders
-at last reached the terrace and seeing the King standing
-with Mr. Graham, they dismounted and stood
-beside their steeds. One of the leaders came forward
-and doffing his helmet and bowing low before the
-King, said,</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have come from the city, oh King, to consult
-you on a matter which has come up to-day before the
-people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am always glad to heed the matters of my
-people. But why do you come to me at this hour of
-the night; would not the morrow do as well? It is
-late and within the villa lies one of our guests very
-near unto death, a victim of yesternight’s storm. Will
-the matter not rest then until daylight when a more
-suitable place can be chosen for its discussion, and
-where there will be no fear of disturbing the fair sufferer?
-I ask this not for myself but for one whose
-comfort you should all consider.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is of her and her companions that we wish to
-speak,” answered the man.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And what manner of business can the people possibly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>have with the strangers? Have they not been
-given into my charge and am I not responsible for
-their welfare and comfort? I cannot understand
-your reasons, man, for coming here on such an errand
-or the object the people had in sending you. Have
-you lost confidence in the ability of the King, to take
-care of and make enjoyable the life of our guests?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, it is not that, oh King,” said the man. “We
-do not fear for the well-being of the strangers nor do
-we doubt your power to make all things pleasing for
-them. Our mission is of a different character; we
-wish to complain of them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To complain of them,” said Onrai. “What do you
-mean, man? Have my people then so far forgotten
-their respect to the King’s wishes as to complain to
-him of his guests or the guests of the Land of On?
-For have not these strangers come to us from afar
-and have they not thrown themselves on to our hospitality,
-and is it not our sacred duty to care for them
-as long as they are with us? It is your duty as well
-as mine, then why do you forget this so far as to make
-complaints of them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have not made these complaints as yet, oh
-King,” said the man, “and we wished to place our
-suspicions before you and let you decide if they be
-well-grounded before we would call them complaints.
-But complaints to us seems to be the only fitting word
-to use in this connection.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot understand you, my people,” said Onrai,
-“I was among you only to-day and you said naught to
-me about this matter. You allowed me to depart and
-come here without so much as a hint of your protest.
-Now, you follow me but a short time after, at the dead
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>of night, and here where a fair life hangs by a thread;
-you come a thousand strong and voice your miserable
-suspicions. Our life has been so quietly peaceful that
-this trait has never before shown itself. A word which
-has almost passed from our vocabulary alone can fit
-the act, and that is cowardice,” and as Onrai ceased
-speaking he drew himself up grandly and faced them
-with such a haughty bearing and scornful look that the
-leader drew back involuntarily.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no, King, not that,” said the man, “not that,
-for we had only your and our own best wishes at heart
-when we came here at this hour of night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And had you no thought for those who are now
-under our protection? Had you a right, even with
-complaints to make, to sneak here like a band of jackals,
-in the dead of night? Why do you not come in
-the bright open light of the day and then in numbers
-only equaling those against whom you are going to
-make complaints, and not with a horde as if to intimidate
-them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Listen, oh King,” answered the man. “You must
-know that this is an event which has never before occurred
-in our land, and the people did not know how
-to act. They then got together and decided that we
-were to come to-night, and in a large body; this is to
-impress the strangers within our land that, although war
-and strife, such as our sacred writings speak of, are unknown
-to us, still we can come before them in a formidable
-body and fight for our fair Land of On.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are you mad, man?” asked Onrai. “What is this
-I hear? Are you talking of waging war against a
-handful of strangers, whom you ought to protect? Do
-you speak of war, that which has never been heard of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>in this land? Have the people of On gone mad with
-the advent of the storm?” and Onrai turned and
-strode up and down the terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce and Harry had come on to the terrace
-and now stood back with Mr. Graham but saying nothing,
-so alarmed were they over the new turn things
-had taken. The leader of the party said nothing for
-a few moments after the King had finished speaking
-the last time. He seemed convinced of the justice of
-the King’s remarks, but still he had a mission to perform
-and he was expected to carry it out to the letter.
-Again stepping forward, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We do not come to fight the few of another sphere,
-who are now here but to fight those of this race who
-might come to help them. These people came in the
-dead of night to our land; we know not how they
-came or whence they came and how should we know
-but that they could call to their assistance thousands
-of others. It is this possibility that we have prepared
-ourselves for.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai turned on the man almost savagely and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Enough, now. I will listen to no more to-night.
-Begone, and find you quarters until morning, when I
-will meet you near here on the shore of the lake and
-hear these miserable complaints which you have to
-make. Discuss the matter well among yourselves to-night,
-but remember this, that I come to you to-morrow
-morning prepared to refute any statements which
-you may make against our guests. Your fears, whatever
-they are, are based on superstition and are simple.
-Now go and move away quietly, so as not to disturb
-the woman whom you come to war against.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men remounted after this and rode away, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>not far, for when the shores of the lake were reached
-they halted, and made preparations to spend the
-night. Even at the villa the low hum of their voices
-could be heard as they discussed the subject which
-had brought them here.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After their departure Mr. Bruce stepped up to
-Onrai, who was standing, lost in thought over the unexpected
-turn which events had taken, and said, “What
-is it, Onrai?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot tell,” said the King, “but the people
-seem to have taken a sudden fear of your party. Never
-before have I seen this quality in my people and it
-worries me, for now that it is aroused it is hard to tell
-where it will end.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But why should this sudden dislike and fear of us
-have taken possession of them,” asked Mr. Bruce.
-“Heretofore they have done all in their power to make
-our stay in their country pleasant. Something strange
-must have happened to make them change so suddenly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Have no fear, my friends,” said Onrai. “Whatever
-it is, I will learn to-morrow and then I will know
-how to meet their arguments. They will abide by my
-decision and will again extend to you their friendship.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were now called into the sick-room for Enola
-had again awakened. She was still raving about Gip,
-nothing else seeming to break through the dark pall
-which had fallen over her mind. Loudly she called
-“Gip, Gip, Gip,” half raising from her couch.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As if in answer to her call a noise is heard outside
-and through one of the open arches Gip pushes his
-great bandaged head. Enola seems to hear the sound
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>and, turning, sees the mighty head and before they can
-restrain her, she springs forward and clasping the
-trunk in her arms cries, “My noble, true friend, Gip,
-you have saved me.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXII.<br /> <span class='large'>“THEY MUST DIE!”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Yes, Gip, the great, noble, loyal Gip, had saved Enola.
-When that great cry of hers had broken out, it had
-floated through the arches and out to the open stables
-where Gip had been placed. He had just been raised
-to his feet preparatory to having his wounds rebandaged,
-and as the agonized cry reached him, he raised
-his head and listened, and when the second cry came
-he pushed the attendants aside who tried to stop him
-and limping and almost falling he started for the open
-arches through which the sound came. Such loyalty,
-such love for a mistress had never before been displayed
-by the domestic animals of On and Onrai and
-the attendants looked with astonishment at Gip as he
-pushed his great head through the arch of Enola’s
-apartment, and gave that peculiar cry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola a moment before had seemed very close to
-death’s door, her breath being scarcely perceptible and
-no movement of the body showing any signs of life.
-But she had awakened and in her delirium had called
-on that friend who had shared the danger with her and
-had suffered in trying to protect her. Her movement
-had been so quick when she had seen Gip, that those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>about her had not time to stop her before she had
-fallen on the floor clasping the great trunk of the
-animal. But it was well perhaps that they did not, for
-any hindrance or objection on their part in allowing
-her to go to that protector, the only one she had recognized,
-might have resulted seriously to her reason,
-that reason which was already darkened, but which
-now gave a glimpse of light.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All looked at her in astonishment as she caressed
-the elephant, throwing her arms about the great trunk,
-patting him and calling him by endearing names in the
-meantime. She now noticed the bandages about his
-head and said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my poor Gip, and you were wounded? Ah,
-yes, I remember now, that great, cruel log struck you,”
-and as she said this she almost fell backwards in her
-weakness, but Mr. Graham caught her and attempted
-to bear her to the couch, but she clutched Gip’s trunk
-and cried so pitifully not to be taken from him, that
-Mr. Bruce stepped forward and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It will not hurt her and it may do her an inestimable
-amount of good. Listen, she already remembers
-a few of the instances of the storm and mad ride.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was terrible, was it not, Gip?” Enola went on,
-“and you tried so hard to keep me from danger; but
-it blew so furiously and the air was so thick with stones
-and sand and sticks, and you were blinded, dear friend.
-But you are safe now, all but that poor head which the
-cruel log struck. But where are we now, Gip? The
-storm is over and we are together; but where?” and
-Enola looked about her with eyes which began to
-show some signs of returning reason.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, I see, they have found us and have taken us
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>back to the Temple; and what are these?” and she
-looked at her bandaged hands and arms. “And my
-face, too! Oh, they hurt so,” and the poor girl seeming
-for the first time to realize her suffering, fell back
-on the floor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, Enola,” said Mr. Graham, “you are tired
-and weak, and must lie down. Gip shall stay near
-you,” he continued, as Enola again turned toward the
-elephant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, uncle, I am so tired,” said Enola, as Mr. Graham
-laid her on the couch.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thank Heaven!” almost whispered Harry, “her
-reason is not destroyed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Bruce, as he gave her a quieting
-powder, “Gip has indeed saved her life and her reason,
-too, for the sight of him has brought from out of the
-chaos the scenes of last night, and these have brought
-in their train other thoughts, until reason itself has
-been restored.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This news was received with tears of joy. All fears
-were now allayed regarding Enola, but there were the
-greater ones awaiting them on the morrow. What
-was to be the result of the conference of the King
-with the people to-morrow? Onrai had assured them
-that it would be all right, that they would abide by
-his decision in the matter; but was there not a possibility
-of these people, who were experiencing for the
-first time the fears which superstition brought out,
-being swayed by these rather than by the King?
-Such thoughts had occurred to Mr. Bruce, but he had
-said nothing of his fears to the others, not wishing to
-worry them unnecessarily. Indeed, the thought had
-come to Mr. Bruce to suggest their immediate departure
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>from On, but Enola’s condition forbade this, and
-again, they could not possibly reach the cave before
-morning, and if this intended escape was once discovered,
-they would be stopped and dealt with roughly to
-say the least.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The news of the coming conference had not been
-imparted to Mrs. Graham and Nellie and they, happy
-at Enola’s assured recovery, were quietly dozing in
-their chairs, the events of the past twenty-four hours
-having tired them greatly. The watches were now set
-for the night and the men had retired with the exception
-of Onrai, who went into the garden and strolled
-up and down, his arms hanging listlessly by his side
-and his head bowed as if in deep thought. Was he, too,
-thinking of that coming conference and of the possibility
-of the men refusing to heed him, and following
-their own blind reasoning? Whatever his thoughts
-were he was completely wrapped up in them and
-hardly heeded the approaching morn. The eastern
-heavens grew lighter and lighter, but still Onrai paced
-the drive, his head bending low and his eyes cast on
-the ground. The whistle of a bird seemed to rouse
-him at last, and raising his head and noticing the rosy
-tints of morn lighting the east, he shook himself and
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The battle is fought and I now feel stronger; but
-it has been cruelly hard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A song sung by a thousand male voices, now arose
-on the morning air, and Onrai, turning toward the
-lake, exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, I had forgotten. I must meet the people this
-morning at the lake,” and he started off in that direction.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>Mr. Bruce came running from the villa, and hurrying
-up to the retreating figure of Onrai, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, you are about to go to your people. They
-have a grievance with us. Is it not best that we also
-accompany you, and plead our own defense?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai, “I can better do this myself. I
-am dealing with a new phase in their character to-day,
-and I do not know just how I will handle them, but, at
-any rate, it is best that I should go alone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I would ask one favor of you before you leave,”
-said Mr. Bruce. “We came to your land uninvited,
-and it is not right that we should create any disturbance,
-or destroy the peace of mind which your people
-have always known. If they demand our departure, and
-you feel that their demand is just, and this decree is
-irrevocable, do not hesitate to tell us, and we will leave
-immediately, although it would grieve us greatly to be
-compelled to do so, just when we have fully experienced
-the full delights of your beautiful country, and
-tasted the pleasures of your hospitality. We cannot
-understand why they have learned to fear us, but we
-do not question their motive, in wishing us to leave, if
-this be so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fear not,” said Onrai, “Some question of difference
-has come up probably, which has led them to
-fear that if you should remain here long, established
-customs might be changed. By talking on this subject
-and expatiating on it, it has assumed great proportions,
-and has seemed of greater importance because
-of the mystery which surrounds you. They have
-never been able to understand how you came to our
-country. They found you on the side of the cliff one
-morning in the heart of our wild beast range; you
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>had been there overnight, and had been unmolested
-by the ferocious beasts. This alone made them look
-on you with awe, and they have never forgotten it.
-As I have said, it is superstitious fear, which is now
-urging them on, and we will have to first destroy
-this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I hope that you may be able to do this completely,”
-said Mr. Bruce, “for we wish to be friends
-with your people, and remain a long time with them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I would have it so,” answered Onrai, as he turned
-and again started for the shore. “I can understand
-now, I think, why these people have turned on their
-guests. In some way they have learned of my love
-for Enola, and a fear has taken possession of them that
-I would give myself up to the fascinations of this fair
-woman. And they have attributed a supernatural
-power to her, for they could not believe that any other
-could make me so far forget my laws and people as to
-love; and I do not know just how I am going to deny
-their charges and still ask them to allow the strangers
-to remain with us. This they must do, however, for
-I would have them with us until they have fully
-learned our customs and ways. They will not fully
-know these until they have seen the ceremony of the
-Day of Resis. And, am I still weak? May be so;
-but I cannot now see Enola leave me. I will be strong,
-I will bury the love, which, if mentioned, will ruin my
-whole life and that life to come. But I must see her;
-I must have her with me yet awhile. Ah, I am
-approaching the appointed place. Now for the
-struggle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party had seen him coming and were now
-drawn up before a large rock, which was intended for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>a platform, from which Onrai was to speak; Onrai
-approached and took his stand on the rock; the men
-stood in a semicircle about him, their heads uncovered
-and as Onrai took his position on the rock they bent
-their bodies respectfully, and then stood waiting for
-him to speak.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My people,” he commenced, “you came to me
-last night with a strange complaint. For a short time
-we have had in the Land of On a number of strange
-people, the first which has ever visited our world
-since we can remember. If at any previous time such
-visitors came to the Land of On, we know not, for the
-events of the past ages are not made known to us.
-But we are concerned only with these strangers from
-a distant planet. When we stop to consider, we cannot
-wonder that these enlightened people, of another
-world, seeing our world as we see theirs, should wish
-to visit it and learn, if here was a race of people like
-unto themselves. We cannot fully understand, perhaps,
-the curiosity which should prompt this desire, for
-we have been taught to be contented with the good
-land which God has given us and not to seek anything
-which we have not here given us. We have certain
-laws to follow, and these laws are life and death. But
-it is not so with the people who are now here as our
-guests; they have certain political and moral laws, as
-they call them, which they must adhere to, but they
-have no laws restricting their research into the
-unknown. They may invent new contrivances for
-making their labor easier, they may advance new
-theories on great subjects, even their religion, not
-being altogether as ours is, but a number of different
-beliefs, these beliefs being subdivided, each advancing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>different theories, which in the end are widely varying.
-And they are allowed to study the heavens and learn
-the different stars and to name them; and they
-learned that there was a world similar to theirs and
-they determined to visit it, and immediately devised
-new means to do so; and they came and found that
-another race was here, a race much like themselves in
-many respects but different in others, principally in
-physique; but they worshiped the same God, the
-great God, and this makes them brothers, and now
-you would destroy them, or send them back to that
-world from whence they came, even before they have
-fully learned the world or people which they traveled
-so far to find. You have an imaginary complaint to
-make against them; it cannot be a genuine complaint
-for I have been with them almost constantly since they
-came to our land and I know that they are as pure in
-heart and deed as any among us. Accept your King’s
-word for this, for he knows of what he speaks. I have
-done.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party of men had stood perfectly still during
-this speech of the King, but it would be impossible to
-tell from their mobile features whether they were being
-convinced or not. They stood stolidly silent, not
-a muscle moving, leaning against their zebras. They
-made a grand sight, these thousand men in their beautiful
-tunics, holding their bright helmets. A body of
-men which would make the armies of the civilized
-world look like pigmies and which would make the
-eyes of a general open wide with admiration. But
-that stolidity; not one among them betrayed an
-emotion in the face. As Onrai finished they did not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>even change the position which they had held while
-he was speaking.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai now stepped to one side of the rock and the
-leader, who had spoken the night before, came forward
-and mounting the rock, bowed to Onrai and then proceeded
-with his explanation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, King, I was chosen by the people, who sent us
-here to make the charge against the strangers last
-night, but you ordered us away, and we have always
-learned to obey our King before all else, so we have
-waited until this morning. The decision reached by
-the people was caused by a report which was brought
-to the city by one, who has been a member of your
-expedition since you left the city and was for some
-time before attached to the woman Enola before she
-left the Temple. She was alarmed by certain things
-which transpired, and no longer being able to keep
-them to herself, rode to the city yesterday morning,
-arriving even before you did, oh, King. She tells of
-the King of On, being in the company of the woman
-Enola most of the time, and that certain expressions
-passed between the King and this woman, which could
-mean but one thing; the King had become infatuated
-with the woman. This news could hardly be credited
-and would not have been believed probably, if one of
-our men, who was also in the party, had not rushed
-madly into the city yesterday, giving out that the
-King was mad; that he had stood on the terrace of
-the villa, occupied by Onrai and his party on the night
-of the storm, and had heard the King accuse the woman
-Enola of having bewitched him; of her having
-known before the laws and customs of the people of
-On, even before she had come here; but notwithstanding
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>this she had thrown a spell over him, the
-King. The King told her that she had been balked in
-her machinations before it was forever too late, by the
-warning of God. This warning was the storm. The
-man had not stopped to listen longer; the storm causing
-him to seek shelter. The people had seen the
-King come to the city, where he should be in the time
-of great trouble, but that word had come from the
-woman Enola and he had forgotten his people and had
-rushed off quickly, even killing the zebra which he had
-ridden. This latter, we learned afterwards. The
-people love their King, oh, Onrai; they feel that he
-has not sinned but that he is in the meshes of one who
-would ruin him, and they have decided that the woman
-and her party should die, and we have come to fulfill
-this mission.” And the man, as if this declaration
-ended the matter, stepped down from the rock and
-commanded the men to don their helmets and again
-mount.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hold,” cried Onrai, “what would you do? Consider
-well the step which you would take. Have you
-forgotten that these people are our guests and as such
-demand our protection? The stories which you bring
-are true, but they are the results of my own blindness
-and are not due to any supernatural influence, which
-Enola has had over me. She is innocent and even
-now lies at the point of death, and, will you not at
-least wait and see if her injuries are fatal? Oh, heed
-your King and do not this thing which hurts him.
-Let them be escorted to the place where they were
-found, and let them from there return to their own
-world. Do not kill them,” and Onrai wrung his hands
-in despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>The only answer the leader made him was, “We
-must save our King, for we love him and this
-is the only way,” and he ordered the men to march.
-Onrai jumped from the rock and ran like a deer ahead
-of the riders, and reaching the villa, met Mr. Bruce,
-Mr. Graham and Harry on the terrace awaiting his return.
-The hurrying figure of Onrai coming toward
-them told them that something was wrong, and stepping
-up quickly toward him, Mr. Bruce asked, “What
-is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is settled,” said Onrai; “they are coming to kill
-you; I tried to dissuade them, but it was useless. Rush
-to the rear and take zebras and make all possible speed
-to where you were found. I will try to keep them
-back for a while; it will mean my death, but that matters
-little.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The three men turned white, but did not move.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But what of Enola?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She must be taken too,” said Onrai, “but it is too
-late.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The riders had now reached the terrace and dismounting,
-a number of them stepped forward and laid
-hands on the strangers. Others prepared to enter the
-villa, for the women. Onrai stood with bowed head,
-overcome with emotion. This then was to be the miserable
-end of the expedition.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXIII.<br /> <span class='large'>A MESSAGE FROM THE PRIEST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The moment was a critical one and the three men
-realized it fully; what could they do? They were
-powerless against such a mob; their only hope seemed
-to lay in Onrai, but he had said that the men would no
-longer listen to him. Onrai stood with arms crossed
-and head bowed and it could be seen that he was fearfully
-agitated. But he made no move to stop the
-men, who were now entering the villa to take the
-women. But the thought of these men, laying their
-hands on Enola, on that poor bruised body, finally
-overcame Onrai, and rushing madly into the villa, he
-grabbed the two men who were about to enter the
-sick chamber and pushed them forcibly from the
-house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What would you do?” said he, beside himself
-with anguish. “Would you war against poor defenseless
-women, or worse, sick women? Men, have you
-forgotten your manhood; have you no longer any self-respect?
-Has your pride and honor all been killed by
-this horrible suspicion?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men stood quietly by as they had at the lake,
-listening, but not seeming to heed their King. Those
-who had laid hands on Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and
-Harry still stood guarding them, waiting for those who
-had been sent for the women to come from the villa,
-when they would carry out the rest of the miserable
-programme.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>“Why do you look at me in that strange way?”
-continued Onrai, “do you not know that it is the King
-who is talking to you, that it is he who implores you,
-that it is Onrai who commands you; have you forgotten
-that it is I, Onrai, whom you yourselves chose for
-King, and whom you have sworn to love and obey,
-that now entreats you? How are you keeping that
-oath? Oh, that I should ever be chosen ruler of such
-cowards.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men did not move, but when Onrai ceased
-speaking the leader walked up, and again bowing to
-the King, that King, whom he still respected, but did
-not obey, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“King, we know of the great goodness of your heart;
-we know that that great goodness of heart would still
-be influenced by the love; no, not love, but unholy infatuation,
-which this woman has thrown about you,
-and we know that because of this, you will forget yourself,
-your future, your people, the holy laws and all,
-and would plead for the lives of these people. We
-knew this and we hardened our hearts against such
-pleadings before we came to you. It was decided that
-we would not be influenced by these pleadings, for we
-knew that it would not be our King, our great, noble
-Onrai, who would ask pardon for these people, but the
-evil one, which the woman Enola had possessed him
-with. We believe this with all our hearts and consequently
-we cannot listen to you. We are chosen by
-all the citizens of On to carry out this mission and we
-must do it or go back to our people traitors.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Traitors, traitors, did you say? The word is well-chosen,
-but one which heretofore has never been used
-in the Land of On. Traitors to those who sent you!
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>Would you then rather be traitors to the King than to
-the people? Which is the greater sin, if you would
-call obedience to your King a sin, which is the greater
-sin to be traitor to the people or to the King, which
-you have sworn to love, cherish and obey? Come,
-man, can you answer?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Quickly,” said the leader, “for as I have said, it is
-not now the King which commands us, but that evil
-one within. If it were the King, he would say, ‘Take
-these people who have made your King sin; take
-these people who have called the great God’s vengeance
-down on us, because we harbored them; take them
-and show them no mercy, for they stole upon us like
-thieves in the night; and when we clothed and fed
-them, when we made them honored guests, giving them
-every comfort and luxury which the Land of On knows,
-even taking them into the most sacred sanctuary, making
-them special guests of the King, thinking that he
-alone was fitted to entertain them, when we did all
-this for them, they repaid us by making our King sin,
-and bringing God’s wrath upon us. Take these and
-kill them, for they have betrayed our confidence.’
-This is what the true, noble King, the great Onrai
-would say to his people if it were he talking to us.
-Oh King, we pity you, for we do believe that even
-now you suffer, when you see the people, whom you
-have learned to love through their machinations, going
-to their death. But the people have settled the
-matter, having first given it just consideration and they
-know that it is best that the cause of your sin and the
-land’s suffering should be put out of the way, for if
-they remain, even if you no longer fell under their
-spell, the land or people would no longer be safe. We
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>know that you are suffering for these strangers; these
-traitors are making you suffer, because they would
-have you intercede for them, but when the spell is
-broken, when you are no longer in the power of this
-subtle Circe, you will thank your people for thus delivering
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I look at you now and wonder if this be the happy,
-care and superstition-free people, whom I have known
-for so long and I am almost persuaded to believe that
-you are not; that I have been transported in some
-unknown way in my sleeping to another world, where
-the people have never known what happiness, contentment
-and lack of all superstition is; where the people
-are governed by the most imaginative fantasies of the
-brain; where common sense and reason play no part
-in their decisions or judgment. No, you are not the
-strong, mighty people that I once knew, and yet you
-are the same. I know you all, every face is familiar to
-me, but that is all. The solid mind has wandered, leaving
-in its place nothing, or worse than nothing—superstition.
-That you believe in your own ignorance that
-you are now right and that you are following the dictates
-of sensible minds can easily be seen and your
-decision is as much as could be expected from such miserable
-beings, as would be swayed by superstition. Oh,
-where are the noble minds which once dominated over
-those bodies? Have they gone beyond recall? Have
-they been so outraged by these miserable superstitions
-that they have gone forever? Will not sense, and reason
-and justice break the flimsy wall of these superstitions
-and place the right mind again in possession? Oh,
-men of little brain, why will you insult me by still calling
-me King?” And as Onrai finished he turned his back
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>on them as if their presence was hateful to him; as if
-their stolid gaze would contaminate him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The leader stepped forward again and motioned the
-men back. Mr. Graham and his companions watched
-these proceedings with renewed hope, but Onrai did
-not even turn to see what they were doing. His
-strong nature and nobleness of mind would no longer
-allow of his suing for mercy, even for the sick girl,
-whose life meant so much to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He had first plead; then he called on them as men;
-then he had commanded them as King, and all had
-been useless; they had still stared at him with that set
-look which would indicate that their decision was so
-irrevocable that nothing, not even positive proof of this
-decision being wrong, would make them change it.
-Then he had used contempt, he had belittled their
-manhood, their intellect, and unwittingly he had made
-an impression; an impression surely, but whether a
-good or bad one could not yet be said, for the men
-had taken a position at the edge of the park and were
-now in conference.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce had slipped into the sick chamber and
-had looked at Enola. She was now resting quietly;
-her breathing being regular, her temperature being
-almost normal. Mrs. Graham and Nellie were sitting
-near her, and the women attendants were gathered in
-a group in one end of the apartment, conversing in
-low whispers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Bruce,” asked Nellie, “what is that great body
-of men doing outside; are they here to congratulate
-the King and his party upon their escape from the
-storm?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Exactly,” said Mr. Bruce, and he tried to smile.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>“They came as a delegation from the people of the
-city to express their heartfelt thankfulness for our
-escape; and also sympathy for Enola’s suffering.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But they were here last night,” said Nellie, “and
-still remain. I cannot see why they should do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are waiting for further news of Enola’s condition,
-and when this is learned they will depart for
-the upper part of the country, where they are bound
-to repair the devastations of the storm;” answered Mr.
-Bruce; but as he spoke, Mrs. Graham had walked to
-the curtained arch and parting the hangings, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“See, Mr. Bruce, they are returning; their movements
-are very strange; can anything be wrong?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing, I assure you, Mrs. Graham,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “I will see what it is,” and saying this he again
-went on to the terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The leader was just pulling up his zebra, and raising
-his voice, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh King, we cannot heed your command or
-words. Our duty is plain and we must do it. Men
-do your duty.” Again the men placed their hands on
-the shoulders of the three men and two again entered
-the villa for the women. Onrai stood motionless as
-if turned to stone. The men came from the house,
-one leading Mrs. Graham and Nellie, and the other
-with the still sleeping figure of Enola in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A zebra’s gallop was heard on the hard pavement of
-the avenue. Whoever it was, was keeping up a most
-fearful pace, for the sound of falling hoofs came
-and quick. The men turned to see who this rapid
-rider could be and just then Sedai hove in sight, his
-zebra fairly flying over the ground. He turned into
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>the park and the body of men parted to allow his
-panting zebra to pass between them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hold!” he cried. “A message from the high
-priest!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXIV.<br /> <span class='large'>THE CRISIS PASSED.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The noise of the zebra galloping madly over the
-avenue, had so surprised the men that for the moment
-all else had been forgotten, and those holding the
-strangers had let go their hold, and stood with necks
-craned to catch the first glimpse of the mad rider.
-Mrs. Graham and Nelly had stood where their guard
-had stopped when the first sound of the zebra’s hoofs
-had reached them. They had been so surprised by
-the entrance of the men into the sick chamber, and by
-their command to follow them, that they could not at
-first realize what the men meant. But when one of
-them attempted to raise Enola from the couch, Mrs.
-Graham rushed forward, and would have tried to stop
-him, but for the retaining hand of the other man.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What does this mean?” indignantly asked Mrs.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the man did not understand English, and simply
-stared at Mrs. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But now that Enola had been secured, Mrs. Graham
-and Nellie were made to understand that they were to
-go with the man. They then began to realize that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>something was wrong, and that this was being done
-with the knowledge of those outside. They walked
-to the terrace, and when they saw the men holding
-their male companions also, they knew that they were
-being made captives for some reason or other. They
-turned pale, and thoughts of dungeon cells and murder
-came into their minds, which were probably not
-far from the truth, if they but knew it. But the men
-stopped as Sedai rode furiously up, flourishing a piece
-of parchment in his hand. Onrai stepped forward
-hurriedly, and taking the parchment into his hand,
-read the hieroglyphics inscribed on it. His face at
-first wore a puzzled look, then became brighter, and
-finally broke into a smile, as he handed the parchment
-to the leader, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There, man, read that to your followers. It is
-from the high priest, one whose authority you cannot
-question. Read also how fickle are the people whom
-you represent, for they now order you to return without
-fulfilling your mission,” and saying this, he walked
-over to where the man stood who was holding Enola,
-and taking her in his arms, carried her into the apartment,
-and laying her on the couch, kissed the fair
-cheek, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mine, all mine, and they were trying to take you
-from me. Oh, God, I thank thee.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Outside the leader had taken the parchment, and,
-first reading it to himself, turned to the men who were
-watching him closely and expectantly, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This message, as you have heard the King say, is
-from the high priest, and it relieves us from the painful
-duty of disobeying our King’s orders, listen:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘I, the high priest of On, who has access to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>most sacred laws, have, knowing that a matter of great
-moment depended on the proper reading of these
-laws, perused them carefully, studying each character
-as it is written, and have made this discovery: in those
-laws which govern the King and his conduct, I find the
-law which says he shall not marry; this has always
-been read that the King shall not marry. But it does
-not end here. In believing that our race is the only
-one on earth, and that we could never be visited by
-other people, we have read but the first part of this
-law which says, the King shall not love or marry. But
-the whole reading of the law is this: ‘The King shall
-not take unto himself a wife chosen from among his
-own people.’ The great law-giver of our land undoubtedly
-foresaw that at some future day, people of another
-race would visit us, and although he has virtually
-given no consent to the King’s marrying one of
-his people, he has, by writing the law in this way, namely:
-‘The King shall not marry one of his own people,’ made
-it possible for him to marry one of his own race, if he
-so choses, providing, of course, if such a woman comes
-to the land of On. Therefore I, the high priest of the
-Land of On, do hereby declare that Onrai, the King
-of On, has full and proper rights to marry the
-woman, Enola, who is of another race, and that the
-men who have been sent to kill the strangers, because
-of Onrai loving one of their women, are on an unlawful
-mission, and must be recalled.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the man finished his reading, he turned to face
-those whom he and his men had been sent to take and
-kill, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I came to you with orders from the people to make
-you prisoners, and to take you to a certain place and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>kill you. We had learned to respect you, and it was
-hard for us to believe that you were guilty of that of
-which you were accused. But all signs seemed to be
-against you, and we were compelled at last to believe
-that you were guilty. But we have just learned from
-the words of the high priest, that the King’s love was
-sinless, and if there be no sin in his loving, Enola must
-be sinless. If we have shaken your confidence in us, we
-know not how to regain it. All we can do is to assure
-you that if we have doubted you and have proven
-ourselves traitors to the confidence you have placed in
-us, we will now strive all the harder to make your stay
-among us a happy sojourn. We crave you to pardon
-us, and believe it was the respect to our laws, as we
-knew them, which made us act as we did.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man waited for a moment after he had finished
-speaking, as if expecting a reply from one of the
-strangers, but none of them understood the language
-well enough to make themselves understood as they
-would wish. Onrai came forward, however, after telling
-him that they wished him to express to his people
-that they freely forgave their mistaken understanding
-of their mission to their country, and further intention
-of killing them. Onrai turned and interpreted this to
-the men, who then mounted their zebras and departed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party again entered the sick chamber and looked
-at Enola. She had awakened from the stupor or sleep
-into which she had fallen after taking the powder, and
-as they entered she was looking wistfully at the great
-open arch, which had framed the bandaged head of
-Gip the night before. She looked up as the party came
-in and tried to smile, but the effort was lost, the bandages
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>covering her face so completely, that they hid
-all expression.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Was I so badly wounded then?” she asked, as she
-half raised her head and looked at them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, dear,” said Mrs. Graham, who had hardly yet
-got over the scare which the recent event had given
-her. “But you are going to get well now and we will
-be so happy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Enola,” said Onrai, as he stepped up and
-took the poor bruised hand, “happiness has been unknown
-to us since you were wounded, but we know
-now that you will get well, and our happiness has returned,”
-and he raised her hand to his lips.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXV.<br /> <span class='large'>“HE WILL MARRY YOU.”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>One week had now passed and Enola had almost
-entirely recovered. Her fever had lasted only a day
-or two and with Mr. Bruce’s prescriptions and treatment,
-and Mrs. Graham’s and Nellie’s gentle care she
-mended rapidly. Her wounds, too, had healed so
-quickly, the bandages had been discontinued and altogether
-Enola was nearly in as good a condition as
-before her fateful ride.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, Enola,” said Mr. Graham, “you look as
-bright and happy as ever, this beautiful morning, and
-I prescribe a good long walk for you in the garden.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I feel quite as well as usual, Uncle,” answered
-Enola. “My arms and limbs are a little stiff yet, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>outside of that I am all right and will gladly accept
-your invitation. Ah, the morning is beautiful, glorious,”
-she continued, as they stepped to the terrace.
-“Uncle, have you noticed that the sun seems to be
-brighter, the air purer, that all verdure is greener, that
-the waters of the lake and river bluer, that the birds’
-notes clearer and their plumage gayer, that all nature
-seems brighter and happier here than in the civilized
-world?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, that is quite a speech, Enola,” answered Mr.
-Graham, smiling; “but seriously, I have noticed all
-this many times, and I have long ago ceased wondering
-at the happiness and contentment of the people,
-for they could hardly be aught else with such environments.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, they are truly a happy lot,” said Enola, “yet
-how human. For centuries, more than likely, their
-ancestors had never known such words as fear and
-superstition and they themselves could hardly have
-defined the meaning of these words, yet one little
-word set them wondering and just a word more and a
-little act on the part of their King made them slaves
-to superstitious fears.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, that is so,” said Mr. Graham, “I am very
-much afraid we are all alike after all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, not all alike,” said Enola, “for we, with our
-advanced notions on such matters could never believe
-as did these people for a short time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“May be not,” said Mr. Graham, “but we must
-take into consideration that these people have always
-been led to believe that they were the only people on
-earth, and have never been told of other people on
-other planets, so our advent among them was a great
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>surprise in the first place and they looked on us with
-awe, mingled with fear; and Onrai’s strange actions
-and the storm simply ‘capped the climax.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We had rather a narrow escape, don’t you think?”
-asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Mr. Graham, “too narrow for comfort;
-but I think we stand on a better footing with
-these people since, and that for this reason the occurrence
-should be looked upon as being a decidedly
-lucky one for us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is very true,” said Enola, “but look, Gip has
-seen us and is coming to meet us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Across the lawn strode the great monstrous beast,
-his limp nearly gone, but his head still bandaged.
-This great elephant stood fully twenty feet high and
-as he stalked under the trees his back touched the
-lower boughs. He had been given the freedom of the
-garden from the first night of his removal from the
-scene of the accident to the villa, and he had taken up
-his position beneath the arch which opened into
-Enola’s apartment, and here he had remained, only
-going to his stall for a few moments’ rest; he knowing
-that if he lay down beneath the window, he could not
-again rise. Such love for a mistress had never been
-displayed before, according to Onrai, and his people
-could not understand it; but it was clear enough to
-them that the elephant was attached to Enola, and
-this was quite enough to let him have his own way.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Quickly he passed over the smooth lawn until he
-had reached them, when he affectionately stuck his
-great trunk into Enola’s face. Perhaps this was not
-a very pleasant way of having him show his love, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>it was the only way he knew of, and Enola seemed to
-enjoy it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good Gip,” she said, “and could you not see me
-in my room? I saw you poke your big head in the
-arch and pull it out again and look about. You are a
-dear, good fellow, Gip, and you can come right along
-and walk with us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And he did. Back and forth on the lawn the three
-walked, the great elephant keeping close to Enola’s
-side, occasionally thrusting his trunk over her shoulder,
-giving out that little squeak, as if to let her know
-that he was still with her. And his great moving
-hulk shook the ground at every step, making Mr.
-Graham look around now and then with apprehension.
-But Gip paid no attention to him, simply looking at
-Enola and trying to make her look at him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The day before Onrai had gone to the city to attend
-to any matters which might need his attention. He
-was to return to-day, and on the morrow they were
-again going to take up the journey to the field of diamonds,
-which had been so unexpectedly interrupted
-by the storm. Mr. Graham and Enola had now
-walked to the edge of the garden, and were standing
-looking down the beautiful roadway, when far away,
-where the perspective came to a point, could be seen
-a small black spot. At first it looked like a pedestrian,
-then like a zebra, and finally the form of zebra and
-rider were made out. It was Onrai returning, and as
-impatient as on the night when the message had
-reached him of Enola’s serious illness. Gip pricked
-up his ears, and looking down the road, saw the rider
-approaching; then kneeling, he placed his trunk for
-Enola to step on, as of old. She divined his intention
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>and placing her foot on his trunk, he raised her to his
-back and started off down the avenue, she sitting Turkish
-fashion on the silk covering which was always
-worn by the white elephant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai was now near enough to distinguish her form,
-and seeing her approach he urged his zebra into a still
-faster gallop and in a moment he and Enola had met,
-and Gip, turning, strode along beside the zebra. Far
-above Onrai Enola sat, her face almost hidden by the
-huge figure of the elephant, but Onrai was happy in
-the thought that he was near her. That was enough
-for him at least.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You came to meet me, then?” asked he.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, I think it was Gip, who came to meet you,”
-answered Enola, smiling, “I simply accompanied
-him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai laughed as he said, “Well, you are here and
-that is enough. You are looking entirely well this
-morning; are you feeling so?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Perfectly so,” answered Enola, “and ready and
-waiting to again take up the journey.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We will start to-morrow, at break of day,” said
-Onrai, “and let us hope that our journey will not again
-be broken by such an event as the storm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it was fearful,” answered Enola, “but let us
-not talk of gloomy things on this beautiful morning.
-The miserable past is gone and let us forget it. I
-hope your people will not again mistrust us, for this
-hope only will again insure us comfort and happiness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had now reached the villa and Gip, placing
-his trunk for Enola to step on and kneeling for her,
-she was soon standing beside the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>“I thank you for having met me,” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t thank me,” said Enola. “Thank Gip.”
-Then she tripped lightly up the terrace stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She seems to have lost all seriousness since her recovery,”
-said Onrai to himself, as he followed Enola
-into the villa, “but this may be joyousness over that
-recovery. But she will have to be serious when the
-time comes, for my people will demand it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola had gone into her own apartment, where she
-found Nellie awaiting her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Has Onrai said anything to you yet?” asked
-Nellie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“About what?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“About his intended marriage,” said Nellie, and she
-tried to smile, but could not, the whole matter seemed
-such a farce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“About his marriage? why he has not mentioned
-it to me,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is strange he should not have spoken to you
-about it,” said Nellie, “for it concerns you quite as
-much as himself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In what way?” asked Enola. “I cannot possibly
-see how I am concerned in his marriage.” But as she
-spoke she remembered the conversation of the night
-of the storm and of his accusation. For he had told
-her then that a King was not allowed to marry, how
-was this then, that he was going to break the law.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell me, Nellie,” said she.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can hardly bring myself to do so,” said Nellie.
-“We told you that we had trouble with the people
-when you were sick, which nearly ended in our massacre,
-but we did not tell you all concerning that
-trouble. You are strong enough now and can hear it.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>They accused you of bewitching the King, when you
-knew he was forbidden by the laws to either love or
-marry. They said that the storm had come to them
-as a warning, and was God’s wrath on them for harboring
-us, and they were going to kill us. But the high
-priest learned that the King could marry you if he so
-desired, and so we were pardoned, and now it is the
-King’s intention and the people’s desire that you
-should marry him. But I cannot understand why he
-has not spoken to you about it. Oh, Enola, can you
-marry this barbarous king?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t ask me, now, Nellie, I cannot answer—I cannot
-understand.” And Enola drew her hand across
-her eyes as if to break the spell.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXVI.<br /> <span class='large'>A STRANGE DISCOVERY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The following morning opened bright and beautiful;
-all rose early, and after a light breakfast again took up
-the journey. Gip had sufficiently recovered to be allowed
-to go, and as it was intended that for the first
-few days’ the marches were to be short in order not to
-fatigue Enola, it was thought best for her to ride in
-the large howdah on Gip’s back, for the motion would
-be less and the position more comfortable than it
-would be on the back of a zebra. So Gip was happy
-in carrying the precious burden, and strode out at the
-head of the large cavalcade as proud as any of them,
-with scarcely any sign of lameness left. Onrai had
-also mounted an elephant so as to be on a level with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>Enola, for the idea of trying to keep up a conversation
-when he was riding some feet below her, was entirely
-out of the question.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry preferred his zebra, notwithstanding this left
-the field entirely open to Onrai. Still, he thought it
-might as well be thus, for Enola might look on his riding
-near her as an intrusion, and this would hurt his
-cause far more than it would help it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Graham and Nellie were both on elephants
-this morning, Mrs. Graham being stretched out in a
-half reclining position, enjoying to the fullest the comforts
-of the huge howdah and easy motion of the elephant.
-Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and Harry rode well
-on ahead of the rest of the party, and Sedai was directly
-in their rear. The story of his hard ride from
-the city, when bringing the message from the high
-priest, he had kept silent on for a long time, but Mr.
-Bruce finally prevailed upon him to tell how he had
-been chosen as a courier. His story was substantially
-this:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I was standing just before the terrace when I saw
-the body of men come up. I heard them make the
-demand and knew that they would make trouble. I
-heard one of the number say that it was because of
-Enola having made the King sin by wishing to marry
-her, she knowing that the King could not marry. I
-then remembered having heard one of the men, whom
-I had talked with in the city, say that the law did not
-forbid the King marrying a woman of another country.
-I heard Onrai tell them to wait until morning.
-I then determined to ride to the city and look up the
-man who had made this remark. After the men had
-withdrawn, I stole to the stable, and jumping on my
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>zebra started for the city. I rode hard and it was
-still night when I reached there. I found the man
-after considerable trouble and he told me that that was
-his opinion only, but that the people had decided that
-the King could not marry, and he must believe this
-as did they. He told me to go to the high priest.
-While on my way to the Temple some of the populace
-saw me, and fearing that I had broken away from
-those who had been sent to kill our party, they pursued
-and overtook me at the base of the terrace steps
-which led to the Temple. I fought hard but they
-overpowered me and bore me into the Temple. The
-high priest came forward and asked me how it was
-that I was not with my friends. I told him as well as
-I could, for I knew little of the language, that there
-was a doubt regarding the law governing the King’s
-marriage; that I had been sent to him with the request
-that he examine carefully this law and give me
-his decision and let me bear it to the King. The high
-priest left us for a few moments and then came back
-and handing me a piece of parchment, commanded the
-people to leave me go, and bade me ride with all
-speed to the King and my friends.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The priest was very much agitated as he said this
-to me, and kept urging me to use all speed. I rushed
-down the steps and jumped on one of the zebras of
-the natives, mine being winded, and never stopped
-until I had reached the villa.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This was the story Sedai told in his quiet and unassuming
-way and he never seemed to realize that he
-had, by his quick forethought, put into immediate
-action, saved the lives of his friends. And Sedai had
-ever since this held a new place in the hearts of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>party and Onrai himself seemed to look on the Abyssinian
-as one who had done him a personal act of
-kindness which could never be repaid. He was a
-hero, was Sedai, and it was decided by the party that
-although he might never again have an opportunity to
-help them in a like way, still it was good always to
-have him with them, and upon their telling him this
-he said that he would never again leave them; not
-even for a day. And so he was one of the party
-to-day, his sturdy figure riding the zebra like a native.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The journey would occupy some ten days yet and
-it was decided to travel early in the morning and in the
-cool of the evening; spending the warm part of the
-day in one of the villas en route, as they had on previous
-marches. The storm’s track could be seen very
-plainly from the avenue and a large body of men
-were still employed cleaning away the debris. A
-remarkable thing about the terrible storm was that it
-had not killed a single human being. Some had been
-very badly injured, but these had all recovered or were
-recovering, so that not one death could be laid to the
-storm; many animals had been killed and it was
-expected that many of the wild animals in the hunting
-reservation had also been killed, but this had not yet
-been ascertained, as none had gotten as far as the
-northwestern part of the country, where the storm
-was supposed to have started.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It would remain with Onrai and his party to ascertain
-this.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All was life and happiness this beautiful morning
-and all thoughts of the storm had been relegated to the
-past. On their right stretched the lake, its clear
-waters stretching far to the north; on the left were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>the farms and pastures, through which the storm had
-ploughed its way; on ahead of them, as far as the eye
-could reach, stretched out the shaded avenue; way off
-to the northwest could just be seen in the blue distance,
-hardly perceptible, the faces of the cliffs, and at
-the base of these cliffs was their destination, and there
-too were the points of interest, which the party were
-to see before their return.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The journey for the next few days will be uneventful
-enough, will it not?” said Mr. Graham, as he
-pulled up for a moment alongside of Onrai’s elephant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, we will have little to break the monotony
-between here and the field of brilliants, but the
-country is beautiful and I think you will find it all
-interesting,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is all interesting to me,” said Mr. Graham, “but
-I wished to know if there was anything of special interest,
-such as mines and quarries.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, nothing of that kind,” said Onrai, “but wait
-a minute; there is a deserted mine or something,
-which has never been explored by any of my people,
-since I can remember, and I cannot tell whether it be
-a mine or well or natural hole in the ground. It is
-about the width of the avenue and goes down, down,
-down, far below where the eyes can reach. I have
-only looked down this dark hole when I have been
-passing and know positively nothing about it, but if
-you would like to do so, we will halt there to-morrow
-and go down with ropes and explore it as far as we
-can. A villa stands near in which the ladies can wait
-for us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>“I should like to see what this curious place is,”
-said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, then, it is settled, we will explore it to-morrow,”
-said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham again rode up alongside of Mr. Bruce,
-and telling him of the hole in the ground, had his interest
-aroused at once. All along the track of the
-storm many men were at work, but for some time past
-none had been seen.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is strange, is it not?” asked Harry of Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, decidedly so,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But, look, what is that in the distance?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It looks like a body of men,” answered Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Perhaps they have congregated there for some
-special work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No further comment was made about these men.
-They could now be plainly seen standing in a circle.
-They were not working as far as could be seen, but
-were standing with heads bowed as if contemplating
-something on the ground before them. They now saw
-the King and his party approaching, and one of their
-party hurried to the avenue and came towards the
-travelers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He seems to be excited over something,” said Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, he acts differently than most other men I
-have seen in this country,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“May be they have made a discovery.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Something agitates him,” said Harry, “that is
-sure.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man now came near, and seeing that it was the
-King and his party he stopped, and making a respectful
-bow, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>“I have come, oh, King, not knowing that you was
-of the party, to call attention to a strange being which
-we have found in the field. We know not whether it
-be human or not, and we would ask you to look at it
-and tell us how to act with it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Go, we will follow,” said the King, and the party
-followed the man from the avenue into the field to the
-left.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The body of natives moved, upon seeing the King
-and party approaching, to one side, disclosing the object
-which had so interested them. The party looked
-and saw the body of an African negress with a child
-strapped to her back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But how had it gotten here?</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXVII.<br /> <span class='large'>IN THE HOLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Yes, it was a negro mother and her babe. The body
-was that of a slight woman, weighing not more than
-one hundred pounds, and perfectly black. The babe
-was probably three months old, and was strapped to
-the back of her mother. The features of the mother
-were flat and broad, and showed but little intelligence.
-Both bodies were considerably mutilated; this being
-caused, very likely, by the storm; not a rag of clothing
-covered the bodies. Silently the native men and
-women stood gazing on the strange figures; they could
-offer no explanation on this as to how these bodies
-had come here or from whence they had come; they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>looked at the bodies and then at the white strangers
-as if to trace some likeness, but there was none, and
-this puzzled them all the more. Involuntarily they
-glanced into the heavens, as if expecting to see a new
-planet looming up in the midday sun from which these
-black bodies had fallen. That they had come from the
-same world which they themselves inhabited—that
-world which was theirs alone, they could not believe,
-of course.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai looked at one of the guests and then at another,
-as if expecting some explanation from them, but
-they offered none; they being nearly as much in the
-dark as was he. But finally Onrai, stepping up to Mr.
-Bruce, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You know so much of the heavens and of the stars,
-can you not tell me whence came this woman!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can only offer one explanation,” answered Mr.
-Bruce, “and that is that the woman and child were
-caught up by the great storm and blown from their
-own country into this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah,” said Onrai, “that explanation maybe truthful,
-and looking over his people he called them all closely
-about him and told them what Mr. Bruce had said. It
-seemed to satisfy them, but it raised their curiosity to
-a greater extent, and they crowded more closely about
-the bodies. The hot sun had poured down on these
-bodies until they were in a bad state of decomposition
-and our friends soon moved away, leaving the find
-wholly in possession of the natives.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What shall we do with these bodies?” asked Onrai
-of Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I would order them burned,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So Onrai told some of the men to throw together a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>pile of wood and lay the bodies on it; this was soon
-done and the torch was then applied. As the flames
-shot into the air, licking the reeking flesh off the bodies,
-our friends again mounted and moved on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think of this, Mr. Bruce?” asked Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can only say what I have already said to Onrai,”
-answered Mr. Bruce. “The force of the storm must
-have blown this woman and her child over the cliff and
-thus far into the heart of the land.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you not think that another explanation might
-be made of their appearance?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There may be many explanations made,” answered
-Mr. Bruce, “but if this country is impregnable, how
-else could this woman and her child reach here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think myself that the storm has played a great
-part in this woman’s appearance in this part of the
-country, but I cannot help but think that she was this
-side of the cliffs before the storm,” answered Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If that be so, then these people have lived in ignorance
-of this tribe’s having taken up a residence in this
-country,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Graham, “but these Onians very
-seldom visit the northwestern part of this country, as
-Onrai has said, and this tribe might have found an entrance
-and settled in a fertile part near the cliffs, and
-may now be living there in total ignorance of their
-having entered a country which has for ages been shut
-in from the rest of the world?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This may all be so,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I would
-rather cling to my theory.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I would gladly accept your explanation,” said Mr.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>Graham, “if it were not for that part of it, which says
-that the woman was blown over the cliffs. Now, if
-this storm had started on the western side of these
-cliffs, the cliffs themselves would have broken the
-force, or destroyed it entirely before it reached this
-side. Therefore, I claim that the storm must have
-started from this side of the cliff.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When put in that way,” said Mr. Bruce, “you almost
-convince me that I have made a mistake. But
-whatever the way in which this woman reached this
-country, I believe that we will hear more of it. It
-would be strange indeed if we should find a race of
-negroes quietly villaged in this country.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, there is a possibility that we may,” said Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Off to the right, in a clump of trees, is now seen a
-villa and the party made for it, it now being nearly
-midday. Once in the cool villa, and all thought of
-the morning adventure was forgotten. Lunch was
-served and then came the afternoon siesta.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Late in the afternoon they again started, intending
-to ride until late in the evening. The journeys in the
-cool of the evening were delightful. There was always
-a breeze coming off the lake at this time and it
-was very refreshing after the close, warm air of the
-day. Along toward evening the villa, which they had
-occupied on the evening of the storm, was passed.
-The storm had made great ravages here, tearing up
-immense trees by the roots and piling them one above
-the other. The earth was gouged out in places to a
-depth of twenty feet, and all along the track of the
-storm were immense piles of debris.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Thoughts of the storm had long since passed from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>the minds of our friends; they were interested only in
-the far northwest toward which they were headed, and
-which promised them so many surprises and adventures.
-This northwest was almost unknown even to
-the natives; they knew certain parts of it very well,
-such as the field of diamonds and one or two other
-points, which had come under their notice for some
-special reason. But taken as a whole very little was
-known of the country, and for this reason Mr. Bruce
-and the others expected to make some very interesting
-discoveries. The country had wonderful resources;
-every known part of it producing certain products,
-which made it a veritable Eldorado, and it might be
-expected that the northwest held resources which
-would astonish all, even Onrai and his people. The
-field of diamonds alone was enough to make this part
-of the country interesting to the strangers, and for
-this alone they had started on this journey.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The following morning the party was up and off
-exceptionally early, long before the sun had risen.
-They were only to make half a march that day, for
-the shaft, which Onrai had spoken of on the previous
-day, was to be explored. That is, men were to be
-lowered into it and if the bottom could be reached and
-openings found leading from it, then all of the men of
-the party were to go down and explore these. Such
-was the programme laid out for the day and with this
-prospect of new diversions the men started off with
-happy hearts.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Each day now was bringing them nearer to the great
-northwest and the cliffs were growing plainer as they
-advanced. The country began to assume a wilder appearance;
-still there were well-kept fields and numerous
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>farm villas and many men at work in the fields.
-At another point to-day they had passed a great herd
-of elephants, which had been brought from the city to
-recuperate, the former hospital having been almost
-entirely destroyed by the storm. These elephants, like
-many others which they had passed, had followed
-them until driven back by the attendant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The morning was getting pretty well-advanced and
-the hopes of reaching the shaft shortly were making
-the men keep up a constant watch on both sides of
-them for fear of passing it. It was partially hid in a
-piece of woods which bordered the lake at this point
-for some distance. None of the party knew the exact
-locality of the opening and so care had to be taken in
-order not to pass it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think of this hole in the ground?”
-asked Mr. Graham of Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not know what to think of it,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“but I do know that it is a very strange thing that
-these people should be in ignorance of its origin. It
-seems to me that such things would start the curiosity
-in these people, but I have seen very little of this article
-in their make-up. They did look a little bewildered
-yesterday when they saw the negress and child,
-but I will wager you a shilling they have forgotten all
-about it by this time. This very lack of curiosity in
-these people almost puts me out of patience with
-them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may be, though,” said Mr. Graham, smiling at
-Mr. Bruce’s impatience, “that it is better that they
-have left to us the exploring of this extinct mine or
-well, or whatever it is; anyway I would feel better
-satisfied finding something, which is not already known
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>by this people. There goes one of the attendants now
-towards the trees; perhaps we have reached the
-hole.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And they had, for the fellow, pulling aside some
-underbrush, disclosed a large, dark opening running
-straight into the ground. The wind seemed to be rushing
-into this hole with great force. He turned and motioned
-to the party and they rode toward them. All dismounting,
-ropes were procured and tied to the trunks
-of the trees, surrounding the hole. A glance down
-the dark aperture would have been enough for most
-men, but for those here assembled, the blackness but
-whetted their curiosity and desire to investigate. A
-lighted torch was thrown down, but the fearful wind
-which rushed down the hole extinguished this before
-it had fallen far.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us all go down in a bunch and with our combined
-efforts we may be able to keep our feet,” Harry
-said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so it was decided; Mr. Bruce, Mr. Graham and
-Harry and Onrai were to go down, well tied together,
-only allowing enough freedom for the limbs to move
-easily. A small supply of food and a few skins of water
-were put up and strapped to the back of each and several
-torches were also taken. It was strange, but Onrai
-seemed to take quite as much interest in the contemplated
-subterranean journey as did the other members
-of the expedition, and he showed more enthusiasm than
-he had at any time since the arrival of the strangers.
-This was the first opportunity though that he had had
-to display any enthusiasm, for everything in this country
-had been familiar to him since childhood and he
-could hardly be expected to show any great interest in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>things. But now, though by the eagerness displayed
-by his guests, he had also had his curiosity aroused and
-he was really impatient to get started.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are you ready, Onrai?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am,” answered Onrai, “and eager to start. If
-there is anything new in my country, I want to know
-it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I think you will be surprised by the things
-that you will see and learn to-day,” said Mr. Bruce.
-“That is, if the passage-way and its gale of wind are
-any criterion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Tis well, let us start,” Onrai answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All bade the ladies good-bye, Enola almost crying
-because Mr. Bruce forbade her accompanying them.
-Sedai was left to look out for the interest of the
-women folks.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The four men were now tied together, and many
-sturdy hands grabbing the strong rope, they were lowered
-over the side of the hole. Slowly they descended,
-each moment nearing the passage. Suddenly,
-without any warning, they were swung in, and
-the line giving way, they landed on the floor of the
-cavern. They scrambled to their feet in the dark, for
-they had not lit the torches in descending, and by
-keeping breast to back and throwing themselves well
-against the wind by leaning as far back as possible,
-they were enabled to keep their feet and advance.
-The angle was reached and they turned; now the
-wind caught them full force again, and it was hard to
-keep an upright position. They were in hopes of reaching
-another passage though, through which the wind
-did not rush with such force, and where they could
-keep their torches lit. If they could not find such a one,
-they might as well return, for they could explore or
-learn nothing in this Egyptian darkness.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id003'>
-<img src='images/i_208fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic003'>
-<p>“Grinning at them with open mouths and sightless eyes.”—<i>Page <a href='#Page_209'>209</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>Slowly they proceeded, feeling their way every step,
-and keeping tight against the right wall. Mr. Bruce,
-who was in the lead, suddenly felt an opening on the
-right, and telling his companions to follow him, turned
-into this new avenue. They were now comparatively
-out of the wind and, stopping, they lit a torch. Looking
-about them they saw, grinning at them with open
-mouths and sightless eyes, thousands of human faces.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXVIII.<br /> <span class='large'>PRISONERS IN THE CAVERN OF THE DEAD.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Mr. Bruce, who held the torch, dropped it to the
-floor at the ghastly sight which met his gaze. From all
-sides these horrible visages were looking at them.
-There seemed to be thousands of them; in fact, the
-number seemed unlimited and as the torch flickered
-away on the floor, casting long shadows over these
-sombre surroundings, the scene was enough to curdle
-the blood of the strongest. Mr. Bruce stooped and
-picked up the torch again, he having recovered from
-the shock which the scene first gave him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The hall was about fifty feet wide and ten feet high;
-the depth could not be ascertained because it went
-beyond the vision. They had entered the hall by a
-door about seven feet high from the corridor of winds.
-This hall or chamber was like the corridor hewn out
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>of the solid rock, the ceiling, sides and floor being
-perfectly smooth. The party now began to examine
-the bodies which were arranged in groups about the
-walls and piled in heaps all over the chamber. These
-figures were small, being on an average about five feet
-in length; but the bodies had been well-proportioned
-in life more than likely, but now the skin was drawn
-tightly over the bones; the lips having dried and drawn
-away from the teeth, leaving the grinning, ghastly expression,
-which first struck such horror to the hearts of
-the explorers. The bodies were nude, having no
-covering whatever, but around each, just below the
-arms, was a band of copper. There were no signs of
-embalming cloths at all about the chamber and their
-bodies had seemingly been preserved by a process of
-injection of some powerful fluid, whilst there was a
-natural means of some kind in these underground
-passages which preserved them. The skin was almost
-black and rather thin, having that dull color which
-death or age gives to the skin; it shone like ebony.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce took hold of several of the bodies and
-removing them, found their limbs and arms as pliable
-as in life. This, too, was against all natural and scientific
-principles and could not be explained.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think of all this?” asked Mr. Bruce
-of Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should say that these bodies had been here for
-some time, but how long it would be impossible to
-say,” answered Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, “have you ever seen any
-such people in your country?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never,” answered Onrai, and his face looked puzzled.
-“I cannot understand this at all. Can it be that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>these people have always inhabited these underground
-passages, here under our country? Can this be the
-great death hole, to which the wicked are condemned?”
-and Onrai turned to look about him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no, Onrai, let not such thoughts come into
-your mind,” said Mr. Bruce. “These are dead and
-they know no suffering. If they were, as you suppose,
-they would be alive and undergoing great torture.
-You have been kept in ignorance of the existence of
-these people for good reasons, or it may be that the
-founder of your country knew nothing of this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But are there any of these now living, I wonder?
-This we must learn before returning, so let us go on,
-taking good care not to lose our way,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They accordingly moved along through the death
-chamber, keeping straight ahead. The chamber seemed
-unending and went on and on, with the dead still piled
-in heaps and leaning against the walls. It must have
-taken ages to accumulate these thousands of dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There seems no end to all this,” said Mr. Graham.
-“I would prefer that we get out of this place and into
-another not so thickly populated with the dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It must end some place,” said Mr. Bruce, and he
-had hardly finished speaking, when a wall loomed up
-ahead of him and the chamber was ended.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, we are a nice lot,” said Harry; “there is no
-opening here and we will have to return.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But after looking around for some time, and by
-moving several of the bodies, an opening was discovered
-in one corner. This was small, but after crawling
-through it the party found themselves in another corridor,
-resembling the one of the winds. The hideous
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>sight of the dead was now lost and they passed on
-down a smooth hallway quickly, nothing obstructing
-their headway. On, on they went, the corridor leading
-in a straight line, as near as they could calculate,
-in a southeasterly direction.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should much rather have followed the windy passage,
-if it had been possible,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I,” said Mr. Graham. “But to fight against
-being blown away by that strong current would soon
-have exhausted us. But we may strike it again further
-on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Harry, “and this passage may be leading
-us to great discoveries. I believe that if any of
-the strange race of people are yet alive, they must use
-this passage, for it would be quite impossible for them
-to get through the windy one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How long it must have taken to cut this hall from
-a solid rock,” said Mr. Bruce, “and how many thousands
-of men it must have taken to accomplish this
-immense work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was not done in a day or a year, or in many
-years,” said Mr. Graham. “Still the work looks as if
-it might have been done years or hundreds of years
-ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have made a greater discovery than the one of
-On,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That’s so,” answered Mr. Graham, “for this has
-the additional interest of being underground.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is it possible?” said Onrai, “that my people
-have lived so long over these strange inhabitants
-of the under world and have learned nothing of
-them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your people are not at all curious, Onrai, or they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>would have long ago investigated these things,” said
-Mr. Bruce. “The desire for discoveries is altogether
-lacking in your make-up, and your laws have had a
-great deal to do with it. You believe that yours is the
-only race on this earth and that all things are known
-to you, so you have never thought it necessary to look
-beyond the things that be.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There is much for us to learn here,” said Onrai, a
-puzzled look coming into his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” answered Mr. Bruce, “you know enough to
-make your lives contented and happy and anything
-beyond that would be folly. But that certain things
-exist that you do not know of, there is no doubt; these,
-however, are not necessary to your happiness or well-being,
-and for this reason have been kept from you. I
-would not let the things which you are now learning
-of for the first time, worry me in the least if I were
-you. Whatever these underground passages may
-bring to light, they cannot in the least effect you or
-yours; so it would be best not to give these any serious
-thought yourself or ever mention them to your
-subjects.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I believe you are right,” said Onrai, “for we are
-happy now and any greater knowledge might make us
-discontented, giving us a desire to reach out and learn
-more, thus making us restless. I can now realize how
-this can be.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were still following the smooth-floored corridor
-and throughout its entire length it had kept up
-that uniform width and height. The angle formed by
-the meeting of the floor and walls was sharp and perfectly
-cut as could be, and the beautiful arched roof
-showed wonderful skill in chiseling. They all walked
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>along, after this conversation, each one engrossed in
-his own thoughts, when Onrai, who was in the lead,
-stopped, and stooping, picked up a peculiar-shaped
-spear; the handle was short and made of the backbone
-of some kind of fish; the head was long and
-narrow and made of a very flinty stone; this head was
-set into the handle, a slot being cut into the latter for
-this purpose; a cement was used to fasten this head
-firmly into the handle, it also being bound to it by
-thongs in much the same manner as are all spearheads
-of the African tribe. Examining it more closely,
-stains were seen on the head and handle, and the
-handle was notched in several places. The spear
-might have been left there a day before or a century
-before; it was in a perfect state of preservation, but
-the substance of which it was made was very nigh indestructible,
-so it might have laid there for ages.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This passage has never been used since that spear
-was left here,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why do you think so?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because,” answered Mr. Bruce, “if it had been
-the spear would undoubtedly have been picked up, as
-it is more than likely that these are not so easily
-made as to be thrown away or left without being
-picked up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If that be so,” said Mr. Graham, “it tells nothing
-that we may want to know. We are only interested
-in the live portion of this race, if there be any of them
-yet extant, and we want some clew that will lead us to
-them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I can say this much,” said Mr. Bruce, “that
-we will find them ahead of us if we find any at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>“Another indefinite declaration,” said Mr. Graham,
-“tell us how you know this, Mr. Bruce?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why this spearhead was lying, turned in that
-direction in which we are going and when it was
-dropped, it was but natural that its loser was moving
-in the same direction, for in falling it would naturally
-fall that way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There is considerable in that argument,” said
-Harry, “and I agree with you, Mr. Bruce, that whoever
-dropped it was the last person through here and
-was going in the direction in which we are now
-moving.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, we shall see,” said Mr. Graham, “have you
-made out the stains on the handle, Mr. Bruce?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, but they look very much like congealed blood
-and I suppose they are nothing else. These people
-probably use the spear for killing fish.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why fish,” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, that was only another supposition of mine,”
-said Mr. Bruce. “You see it is hardly likely that
-these people have any land animals down here. Such
-things have never been found yet or at least not in
-any numbers. But fish in subterranean rivers and
-lakes are very prevalent; in fact an underground
-river or lake is seldom found without these fish, some
-of them, as is the case in the great Mammoth Cave of
-Kentucky, being without eyes. Then, we know that
-these people find fish in some part of their underground
-home, for we have the proof of it here,” and Mr.
-Bruce held up the spear handle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But do you know that that is fish bone?” asked
-Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>“Well, from what I have learned on the subject, I
-should say that it was,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it looks like a bone in the fish we catch in the
-lake,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, it is decided that it is a fish bone and the
-stains are made by the fish blood,” said Mr. Bruce.
-“Now, we know that somewhere in this cave there is a
-river or lake and I would say that the passage, which
-we are now traversing, is but the avenue leading to
-the death chamber. These people probably realize
-that it is best to have the dead well-removed from the
-living quarters, for the same reason, may be, that we
-do this above. Therefore we are on the right road to
-the living habitations of this people, if there be any
-of them now living. Listen,” and as Mr. Bruce,
-ceased speaking, he stopped and the others following
-his example, a low buzzing sound was heard like the
-hum of many voices.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is it,” whispered Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hard to tell,” said Mr. Bruce, “but we will soon
-learn for it is growing louder,” and raising his torch he
-blew it out, leaving them in perfect darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What shall we do?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is hardly safe to look forward, and it looks
-decidedly cowardly to retreat, and we will be an open
-mark if we stand still,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us move a little further forward,” said Mr.
-Graham, “and we may find a hiding place. If we
-find that these people are coming this way and are in
-great numbers, we can keep ahead of them until we
-reach the death chamber, when we can barricade the
-small entrance with the bodies and in this way hold
-off an army.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>They all agreed to this and moved a little further
-forward. The passage at this point made a slight
-turn to the south and as our friends rounded the
-corner they came in sight of a number of lights far
-down the passage. These were being carried by a
-number of beings, who looked, at this distance, to
-resemble the bodies in the death chamber. Our
-friends stopped, not knowing whether to turn and go
-back or keep on for a short distance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look well down on the left,” said Harry, “don’t
-you see that hole in the wall?” They looked and all
-saw it, but it was fully half-way between the torchbearers
-and themselves. It would be almost suicidal to
-try and reach it, but Mr. Bruce, who was looked on as
-the ringleader of the party, said: “Come, keep close to
-the left wall and walk sideways and step as quickly as
-possible. I think we can reach the hole before they
-see us. They seem to be engrossed in something else
-at present and not expecting to find any strangers in
-this hole, which has never seen one before probably.
-We may escape them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so saying, Mr. Bruce took the lead. They hurried
-forward, walking with their backs to the wall.
-The natives were coming towards them slowly and
-each moment brought them into better view. Their
-figures were perfectly nude and of a bluish-white color;
-looking as if they might have been black originally,
-but long absence from the light of day had faded them
-to the present color. They were not over five feet in
-height and their bodies were slender. They were
-chanting a strange dirge in a peculiar tone and this
-did not make the strangers’ position any brighter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Slowly our friends moved toward them and the hole.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>They were still hid in the shadows, but they could
-not expect to be out of the light of the torches much
-longer, for the natives were now getting very near
-them. The hole was nearly reached when a shout
-went up from the natives, but instead of hurrying forward
-they crowded back, apparently afraid to encounter
-the strangers which they saw coming toward
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Keep on to the hole,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They did so, and a moment later reached it and
-passed through. When they were all inside the new
-chamber or hall, they stopped; it being perfectly dark.
-The torchbearers, after running back for a short distance,
-stopped, and again resuming their chant, started
-forward. Our friends stood perfectly still, and threw
-themselves on the defensive. They could see the light
-through the doorway growing brighter and brighter,
-and could hear the voices growing louder. Had they
-seen them, or was the shout caused by something else?
-It might have been a part of the strange proceedings
-which they were now going through.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do nothing until they attempt to enter the opening,”
-said Mr. Bruce, “then use your weapons.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The procession outside came nearer and the chant
-grew louder, as if the strange people would in this
-way strengthen their courage. What would it be,
-fight, or run, or neither? Whatever it was to be they
-would soon know, for now they were at the doorway
-and passing. They are safe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, look,” said Mr. Graham, “the door——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was true. A huge stone was slowly moving into
-the open place, making them prisoners.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXIX.<br /> <span class='large'>THE DEATH-TRAP.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>“Light a torch,” said Mr. Bruce, as he saw the
-stone door slowly slide into place.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>One hideous head of a native stooped and looked
-under the lowering door, and shaking a torch in his
-hand, dodged back as if afraid of being charged upon
-by the prisoners. The door fell to its place and a
-torch was lighted at Mr. Bruce’s command, and an inspection
-of their quarters was made. This did not
-take long, for the chamber was only about twenty feet
-square; the ceiling was about the height of that in the
-hall or passage. Try as they would they could discover
-no other opening, nor any opening now, for the
-stone fitted the doorway so perfectly, that not even a
-crack was left to show where this had been.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are in for it,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “and it looks very much as
-if we were here for good, for there is no opening that
-I can see at all, and all our energy and strength would
-be wasted in trying to dig our way out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We must make an effort of some kind,” said Mr.
-Graham, “so let us consider the matter for a moment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They all stopped, and putting their wits to work,
-tried to devise some means for escape. When they
-realized that they were not only entombed in a room
-cut out of the solid rock, but this rock, hundreds of
-feet beneath the surface, the thought was not very
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>cheering; but they were not the ones to give up without
-a struggle. They had stood for some moments
-thinking over their unpleasant position, and trying to
-formulate some plan of procedure, when Onrai, who
-was probably the most helpless of the number, began
-sniffing the air as if he had detected some foreign substance
-in it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you not smell something strange?” said
-Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They all drew in a deep breath. Yes, there was
-something; a nasty odor, which they had not noticed
-before, and it was getting plainer each moment.
-They looked about them, but could see nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may be the torch,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, it is a different smell from that, but we must
-extinguish the torch or the smoke will soon suffocate
-us, if this other smell does not,” and saying this, Mr.
-Bruce blew out the torch. But that fearful smell,
-what could it be? In a short time their eyes began to
-smart.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is smoke of some kind,” said Harry, “and I am
-going to find out from where it is coming.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He relighted the torch, and for a moment the men
-could hardly see, so thick had the smoke become in
-those few minutes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is stifling,” said Mr. Bruce. “Can you see
-where it comes from?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry, who had the torch and who was looking for
-the source of this new danger, examined every nook
-and corner, but could find no hole or opening. The
-smoke was getting thicker each moment, and the men
-were gasping for breath; it would only take a very
-few minutes of this to kill them all; still there seemed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>to be no avenue of escape. These natives had shown
-great cunning in thus allowing them to get into the
-chamber, imprisoning them and choke them to death
-with smoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce took the torch from Harry and started
-inspecting himself. He was staggering about the room
-half-blinded and choked by the smoke, when the torch
-fell from his hands, and falling to the floor went out.
-He stooped to pick it up again, when he felt a draft
-near the floor; he hurriedly relit the torch and placed
-it near the floor; he had to get down onto his knees
-and bend close to the floor before he could see, and
-there, coming in a great broad stream, he saw the smoke
-coming through a crack about an inch in width, and
-five feet in length. The crack ran with the floor, and
-Mr. Bruce at once came to the conclusion that another
-stone door must be at this point, and it had been lifted
-to leave a space for the smoke’s entrance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come quickly,” he called to the others, not knowing
-but that they had already succumbed to the fearful
-smoke, as he could not see them. They had been
-leaning against the opposite wall, fighting off that fearful
-suffocation, when they heard Mr. Bruce’s voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hurry, pull yourselves together and help me, and
-we may escape. Who has the spear? Bring it here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry, who had been holding on to the spear, using
-it for support, staggered towards Mr. Bruce, and
-handed it to him mechanically.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Brace up there, men,” he again called out, and
-they shuffled towards him almost falling. “Now, get
-your fingers into that crack, and lift, lift for your lives,
-for it is our only chance. I will work the spear under
-and hold all you can get. Now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>The men seemed to realize that there was a chance
-to escape, no matter how faint a one, so making a despairing
-effort to overcome the suffocation, which was
-parching their throats and bursting their heads, placed
-their fingers in the cracks, and lifted. They strained
-every nerve, stretched every muscle, and look, it was
-raising. Yes, the huge stone was moving; now it was
-an inch higher, and now two inches higher, and then
-there was a space of a foot under the door, but the
-wider became the space the more smoke poured in,
-and the men were almost ready to drop the fearful
-weight and fall over unconscious. Mr. Bruce realizing
-this, broke the handle of the spear, and placed this
-under the stone just as the men fell exhausted.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This act of his, if delayed one second longer, would
-have cost them their lives, for he had barely gotten it
-under the huge stone when the men dropped. The
-solid straight piece of bone held the stone, however,
-but would he have strength to pull the three men
-through the opening; and would there not be a body
-of their would-be murderers on the opposite side to
-fight him back? He had no time to spend in conjectures,
-however, so catching Harry by the feet he pulled
-him to the hole; he rolled him through and then Mr.
-Graham, but when it came to Onrai, he had to roll
-the man over and over, his body being too heavy to
-move in any other way. And he was fast giving out
-himself, but he must not do so before he got him and
-his friends on the other side of the hole. Getting Onrai
-to the opening and pushing him through, and then
-crawling through himself, he looked about him for the
-generator of this fearful smoke. Groping his way
-about, he stumbled over a large stone brazier in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>which was a powdered substance, and it was this which
-was smoldering and making a dense smoke. Taking
-his water-skin from his back, he quickly poured its contents
-over the smoldering coals and extinguished
-them. He was nearly fainting and he felt that he
-must soon give up; his eyes were nearly blinded, he
-was choking and his head was bursting; he was fast
-losing his senses, but he staggered about the room,
-and finally found an open archway. Through this he
-plunged, falling to the floor, but the air was pure here
-and a cooling breeze was blowing through the apartment,
-and it was this draught probably, which had
-forced the smoke through the crack. Mr. Bruce lay
-still for a moment in the refreshing air, but realizing
-that his three friends were still in the stifling smoke
-and unable to help themselves, he again picked himself
-up, and by rolling them over and over succeeded in
-getting them all in the outer chamber or corridor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But where were the natives? Mr. Bruce had not
-seen or heard them since leaving the death-trap, and
-he could not account for their absence. But he felt
-very thankful for their not having interfered with
-him, for if they had it would have been all over with
-him and his friends. He had his companions in the
-pure air now, and unstrapping the water-bag from
-Harry’s back, he bathed their faces and poured some
-down each parched throat. He worked hard with
-them, and at last brought them all around; but they
-were not able to do much walking for a while, so while
-they were recruiting, Mr. Bruce took the torch and
-reconnoitered. They seemed to be in another corridor,
-somewhat wider than the other, but about the same
-height.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>Mr. Bruce, after following this for some distance, returned
-to his companions and made his report.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What had we better do?” asked Mr. Graham.
-“Turn back or go on?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I say, go on,” said Mr. Bruce, “but if you think
-the risk is too great and wish to return, we will do so;
-what do you say, Onrai?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know not what to say,” said Onrai, “but if you
-would like to proceed, I am willing. I am afraid,
-though, I should be nothing but a hindrance to
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no, Onrai, you must not say that,” said Harry.
-“Such an ordeal as we have just passed through is
-enough to make any man go under; any man but Mr.
-Bruce, and he is a wonder. How did you do it, Mr.
-Bruce?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“By pure force of will,” said Mr. Bruce. “I felt like
-giving up several times, I can tell you; but a man can
-do a good deal, I believe, when his life and the lives
-of his friends depend on it. But don’t let us talk of
-that now. The question is, shall we retreat or advance?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Advance, I should say,” said Harry, “what do you
-say, father?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am willing; but before we run into a trap again,
-rather let us retreat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Agreed,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They now rose, and stretching their legs and taking
-another drink of water, they advanced cautiously
-down the corridor; not knowing what moment their
-escape might be detected and the natives of this hellhole
-be after them again. They had not long to remain
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>in suspense, when suddenly into the corridor
-rushed a mob of howling naked natives, making
-straight for them.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXX.<br /> <span class='large'>THE CAVE DWELLER’S FUNERAL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The howling mob came hurrying toward them;
-their faces distorted with horrible grimaces, their arms
-flying in the air, brandishing spears like the one found
-in the corridor. They came on howling, yelling and
-shouting in a blood-curdling way.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fall back, slowly,” said Mr. Bruce, “but keep in
-this corridor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They retreated slowly, keeping their faces on the
-approaching mob.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If they come too near discharge your pistols in
-their midst,” continued Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The natives were gaining on them fast, but they
-were not moving as quickly as they might, showing
-that they were undecided as to whether it would be
-best to attack the strangers or not. There seemed to
-be about two hundred of them, each bearing a torch
-in one hand and a spear in the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As time went on and they saw the hostile movements
-on the part of the strangers, they became bold and
-moved more rapidly. They were closing up quickly
-when our friends heard a shout in the rear, and looking
-over their shoulders saw another mob of the
-natives closing in on them from that direction.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>“Which shall it be?” said Mr. Bruce, “advance or
-retreat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Advance,” said Harry, “and give those howling
-demons a taste of lead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On all the excursions our friends had carried their
-small arms but had never used them; but they had
-these with them now and it was well that they had
-taken this precaution, for nothing else would have had
-as much effect on this barbarous race of underground
-dwellers, as the noise and explosion of the pistols
-would. Our friends were still standing waiting for the
-men to advance. The natives, seeing that they now
-had their game safe, became wilder in their demonstrations
-and bolder in their movements. The body in the
-rear also hurried forward and in a very short time the
-strangers in this horrible place found themselves very
-sorely pressed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now,” said Mr. Bruce, “make a rush and fire
-as you go. Harry, you and I will take the lead, for it
-is best to go in twos. When the chambers of our
-revolvers are empty, we will drop behind and let Mr.
-Graham and Onrai take the lead. If these beasts do
-not turn and run, charge right into them, for it is our
-only chance. Now, forward, double quick.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men started on a run, discharging their revolvers
-as they went. At each discharge, one of the natives
-would fall, for they were so tightly wedged in the
-narrow passage, there was no chance of missing them.
-As our friends started and the fearful noise of the
-pistols, as they were discharged, rung through the
-cavern, the natives stopped and watched the advance
-with open-mouthed wonder. Then they saw their companions
-dropping one at a time as the weapons were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>discharged, they began to grow uneasy, and then to
-move slowly backward and then, at last, as the full force
-of the panic struck them, they turned and fled down
-the corridor, each trying to outrun the other and
-trampling those under foot who were unlucky enough
-to fall. On, on they flew over the hard surface of the
-cave, occasionally throwing frightened glances over
-their shoulders as they ran; then, seeing those strangers
-still after them, they strove still harder to place a
-greater distance between themselves and their pursuers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Those in the rear of our friends had turned and ran
-in the opposite direction from which they came, when
-they saw their companions retreat. They saw too the
-work of those awful barking, smoke-belching weapons
-and thinking that they might be turned on them in
-the same manner, probably thought it best to get out
-of the way as quickly as possible. This took a considerable
-load from off the minds of our friends, for they had
-feared that these howling barbarians would attack
-them from the rear as they ran. After the first three
-or four discharges of the pistols had started their enemies,
-they had discontinued firing in order to save
-their ammunition, but they kept up the pace and were
-close on the heels of the devils. Suddenly the mob
-turned to the right and disappeared. As our friends
-had thrown away the lighted torch, when first surprised
-by the natives they were now left in total darkness
-again and when the danger disappeared, they stopped
-to hold a consultation. Looking back they saw that
-their former pursuers had also left the corridor and
-this decided them to wait a few minutes for further
-developments.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We must be careful now,” said Mr. Bruce, “for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>these natives may lay in ambush and attack us, as we
-advance or retreat. They are cunning, as they have
-shown by their smoking process, and we must be on
-our guard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think they are so badly scared they will not again
-bother us;” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Perhaps so,” said Mr. Bruce, “but if they have a
-means of attacking us without running any risk of
-personal injury to themselves, you may remain assured
-they will do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are a strange race of men,” said Onrai, “I
-thought, when I first looked upon your people, that
-you were small in stature, but these are very much
-smaller and are hideous. Do you think them human?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Human, yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “but of a very low
-order of humanity. The race has so long inhabited
-these underground dwellings that they have become
-wild and barbarous.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They must be,” said Onrai, “for they are so unlike
-your race. But do you suppose that they have always
-lived here or have they come from another world like
-yourselves? I cannot believe that they have been
-here, right under our fair Land of On, for long, for if
-they had we would have known it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But how would you have known it, Onrai?” asked
-Mr. Graham. “You nor yours have ever investigated
-nor have you ever cared to, and you might have
-gone down to your graves and countless generations
-of those who follow you have done the same, without
-ever knowing that these strange people lived beneath
-your land, in the very bowels of the earth. And, we
-have said so frequently, Onrai, your people have no
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>curiosity and take no heed of things which do not
-directly concern them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is better so, I think,” answered Onrai; “for
-surely you can find no happiness in an undertaking
-like this, can you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, yes, we can,” answered Mr. Bruce, “for in
-the first place it is a pleasure to us to see and learn of
-new and strange things. That is where one’s curiosity
-comes in, you see; and then we enjoy, in a way, the
-excitement which such adventures always bring.
-But at the same time I would not recommend any
-such questionable pleasures to those who have never
-had any desire for them. But we are in a strange
-place and predicament now to be discussing this question.
-We must decide on which way we are going
-and how we are going to proceed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you say, Mr. Graham?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well,” said Mr. Graham, “we have kept in one
-direction so far and I see no reason for returning now.
-Our friends will not worry about us if we do not return
-for two or three days and there are many things
-here which I would like to find out before going back.
-We have proceeded so far and it will be no more difficult
-for us to get back from a short distance beyond
-here than it would be from this point. So let us go
-ahead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Agreed,” said Harry, “and let us keep close
-together, for we may need each other’s immediate
-help.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must move cautiously
-and silently if possible and may be we will pass the
-point where the natives turned off.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With this they moved on, feeling their way by the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>walls of the corridor and keeping close together. A
-braver lot of men it would have been hard to find; in
-fact, not one of these men felt the least fear even after
-their recent experience, unless it might have been
-Onrai, and it was not a fear with him, but more that
-unexplained uncertainty. He had been led to think,
-throughout his life, that his race was the only one inhabiting
-this world and he had first been visited by a
-number of strange people, even coming into his company
-in a strange way. He had accounted for these
-by believing that they had come from another planet.
-This had not worried him but only a few days before,
-while moving through his country his men had found
-a woman and child, which had evidently belonged to
-another race of people. This had set him to thinking
-and now, down here in the bowels of the earth, living
-in caves hewn out of rock, he had found still another
-race, a miserable half-dwarfed race, and Mr. Bruce had
-assured him that these people had lived here for ages,
-probably longer than had his people in the open
-country above. All these things had upset the teachings
-and the beliefs of a lifetime and Onrai now was
-in a doubt as to what to believe. But he felt no fear
-really, but only a disgust, brought on by all this doubt.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party calculated that they had now reached the
-point where the natives had disappeared and the precautions
-were doubled. The floor of the cavern at
-this point was strewn with spears, which had been
-dropped by the frightened natives and it was hard
-work to walk over these in the dark without making
-some noise, but no signs of natives were seen, as it was
-supposed that they had hid themselves in some remote
-part of the cave. After passing this point, the explorers
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>moved faster but did not attempt to light a
-torch.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think that we can be able to find the other
-corridor again, the one by which we entered this
-place?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That’s so,” said Mr. Bruce. “I had forgotten that
-we were now in another corridor.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Harry, “and even if we look for it we
-would not know where to find it. We may wander
-about here for weeks or months and never find our
-way out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, these are disagreeable things which we must
-not think of if we would enjoy this adventure to the
-fullest,” said Mr. Graham. “I can understand that to
-be lost in this hole would be fearful, but we are not
-lost yet, for if we are, we are not aware of the fact; so
-let us not think of that. We must try, however, to keep
-in this corridor or one which leads off from it and to
-know at all times just how many turns we make.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It would be well for us to notch these walls occasionally,
-or in some other way leave marks by which
-we can find our way back,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is a grand idea,” said Harry, “and I will
-commence right here by scratching the wall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The torch was lit and Harry, taking one of the spears,
-attempted to chip the wall with this, but one stone was
-as hard as the other, seemingly, and the spearhead
-would make no impression.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We will have to find some other means than this,”
-said Harry. And stooping, he looked over the floor of
-the cave, in hopes of finding something which would
-cut the hard stone. But he was not successful, so the
-notching was given up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>The corridor still stretched out straight ahead of
-them, and they hurried along as fast as their tired
-limbs would allow their doing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What time is it, Mr. Bruce?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, it is nine o’clock,” answered Mr. Bruce;
-“and to tell the truth I feel as though it were twelve.
-A little rest would not go amiss.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But I do not think it advisable to sleep here,” said
-Mr. Graham, “we are not far enough away from that
-bloodthirsty mob.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “we will hurry on for a while
-yet, and if no side aisle leads off into which we can
-hide for a few hours, we will lie down in this, leaving
-watchers.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For another hour they trudged along, until thoroughly
-exhausted and ready to drop, they decided
-upon taking a short rest. The first watch fell to
-Harry, and he took his stand against the wall, being
-afraid that if he sat down he would go to sleep. The
-others stretched themselves out upon the hard floor of
-the corridor, and in a moment were fast asleep. Harry
-put out the torch for fear of its attracting attention to
-them, should any of the natives happen in the corridor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The moments passed on leaden wings; his eyes grew
-heavy and he began pacing the corridor to keep awake;
-his legs were too weary to longer support his body
-and he squatted down upon the floor with his back
-resting against the side wall. The scenes of the day
-passed through his mind in a dreamy sort of way. In
-a short time he caught himself dozing; then tired
-nature asserted itself and his eyes closed and refused
-to open again; his head dropped to one side and he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>slept. How long he had slept he did not know, but
-he was awakened by a humming noise, which seemed
-far away and yet very close. Starting up and opening
-his eyes he looked far up the corridor in the direction
-in which they were traveling and there he saw a
-procession of torches coming toward him. He hastily
-awakened his companions and telling them what was
-up they held a consultation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It seemed folly to longer go ahead, for these bodies
-of natives might be met continually and to have to
-chase them every few hours would be nonsense.
-Harry had walked up the corridor a ways, while the
-others were talking, feeling his way by the wall when
-his hand, which went out to touch this wall failed to
-come in contact with it; he tried again with the same
-result and then moved his body in that direction
-thinking that he might have wandered away from the
-wall. But there was no wall at this point and after
-moving in this direction for a short distance, he struck
-a match; he could not see very closely, but he understood
-that he was in a side corridor or room of some
-kind. He at once called to his companions and they
-having joined him, they lit a torch; the natives still
-being a great distance up the corridor. This room
-was considerably larger than the one in which they
-had been imprisoned and was evidently a living chamber;
-for in one corner was a raised slab, on which
-were dead coals and some fish offal. The room had
-evidently been used very recently from the looks of
-the fish remains.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the opposite side of the room was another door,
-leading into another corridor, and upon examining this
-corridor it was found to extend only a short distance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>and end against a solid rock. But if there was a
-secret door in this rock, the explorers could not see
-and they had no time to give it a thorough examination,
-because of having to extinguish the torch, the
-natives now getting very close.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What shall we do now?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think,” said Mr. Bruce, “it will be well to hide
-behind the slab on which are the coals and watch the
-procession as it passes. They cannot certainly be
-after us, for they have not had time to get so far ahead
-of us. It is probably another band on their way to
-this part of the cave for some purpose or other.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They took up their positions behind the slab, lying
-on their sides with their heads just above the stone,
-looking for the natives. They could be heard coming,
-chanting a dismal dirge; the glare of the torches
-already lighting up the hall outside. “I would not
-care to be made a prisoner again,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They can’t catch us in the same way here,” said
-Mr. Bruce, “for these arches have no sliding doors.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This may be some holiday celebration,” said Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may be their Day of Resis,” said Onrai, “that is
-if they have a Day of Resis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I doubt their having such a day, Onrai, although
-we do not know what the ceremonies of your Day of
-Resis are, but look they are opposite.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The first one of the procession now came up and
-our friends lowered their heads as they passed, but the
-natives were seemingly oblivious of their presence, the
-explorers grew bolder and raising their heads well
-above the slab watched the procession. First the
-men came, bearing torches stuck on the ends of spears,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>then came a number of men bearing spears alone;
-following these were a number of women each carrying
-a peculiar-shaped fish—a sort of combination fish
-and lizard, as it had four short legs and feet; there
-were a great number of these and it took a long time
-for them to pass; after them came a great number of
-children, ranging, as nearly as the explorers could
-guess, between the ages of five and ten; each of these
-children bore a small piece of coal, which brought to
-the minds of our friends thoughts of the great cave
-which they had crossed in coming to the Land of On.
-Following the children was another body of men and
-it was these men who were chanting. The wailing
-tones of these men, as they came nearer, were fearful
-to hear and our friends felt the cold chills running
-down their backs. These men also carried torches,
-black torches, which looked as though they were made
-of sharpened pieces of coal; they made a very bright
-light and but little smoke. As the men came forward
-it could be seen that they were bearing a very thin
-slab of stone on their shoulders and on the slab lay
-the body of a native. It was a funeral procession.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXI.<br /> <span class='large'>LOST IN THE CAVERN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>They watched the funeral rites, and soon afterward
-discovered that they were lost in the ground, and
-did not know their bearings. They thought they must
-be several miles within, as the direction taken from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>the point where they entered the cave was several days’
-journey from the City of On, and as they had traveled
-nearly due south, or as nearly as they could calculate,
-they must now be a good many miles from the secret
-door. They might take the same corridor which they
-had traversed in coming to the lake, as this would take
-them directly to the hole near which the rest of the
-excursionists were awaiting them; but this was dangerous
-and it was quite possible that before they had
-gone far into this, they would again fall into the hands
-of the natives.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were in a quandary as to what to do. If they
-traveled to the east in quest of the hidden door, they
-might not find it, and before they could again reach
-the long corridor they would be overcome by hunger,
-thirst and fatigue.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What shall we do,” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think,” said Mr. Bruce, “it would be well to strike
-straight for the north wall and when this is reached we
-may find another opening which will take us in a
-roundabout way to the hole leading to the surface.
-You know we left the windy corridor and took one to
-the right. This windy corridor may lead to this cavern
-also. If this were so it would come out further
-to the east, or may be at a point directly south of
-where we are now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Even if that should be so,” said Mr. Graham,
-“could we beat against that wind for so many miles?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid not,” said Mr. Bruce, “but other corridors
-may lead from it, which would carry us into one
-or the other halls which we have already traversed, but
-at a point beyond all danger.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>“It is a chance, at least,” said Harry, “that is, if this
-corridor leads into the cave.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are we beneath the Land of On, now?” asked
-Onrai, who had spoken but seldom since coming into
-this strange place.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Onrai,” said Mr. Graham, “we are under the
-mountains or cliffs which surround your country.
-These though may be said to belong to the Land of On,
-or half of them at least, for they stand on the dividing
-line.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is strange,” said Onrai, “that I should never have
-known of all this or that my people had never learned
-of it before me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For a second time Onrai had spoken thus and the
-events of the past few hours seemed to have made a
-great impression on his mind; he could not realize
-that all these things had existed for years and hundreds
-of years. It all seemed so improbable to one who had
-been taught to believe that his race was the only
-people and that his or their land above the surface,
-was the only country. He had seen strange things in
-the past few hours the only strange things he had ever
-seen in his life, with the exception of our friends, if
-they may be classed under this category.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will have strange tales to tell my people,” said
-Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You must not tell them of these things,” said Mr.
-Graham, “for it would but make them discontented
-and long to see them also. It would be much better
-never to mention these; you can easily evade the subject
-when broached and our people will never say anything.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think they would care to investigate?”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>asked Onrai. “I would never care to come here again
-and I cannot believe that they would ever care to visit
-this place if I should explain to them the danger and
-trouble attending the trip.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it would be better, would it not?” said Mr.
-Bruce, “to obey the laws which have governed you
-for centuries, and which forbids your prying into anything
-which has not already been explained by these
-laws.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I begin to think as you do,” said Onrai, “but I
-doubt my ability to keep from my people, should they
-ask me, the things which I have learned here. We
-have never had secrets, as you have taught me to call
-these things, and I have not learned the art of withholding
-things which I do not wish to say.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing may be said to you about your journey,
-and then it would be easy enough, would it not, to
-keep these things to yourself?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may be so,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were traveling in a good easy walk, and were
-covering considerable ground, but they were growing
-weary and it was decided to rest for a few hours.
-This they proceeded to do, but before they stretched
-out on the hard floor, they blew out the torches so
-that any of the natives, who might be prowling about,
-would not see them and again be on them. The journey
-had been long and they had had but little rest,
-so when they finally lay down and stretched out their
-weary limbs, their eyes soon closed and all was forgotten
-in a very few moments. The hard floor of the
-cave, the memories of the recent events, the fear of
-not again finding their way out of the dark hole, these
-things could not keep them awake for they were worn
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>out, mind and body, and once they had fallen into a
-reclining position, they were soon oblivious to everything.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had been sleeping for hours, it seemed to
-Harry, when he was awakened by a distant cry. It
-sounded to him like the yell of the natives, when they
-had first discovered the strangers. He looked about
-him half dreamily but could see nothing and turned
-over, thinking he would sleep awhile longer as the
-others had not yet awakened. He was just falling off
-again, when that cry broke out just a little shriller
-than before. This time Harry jumped to his feet,
-certain now of its being a human cry. He looked
-about him, he even took a few steps away from his
-sleeping companions, and stopping again, listened.
-No, he could hear nothing; still, he was sure that he
-had not been mistaken. All sleep had now been
-knocked out of him, and feeling refreshed he knew
-that he had been sleeping for some time. He walked
-over to his companions and awakened them, but before
-he had time to interfere or explain to them what it
-was that had awakened him, Mr. Bruce had lit a match,
-and with this, the torch. Harry made a movement as
-if he would extinguish this, and not having heard the
-sound after this second awakening, he thought there
-might be just a possibility of his having been mistaken.
-But he told his companions of the occurrence
-so that they might not blame him if anything should
-come of it later.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I could not say that you were mistaken, Harry,”
-said Mr. Bruce, “but it seems very probable that we
-would see some light if these natives were again on
-our track.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>“Yes,” said Harry, “I don’t suppose they have
-dark lanterns which would give them light, but would
-still keep the light hid from us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They might have such lights,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but we would see the reflection on the ground, at
-least.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had now started again when Harry stopped,
-saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How do we know that we are moving in the right
-direction? We may have turned completely in our
-moving about, and may now be making a bee line for
-the lake.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party stopped, looking at each other in a puzzled
-way. Mr. Bruce’s face lighted up though as he
-asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Did you touch my torch, Harry?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” answered Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, and then we can depend on it, that we are
-moving in the same direction that we were before, for
-I laid down the torch with the burnt end looking in
-the direction we were going when I laid down, and
-when I picked it up and lighted it again, after you had
-awakened us, I remember I was standing facing the
-same way, and I did not turn again before we
-started.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But that tells nothing,” said Mr. Graham, “for we
-may be walking round and round in a circle not a mile
-in circumference. We have nothing to guide us, and
-it very often occurs, in cases of this kind, that the
-travelers who think themselves miles away from their
-starting point will, the next moment, bring up at the
-same spot.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The friends stood and looked at each other as Mr.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>Bruce said this; the terrible truth flashing upon them.
-It was only too true; they were helpless in this great
-dark cavern. They might wander until starved and
-famished, and still be miles from the encircling wall,
-or may be but a few feet from it. It would only be
-chance if they should come up to the wall; not chance
-either, for even chance was barred in this Egyptian
-darkness. It would be the hand of Providence which
-saved them if they should ever now escape from this
-cave. If they had followed the lake until the bridge
-had been reached, they could then have followed the
-old path to the hidden door, and in that way have gotten
-out. But no, the only thought they had in getting
-away from the scene of such carnage, was to leave it
-far behind and to reach their friends as soon as possible.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They realized their mistake, but now it was too late.
-The thought completely prostrated them as its full
-significance dawned upon them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But we must not give up while there is strength
-left,” said Mr. Bruce; “so let us go on in some way,
-even if we are bearing right away from our goal. We
-may be right, you know. Anyway we will never find
-our way out of this by standing still.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They again took up their way, but with a halfheartedness,
-which made every step a task and every
-movement painful. It was strange how these strong
-men, who had just gotten up from a refreshing sleep,
-well and hearty, should so soon be changed to despondent
-beings; their faces looking years older and their
-gait indicating feebleness. Such is the change which
-the awful sense of complete helplessness had wrought
-in these men. They had hit upon a possibility, even a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>probability, and all else had been forgotten from that
-moment they had given themselves up for lost, lost in
-this vast cavern, which had probably been the tomb of
-many others.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When these thoughts took possession of them, they
-could not be persuaded that there was any possibility
-of escape, and it was no wonder they lost hope so
-quickly, for here was a cave miles in extent, without a
-guiding light or post to beckon them on. All was
-dark and still as the death which would so soon claim
-them. For some strange reason, Onrai seemed to be
-more affected than any of the others. He said but
-little, but his face was painful to look at, so frightfully
-changed had it become. He shuffled along, his shoulders
-bent and feet dragging over the ground like a man
-of eighty.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Occasionally he would mutter to himself:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have missed my Day of Resis!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This seemed to be the thing which was worrying
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wait,” said Harry, and they all stopped suddenly,
-for this was the first word which had been spoken by
-any of the party excepting Onrai. “When wandering
-in the cave, as we came,” went on Harry, “I
-remember seeing pieces of coal lying along the path.
-The thought has just occurred to me that these
-marked the path, or else how could the natives find
-their way. Now, if we could find these.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But these would be as hard to find as the border
-wall,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“True,” said Harry, his face again falling, “but it
-is another chance and this makes two.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This cheered them but little, however, and despair
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>took possession of them completely a few moments
-later. They ought to have reached the wall hours
-before, yet there were no signs of it. Suddenly they
-were brought to a stand by the same cry, which had
-awakened Harry. There was no mistaking it now; it
-was human and right in front of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends stopped. There was no mistaking the
-cry now; it was human and only a few feet ahead of
-them. They peered through the gloom but could see
-nothing; the man, whoever he was, could not be far
-away, so they moved forward and a moment later a
-dark mass was seen lying on the floor of the cave just
-ahead of them. As they hurried up to this, another
-cry went up from the heap. Our friends now came
-up to the object and found it to be a native. As they
-approached and stood over him, he raised his head and
-looked at them in a half-scared way and then tried to
-crawl away from them. Seeing them following him
-he raised to his feet and staggered along for a short
-distance but again fell. The party now saw that his
-left side from knee to shoulder was badly lacerated,
-but how had he come into this condition? Had he
-been wounded in a fight or in a blast and brought to
-this fearful place to die?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Although this man was probably one of their captors
-and would have helped to kill them if they had
-not turned the tables on them, still the man’s plight
-was so pitiful and his condition so helpless that their
-sympathy went out to him at once and coming up
-close to where he had fallen, Mr. Graham stooped and
-taking the bag of water from his back, poured its contents
-over the raw wounds of the native. He writhed
-under the momentary pain, but realizing that they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>wished to help him, he tried to facilitate their good
-acts by turning his side to them, exposing the
-wound. He kept looking at Onrai, as if the King
-had a fascination for him, which he could not resist
-and at last he raised his hand and motioned to Onrai
-to approach. Onrai came up to him and the native
-looked at him for fully a moment, then addressed him
-in the language of On.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai started back completely surprised by hearing
-his own language spoken by this man. The native’s
-face fell, showing that he had built much on this disclosure
-to the King and the result had bitterly disappointed
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Speak to him, Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai again stepped up to the native and asked him
-how he had become acquainted with his language.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The story is long and I am hurt,” answered the
-man, “but if you will carry me to the lake, where my
-companions were killed, and let me there wash my
-wounds, I will tell you all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The lake,” said Mr. Graham, “why, my good man,
-that is many miles away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” answered the man, “it is only a short distance
-from here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends looked at each other with astonishment;
-they had seen the lake upon their entrance; their fears
-then had been realized; they had been describing a
-circle and were now but a few feet from the starting
-point. But there was now hope and the men carefully
-lifted the native and carried him in the direction indicated
-by him and in less than five minutes they were
-again standing by an underground lake. The man
-was laid on the floor of the cave and his wounds
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>washed again with water. Harry tore from his tunic
-a piece of the silk and this was bound about the
-wound.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you know a way by which we can reach the
-death chamber without traversing that part of the
-cave where your people live?” Onrai asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do,” said the man, “but I could not explain so
-that you could understand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But if we took you with us, could you guide us?”
-asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But am I strong enough to walk?” asked the man,
-and he tried to rise to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You may be able to walk a part of the way and
-we will carry you the remainder,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can guide you,” said the stranger, and his face
-lighted up with hope as he thought that he might yet
-see that great outside world of which he had heard.
-The more the native thought of this, the more probable
-it seemed to him and with this great hope springing
-into life came renewed energy, and after awhile,
-when Mr. Bruce had bandaged the wounds well and
-he had been given something to eat he stood erect and
-declared that he could walk as well as ever. But this
-he could not do, although with help he got along very
-well for a time, and then Onrai picked him up in his
-powerful arms and carried him as if he were a babe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Before leaving the lake they had caught some fish
-after the method of the natives and had cooked them
-over a slow fire. This they hoped would last them
-until they reached the upper world. They found the
-line of coals and found it easy work to follow it. The
-way was long but not tedious, still there was that desire
-to leave this place which made the time long and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>the journey anything but pleasant. The native was
-doing very well with the help of Onrai and would very
-frequently relate such things concerning his people and
-country which would help to while away the time.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We do not know,” said he, “when first our people
-came into this underground world, nor do we know
-from whence they came; but we do know from traditions
-handed down, that we have had this world many,
-many ages. Then our old tunnels have been abandoned
-many ages, how many we know not, nor do we
-know why these have been laid aside for new ones,
-unless it be because new ones had to be built in order
-to keep down our population.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you mean by that?” inquired Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why,” said the native, “our people increase very
-rapidly and we can only keep them within bounds by
-constantly blasting these tunnels. Each blast costs
-the life of one of our men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But what of the women,” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The women and criminals are all fed to the water-monster,”
-said the man.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But are none of these placed in the death chamber?”
-again asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“None,” answered the native. “The death chamber
-is only for the men. At the end of these long
-tunnels, is the Tunnel of Wind, which keeps a circulation
-of air in all of them. The wind flies through this
-tunnel, making no sound and giving no warning, and
-when once in its awful clutch you are lost.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But how do you embalm the bodies of your men,”
-questioned Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“With a preparation of coal and yellow stone, which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>we find in one part of our country. These are pounded
-into a powder and are then mixed with fish oil and
-rolled into small cakes and left to dry. These we burn
-beneath the bodies and the smoke puts them in a state
-of preservation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends had now reached the wall and were
-about to enter the tunnel indicated by the native when
-a body of natives jumped forth only a few feet distant
-and rushed onto them. The explorers started back
-and seeing that there was a great number of them, decided
-on retreating. They accordingly followed the
-wall to the east, running as fast as they could with the
-wounded native. The natives were following them
-closely, and our friends, seeing another tunnel, opening
-out from the cave, turned into it and hurried forward.
-The natives were hurrying after them. On they
-rushed covering mile after mile, until breath and
-strength were nearly exhausted. The natives had
-called out to them in their language to drop the one
-of their number which Onrai was carrying. The man
-interpreted this to Onrai but it only had the effect of
-making him hold him all the tighter. But after a while
-the natives began to drop off one by one and our
-friends were thinking of turning on them, when they
-saw their tunnel ending in one running at right angles
-with it. Hurriedly they pushed forward and were just
-on the edge of the cross-tunnel, when the native called
-out:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not in there, it is the Tunnel of Wind;” but it
-was too late. They were launched into it and were
-even now in the power of the mighty wind.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXII.<br /> <span class='large'>THE TORTUOUS TRAMP.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Our friends might have turned and faced the natives
-but they were still a great number of them following,
-and the capture of the strangers would have
-been certain if they had tried to fight it out. Their
-treatment at the hands of these natives had been such
-that they might expect nothing else but death if they
-were again captured, so the thought of taking any
-risk by fighting had not occurred to them until the last
-moment. There was but one way to escape these beings
-and that was by flight and they had been so intent
-on making their escape in this way, that they had
-forgotten for the moment the windy corridor, their
-former experience in this and the experience of the
-native of On, which their new companion had so recently
-related. They had rushed madly forward, caring
-little where the cross corridor led, so long as it enabled
-them to keep ahead of their pursuers. And they
-had dashed into the windy corridor, not giving it a
-thought and were now being blown through this at
-break neck speed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It would be impossible for human being to stand
-alone in this gale, and in an instant the men were
-thrown violently forward and were now rolling over
-and over unable to stop themselves. Onrai, although
-he carried the wounded native, was the first in the
-tunnel and was now some feet ahead of his companions,
-but was being borne on just as fast as the others.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>The native had fallen behind him and his wounded
-body was suffering fearful tortures in this violent exercise;
-each time the wounded side would strike the
-rock a cry of pain would escape him. Mr. Bruce was
-right back of the native, and after a while managed to
-call to Onrai to work himself toward the wall, if possible,
-and get head on to the wind and thus offer less
-resistance to the awful gale. Onrai immediately began
-edging his way toward the wall and would have
-succeeded in doing this if the native had not struck
-him full force on the side, thus starting him rolling
-again. But Onrai had caught the native and had
-clung fast to him and they were not moved nearly so
-rapidly, being together. As a consequence Mr. Bruce,
-Mr. Graham and Harry came bowling along and
-bumped into them, and as they did this the men
-grabbed each other, and held on, and in this way they
-were all joined and the wind could no longer move
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now,” said Mr. Bruce, “let us get into position
-and try to regain our feet, and in single file, as we did
-upon our first entering this corridor, try to resist its
-awful power.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They worked around until one was immediately behind
-the other, and at a given signal, first rose to one
-knee and then to both knees, and in this way continued
-until they were standing on their feet. The poor native
-asked them to leave him in the corridor to die, but
-they would not hear of this, and Onrai again threw
-him over his shoulder, when they were ready to move.
-They started, leaning well back so to offer greater
-resistance to the wind, but it was hard work tramping
-along in this darkness, frequently hitting up against
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>the walls, and bruising their already sore bodies. And
-then the uncertainty of where the tunnel would finally
-land them, was making things all the more unpleasant.
-They could not possibly guess where this would lead
-them; they had had some experience in the tunnel
-before, and had heard more about it from the native,
-but all this had told them nothing. They knew that
-this gale of wind must have an outlet some place, but
-what sort of place was this? Would it be a shaft
-leading to the surface as did the shaft which seemed
-to be its source? Would it take them back to the
-great cavern, or to the center of the earth, or where?
-The thought was maddening, but they could do nothing
-but go with it, wherever it might lead them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had gone on in this way for miles, they
-thought, and their bodies were bruised and exhausted;
-still there was no way to stop and rest even for a moment;
-they would have to keep up the awful rush
-until too exhausted to longer keep their feet, they
-would drop and be blown—where? To death, surely.
-Onrai, who was still carrying the native, tried hard to
-keep up, but he was fast giving out, and our friends
-knew that when he should do so, their mainstay was
-gone, and hope might be abandoned. Onrai suddenly
-stumbled, and would have fallen had not Mr. Bruce,
-who was next to him, held fast, thus saving him and
-may be the others.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is wrong, Onrai,” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was something on the floor,” said Onrai. He
-had hardly said this when he stumbled again, and this
-time Mr. Bruce lost his hold, and Onrai went down
-bearing the native with him. The others threw themselves
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>back, and managed to save themselves from
-falling.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you get up, Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will try in a moment,” said Onrai. “But can
-you take the native?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The others now held on to Mr. Bruce, and he
-stooped and raised the native.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you stand?” asked Mr. Bruce of the native.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” the man answered; but when Mr. Bruce
-lowered him to the ground, the poor fellow’s legs gave
-way under him, and he would have fallen had not Mr.
-Bruce held him. He then raised him again with the
-others’ help, and threw the man over his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai had risen and had again taken his place at
-the head of the column. But they had noticed something;
-the wind was not blowing so violently in this
-part of the tunnel. They could not account for this,
-neither did they try to, but it made their progress much
-easier. And another thing which was being forced on
-their notice, was the great number of loose stones
-which covered the floor of the tunnel at this point;
-it must be that the tunnel here had never been finished
-completely, or it might be that the rock, being softer
-at this point, had crumbled and fallen from the ceiling.
-They were suddenly brought up by Onrai striking violently
-against a rock, which seemed to end the tunnel.
-For a moment they stood still, Onrai having been
-shocked in being brought up so suddenly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is it, now?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is the end of the tunnel,” said Onrai, “or else
-we have suddenly turned in our course and have struck
-the side wall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>“Move to your right, and see if there be an opening,”
-said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai did so and then moved forward again.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It seemed to be a projection,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He kept his hand on the rock and followed its curves
-closely until they were on the other side of it and at
-last they were out of the fearful wind.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Have you a match?” asked Mr. Graham of Mr.
-Bruce. “If you have, light a torch and let us see each
-other. Onrai move about and see what kind of a
-place we are in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce fumbled about his tunic for a moment and
-then produced a match; this flickered for a moment
-as he applied it to the torch and then a bright light
-lit up the scene about them. They were surprised at
-the strange scene, for they were no longer in the
-smooth walled and floored tunnel, but in a natural
-cave, which looked very much like the great cavern;
-but whether it was the same or not, they could not say.
-The ceiling was high above their heads and could just
-be seen in the dim rays of light. The wall to which
-belonged the projecting rock, behind which they were
-now standing, was ribbed and seamed and was the only
-one to be seen. The cavern had widened until they
-could not see across it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If this be the large cave then we are safe, for all
-we have to do is to look for the hidden door,” said
-Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But I do not think it is the same,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“for the reason, that never, in the large cavern, did we
-feel this draught or wind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is so;” said Harry, “we must have struck
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>another cave altogether, and it is probably all the worse
-for us that we have.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why do you think so?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, because we knew how to get out of the other,
-but how to find an opening to the outside world here,
-we have no idea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I believe, though,” said Mr. Bruce, “that if we can
-hold out longer, we will come to a shaft leading up to
-the surface.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There must be some great hole leading to the surface,
-which causes this draught.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It would be well for us to take some rest before
-trying it again,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But what of the poor native?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had forgotten him in their surprise at finding
-themselves where they did, and the poor fellow had
-laid on the floor of the cave almost dead with pain and
-fatigue. They went to work on him, though, and used
-very nearly all of the little water left, bathing his
-wounds. Then they rearranged the bandages and
-fixed them as comfortable as possible, so that he might
-rest; then they also laid down and were soon asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The native laid for a long time with his eyes closed,
-completely exhausted; but he could not sleep, and
-after a while his eyes again opened, and he looked
-about him. The torch had been left in a crevice in
-the projecting rock, and it threw its fitful glare about
-them. The ceiling arched far above them, the torchlight
-throwing long shadows along its rugged crevices; the
-wall at his side he could follow with his eyes for some
-distance, but it was then lost in the gloom. He tried to
-penetrate this gloom and look far beyond and find there
-a ray of that same light which he had heard his friends
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>tell about. If he could only see such a light, then he
-would know that these kind companions, who had done
-so much for him, when they could have left him behind
-to die, he would know then that they were safe, and
-that they would again reach their friends. He cared
-little for himself, for his life had never known any of
-that strange feeling which he had heard his present
-companions speak of. He was nothing but a burden
-and retarded their progress. Oh, if he could but die
-before they again awakened, it would be so much better
-for both him and those who had so long kept him
-with them, even when they would have been fully justified
-in leaving him behind. Suddenly he starts and
-half rises. What was that he saw away off there in
-the darkness? Was it a light? Yes, several of them.
-They were very dim; in fact he could hardly say they
-were lights, but they surely resembled the lights of
-torches in the distance, and they were growing thicker.
-He could see great numbers of them moving about
-like will-o’-the-wisps, or was it his fevered brain which
-was calling up these phantom lights? He raised a
-little higher to look at the things about him so as to
-assure himself that he was still in his right mind and
-would then let his gaze penetrate the gloom, seeking
-the strange lights.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, he could not be mistaken, they were torchlights;
-but did they belong to his people or some other strange
-people, who inhabited this part of the cave. He could
-not tell this, and as he was not certain that there were
-others near them, he determined to awaken his companions.
-Leaning over and touching Onrai, who was
-lying next to him, he wakened him and then pointing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>into the darkness said, “Look, do you not see the
-lights?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai looked long and carefully before he spoke,
-then said, “Yes, they must be,” and waking his other
-companions he bade them look also.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was soon decided by all that there were others in
-the cavern beside themselves, but who these others
-were was the question, and could only be answered by
-getting closer to them. Eating a small lunch of fish
-and merely wetting the lips with the little water which
-they had, they again started, Onrai carrying the native.
-They blew out the torch before starting, thinking it
-best not to attract attention with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The strong wind, too, which still blew from out the
-tunnel, would make it almost impossible to keep the
-torch lit. So they stumbled along in the darkness,
-feeling their way as best they could, but receiving frequent
-bumps, which bruised their bodies and exhausted
-their patience; but they kept the flickering
-lights in view.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The air was, for some reason or other, getting much
-cooler, and the explorers began to shudder, and hurry
-as they would, the exercise would not keep them warm.
-Every moment now the wind blew colder, and seemed
-to come from a direction to the right. The scant
-clothing, which had covered their bodies at the start,
-had mostly been torn away in the rough experiences
-which they had had, and their bodies were almost
-laid bare to this merciless cold. And the poor native
-had nothing on whatever, excepting a bandage, which
-bound his side.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were nearing the lights very rapidly, and now
-dark forms could be seen moving about. But the cold
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>had grown so intense, they doubted if they would be
-able to hold out until they reached the strangers.
-When these were reached what might they expect?
-Would they be antagonistic or friendly; they could
-not be a body of the tribe which they had already
-found, for the native now with them had never heard
-of such a cold region as this, and had never seen one
-of his tribe wearing clothing, and it would be an utter
-physical impossibility to remain here and not wear
-clothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But who were they then? It mattered little, for
-they must seek aid of them. So stumbling and falling,
-their benumbed flesh freezing to the bone, they hurried
-on as fast as they could. They had again clasped
-hands for fear of getting lost one from the other, and
-in this way one helped the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A horrible rumbling sound now broke on their ears,
-and grew louder as they advanced. They were getting
-closer and closer to the men, and far beyond them
-they could now see one bright ray of daylight. This
-spurred them on until completely exhausted, their
-bodies frozen and bleeding, they fell at the feet of the
-surprised torchbearers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had come to the cave of ice.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXIII.<br /> <span class='large'>AGAIN IN THE WORLD OF LIGHT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The ice-cutters, for it were they, had never before
-in their lives been surprised. They saw coming out
-of that inky blackness, from far up that windy quarter,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>where none of their people had ever dared to go,
-a party of half-clad human beings, who staggered on
-as if intoxicated and, at last, falling at their feet.
-They hurriedly gathered about the fallen fugitives and
-throwing restoratives in their faces, tried to make out
-who they were and if they were any of their people,
-but these had been rolled about the floor of the windy
-cavern so long, that what with bruises and dirt, they
-were unrecognizable. Onrai, who still had enough
-life left to whisper a few words, motioned for one of
-the men to stoop; the man did so and started back
-with still greater surprise, as Onrai said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hurry, get us out of here into the sun. Don’t
-you know me? I am Onrai.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man could not speak for a moment, but then,
-regaining his senses, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is Onrai, the King, and his guests; hurry or
-they will perish.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In an instant those about them began to take from
-their bodies the warm garments and place them about
-the half-frozen bodies of our friends. Then, taking
-them in their strong arms, they hurried towards the
-entrance of the cave. This was soon reached, and in
-the villa just outside, the attendants were soon working
-hard with their benumbed and bruised bodies. They
-were first plunged in a bath of warm water and then
-rubbed down thoroughly; then their wounds were
-dressed, after which they were placed on comfortable
-couches and made to rest. The poor underground
-native was treated likewise, and a suit of the cool silk
-was thrown about his body after his wound was
-dressed. He could not understand why all this was
-being done to him, but he could appreciate the delicate
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>touches and the comfort which he was deriving
-from the treatment. Everything was strange to him;
-the peculiar white light of the sun, the green fields, the
-great shady trees, the high elephants, which he could
-see from his apartment stalking about the garden, and
-this grand house, to which he had been brought. And
-the food which they had given him was so different
-from the fish, which had always been his only diet;
-and the cooling honey wine, which they poured down
-his throat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was comfort in all this though and very
-shortly, his wound dressed and pain gone, his weary
-body soothed by the bath and treatment which the
-natives had given him, he fell asleep at last; his
-troubles ended, with no care on his wearied mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It had been early morning when our friends had
-emerged from the cave and after being thoroughly
-revived, they fell asleep and it was late in the evening
-before they awakened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai,” said Harry, “will you ask one of the
-attendants what day this is?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai did so, and turned to him and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have been gone just six days, according to
-your method of measuring time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Six days,” exclaimed they all in chorus, “impossible.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But then,” continued Mr. Bruce, “when we consider
-how far we have traveled, we can hardly expect
-that we have been gone less time than that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it has been just six days,” said Onrai, “but
-remember where we were when we started and see
-where we are now. Why, our friends are three days
-march from us, that is, easy marches, but I think we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>can overtake them in two days by not taking too long
-rests.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But when shall we start?” asked Mr. Bruce, “our
-friends must be worried about us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Just whenever you wish to,” answered Onrai,
-“to-night if you choose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why not to-night?” asked Harry, “we still have
-some hours left and going through the cool avenue at
-night would be grand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, so it shall be,” said Onrai, “we will travel
-with elephants so that, if we get sleepy, we can rest in
-the howdahs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And can I go with you?” asked the stranger.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You can, my good man,” said Onrai. “Our friends
-would want to see and thank the one who has saved
-us; for if you had not helped us out that night, or day
-in the tunnel, we might have been wandering until now
-and on until death relieved us, in that awful hole.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elephants were brought and the party again took up
-their way. The elephants had been kept in an easy
-gait and had covered many miles and our friends
-hoped soon to reach the rest of the party.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When shall we take up the journey again to the
-fields of diamonds, Onrai?” asked Mr. Bruce, as they
-rode along.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Just as soon as you are all ready to start,” answered
-Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And how far are we from the field,” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fully two hundred miles, as you would compute
-it,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then it will take us about ten days, will it not?”
-asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>“Yes, unless we make longer marches,” said Onrai,
-“and that is hardly necessary.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not at all necessary,” answered Mr. Bruce, “and
-we can, by taking easy stages, better see the strange
-country through which we are passing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Onrai, “and the scenery will be wilder
-and different in some respects.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ten days to go and fourteen days to return,” said
-Harry. “That will take pretty near a month.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it will be fully that long before we return,”
-said Onrai, “and besides we will return by a different
-route, which will take us considerably longer. The
-new route will be over the regular macadamized roads,
-which, for many miles, are used very infrequently; but
-they are always kept in first-class repair, so that we
-will experience no discomforts for having left our
-onyx-floored avenue.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is surely delightful riding over this perfect avenue,”
-said Mr. Graham, “everything though is delightful
-in this fair land. How different from that fearful
-country far down below us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Probably only to us who know the difference,”
-said Onrai. “They may have their pleasures and comforts
-and hopes and Day of Resis. We know only
-what this man has taught us, and he has told us little.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again Onrai had mentioned The Day of Resis.
-What did it mean?</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXIV.<br /> <span class='large'>AGAIN WITH FRIENDS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The day came to a close; the stars came out and
-the cavalcade came nearer its destination. They had
-traveled now nearly twenty-four hours constantly,
-and if it were not for meeting their friends, they
-might wish that the journey would last as long again.
-It had been more than pleasant and was so restful,
-after the long tramp underground, that they appreciated
-it more for this reason. A little longer and
-they were in sight of the hole through which they had
-gone into the underground world. It was dark now
-and they could not see very far through the fields, but
-near where they thought the hole ought to be, there
-were lights flickering about. It seemed strange that
-there should be lights here at this time in the evening,
-for there was nothing to call them there.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you suppose brings these lights here?”
-asked Mr. Bruce of Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can’t tell,” said Onrai, “but we will ascertain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He gave the leader of the caravan orders to turn into
-the field on the left and make for the lights. As
-they came nearer they could see that a number of
-men were standing about the hole, while others were
-lying about in the grass as if resting. Near by stood
-a group of women attendants and standing with them
-were Enola, Nellie, Mrs. Graham and Sedai. The
-parade of elephants seemed to attract their attention
-and they were now watching them closely and had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>even started to move toward them. The cavalcade
-stopped, the elephants fell on their haunches and our
-friends scrambled from their howdahs and ran towards
-the ladies.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh,” they cried, as they, too, hurried towards the
-travelers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Graham threw herself into her husband’s arms,
-Nellie fell on Harry’s shoulder, and Enola? Well, she
-seemed for a moment to be puzzled, but then walked
-up very gracefully and placed both hands in Onrai’s.
-Onrai, however, was not satisfied with this and pulling
-Enola toward him, he threw his great arms about her
-and pressed her to his heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are you glad to see me back again, Enola?” said
-he.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, certainly, Onrai,” said Enola, as soon as she
-could extricate herself from his arms, “more than
-glad, for we thought you were lost.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We were,” answered Onrai, “and the thought of
-perishing without again seeing you, nearly drove me
-mad.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But did it not grieve you, too, to think that you
-would not again see your own people?” asked Enola,
-trying to call the conversation from herself.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Onrai, “but it was a different grief.
-My religion has taught me to expect that I will meet
-my people again in the next world, and this softened
-the pain caused by parting from them. But you,” and
-here Onrai again clasped her in his arms, “I have just
-found you and learned to love you, with all that love,
-which has been kept locked in my heart for years
-waiting for you to come and break the locks which
-held it captive. It seemed my life had only commenced
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>when I met you, Enola, and the thought that,
-at the very beginning of our happiness, I was to be
-taken from you forever, was maddening; and you,
-Enola, did you not grieve when you thought I was
-lost?” and Onrai asked this with all the simplicity of
-a child.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Onrai,” answered Enola, “I grieved for all of
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We found a strange people, Enola,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but their attractiveness lay only in their
-strangeness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What did you say, Mr. Bruce?” asked Enola, “a
-strange people in the bowels of the earth? It is hard
-for me to believe this. Are you not jesting?” and
-Enola seemed incredulous.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai, “we fell in with a strange race of
-people down there, and it was they who detained
-us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell me all about them,” said Enola, and she was
-all attention at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not now, Enola,” said Mr. Bruce, “wait until we
-have reached the villa, and all are together, and we
-will give you a full account of our six days’ jaunt in
-the Land, not of, but under On.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think,” said Mr. Graham, “this is the happiest
-moment of my life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, my dear,” said Mrs. Graham, “I have often
-heard you make the same remark concerning the eventful
-time when you first met me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, certainly, wife,” answered her husband,
-“that was the happiest moment which I had known
-even up to the present time, but now you see I am
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span>happier for having been brought out of a position
-where I never expected to see you again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And was it as bad as that, father?” asked Nellie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Quite,” answered her father; “in fact, it was dollars
-to cents that we would never again see daylight,
-but it all goes to show how little we know of what will
-transpire in our little lives.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, things looked pretty dark in every way,” said
-Harry. “In fact, we couldn’t see our hands before
-our eyes. And all chances for escape were equally
-dark and obscure. Where do you suppose we were,
-mother?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, somewhere down there in the bowels of the
-earth,” answered Mrs. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, we were in the great cave, which so nearly
-cost us our lives.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where did you come out of this wonderful place?”
-asked Enola, “I have not heard that yet; and here
-you have been back nearly twenty minutes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, we came out in the ice cave,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The ice cave,” exclaimed Enola, “and is this then
-a part of the great cavern?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“All the same,” said Harry; “or no, not the same,
-but connected by a tunnel. But if we don’t reach the
-villa shortly, Mr. Bruce will have little to tell.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had now reached the grounds surrounding the
-villa, and after a short walk through these, they
-mounted the terrace, and taking seats, Mr. Bruce told
-the strange story.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXV.<br /> <span class='large'>A BLACK SURPRISE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The party rose early the morning following the
-story of Mr. Bruce. All were happy now that they
-were together again and all were eager to take up the
-journey.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think about starting to-day?” said
-Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am perfectly willing, if the others are,” answered
-Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have been here now about eight days,” said
-Enola, “and the time has seemed long without you all,
-and the place has become lonesome. Why not start
-this morning?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, we will, if that is the way you look at it,”
-said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I would like to extend this journey much farther,
-if such a thing could be possible,” said Mr. Bruce, as
-they rode along.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But why?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, because it has been so full of pleasant surprises
-and adventures. It is these things which have
-made our stay in On a pleasant one, and we have
-found many of them on this journey and elsewhere.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It has been fruitful of these things,” said Onrai,
-“but even these might grow monotonous in time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I suppose so, but I could not imagine so at
-this time,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To us, of course,” said Onrai, “none of the things
-in On are new; but the adventures under this land
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>were of a very startling nature, and I would not care
-to have many like it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is not at all likely that you will ever experience
-another such a one,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot tell,” said Onrai. “There is still a mystery
-to solve which worries me considerably.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And what is that?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Have you forgotten the black woman and child
-which you found lying in the track of the storm?”
-asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh,” exclaimed Mr. Graham, “I had forgotten it
-for the time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It has puzzled me not a little, and I do not know
-now whether it be woman or beast, but if it be woman,
-where did she come from?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The storm comes from the heavens,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “and could not the woman have been brought
-with it from one of the distant worlds?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Onrai, “but why should she come to us
-dead?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The storm, in its great fury, killed her,” said Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot understand why it should,” said Onrai,
-“for it killed none in our world.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but you forget that it
-nearly killed Enola.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, I can never forget that,” said Onrai, and he
-looked up quickly at Enola, as if afraid now, that she
-might not be with him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hush, do not speak of unpleasant things to-day,”
-said Enola. “We can put in our time to so much
-better advantage. See, is not the country beautiful
-hereabouts?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>“It grows wilder as we go farther and the scenes
-change very frequently. We can just see the great
-cliffs on the western side of On and they do not look
-so far away, do they? And we can hardly believe in
-looking at them that it would take ten days to reach
-them. And look, there is a column of smoke arising
-from them. What causes that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men looked at the strange sight, but could give
-no answer. There was certainly a column of smoke
-ascending from what looked like the cliffs, but this
-might have been at a point far this side of them. Still
-the sight was very unusual, in fact, it was entirely
-unaccountable and it puzzled all the natives as well as
-the strangers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It could not be some of your people burning the
-debris left by the storm,” said Mr. Bruce to Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, that smoke comes from far away,” said Onrai,
-“but it would take a tremendous fire to cause smoke
-which could be seen from here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should say,” said Mr. Graham, “that the smoke
-rose from the cliff and not from any point this side.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, but what would make such a smoke at the
-cliffs?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot answer that,” said Mr. Graham, “But I
-think that you will find that I am right. Have you
-ever had any active volcanoes in your country?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not understand you,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You do not know the meaning of the word?”
-asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, volcanoes, in our world,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“are mountains, through the sides of which great
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>volumes of molten rocks and sand and earth come
-rushing and pouring.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai looked in astonishment at this, never having
-heard of such a thing before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For the rest of the day nothing else was looked
-after or talked about but the column of smoke in the
-far northwest. In the evening, after the arrival at the
-villa in which the night was to be spent and after the
-party had been somewhat separated into little groups,
-Mr. Bruce found himself for the first time during the
-day, alone with Mr. Graham and immediately the conversation
-reverted to the column of smoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think of it, anyway?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think there can be but one answer to that question,”
-said Mr. Graham, “and that is that the column
-of smoke belongs to a volcano, that the volcano was
-the outcome of the earthquake and the first cause of
-the terrible storm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this moment a song rose on the night air, which,
-for its brilliancy, eclipsed anything yet heard by the
-strangers, and immediately after Onrai came on to the
-terrace and stood with bowed head. Mr. Bruce and
-Mr. Graham watched him for a moment and then going
-up to him Mr. Bruce asked, “What is it, Onrai?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is the song of joy,” answered Onrai, “of those
-who will participate in the chiefest ceremonies of the
-coming Day of Resis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party had now been out nine days on this last
-stage of the journey, and to-morrow would bring them
-to the villa near the field of diamonds. The column
-of smoke had grown in size, and was much blacker at
-this point than when first seen. There was no longer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>any doubt about its coming from the top of the cliffs,
-or else from a point directly back of them, and there
-was scarcely any further doubt about its coming from
-a volcano, for even at this distance, some thirty-five
-miles, as near as Mr. Bruce could calculate, a regular
-storm of flying cinders began to fall, covering them
-completely.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They watched the great volume of smoke anxiously,
-and as they came nearer to it, and as it grew larger
-and blacker, and as they could see no real cause for it,
-they began to regard it with superstitious awe. Nothing
-else could be talked about. The great belching
-cliff stood directly in their pathway, and the black
-smoke rose some thousands of feet above it. A great
-shower of ashes came rolling down on them, giving
-them all a grayish coat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If it is like this all the way it will be far from pleasant,”
-said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “but think of the field of
-diamonds at the end of our journey; we could undergo
-much worse trials at home than this, to get to a
-field of diamonds, and think nothing of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were stumbling along now, almost blinded by
-the dust, and the zebras were getting fractious. At
-times they would stop, refusing to go further, and it
-would take all the persuasion the men could muster, to
-get them started again. But they were nearing the
-villa where they were to stop and still had hopes of
-reaching it. It lay very near to the field of diamonds,
-and would also be near the volcano, which the men
-had resolved to visit before returning.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was awful work, though, this blindly stumbling
-along, only the solid pavement of the avenue letting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>them know that they had not lost their way. But a
-light loomed up in the darkness at last, and they decided
-this must be the villa, where some of the men
-working in this part of the country had taken refuge.
-They made for it as fast as possible, but as they came
-nearer to it the light grew brighter, until a flame shot
-up and they knew that it did not come from the villa.
-Slowly they approached it, having left the avenue and
-taken their way through the fields. They came closer,
-but suddenly all pulled up their steeds as of one accord.
-Ahead of them was a camp-fire, and about it,
-dancing and throwing their arms in the air, were a
-hundred naked black Africans.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The scene was a weird one, and the whole thing
-was such a complete surprise to our friends, that they
-could do nothing but stare in open-mouthed wonderment.
-The negroes were naked, with the exception
-of a cloth about the loins. There were but few
-women among them and these were seated about the
-fire, while the men clasped hands and danced in a circle
-about them. The dance was wild and the yells, which
-broke from the large mouths of the men, were terrible.
-Their black bodies had been covered with oil of some
-kind and shone in the firelight like polished ebony.
-They were of average height, probably five feet five
-or six inches, and their bodies showed good feeding;
-they looked half intelligent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Each one carried, slung over the back, a shield,
-made of some kind of hardened hide, and a spear with
-a long arrow-point made of bone; another strange instrument
-of war, or for the hunt, was a sort of stone
-hatchet with spear-point. This hatchet had a stone
-head or blade, with one side sharpened, and the butt
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>end or side, running to a sharp point; the handle,
-which was about eighteen inches long, passed through
-the head and extended beyond this about six inches,
-ending in a point of bone as sharp as the point of a
-stiletto; to the other end of this handle was fastened
-a long piece of leather string, which was now wrapped
-around the handle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All these things were taken in by our friends before
-the negroes seemed to see them, for they had stopped
-well back among the trees, and the negroes were making
-such a fearful noise with their hideous yells, they
-could not hear the rather quiet approach of the cavalcade.
-But when they caught sight of them at last,
-they stood as if paralyzed, and then moved up a little
-nearer, as if to get a better look and satisfy themselves
-that they were not mistaken. When they at last
-caught a good glimpse of the huge elephants and great
-zebras, all beautifully trapped, and the large men and
-women, they seemed suddenly overcome with fear,
-and turning, ran off into the darkness. Our friends
-would have pursued them but for Onrai, who said that
-such a move would be simply suicidal in such dust-laden
-darkness. They accordingly started for the
-avenue again and following this for a short distance
-further, saw another light, and coming up to this,
-found that their dusty ride was at an end.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The inside of the villa was a pleasant change to
-them after the dust-filled air of the outside, and the
-bath was first sought by all, and then the meal-table.
-There was no great mirth at this meal to-night, though,
-for the different scenes of the day and night, had had
-their effect, and all were thinking. The last adventure
-of all had clapped the climax. What could it mean?
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>Where had the negroes come from, and how had they
-entered the Land of On?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That night the party was attacked by the negroes,
-but they were on the lookout and repelled them.
-About fifty of the negroes had been killed, or mortally
-wounded by the forty Onians, as nearly as Mr. Bruce
-could estimate, and there, were now about fifty of the
-black bodies fleeing over the rock-covered plain. They
-had dropped their assagais and hatchets in their fear,
-and their yells now was something pitiful. They evidently
-supposed that they were being followed by a
-whole army of the powerful men, which they had seen
-that evening. Fear lent them wings and they actually
-flew over the hard flooring of the plain, and were increasing
-the distance very perceptibly between themselves
-and their pursuers. Still the Onians kept up
-the race determinedly, their feet now being torn and
-bleeding with the tramp over the sharp pebbles of the
-plain. The stone wall bordering the hunting ground
-was reached, and a long hole was found in it, broken
-probably by the storm. The river was crossed by a
-stone bridge at this point and still they hurried on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The light was getting brighter as they neared the
-volcano and the negroes could easily be seen away
-ahead of them. They were nearing the great cliffs
-and they could now be seen looming up far into the
-heavens. A little while longer and the negroes had
-disappeared. Our friends hurrying forward nearly
-fell into a great gulf which opened at their feet.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXVI.<br /> <span class='large'>CLEFT BY THE EARTHQUAKE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Our friends pulled up just in time, or they would
-have gone tumbling into the black chasm. They moved
-back hurriedly, almost expecting to see the hole open
-still further and engulf them as it had the negroes, for
-they could make no other explanation of the negroes’
-disappearance. The light from the volcano made most
-objects discernable about this point, and our friends
-could look into the great gulf for some distance, but
-then the further view was lost in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What shall we do now,” asked Onrai of Mr. Bruce.
-“We can no longer follow the negroes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, this hole has swallowed them up,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but we cannot tell whether they have dropped
-to eternity, or have followed a path into its depth, of
-which they alone know. Has the chasm always been
-here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can remember no such crevice,” said Onrai, “nor
-have I ever heard any of my people speak of it. I
-think it is another of the mysteries which seem to
-abound now,” said Onrai, and his face seemed in the
-half-light to wear a very troubled look.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“These mysteries as you call them, Onrai, are only
-such to the uninitiated,” said Mr. Bruce. “They are
-all understood by those who are acquainted with the
-great principles of nature. This crevice is undoubtedly
-caused by the earthquake, as this very often
-occurs during a disturbance of this kind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>“But these strange people,” said Onrai. “Can you
-explain their presence?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If you cannot understand it, Onrai,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “don’t worry yourself in trying to, but look on
-those negroes as I have before told you to, as wild
-beasts, and treat them as such if they should break
-down a portion of the retaining wall and intrude upon
-your inhabited country. These beings are human, of
-course, but they have never felt the quieting hand of
-civilization, and they are but little removed from the
-wild beasts which inhabit the forests.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then we shall kill them all as we did those last
-night,” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, as opportunity offers,” replied Mr. Bruce.
-“Listen; these people must never be allowed to gain
-a footing in your land, or the result might be your
-extermination. You must fight them from the first
-and never allow them to rest for a moment in your
-domain. You may lose many men in thus defending
-your country, but it is your only chance to retain it.
-So, imbue in your men the necessity of fighting with
-all their hearts, and souls, and might, and strength, for
-God and their country, and impress them with the
-fact that only in so doing can they ever expect to
-again enjoy those privileges and that great freedom
-which has always been theirs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will do this,” said Onrai, “but what shall we do
-now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We must wait here,” said Mr. Bruce, “until daylight
-and see what we can make of the hole, and
-whether the negroes have been killed or have used it
-as a means of escape. We will also investigate the
-volcano while here. But you must send men back to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>the villa immediately, to bury those dead negroes before
-the women see them; and tell this body of men
-to inform the women that we will return in a day or
-two; that we started early to look into the volcano or
-would have bade them good-bye. Don’t, by any
-means, let them know of the fight of last night. Impress
-upon your men the necessity of secrecy; it
-would only worry the women unnecessarily if they knew
-that the negroes were making trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The other men now laid down on the hard ground,
-making themselves as comfortable as possible, to rest
-until morning, when they could explore the hole and
-the volcano. They had tramped nearly twelve miles
-during the night and were now well up against the
-cliffs. The black cloud of smoke was still being blown
-to the north, however, and they were saved the extra
-misery of the falling ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the east began to show signs of returning
-day, and long before the sun had crept into the heavens,
-our friends were up and looking down the great
-crevice. They were surprised to see the strange formation
-of this hole in the ground. It had undoubtedly
-been made by the earthquake, and was probably
-about ten feet broad at the top and narrowed in width
-as it went down, until it had reached a depth of two
-hundred feet, where it was only a narrow crack hardly
-six inches in width. But along one side had been left
-a natural foot path, about eighteen inches in width.
-This run up and down in a very irregular fashion and
-was narrower in some places than in others, but there
-was enough space at any point of it on which to walk,
-and it was this which had probably been followed by
-the negroes. They had known of this then, or they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>could never have found it in the darkness of night.
-Mr. Bruce and Mr. Graham followed the crevice for
-some distance, and then had returned and taking the
-footpath, had determined to follow it until they had
-learned what had become of the negroes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were accompanied by Harry and several of the
-Onians, Onrai remaining behind with the others. The
-footpath would bring them very near the surface at
-times, and again it would carry them so deep into the
-crevice, they could almost touch the opposite side by
-stretching out their hands. Taken on the whole, the
-chasm ascended with the foothills of the cliffs, or in
-other words, it kept a mean depth throughout its
-length until reaching the face of the cliff, where it ascended
-very rapidly, and upon looking up, our friends
-were not surprised to see the great cliff a thousand feet
-high, cleft as clean as if cut by a monstrous knife.
-And this cut was at straight as a die, our friends being
-able to see through it in a direct line a great distance.
-Still the footpath continued as it had commenced,
-along one side of the crevice. When once inside of
-the cliff the explorers could look up through the cavern,
-far above their heads and see the stars, for the
-crevice here was narrow and of such a depth, the light
-of the sun could not penetrate it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think it would be better to return,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “we can only follow this path through the
-mountain and that is too great a journey for to-day,
-especially when we have had no breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think as you do,” said Mr. Graham. “These
-negroes must certainly have escaped by this route, and
-it will be an easy matter to keep them from again entering
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>the Land of On, for ten men could guard this
-pass against an army.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They turned and retraced their steps and were soon
-with their companions again. They now turned their
-attention to the volcano. As the morning advanced
-and the wind changed, the smoke was again driven
-over them, and the ashes fell in great sheets about
-them. They had to cross the crevice and tramp some
-distance to the north to reach the base of the cliff, over
-which towered the cloud of smoke. The question as
-to how they should cross the crevice was easily answered
-by their going to the end of it; which was a
-mile distant from where they now were. The whole
-party joined in this exploration tour, the attendants
-keeping their eyes open for any small game which
-might be induced, by some cause or other, to enter
-these bad lands. They were now in the Hunting Reserve,
-but the land here was so barren, and of such
-great extent, these animals would not come into it for
-any reason, unless it might be to cross it. Just at this
-time, too, it was made worse by a thick covering of
-ashes which had deluged everything. And the same
-shroud of ashes was now coming down in a blinding
-sheet, and was worse than it had been the night before,
-because of the heat which now went with them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were very near the belching crater now, and
-when the wind would change for a moment, blowing
-the cloud in a different direction, they could see the
-great black mass of smoke coming from the cliff, and
-bringing in its folds, very often, live coals of considerable
-size. The wind did not change very often, however,
-and most of the time our friends were engulfed
-in the awful dust and ashes, which at times were so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_278'>278</span>thick, they were even hid from each other. But by
-perseverance, they reached the foot of the cliff right
-above which rose the volume of smoke. They stood
-here for a moment gazing up at the towering wall of
-rock, it being, at this point, fully two thousand feet high,
-and perpendicular, and wondered how they were going
-to scale its great height. They could not possibly
-do it; there was not even a foothold on the face of
-that rock wall, and our friends turned away disheartened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had hoped to find fissures or rents in the rock,
-caused by the earthquake, which might allow them to
-reach the summit; but their hopes in this direction
-were all shattered by that one glance up the palisade.
-It was now beyond noon and they had had nothing to
-eat that morning, and they were all beginning to feel
-desperately hungry. This, too, puzzled them, for they
-could not expect to find anything to eat here or anything
-to kill nearer than two miles, where the good
-lands began again. But something must be had, so
-three of the attendants were sent to the woods, two
-miles away, to procure, if possible, a deer or something
-light, which they might carry back with them, and
-which would be so palatable in their present condition
-of hunger.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They took up a position just at the base of the cliff,
-at a point where they were sheltered from the shower,
-and prepared to await the hunters.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think of our chances for reaching the
-summit of the cliff?” asked Mr. Graham of Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I should say they were bad,” answered Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Bad,” said Harry, “well I should say so. There
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_279'>279</span>is no chance at all. That cliff rising above us is duplicated
-throughout the entire circumference of On.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“So Onrai says, and it is true,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There is but little difference in the face of the
-cliffs,” said Onrai. “Those about here are seamed to
-a greater degree than those at other points, but one
-can just as easily scale those as any of the others.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is not very encouraging,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“but I do not think you have taken into consideration
-the earthquake and the changes which it might have
-made. We have already found one place where the
-earthquake has split these mighty walls and I think we
-may find others. At any rate I will not give up trying
-to find a place where I can reach the summit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will follow the base of these cliffs for miles but
-what I find a place,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You forget that the base of the cliffs lie, throughout
-their entire length, in the Hunting Reserve,” said
-Onrai, “and I do not think that they could be followed
-closely for ten miles, let alone their entire length.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“True, I had forgotten that,” said Mr. Graham, and
-his face fell.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is only here,” continued Onrai, “that we can follow
-them at all, for the animals do not bother us here,
-and there is no underbrush to hamper us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men talked on in this way until the hunters returned,
-two of them with a small deer, and the third
-with a bear cub. Their burdens were heavy and the
-trip had been quite long, but the prospect of the feast
-which would be theirs when they again reached their
-friends, buoyed them up and the party greeted them
-with cheers, and all fell to and cut the choicest parts
-of the deer and bear to roast; but one important thing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_280'>280</span>had been forgotten. They were in a barren waste and
-not a sprig of wood could be found with which to
-make a fire. They were looking at each other in blank
-amazement, when a huge boulder flew through the air
-and fell in their midst.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXVII.<br /> <span class='large'>IN THE CRATER.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>They jumped back in affright, as the great rock
-rushed through the air and half buried itself in the
-soft earth before them. They looked from one to the
-other, as if seeking an explanation of this new surprise,
-but none could answer. They could not suppose for
-a moment that the rock had been broken from the
-great cliff, for the surface of these was so smooth,
-nothing could come from this source. They looked
-above them, but the air was so full of the ashes and
-dust, they could not penetrate it over a hundred feet.
-They hurriedly moved away from such a dangerous
-position, taking the bear and deer with them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where could this rock have come from?” asked
-Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It puzzled them to answer this question, and they
-kept their gaze fastened on the cliff above, hoping to
-see the wind change for a moment, and the cloud of
-smoke blown from them long enough to see the top.
-After waiting for some time, the cloudy atmosphere
-did break for a moment, and far up, so high that they
-looked like pigmies on top of the cliff, they saw a number
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_281'>281</span>of negroes, their bodies half hanging over the
-edge.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! the mystery is solved,” exclaimed Mr. Bruce.
-“They are probably the same band which we drove
-from here last night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, and now we can feel assured that there is a
-way to reach the summit. Look out!” said Harry,
-as he saw the negroes start another large stone from
-the summit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Down it came dangerously near to the party, and
-they decided to go back to the old position of the
-morning, for there they would be out of the way of
-these falling stones, and they could also drive back
-any of the negroes if they again tried to return. Back
-they trudged, taking a part of the deer and bear meat
-with them, and upon reaching the old stand, and while
-looking around, they saw, not far away from them, a
-monstrous tree, which had probably been blown from
-the summit of the cliffs by the storm. A fire was soon
-built and the meat roasted and eaten, after which they
-laid down for a night’s sleep, their day having profited
-them little but experiences which might do them some
-good in the near future. They had learned that there
-was a way to the summit of the cliff, and the finding of
-this way was to be the work of the morrow. The night
-was passed as comfortably as could be, on the fearfully
-hard bed of stone and earth, and early in the morning
-they were astir again, and after a meal of the roasted
-venison, they all started for the small pathway in the
-crevice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They soon reached this, and falling into single file,
-with Mr. Bruce in the lead, they kept up the march
-for a couple of hours, when they were well into the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_282'>282</span>heart of the cliff. No other footpath had yet been
-reached by which they could gain the summit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think,” said Mr. Bruce to Mr. Graham, who was
-following him, “that we will have to walk right through
-this mountain, and on to the end of the crevice, when
-we can turn and climb the cliff from the back, which I
-expect to find of easy ascent.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I quite agree with you,” said Mr. Graham. “It is
-quite certain that there could be no way of reaching
-the summit from this crevice; at least, not at this
-point.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It has taken a powerful stirring up of the internal
-fires to cause this fearful crack,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Graham, “and that volcano looks
-as if it might throw out something more than dust and
-ashes very soon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That it will, and sooner than we will want it to,”
-replied Mr. Bruce. “We are treading dangerous
-ground, and we cannot tell what moment we may be
-overtaken by a flow of molten lava, or a greater shower
-of ashes, such as buried Pompeii.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But,” said Mr. Graham, “if we stop to think of
-such things, we will not do a great deal of exploring.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it is always best to bear
-these things in mind, and be ready at any moment to
-meet them as well as we can under the circumstances.
-But I can scarcely see my way here. Were any
-torches brought along?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, the attendants have torches,” said Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was true; at this point the crevice was so deep
-one might think it was night, so dark had it grown.
-The torch was lighted, and Mr. Bruce, taking it, they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_283'>283</span>all again took up the march. But from this point the
-path began to widen and ascend, until they were not
-only again in the sunlight but two could walk abreast,
-and a little further, and the path had widened until
-four and five men could walk abreast. The path
-ascended gradually, so gradually that it was not
-difficult to climb, and in a short while it ran out even
-with the surface.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This was a great and pleasant surprise to the explorers,
-for they had expected to have to tramp much
-farther before getting out of the hole. They looked
-about them and saw that they were on the side of a
-lofty mountain, the cliff opposite being but a precipitous
-side of the same mountain. This side was very
-fertile and wooded with great trees almost to its
-summit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Below them lay a verdant valley stretching on and
-on as far as the eye could reach. Onrai looked on in
-wonderment at this unexpected sight. He had, and
-so had his people, been led to believe that the world
-ended at the cliffs, that beyond these was naught but
-space. He could not have told, had he been asked,
-how this land ended or how it must look to see no
-land or water beyond, nothing but that infinite space.
-It had never occurred to him to think of this himself,
-but if it had, he would have immediately banished the
-thought as being perfectly absurd. He had been told
-that the end was there, and that was enough; it
-couldn’t be different, and as to how the end might
-look, that didn’t matter at all. So this was a wonderful
-sight to him, all this land as far as he could see,
-covered with verdure and with occasional streams of
-water running through it. So much like his own fertile
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_284'>284</span>country, that he might have supposed that he had
-turned in some magical way on his tramp through the
-mountains, and was now looking upon that Land of On.
-If this picture, which stretched out before him, was real
-and not a dream, as he was almost led to believe, then
-what of those teachings which declared that their land
-was the only land, and that their people were the only
-people. The very foundation of this teaching was
-shaken when this idea was exploded. He turned and
-looked at his companions, and then at the great landscape
-which opened out before him. The attendants
-were no less surprised at the strange scene, but none
-of them made any comments.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Turning and looking far up the mountain or volcano,
-they could now see a round cap at the summit,
-and out of this poured the fearful smoke. The wind
-was favorable for the ascent, for it was blowing the
-smoke over the Land of On, and they could climb
-without being hampered by the falling ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are extremely lucky so far,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, and the ascent looks easy enough,” rejoined
-Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may prove otherwise before we reach the summit,
-though,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must get at it, for we
-should get back to On to-day, if possible.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How different are the mountains on this side,” said
-Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are different, yes,” said Mr. Bruce. “One
-would hardly suppose that beyond they are so precipitous.
-The whole Land of On must have been the
-immense crater of some mighty volcano, at some prehistoric
-period.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_285'>285</span>“It is hard to tell,” said Mr. Graham. “In my
-estimation it has been at some remote age a vast inland
-sea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Either explanation might fit,” said Mr. Bruce.
-“But let us start. We are losing valuable time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Turning toward Onrai they saw him still standing
-wrapped in deep thought, with the attendants standing
-near, also looking at that great expanse of field,
-forest, river and lake before them, with wondering
-faces.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must start. From
-the summit you can get a better view both of this and
-your own country. And now we must hasten to
-reach that summit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You do not seem surprised at the great expanse
-of land beyond the cliffs,” said Onrai to Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, I am not surprised,” replied Mr. Bruce,
-“because I knew that it existed before we ever came
-to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And you did not tell me?” inquired Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And why should I tell you, Onrai,” asked Mr.
-Bruce. “Have you not a beautiful country with everything
-that heart could wish for? Were you not
-happy there in your belief, and could the knowledge
-of the fallacy of the teachings which has helped to
-make you happy make you any happier? You would
-not have thanked me for such information and I
-would advise you now, as I have before, to try and forget
-that you have seen these things.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That I can never do,” said Onrai. “But they
-may never have any great impression on me, further
-than in making me disbelieve that part of the teachings
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_286'>286</span>which relates to the end of our world. I cannot
-believe that any longer, of course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but you can refrain from
-speaking of it, and you can make it a punishable offense
-for any of these attendants, who have also witnessed
-these scenes, to ever speak of it; and in this way it
-will soon be forgotten, and the next generation will go
-on in blissful ignorance of the existence of the land
-beyond the cliff. It will be better, will it not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think so,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were now ascending the mountain, the ascent
-for a way being very gradual, but as they proceeded
-further the ascent became steeper and more rugged.
-No trace of negroes were seen, but our friends knew
-that the negroes seen the day before on the summit,
-must be somewhere near. They had probably
-ascended the mountain in order to get a sight, if possible,
-of that land from which they had been driven,
-and in thus doing they had spied those who had driven
-them from it, and had immediately conceived the idea
-of hurling the great stones in their midst, and may be,
-by so doing, kill all, thus giving them an open sesame
-into the coveted country. They had villages near this
-point, according to Sedai, and if our friends should
-fall in with any of these tribes, there would very evidently
-be more bloodshed, for they were the intruders
-now and the African negro considers this a sacrilege.
-Nothing is so sacred to him as his country, and they
-will fight for this quicker than they will for their
-wives.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But nothing was seen of these, and no trace was
-found of a beaten path which might indicate that they
-lived as high as this on the mountain, or that they
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_287'>287</span>visited this altitude very frequently. The verdure
-grew thinner as they ascended, and great hunks of
-lava were now cropping through the surface soil.
-The cloud of smoke grew more ominous as they
-neared it, and looked like a huge umbrella spread,
-and with the handle resting on the summit of the
-mountain. The party were getting very close to the
-summit now, and low rumblings could be heard far
-beneath the surface; hissing noises were also heard,
-like that made by water striking hot coals.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last, after considerable tortuous climbing, they
-stood at the base of a rugged cliff, which was not
-more than a hundred feet in height; this was seamed
-and rough as if it had been thrown up hundreds and
-may be thousands of years before by an overflow of
-lava, which, upon cooling, had left this wall about the
-crater. Following about the base of this for some
-distance, a place was at last discerned where an ascent
-might be made, and after hard work and much
-slipping backward, and three or four narrow escapes
-from instant death by falling into one of the crevices,
-the summit was reached. The sight which here met
-their gaze was forboding, to say the least. They
-were standing on the top of a wall not more than ten
-feet thick at this point, and as near as they could
-guess about one and a half miles long, running about
-a deep hole or crater, one hundred feet deep. Looking
-down into this they could see the black smoke
-issuing from great crevices in the flooring. As it
-came from these crevices, it was lurid with the glow
-of the hot fires which was its cause. These crevices
-were numerous and in places our friends could almost
-look into them, and into the bright fires burning far
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_288'>288</span>beneath. After much discussion on the matter, it
-was determined to try and get down to the floor of
-this fiery hole which might so soon be filled with
-molten lava. A place was found where the descent
-could be made easily and the party started. As they
-descended, the foul smoke would be blown about them
-occasionally, almost choking them with its density,
-but the bottom was reached and they started to cross
-it in order to get to the opposite side, from which
-they could look into the Land of On. The flooring
-was found to be warm and really hot in places, and so
-crumbling beneath their feet that it was almost impossible
-to walk. Several of the great crevices were
-approached, but the smoke would drive them back
-before they could reach the edge and look into the
-depths. Most of these crevices were narrow and ran
-from east to west, but when the centre of the crater
-was reached a great hole was found, probably the
-true mouth of the crater. The rumbling here was
-very distinct and the hissing very plain. The party
-tried to reach the edge of this wall but was again
-fought off by the dense smoke. They had passed
-this and were nearer to the opposite side of the crater,
-when an unusual loud rumbling was heard and a great
-crack suddenly opened before them, the shock throwing
-them off their feet, prostrating them on the ground.
-Mr. Bruce fell so near this new crevice that his head
-leaned far over the side, and for a moment it looked
-as if he would roll into the fearful hole. But he soon
-recovered himself, and rolling over and over he put
-a safe distance between himself and the crevice before
-he ventured to rise to his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When they had all recovered from this surprise and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_289'>289</span>fear and had again regained their feet, they approached
-the crevice and peered into its black depths.
-Down, down, down it seemed to open, into the very
-bowels of the earth, and at the bottom they could see
-a molten mass, boiling, and seething, and hissing, but
-just for a moment and then the scene was hidden by
-the black smoke which came pouring up from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come,” said Mr. Bruce, “we must get out of this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party then hurried as fast as they could to the
-opposite side of the crater to where the wall was
-several hundred feet thick, ending on the opposite
-side in the cliff. A long look was taken at the beautiful
-Land of On and then the retreat was ordered.
-They now followed the top of the wall of the crater
-until they had come to the place where they had ascended
-this, and then, with but very little difficulty,
-reached the sloping side and hurriedly descended. It
-was growing late and already the sun was throwing
-long shadows over the mountain side.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had several miles of the strange footpath to
-cover yet through the dark crevice. They began to
-feel anxious and hurried still faster as they neared the
-bottom. The sun sank into the distant valley as they
-reached the crevice. They were hurriedly following
-the side of this, looking for a beginning of the footpath,
-when they heard a loud yell as if from a hundred
-throats, and looking down they saw a great crowd of
-black demons holding the end of the footpath.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_290'>290</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXVIII.<br /> <span class='large'>KILLED IN THE CREVICE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The fearful yell startled them, and they fell back
-out of sight of the wild band.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They have watched us ascend the mountain,” said
-Mr. Bruce, “and have held this vantage point awaiting
-our return, knowing well that they had us here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, but we can’t stay here,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid that we will have to,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“until these fellows will kindly consent to go away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But can’t we beat them off?” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No. I think not,” said Mr. Bruce. “We are about
-twenty-five, and they must number fully one hundred.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We ought to be good for that number, I should
-think,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I don’t know,” said Mr. Bruce, “they may fight
-better in daylight. They were taken by surprise the
-other night, and had but little else to do but run. I
-am in for giving them a chance to show their fighting
-qualities at any rate. As you say, we can’t stay here;
-if we do, we may be attacked by such a horde of these
-blacks that we could do nothing but surrender.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then we had better get to fighting at once,” said
-Mr. Graham. “It will be better, perhaps, for us three
-to head the column, for with our fire-arms we may
-scare them away, leaving the road open to us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think as you do in the matter,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai was told then, to form his men into columns of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_291'>291</span>threes and not to make a rush, or use the daggers until
-they were attacked by the negroes. The men formed,
-and Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry heading the
-column, they started for the crevice. Here they saw
-the negroes, still waiting for them, their black faces
-grinning hideously in the semi-light. Slowly our
-friends advanced with their revolvers in position,
-ready to start at a given signal from Mr. Bruce. The
-negroes seemed to consider this a matter of amusement,
-for they only grinned the broader, and yelled
-the louder when they saw the queer column approaching
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party advanced until only a few feet from
-the negroes, who were so confident of capturing
-their enemies alive, they had not even brought with
-them the ugly-looking hatchet. They took no concern
-at the approaching column then, but looked on,
-as though the whole matter was a huge joke. So
-when Mr. Bruce said deliberately: “Now make ready,
-fire,” and the three leaden missiles went on their mission
-of death, the negroes jumped backward, and several,
-losing their balance, fell into the ravine. Again
-the pistols were raised, and three more shots were
-fired.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are disturbing them,” said Mr. Bruce. “Once
-more, and we will have them on the run.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And again the pistols were fired, this time at very
-close range.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The expression on the negroes’ faces had changed
-now, and they looked at the slowly approaching party
-with eyes almost standing on their cheeks, and mouths
-wide open, showing their white ivories. They stood
-still after the first shots, paralyzed with fear, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_292'>292</span>when the last shots were fired, and they saw three
-more of their companions topple over, their fright induced
-them to seek safety in flight, and they turned
-and ran down the footpath, crowding, shoving and
-jostling each other in their frantic efforts to get farther
-away from these death-dealing missiles, many of
-them being pushed off into the crevice in the wild
-rush. Our friends fell into line with Mr. Bruce again
-in the lead, and followed slowly after the negroes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was now quite dark and as they descended further
-into the ravine, it became so dark that they could no
-longer see the path, and a torch was lit. The negroes
-had long since passed out of sight and hearing, and
-our friends were giving them little heed, having enough
-to think about in looking after themselves, for they
-were in a very dangerous position, the pathway being
-so narrow at places, that a misstep would undoubtedly
-hurl them into eternity. They kept close to the side
-of the crevice and moved slowly, and the mountain
-was passed through without a mishap.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The light from the volcano now lit up the scene
-somewhat, and our friends began to congratulate each
-other on getting out of the several difficulties so easily,
-when a shout was heard, and looking through the
-semi-gloom they saw the negroes coming hastily toward
-them, and a band of Onians following them
-along the top of the crevice hurling stones at them.
-The party halted, and raising their arms fired, when
-the negroes came within range. The negroes stopped
-and in a moment realized that they were between two
-fires; but the pistols were too much for them, so they
-again turned and ran toward the Land of On. The
-Onians, seeing them do this, started for the end of the
-path to head them off. This they did, and one of
-their number, a mighty fellow, jumped into the path
-and with his dagger began plunging it into the backs
-of the unfortunate negroes who had again turned toward
-their own land. As one would receive his death-wound
-and would fall over the side of the crevice, this
-great Onian would stab another, and he kept this up
-until his arm was red to the shoulder with the blood
-of his victims.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id003'>
-<img src='images/i_292fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic003'>
-<p>“As one would receive his death-wound and would fall over the side of the crevice, this great Onian would stab another.”—<i>Page <a href='#Page_293'>293</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_293'>293</span>The head of the column now came up within
-range of the pistols again, and they were shot down
-like sheep, the few who were not killed with the knife
-of the Onian. The slaughter did not last long, for in a
-short time the negroes were all killed and the bodies
-lay at the bottom of the crevice. It had been a onesided
-fight, for the negroes had not raised a hand to
-defend themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party were finally out of the crevice and found
-quite a number of Onians camped near the base of the
-cliff, and with them Enola. Their surprise was great
-when they saw her with the party, and upon asking
-her why she was here, she told them that she had gotten
-tired of remaining at the villa and as she had come
-to this land to see all that there was in it, she did not
-intend being cheated out of any part of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your departure was so unexpected,” she continued,
-“and the attendants had been so mysterious
-in their movements ever since, I began to fear that all
-was not right and came to see for myself. Are you
-not all glad to see me? But where have you been?
-Your faces and garments are as black as the skin of
-the negroes which have just been killed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was true, they had been so long exposed to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_294'>294</span>smoke of the crater that they had become perfectly
-black, and it might have been this which made the
-negroes laugh so when they saw them approaching.
-They had seen the white skins before and they must
-have thought that it was a ruse to fool them, in thus
-blacking their faces.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But Enola, this has been a long, hard tramp for
-you,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tramp, Uncle,” said Enola, “have you so soon forgotten
-the zebras and elephants? I came on a
-zebra.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, that is so,” said Mr. Graham, “I had forgotten
-for the moment. You look tired though, nevertheless,
-Enola.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I am tired,” said Enola. “It is quite a journey
-even on the back of a zebra. But I see little
-chance for a comfortable night’s rest here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The only bed is this stony surface,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but you surely cannot expect to stay here
-over night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And why not, pray,” said Enola. “And am I better
-than are you? Did I not withstand the hardships
-of the jungle? I want to remain here to-night and to-morrow
-and see this crevice and more of these stony
-surroundings.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Very well,” said Mr. Graham, “I know there is no
-use in talking to you when you once get a notion in
-your head; but you will find this the hardest bed you
-ever slept upon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t worry about me, Uncle, I will get along all
-right, but I brought you all something to eat and you
-had better get at it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will forgive you now for having come,” said Mr.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_295'>295</span>Graham, “for I, as well as the rest of us, am just about
-starved.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am glad that you look on my sin as pardonable,”
-laughed Enola, “but, believe me, bringing food was a
-secondary thought. I came only to see the strange
-things in this part of the world, and when about to
-start, thought that, as I was coming here, I might as
-well bring this food with me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know you too well to believe any such story,”
-said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The attendants had now gotten their meal ready and
-a hungry party it was who sat down to it. They had
-eaten nothing since morning and their fatigue of the
-day but added to their hunger.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What are we to do to-morrow,” asked Mr. Graham,
-as they all sat down on rocks which had been placed
-for them, holding their platters of food in their laps.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know of no reason why we should remain here
-any longer,” said Mr. Bruce. “I think the negroes
-are done for, for awhile at least. This band, which has
-been entering the land of On, are wiped out; they cannot
-return and there is hardly a chance now of other
-bands or tribes knowing of the new passage-way
-through the cliff.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But it is only a matter of time until they will know
-it,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“True,” said Mr. Bruce, “but before that time the
-crevice might be filled and the Land of On made impregnable
-again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They all looked up in astonishment at this.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think this possible?” asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Possible, yes,” said Mr. Bruce. “It would be a
-stupendous work and would take a long time to carry
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_296'>296</span>it out, but it can be done, and this fair land will be forever
-free from intruders, unless of course some such
-like occurrence as the one, which has made this fissure
-in the rock, should cause a like one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then you would commence on this work immediately?”
-asked Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Just as soon as possible,” said Mr. Bruce, “but the
-sooner you do it the less chance there will be for invasion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It shall be done,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party, after the meal, stood up in groups and it
-was but natural that Enola and Onrai should be together.
-They walked to a point well up toward the
-cliff, and seating themselves on a large rock, Onrai
-again told Enola of his great love and of his intention
-of making her his wife on the Day of Resis. But
-when she asked him why he had chosen the Day of
-Resis for their wedding day, he made her no answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai sent messengers throughout the country and
-to the city, for men to build this wall across the crevice.
-He sent for all of the available men in On, ordering
-all other branches of work to stop for the time
-being.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It will take a considerable body of men to do the
-work,” said Mr. Bruce. “But more than a wall must
-be constructed. The crevice at the face of the cliff
-must be at least three thousand feet deep, and this has
-to be filled for considerable distance to get a safe
-foundation for the wall. It will take many men and
-most of them will have to work from the crater of the
-volcano, casting large rocks into the crevice from the
-first, until it is filled up as high as the shelf or footpath,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_297'>297</span>from which point I think it would be well to
-commence the solid masonry.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But if this work goes on and is finished before we
-leave, chances are against us ever again reaching civilization,”
-said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is true,” replied Mr. Bruce, “for we have seen
-enough of the rock-bound country to know that the
-cliffs cannot be scaled. It would be an utter impossibility
-to get out by that way, and we would have to
-resort to a balloon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have suggested a way which is always available,”
-said Mr. Graham. “The silk of this country is
-especially adapted to this purpose, I should say, and
-the other materials can be had easy enough. And
-these people could raise no objections to our building
-such a conveyance, even if they objected to our leaving
-them, and we would be up and away before they could
-possibly know what we were about. So we need not
-worry about the means of escape.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The volcano is throwing off more rock and ashes
-than ever, to-day,” said Mr. Bruce, as he glanced up at
-the ominous cloud of smoke.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, and there seems to be a new element this
-morning,” said Mr. Graham. “Look at that white vapor.
-Would you not say that that was steam?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It looks like it,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If it is,” said Mr. Graham, “it will but hasten the
-coming eruption.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The eruption is not far off, anyway,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “for the lava is already near the surface, as was
-shown by its running through the crack of the tunnel
-to-day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This alone will be well worth the trip,” said Mr.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_298'>298</span>Graham; “but we must be well out of the way before
-it takes place.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think we will be safe at the villa,” said Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As he ceased speaking, the earth trembled beneath
-their feet, and, looking at the volcano, they saw a huge
-mass of red-hot cinders and smoke shoot high in the
-air.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXIX.<br /> <span class='large'>THE FIELD OF DIAMONDS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The rumbling was heard fully five minutes before
-the shock came, and our friends had stopped when it
-had first reached their ears, wondering what could
-make such a noise. It was all explained, however,
-when the earth trembled beneath them, nearly throwing
-them from their feet. Thoughts of the volcano
-immediately rushed into their minds, and they turned
-just in time to see a great mass of stone, rock and
-molten lava mixed with steam and smoke, shoot into
-the air. It rose to a height of nearly a thousand feet
-above the mountain, and then fell back into the yawning
-abyss from which it sprang. Then came another
-shock and another discharge of rock and ashes, and
-another and another in such rapid succession that our
-friends were afraid to move for fear of being thrown
-flat on the ground.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The air was black with ashes, and smoke, and dust,
-and a vapor seemed to be rising from the ground,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_299'>299</span>which, with the rest, nearly suffocated them. From
-where our friends now were, they could not see the
-crevice in the cliff, but they could see the summit of
-the mountains, and saw huge rocks tumbling from the
-top and rolling over the edge, being lost to view in the
-thick atmosphere as they descended.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We must get out of this,” said Mr. Bruce, “for
-that volcano may belch forth a stream of lava which
-will take but a few moments to reach us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think it would flow this way?” asked Mr.
-Graham. “The opposite side of the mountain would
-give it a freer channel, I think.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is impossible to tell,” said Mr. Bruce. “The
-whole side of the cliff might open up and let the lava
-flow into this slope, entirely unobstructed. These
-volcanoes change their craters and channels so frequently,
-there is no telling from what direction the
-lava will come, or which way it will go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is quieter now,” said Mr. Graham, “and as we
-cannot be far from the villa, we had better try and
-reach it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Everybody at this started again and were groping
-along in the dust-filled atmosphere, when they saw,
-right ahead of them, the bridge. It took them only a
-minute to cross this and to get through the break in
-the wall, and to reach the villa and get into its cool
-and ash-free atmosphere. It was certainly a great relief
-for these weary, hungry and dust-besmeared travelers
-to enjoy once more the delights of a bath, and
-the splendid cuisine of the villa. They were tired out,
-and had inhaled the thick atmosphere so long, that
-their lungs had become almost raw, while their eyes
-were nearly closed, being swollen and sore. But a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_300'>300</span>bath and several applications of sweet honey and wine
-had made them feel like new persons, and after the
-evening meal was over, they all declared that such delights
-as On could offer, were all the more welcome
-and could be better appreciated after a few days separation
-from them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The evening was spent on the terrace, the wind
-having again shifted, leaving the atmosphere free from
-the dust and ashes. The column of smoke was very
-bright to-night, the fire seeming to be nearer the surface,
-lighting up the great black mass as it poured
-forth from the crater. In fact at this distance it cast
-its light, making objects at some distance, quite perceptible.
-But our friends were surprised to see to
-what depth the ground about the villa and all the barren
-waste had been covered by the ashes and dust.
-Fully one foot of this lay over the surface of the country
-for miles around. The beautiful lawn here was no
-more, and the large fields adjoining the villa, which had
-been used as a pasture for the zebras and cattle were
-now made useless by the volcano. But this extended
-only a mile beyond the villa, so said the attendants
-who had arrived that evening, bringing fresh provisions
-and ice. This being so, the zebras, cattle and
-elephants, would be able to find pasturage close at
-hand, and they were taken there immediately as they
-were already suffering for food.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the depth of ashes destroyed the beauty of
-everything about here; the green lawn, the beautiful
-trees, all bore the same dull, gray appearance. There
-was but little enthusiasm then shown by the party on
-this night, as they walked on to the terrace. The volcano
-attracted all the attention with its lurid glare,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_301'>301</span>mass of smoke and bright red rocks, which were thrown
-into the air at times.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid we have forgotten our object in coming
-here,” said Enola to Onrai, as they came on to the
-terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai, “I have not forgotten, but I am
-afraid the brilliants have met the same fate as all else
-about here. They are buried beneath the ashes of
-the volcano.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What a pity!” said Enola. “We have thus lost
-one of the most beautiful sights of On.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid so,” continued Onrai. “But wait, let
-me think. The field of brilliants extends far to the
-north, if I remember rightly, and we may reach a point
-beyond this circle of ashes; but you are too tired to
-go over there to-night, are you not, Enola?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How far is it?” asked Enola. “I am tired, but if
-there be a chance of seeing this beautiful sight, then
-we had better accept it, for a delay may mean to lose
-this pleasure, for the possibilities of that volcano are
-beyond reckoning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is about three miles due north of here, as you
-would say,” said Onrai, “and if you wish to go we will
-find elephants plenty to carry all of us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But we will have no moonlight to enhance the
-beauty of the brilliants,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai, “but we have the light from the
-volcano, and this may have a grander effect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is true,” said Enola, “let us go immediately.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai gave the order, and several elephants were
-soon standing in front of the terrace, awaiting the
-pleasure of the party. The other ladies also decided
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_302'>302</span>to go, not having been out of the villa since their arrival,
-and the men jumped at the chance, surprised to
-think that there might be a field of these diamonds
-still uncovered by the ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The elephants followed a road, or path rather, which
-led almost due north for a distance of three or four
-miles. The easy motion of the elephants had most of
-the tired party asleep before the point was reached,
-and they were awakened from their sleep when the
-elephants stopped. They were entirely unprepared
-for the beautiful sight which met their gaze. As far
-as they could see to the north, the ground was strewn
-with brilliant sparks of light, looking up from its black
-surface, like bright eyes from a dusky face. The red
-glare of the volcano made the scene all the more beautiful,
-in bringing out so many varied lights from the
-diamonds.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How far are we from the volcano?” asked Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Only about a mile farther from it than we are when
-at the villa, I should judge,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And is the land here as barren as it is at the villa,”
-asked Mrs. Graham, of Onrai, as he came up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Quite,” answered Onrai, “and the field which you
-see here is but a continuation of the field directly back
-of the villa. We were just too late, or we might have
-had this scene closer at hand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is indeed too bad,” said Mr. Graham, “but it
-has lost none of its beauty by having the volcano’s
-light thrown on it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce here stooped and picked up one of the
-twinkling stars; it was about the size of a hen’s egg
-and almost the same shape; rough on all sides but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_303'>303</span>one, this being polished to a brightness which was
-hard to account for.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you account for this smooth side,” asked Mr.
-Graham, as he walked up to Mr. Bruce with another
-diamond very much like the one he had picked up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have been trying to solve the riddle,” replied
-Mr. Bruce, “and can only offer one solution of the
-mystery. These stones probably have been thrown
-from the bowels of the earth by the last eruption of
-the volcano. How many years, or thousands of years
-ago this has been, we cannot say, but since that time
-a part of these diamonds have been exposed to the
-storms and all kinds of weather. These have gradually
-polished the stones until they have reached this state
-of smoothness. You will notice that the polished side
-is somewhat flatter than the others, and as this side is
-always turned upward, I think these things but emphasize
-my theory.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can only interpose one objection to your theory,”
-said Mr. Graham, “and that is, that diamonds are so
-hard that it is a question as to whether the wear of
-the elements would affect them at all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The dropping of water for long has washed away
-great cliffs, has bored holes in monstrous rocks, and
-why should diamonds alone be proof against this influence?”
-argued Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not say that they are,” replied Mr. Graham,
-“and I am willing to accept your explanation for the
-want of a better one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are diamonds, I think, without a doubt,”
-said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If they are not,” said Mr. Graham, “then we have
-discovered a jewel, the brilliancy of which is superior
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_304'>304</span>to that of diamonds, and there lies about us fortunes,—thousands
-of fortunes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But fortunes which will never benefit the civilized
-peoples,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Probably not,” said Mr. Graham, “unless it be ourselves,
-for I shall surely not leave here without a generous
-supply of these beautiful gems,” and he and Mr.
-Bruce proceeded to each gather a bag full of the precious
-stones, the ladies doing likewise.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this point Onrai came up and Mr. Bruce asked:
-“Onrai, do you not use these stones for aught else
-than for the sling-shots, and ornaments, and decorations?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Onrai. “We find here a peculiar
-brilliant, which the direct participants in the ceremonies
-of the Day of Resis wear as an emblem,” and the King
-here remounted, and the remainder of the party doing
-so, they started toward the villa in silence, our
-friends thinking what fortunes they carried in the little
-bags at their waists, and what immense sensations they
-would create when these stones were brought before
-the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Two weeks had now elapsed since the night of the
-visit to the field of diamonds, and our friends were still
-at the villa near the volcano. This had remained about
-as active as it had on the night in mention, and our
-friends had stayed on to see the development of the
-eruption.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At times the earth would tremble slightly, and at such
-times the volcano would always become more active.
-The fall of ashes had become much less in this part of
-the surrounding country, but this was due to the wind
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_305'>305</span>which had blown steadily from the northeast, carrying
-the cloud of smoke over the country beyond the cliff.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai was daily expecting the arrival of his army
-of subjects to perform his bidding.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the end of two weeks, after an exciting day hunting
-the jungles of this strange new land, the party one
-day approached the villa, and saw encamped about it
-thousands of men, elephants and zebras.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XL.<br /> <span class='large'>THE CAMP OF THE ONIANS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Yes, there were thousands of these. The great
-field on the opposite side of the avenue was completely
-filled with them and their animals. Tents of beautiful
-colors spread over the plain, their peculiar shape
-suggesting scenes of the Orient. These tents were
-large and roomy, one side being half turned back so
-as to admit plenty of air; the floor was covered with
-soft, skin rugs, and in the centre was a small, round
-table of wood, on which was resting a lamp.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As our friends approached, the scene was so strange
-and novel, they thought they had never before seen
-anything quite so interesting. The glare of the
-volcano half lighted the level plain giving a reddish
-glow to everything within its rays, and the lights
-inside the tents throwing out the varied colors of the
-beautiful cloth, made these tents look like huge,
-Japanese lanterns. The ashes had been removed from
-the floor of each tent and piled up at one side, thus
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_306'>306</span>giving a clean floor for the rugs and small mattresses
-which were used for sleeping on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As our party came up the whole body of men, who
-had been informed of the King’s approach, drew up in
-front of the camp in a line along the avenue, and
-waited for him to say something to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My men,” said the King, “you are called here on
-a mission which had never before fallen to the lot of
-Onians. A great storm has visited On and has left as
-a legacy of its mighty strength, a great crack in the
-wall which surrounds our world. This must not
-remain so, for it is meant that we should be guarded
-by the wall, and consequently we must close up the
-trench. It will be a mighty undertaking, the great
-wall about the hunting reserve being nothing in comparison
-to it. It will require a great length of time
-to do this work and you who have come to do this,
-will have to remain here at the same work until it is
-finished, as it will be impossible to go from here each
-day and take up other duties. We are a great distance
-from the city, and it will not be possible for you
-to return frequently, but this you shall do as often as
-you decide upon among yourselves. To-morrow we
-will move to the pit where the great work is to be
-done, and after finishing all preliminary arrangements
-we will commence at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This is to protect our good country and I know the
-work will be done well and quickly. Until to-morrow,
-then, I will bid you farewell.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men bowed in their stately way and the King
-and his party moved on to the villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The volcano seemed to be especially active to-night,
-the smoke not being as black, but more steam seemed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_307'>307</span>to be mixed with it. The fires, too, seemed to be very
-active, for the glare would be very bright at times
-and illuminate the entire heavens, and then dying
-until scarcely a ray of light could be seen. And
-several times during the evening a low rumbling was
-heard, and the earth trembled slightly; then the volcano
-would throw forth an immense shower of hot
-ashes, rocks and stones and make the hissing noise,
-reaching over this great distance to the party at the
-villa, who were on the terrace watching the scene
-which was ever changing and ever interesting.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is more fitful to-night than ever,” said Mr.
-Bruce, to Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Graham, “and I think we are foolish
-in staying so close to this seething mass of lava,
-rock and ashes which may overflow its bounds and engulf
-us at any moment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But we are far enough away to escape if we should
-be threatened,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“So the Pompeiians and even those of Herculaneum
-thought, as they laughed and jested on, while old
-Vesuvius was preparing to bury them,” said Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then you think we had better leave this place?”
-asked Mr. Bruce, convinced himself that they were
-playing with fire by remaining here.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do most assuredly,” replied Mr. Graham, “but I
-hate to do so, for this sight is grand and one which we
-may never see again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Would it not be well to conduct the ladies to some
-villa at a safe distance and then return and see the
-thing out. I confess it has a strange fascination for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_308'>308</span>me, and I would like to see the grand climax,” said
-Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That may be a long time coming,” said Mr.
-Graham, “for these things are very uncertain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is true,” said Mr. Bruce, “but I have a
-strange premonition or something, whatever you might
-call it, that this grand finale will come very soon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If it does,” said Mr. Graham, “and catches us here
-we are doomed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai and Enola then came up and turning to the
-King, Mr. Bruce said: “Aren’t you a little hasty in
-sending your men to work on that dreadful volcano?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I may be,” said Onrai, “but I have taken your
-advice in the matter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I did give you such advice,” said Mr. Bruce, “but
-I did not think at the time that the volcano would assume
-such a lively attitude. You may be interested
-in knowing, Onrai, that that great seething mass of
-ashes and melted rock, may overflow its confines at
-any time and destroy every man in this party, if he
-were near enough to it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As Mr. Bruce finished speaking, an unusually severe
-shock was felt, and great showers of red-hot coals were
-driven high into the air, and then, falling back into
-the crater, all was dark for a moment, after which the
-volcano assumed the same appearance as it had ever
-in its quieter moments, for the last twenty-four hours.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not think it is advisable to send the men to
-the mountain just yet,” said Mr. Bruce. “We will
-want them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party remained on the terrace until far into the
-night, witnessing the weird sight. The volcano might
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_309'>309</span>be said to be in a state of eruption now, but not a violent
-state of eruption.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is certainly throwing off enough matter to be
-considered in a state of eruption,” said Mr. Graham,
-as he and Mr. Bruce were about to retire for the night.
-“But if it grows no worse than this, we are safe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But it will get worse,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But, notwithstanding this prediction, on the following
-morning when the party arose and looked at the
-volcano, the first thing that had been their wont to do
-ever since being here, they were surprised to see only
-a thin column of smoke rising from the volcano. The
-black cloud had entirely disappeared and a vaporous
-volume now rising might be taken for that coming
-from a camp fire, so small and insignificant was it.
-Mr. Graham and Mr. Bruce looked in astonishment at
-this new freak in the rather prolific volcano, and
-were unable to offer any explanations.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is beyond explaining, I think,” said Mr. Graham,
-after the two had stood for a long time contemplating
-the now almost lifeless volcano.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is more than I expected, at any rate,” said Mr.
-Bruce, a little slowly, as he remembered his last words
-of the night before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You were not alone in your belief of yesterday,”
-said Mr. Graham, “for we all expected to see a mighty
-eruption.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is better as it is, probably,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“but I am disappointed. If it remains as tranquil as
-this another twenty-four hours, I shall make another
-visit to its crater and see if it is really as quiet as it
-looks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I will go with you,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_310'>310</span>So the day wore on and night came and went and
-another day broke fresh, beautiful and sunshiny, and
-the volcano was as quiet as on the morning previous.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you think of the volcano, to-day?” asked
-Onrai of Mr. Bruce. “Will it be advisable for me to
-start the men to work?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think you can send them to the volcano to-day
-with perfect safety,” said Mr. Bruce. “The danger is
-past, I think, for the present, but may not be for good,
-for the volcano, now that it has again broken out, may
-become active frequently.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Enough,” said Onrai, “I will get the men in readiness,
-for they can work but a week at this time, as they
-will have to return to the city to celebrate the Day of
-Resis. All are required to be there on that day.
-During this week they can get well started, and upon
-their return they can begin where they left off.
-Would you like to accompany me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“With pleasure,” added they all in chorus, and together
-they started for the camp on the other side of
-the avenue.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men had been up for sometime, the morning
-meal had been eaten and the remains cleared away,
-and they were now awaiting orders from the King.
-The party crossed the avenue and immediately upon
-the word being sent around the camp that the King
-was with them, all were attention and awaiting
-orders. One of the men, who seemed to have command,
-came forward and received orders from the
-King to get in readiness at once, and proceed to the
-cliff to begin operations. It took but a moment for
-the word to be sent flying around the camp, and in an
-instant, almost, the tents were lowered, rolled up and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_311'>311</span>placed upon the backs of the zebras and elephants, and
-the men in line to start.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If these men are as practical in their fighting as
-they are in this kind of work, what an army they would
-make,” said Harry, who had spent five years in one of
-the crack regiments of the O. N. G., and thought he
-understood the art of breaking camp.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“These men could be made regular fighting machines,”
-said Mr. Bruce. “Did you see how they
-fought on the nights when the negroes tried to make
-the attack on the villa? They stood like statues until
-the hot breath of the negroes were in their faces, and
-then their arms rose and fell like automatons, and each
-stroke killed its man. I never saw a cooler piece of
-business in my life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Their great ability in this direction is to be wasted
-though, if such an ability can be wasted,” said Harry;
-“for with the crevice closed again, they will never have
-a chance to try their powers in this direction against
-invaders.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it is far better as it
-is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men had now fallen into line, none of them riding,
-for only the pack animals were to be taken. In a
-column of tens they started on their march over the
-bad lands toward the crevice. There were fully five
-thousand of these, and they made a most imposing
-sight as they marched in perfect order, each man having
-slung over his shoulder, his cross-bow, and in his
-belt, his dagger and ax. These equipments had been
-brought along for two reasons; they might have to
-fight off the negroes, and then they had to make hunting
-tours to get meat for the camp. In perfect step,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_312'>312</span>this army of giants moved toward the cliffs. They
-had gone several miles, when, looming up before them,
-they saw an immense body of negroes, speared and
-hatcheted, and ready for the fray.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLI.<br /> <span class='large'>THE SLAUGHTER.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The leader of the large body stopped short and
-those in the rear craned their necks to see what had
-caused the sudden halt; but they could see nothing,
-for it was only the leaders, who had just reached the
-top of a slight eminence, who could see the large body
-of negroes, standing with shields in place and spears
-in hand as if expecting the Onians. The men looked
-again and could hardly believe their eyes. No, they
-could not be mistaken; there they were; an array of
-black, grinning devils, brandishing their spears, or
-pounding their shields with them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai and his friends, who had been riding in the
-rear, hurried forward when the column stopped, to see
-what was the matter. It took them sometime to do
-this, but when they arrived at the head of the column
-and saw from their high position on the elephants’
-backs, the great body of negroes facing them and only
-half a mile distant, their surprise knew no bounds.
-The Onians looked at the King and his white companions,
-as if wondering if they had been led to this
-point by a lie, to fight these black animals, for none of
-them realized that these black, shiny-skinned and nude
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_313'>313</span>beings were human. But why should the King lie to
-them? They were perfectly willing to come here on
-any mission for the King, and it was not necessary to
-get them here by a ruse.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again that superstitious fear of the whites took possession
-of them, and their faces began to assume that
-startled look as if afraid that some unknown calamity
-was about to overtake them. They kept their eyes
-on the whites as they advanced and consulted with
-the King. Why were they talking in such low tones?
-Why did they not address the men and explain this
-new mystery? Not a word had passed between the
-Onians, but the same fear seemed to take possession
-of them at the same time, and they looked from one
-to the other and knew that the same thoughts had
-come to all.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce looked over the men and noticed that
-hunted look in their faces, and he knew that immediate
-action must be taken or they would be lost; that these
-men, crazed for the moment by a superstitious fear,
-might turn on them first and, getting them out of the
-way, turn and flee from the strange enemy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, as he rode up hastily beside
-the King, “Quick, don’t lose a moment, but order
-the pack animals to the rear. The men are becoming
-demoralized and need immediate action or all is lost.
-The old suspicion in regard to us has again taken possession
-of them and they may turn on us at any moment.
-It matters little about us, but the negroes
-must be driven back. Give your orders.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai turned to the men and he too, saw that dread
-look on their faces.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Men,” said he, almost beside himself with fear of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_314'>314</span>consequences if he should lose control of them; “men,
-yonder horde of black demons are here to take your
-country, to take your lives, but worse, to take your wives,
-mothers, brothers and sisters. They are here to destroy
-our land, to devastate our fields of grain and fruit, to
-steal and kill our animals, to destroy our beautiful city
-and the many villas throughout our land. They know
-no law, they have no religion, they care nothing for
-the lives of others. They will kill us or drive us from
-our own land, into a distant world where we will starve
-and die. Will you not fight for country, home, loved
-ones and for the right? These demons have come
-through the crevice which we were this day to commence
-closing, and they must be driven back. If we
-do not drive them back, killing as many as is in our
-power in doing so, then will they force us to travel
-that path which leads from our old Land of On, and
-which, when once followed, can never be retraced.
-Come, Onians, quickly; shall it be those black beasts
-who shall leave On, or ourselves?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men looked at each other in astonishment.
-They could not realize at first that such a state of
-affairs could possibly exist, as there being the remotest
-possibility of their being driven from this land,
-which was theirs by right of inheritage and possession.
-The truth began to dawn on them, though, as Onrai
-continued speaking, and when he had finished, a low
-rumbling sound was heard, like the first faint sound of
-the approaching earthquake, but like this it grew in
-volume, until it broke in a mighty shout, and the men
-were Onrai’s, to do with as he wished. Only let
-them drive from the beautiful land of On the hated
-beasts which faced them, waiting the end of the parley.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_315'>315</span>Onrai understood that shout, although he had never
-heard it before as a shout of consent, he had heard it
-frequently as one of approbation, when he or others of
-the land would perform some particularly hard feat in
-athletics, or show great heroism in the hunt. It simply
-meant that they were pleased with what he said,
-and they were anxious to get at the fray.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will give you orders at first,” said Onrai, “but
-you must obey those of my companions when they
-give them. They have had invaders in their land and
-have learned to repulse them, and drive them back.
-Do as they command you and we will be victorious.
-Are you ready?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again that shout.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then get the pack animals to the rear quickly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Without a word the elephants were driven to the
-rear, and the men awaited further orders.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Bruce,” said Mr. Graham, “we think you are
-better capable of handling these men and we will act
-as your subordinates.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I accept the commission,” replied Mr. Bruce, “not
-because I feel myself superior to yourself or Harry,
-but because some one must act at once. We will
-divide our men into three battalions and march in
-line of battle. Harry, you will take the right. Mr.
-Graham, you will take the left and I will take the centre.
-If the negroes, as I expect them to do, charge
-straight for the centre, you will each close in on their
-flanks; but if you see the centre giving way, rush for
-that point at once for we must hold the position. Now
-we will divide our men.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They divided the men into three battalions and
-formed them into the line of battle, explaining to them,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_316'>316</span>in the meantime, that they must hold fast together,
-and not allow the negroes to break their line. The
-men went about the different manœuvres like old soldiers,
-when they once saw through them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The line now drew up and Mr. Graham, Mr.
-Bruce and Harry, each in front of his battalion,
-mounted on elephants, with Onrai riding next to Mr.
-Bruce in the centre, they marched slowly toward the
-negroes. Every man had his cross-bow in position and
-arrows ready for use. The formidable hatchet and
-daggers were in the belts handy, and where they could
-be gotten at the most easily. The negroes’ faces had
-lost the grin, and the yells had ceased for the moment
-as they saw the array of giants advancing. They had
-never before, in all their many wars, stood before such
-a formidable body of men, and their courage was failing
-them. But they had a chief, a wild, barbarous fellow,
-who knew not what fear was, and seeing that
-cowardly look stealing over the faces of his men, he
-jumped before them and racing up and down in front
-of the line, halloed and yelled, pounding his spear on
-the shield, and in this way worked the men into such
-a state of bravery, which was only equaled by his own.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then again facing the army, which was moving
-silently toward them, he gave a few words of command,
-and with a yell and a rush, they came tearing
-toward the Onians.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Halt!” thundered Mr. Bruce. “Stand fast and
-do not let them force your line.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the black demons came, never stopping until
-within range, when Mr. Bruce, giving command, a volley
-of arrows poured into the negroes and nearly the entire
-front line of these fell. This checked the negroes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_317'>317</span>but rallying in a moment they again charged, and
-before the Onians could raise their bows, the negroes
-had raised their spears and hurled them at their enemy.
-The volley made most frightful havoc with the front
-rank, and the Onians fell back for a moment, for the
-first time in their lives seeing a body of their men
-killed in this way. They looked at the dead and
-wounded, not knowing what to think of this fearful
-slaughter, and again the strange fear began to creep
-over them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“On, men, do not stop!” commanded Onrai, seeing
-them falter, “or they will kill you all. Don’t you see
-they have killed your comrades? Avenge them!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the men, looking up, and seeing the black
-demons on them, and fearing the same fate which had
-met their companions, made a rush, and with the daggers
-uplifted, on they went at the blacks, meeting them
-with a crash as they came forward, and hurling them
-back by their superior weight. Then began a most
-fearful slaughter. The Onians, remembering the
-death of their companions, became as Bruce had said
-they would, regular fighting machines. Even he and
-his subordinates were swept on by the irresistible
-ranks from the rear as they pushed their companions
-forward. Perfect order was kept, however, and those
-in the front ranks wielded the dagger with fearful force
-and alacrity. The negroes, overpowered, and almost
-crazed with fear at the slaughter going on among their
-people, forgot all about fighting or even defending
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The one great desire to escape these fearful daggers
-took complete possession of them; they turned on
-their countrymen who were crowding them forward,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_318'>318</span>and using their hatchets, fists or feet, they walked,
-ran, rolled or crowded over these, trying to get out of
-reach of those muscular arms which were now as
-bloody as the knives they wielded, but stained with
-the blood of the negroes. At last they broke into a
-run and started for the crevice, which was a good four
-or five miles distant. The Onians needed no orders
-now, but rushed wildly after the fleeing negroes. The
-negroes being light of limb, however, and probably
-used to such rough fields as this, gained on the Onians
-and were some distance ahead, when, looking ahead of
-them they saw another band marching toward them.
-This proved to be a reinforcement, and the chief of
-the routed band, after haranguing his tribe for a moment,
-prevailed on them to turn, and with the reinforcement
-again give the giants battle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The flying Onians were again brought to a halt by
-Mr. Bruce, and formed in regular line of battle. The
-remaining negroes also formed in line of battle and
-advanced, as nearly as could be judged, almost in equal
-numbers to the Onians. Their chief was again running
-up and down in front of the line crying, and soon
-had the men worked up into another fiendish frenzy.
-Mr. Bruce halted his men, determined to wait for the
-negroes. The negroes came tearing forward until
-within a few feet of the Onians, when the latter again
-raised their cross-bows and sent a volley of arrows
-into the front ranks of the negroes. But the negroes
-were expecting them now, and turned the arrows aside
-with their shields, scarcely a dozen having fallen.
-They did not stop, but kept up the mad rush until
-within twenty-five feet of the Onians, when they
-stopped suddenly and their right arms shooting out
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_319'>319</span>quickly the fearful, sharp, spear-pointed hatchets, flew
-toward the Onians, and striking the unprotected
-bodies of the giants, passed clear through them. Then,
-with a sudden jerk of the wrist, the hatchet was
-wrenched from the gaping wound, and pulled back to
-the negro by the leather string which was attached to
-the handle of the hatchet. Then again would the
-deadly weapon be hurled, and again buried in the
-breast of a fresh victim; and again and again, the
-whole fearful thing being done so quickly that the
-weapon could scarcely be seen flying through the air.
-The slaughter was worse than had been that of the
-negroes by the knives of the Onians. The horribly
-lacerated bodies were being piled up high on the
-ground, but the brave Onians still stood perfectly
-helpless in front of those merciless hatchets.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce was nonplussed for a moment. This
-style of warfare was so new to him and so horrible, he
-could but look and wonder at the horrible ingenuity of
-the weapons.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Send a volley of arrows into them,” cried the
-King, who seemed to come to his senses first.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men mechanically raised their bows, but before
-they could spring them, the deadly hatchets struck
-them full in the chests or bodies, and torn and bleeding,
-with a hole clean through them, in which an arm
-could have been shoved, they fell headlong over the
-bodies of their companions, who had met the same
-miserable fate. The situation was becoming desperate.
-Men who had shown such bravery, and
-who could on equal terms annihilate the army before
-them, were beginning to quail before that fearful
-onslaught, and were unconsciously probably, falling
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_320'>320</span>back. Still that fearful, never-ceasing charge of flying
-hatchets. Slowly the men fell back, but the movement
-was becoming quicker each moment. In a few
-minutes more they would be in a run, and all would
-be lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce was growing desperate, as he saw this
-grand army being demoralized by one which was so
-inferior in every respect. Riding down the line with
-the huge elephant, which was pierced by the hatchets
-as he passed before them, he called to the men to take
-courage and rally once more. Onrai, too, rode before
-them, and by every word he knew, tried to imbue them
-with new courage. But he understood how these poor
-men, who had been kept in ignorance their whole lives,
-of the existence of other races, and the art of fighting,
-could not understand why this awful slaughter should
-be, or who these demons could be who were mowing
-them down by hundreds. The horrible dread was
-taking possession of them again, and Onrai and his
-companions saw this.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Men of On,” said Onrai, in despair, “these devils
-will not only kill you and your companions, but they
-will kill your wives, sisters and brothers; they will
-throw down your houses, they will destroy the land.
-Brave men of On, who turn not from the lion, tiger or
-elephant, do not let these black beasts show themselves
-the greater. Turn on them, cut them, chop them, beat
-them, hammer their foul bodies into the earth, slash
-them until not a piece large enough is left to feed a
-jackal. On to them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Bruce had given Harry and Mr. Graham orders
-to close in with their battalions, as soon as Onrai
-could again encourage the men to advance, and show
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_321'>321</span>no mercy; to ride into the black ranks with the elephants,
-and crush them beneath their feet. Accordingly,
-when Onrai had ceased speaking, and had turned
-and had himself led the way into the black ranks, the
-men went with a rush, notwithstanding that hundreds
-of them dropped in the advance. Harry and Mr.
-Graham closed in on their flanks, and were slowly surrounding
-the now emboldened blacks.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Still they plied the frightful weapons, and scores of
-the Onians were dropping. It was a fearful advance,
-but the men were sticking to it bravely; but there
-were great chances against their ever overcoming this
-hellish tribe, with their fiendish weapons. The Onians
-were again losing ground, they could not withstand
-that awful massacre.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But what is this coming up in the rear? The earth
-trembles as with another earthquake, but there is no
-rumbling with it now. The men looked back. Ah,
-yes, it is Sedai mounted on Gip, and with a hundred
-immense elephants back of him, all being hurried on
-by their riders. Quickly the elephants come forward,
-their swinging gait turning their bodies from side to
-side, the earth trembling with each fall of their huge
-feet. Straight for the blacks they made the ranks of
-the Onians breaking away to allow them to pass. The
-blacks look and see the awful enemy coming straight
-for them, on which their murderous hatchets could
-have no effect. They hurled once more the hatchets
-at the Onians, and pulling these back, dropped them
-at their sides, and tried by flight to escape the crushing
-feet of the elephants. But the elephants rushed
-into their midst, not only killing with their fearful feet
-but using their trunks and tusks as well, slaying and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_322'>322</span>crushing as they went. Now the Onians made a
-charge, and clutching their daggers in one hand and
-the hatchets in the other, done as Onrai had told them
-to do, and hacked and chopped, and cut and beat and
-pounded the enemy, their faces and arms being covered
-with the blood, but still showing no mercy; they
-were for the time merciless brutes. They had fallen
-on to the flanks of the negroes, and such was their
-fearful onslaught, and so fast were these hacked and
-mutilated bodies piled up, that it looked as if the awful
-carnage would not cease, until every black carcass was
-heaped up in one fearful mass of reeking and quivering
-flesh.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But a low, rumbling sound is heard, which grows
-louder and louder, and comes nearer and nearer. It
-is another earthquake. The Onians stop for a moment
-in their awful massacre, and in this one moment
-the remainder of the black horde turn and make for
-the crevice. The earth was shaking fearfully though
-and the men could hardly keep their feet. On they
-staggered, until the Onians, finally realizing that the
-blacks were escaping them, made a rush after
-them. But the earth still trembled and it was suddenly
-growing dark. What was wrong with the volcano?
-A huge mass of stones and smoke came forth
-in a rush in a greater volume than it had at any time
-before, and great showers of rock and ashes were
-pouring from its hellish mouth. On the negroes ran,
-and on the Onians sped after them. The negroes had
-now reached the crevice, and were fighting for a foothold
-on the ledge. Some of them were successful, but
-most of them were forced over the side, falling into
-the yawning abyss below. The Onians were about to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_323'>323</span>dash after them, when a fearful, deafening report was
-heard, and looking up to the volcano, they saw a
-mighty mass of molten lava thrown far into the heavens,
-and then dropping back into the crater, overflow
-the wall of this, and fall in a great stream into the
-crevice. Our friends, spellbound, watched the sight,
-while the immense flow of lava rolled over the sides of
-the mountain, and into the crevice, filling up that
-great hole. It was running in a monstrous flow, easily
-five hundred feet wide, and twenty feet deep, as near
-as our friends could calculate. It came pouring through
-the crevice, well up toward the party, and they started
-back, in alarm; but it gained on them, and to make it
-worse, a terrible shower of hot ashes and water was
-pouring down on them. They were blinded and gasping
-for breath, turned toward the villa. They were
-being burned and scalded, their feet becoming blistered;
-they could not see, they could not breathe.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLII.<br /> <span class='large'>BURIED ALIVE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>And so they stumbled blindly on, blindly, for they
-could not open their eyes because of the fearful dust
-and ashes. The thick cloud of dust and ashes came
-forth in a mighty avalanche, burying the land and
-filling the air with its death-dealing particles; making
-such a darkness as could be felt; a close, suffocating
-darkness more like the blackness of an unventilated
-dungeon than the open darkness of night; a darkness
-which was penetrated only by the mighty light of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_324'>324</span>belching volcano, the light varying with every phase
-of the eruption; now a lurid glare which gave the
-dust-covered earth the appearance of a blood-stained
-floor; again it would change to a blue which would
-almost equal the soft rays of the moon; then it would
-die away to a faint green, casting a death-like glow
-over all.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the fearful rumbling continued and far down in
-the bowels of the earth, could be heard that great lake
-or river of molten rock and ore, rushing to the outlet
-which would free it; and the earth would tremble
-with the fearful fight of the mass as it surged and
-burned and crushed its way through its underground
-channels. Then again could be heard the hissing and
-blowing off of the steam as it escaped from the crevice
-in the crater.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>About the fleeing army fell the hot ashes and steam.
-They had made a wild rush toward the villa when the
-first shower had struck them, and they were still
-hurrying as fast as their bleeding feet could carry
-them. They had covered miles, and this was wonderful
-when it was considered, that the ashes had fallen
-almost to the depth of a foot; and each step that they
-took they would sink into the hot, ragged substance
-which would burn and blister their feet, protected only
-by sandals. And their progress would be suddenly
-checked now and then, by great fragments of rock,
-having been hurled by the awful power of the volcano,
-falling directly in their path, perhaps crushing one of
-the poor Onians beneath its weight. Then in their
-blindness they would rush into each other, knocking
-each other down, and burnt and bleeding, and almost
-smothered by the fearful dust, they could hardly regain
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_325'>325</span>their feet. But hurry as they would their progress
-was growing slower each moment and they were
-not getting out of the fearful shower of dust and
-ashes. This seemed to grow worse as they advanced,
-and the survivors, who were still left to suffer on, were
-fast giving out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It looked as if they could not possibly survive the
-terrible struggle, this unequal fight with the forces of
-the earth’s interior. The atmosphere would clear for
-a moment, and the lurid glare of the volcano would
-again light up the scene, giving a momentary hope
-which would be killed again by a heavier downpour of
-ashes and dust. Then the struggle would recommence;
-a silent struggle, for no sound was made by
-these helpless creatures, as they fought on, gasping for
-breath, reeling in their weakness, falling now; but
-putting forth another great effort and standing erect
-once more they would stumble ahead again and so on,
-until, strength exhausted, they would fall for the last
-time, the shower of ashes and dust soon choking their
-last breath, and burying the burned and bleeding
-bodies beneath their awful folds. But these Onians
-were more than ordinary men, they had more vital life
-in their bodies, they were strong to the last muscle;
-their every sinew was developed and health and exercise
-made them powerful, and so they kept up the struggle
-longer than would our friends had they been on foot.
-But they had been mounted on great elephants during
-the battle. They at first mounted them upon leaving
-the camp in the morning, expecting only to accompany
-the men to their scene of labor when they would return.
-So when the negroes were met, and they saw
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_326'>326</span>that a battle was inevitable, they remained mounted
-so as to better conduct the fight.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At first it had been suggested that they should ride
-zebras, but it was decided to take the elephants, as
-they would stand the hard journey over the bad lands
-better. And it had been a lucky decision on their
-part, for now they were saved the fearful fight with
-that hot shower of ashes, which not only filled the air,
-making it almost impossible to breathe, but which also
-made a bed which was nearly impossible to walk over
-or through, as the bed had grown to such a depth, that
-it was nothing more than wading, Sedai had been foremost,
-in the charge of the elephants into the negro
-band, and had gotten far ahead of his friends, reaching
-the volcano even before some of the negroes had.
-When he saw that awful sea of lava pouring over the
-side of the crevice, he had turned and motioned his
-comrades to follow, and had made Gip understand
-that he must travel as he had never traveled before.
-The intelligent animal seemed to understand, and
-hurried on, too, by the heat and burning ashes as they
-fell on his back, he started on a run which would have
-soon brought them safely to the villa, if the air and
-road had not been obstructed by the miserable ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the elephants, all of which had followed Gip,
-were, too, experiencing the torture of the awful cloud
-and shower, and they had stumbled many times, over
-the rocks and in the soft bed which was getting deeper
-each moment. The elephants had kept close together
-though, and had in this way, kept trodden a very good
-path. Our friends could see, during the few intervals
-when the cloudy atmosphere would break and the
-light of the volcano penetrate this, the poor Onians
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_327'>327</span>stumbling along in the darkness and scorching cinders.
-They had called to them to keep up courage, but it
-was needless advice to these men, for they would not
-give up until the last moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had tried to get the elephants to kneel, and
-take on their backs, as many as they could carry; but
-the animals, crazed by pain and fear, dashed on, often
-crushing beneath their feet, those whom their riders
-would save. And so the elephants rushed on and as
-the light would break through the awful blackness, the
-riders could see that the number of poor pedestrians
-was growing less and less, until at last, none were
-seen. They had all succumbed to the overpowering
-cloud of ashes, and their bodies now strewed the
-ground, which but a few hours before they had passed
-over, strong in healthful life; and of the five thousand
-who had started on the march that morning not one
-was left; all, all had met their fate. Some by the
-deadly hatchets of the negroes, others by the fearful
-downpour of hot cinders.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The Land of On had met its first great catastrophe;
-it had for the first time in his history, experienced
-some of those adversities, which had so frequently
-befallen the other countries of the world. But our
-friends were still alive. Onrai, Mr. Graham, Mr.
-Bruce, Harry and Sedai, were being borne through the
-blackness by the elephants. Their throats were
-parched, even their lungs seemed burning up with the
-great heated shower of ashes, which they had been
-compelled to breathe so long. Their eyes were almost
-swollen shut, their faces and bodies were covered with
-blisters where the cruel, hot cinders had struck them.
-Even they, who had not been exposed wholly to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_328'>328</span>storm, and who had been spared the awful struggle of
-limping through the hot bed of cinders, even they
-began to despair of ever getting out of this radius of
-dust and ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the elephants were now beginning to stumble
-and sway from side to side, growing weaker and
-weaker with the terrible exertion, their strength being
-sapped by the plungings into the ash-bed, which was
-now beyond their knees. They would rock from side
-to side striking each other, but, again bracing up, try it
-once more. The position of our friends was becoming
-unsafe, as the elephants were liable to fall at any
-moment and crush them beneath their huge bodies;
-but it meant sure death to leave their backs, so expecting
-death to overtake them each moment, either from
-the burning air which was scorching their very lungs,
-or beneath the prostrate animals which were now
-struggling so bravely to save them. They were hurrying
-on, but where? Only to death. Again there was
-a fearful rumbling, the very bowels of the earth seeming
-to be disjointed and ground to fragments. It
-grew louder and louder; it almost deafened the sounds
-of hissing steam and ashes which fell around the little
-group, and the sucking sound caused by the sinking in
-and pulling out of the feet of the fast-failing animals.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Finally the earth began to shake and the exhausted
-elephants, unable to withstand this new enemy, fell to
-their knees and then flat on their sides. The men had
-strength enough left to jump and save themselves
-from being crushed, but they were forced nearly to
-the hips into the ashes, and they could not extricate
-themselves. Then this was the last, this was the end
-of the happy sojourn in the Land of On. No, it could
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_329'>329</span>not be, they must not die here in this miserable way
-and be buried by the never-ceasing shower; they must
-struggle on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Up,” said Mr. Bruce to his elephant, as the rumbling
-ceased and the earth again became steady.
-“Once more, now,” he halloed out as he reached
-forward and struck the poor beast across the ear
-with his hook. But the elephant, after making several
-ineffectual struggles, gave a plaintive cry and let its
-head drop into the relentless ashes. As in a quicksand,
-the five men stood perfectly helpless, and their
-lives fast going out. The elephants had, one by one,
-given up the struggle, and were now panting and gasping
-and waiting for the end. They seemed to realize
-that they were doomed and the plaintive cry would
-break from their gasping throats, as if asking aid of
-those whom they had tried to save, but all were powerless.
-Hope was fast failing them. They could not
-possibly last much longer, but what mattered it
-whether they went now, or lived to suffer for a few
-moments longer. There was no power on earth that
-could save them now, and they must look death square
-in the face. It seemed hard surely, to die so near to
-friends, and life and sunshine, for they knew that this
-death-dealing shower could not extend many miles unless
-it be worse than was that other.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They knew that the dear ones were safe in the villa,
-for, though they were in the radius of the shower, they
-were sheltered from this, and the flow of lava had not
-run toward the villa, or they would have seen it. It
-was some consolation then to know, that if they must
-die, these dear ones at least were safe. But what will
-become of them alone in this strange land? They
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_330'>330</span>would have to entrust themselves wholly to the people,
-who had once looked upon them with superstitious
-fear, and who might again, after this dreadful catastrophe,
-turn on them, and having no longer any one to
-protect them, or having no defense to offer as they had
-before, destroy them. It was not pleasant to think
-thus as the awful ashes continued to pile up around
-them, burying them alive.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The pain which this thought gave them of possible
-danger to their loved ones, was worse than the physical
-tortures which they were now suffering, and they
-turned and wrenched their bodies in their living graves,
-in very agony of mind. And Onrai, too, seemed to
-be suffering more than bodily pain. If his thoughts
-could have been read, they probably would have told
-the story of baffled hopes, and of the death of aspirations
-which the love for Enola had kindled in him. It
-was harder for him to die thus than for any of the
-others, for he had been so strong and mighty, and his
-life was full of such bright hopes, and he had so much
-to live for, but it was ended. All, all was lost.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But may be not, thought Mr. Bruce, for Gip, who
-had laid for a moment perfectly quiet, had now begun
-to again exert his awful strength and was twisting and
-plunging about, as if to make a place on which he
-could stand. He accomplished this finally and rose to
-his feet. He had had a short rest from the fearful
-struggles of the flight, and he could again commence
-the fight. Sedai, who was near him, caught the
-howdah as he rose and was lifted out of the ashes.
-He then made Gip understand that he was to help
-the others, and one by one the great elephant, lifted
-by his trunk, raised them to his back. Then starting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_331'>331</span>in the direction, which they had kept since starting on
-the awful ride, the great beast fought on; they had
-been moving thus for several moments, when he suddenly
-stopped and refused to move further. Just then
-the sky became light for the moment, and a zebra was
-seen lying in their path, and lying beneath it, the body
-of Enola.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLIII.<br /> <span class='large'>LOST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>But what of those who had been left behind?
-What had been their fate, and how had they spent
-those dreadful hours, when they could but reasonably
-expect that their companions, who had left them only
-that morning alive with hope and health, had met the
-most miserable death? The morning had been beautiful,
-and all had gone to see the striking of the tents
-and breaking of camp, and they had followed the
-marching army for some distance over the bad lands;
-but at the earnest request of the men they had at last
-turned and gone back to the villa. They had noticed
-the continued inactivity of the volcano and had hoped,
-woman fashion, that the worst might be over, and their
-spirits had been, accordingly, bright.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the long morning hours grew tiresome, and the
-women became restless, and could find no way to pass
-the weary time. They spent a while on the terrace,
-but the garden had lost all its beauty by the shower of
-ashes. They ate their luncheon mechanically at midday
-and then tried to sleep awhile, but made a sad
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_332'>332</span>failure of this, and at last, not knowing what else to
-do, they had ordered their zebras and started for a ride
-down the avenue. It was not long before they were
-well beyond the radius of falling ashes, and it was a
-great relief to them to see green fields and shady trees
-again, and the beautiful smooth pavement of the
-avenue. They rode for a long distance, forgetting, in
-their pleasure, that they were getting a long way from
-the villa. But the sun was so bright here, and everything
-so fresh and green, and the air so pure, they
-dreaded returning to the rather doubtful atmosphere
-of the villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But they must turn now, for the sun was getting
-well down toward the west, and what is that? The
-question was easily answered, for they had become
-quite accustomed to the rumbling sound of the earthquakes.
-Still it startled them, and they urged their
-beasts forward. The sound grew nearer, and then the
-earth began to shake so violently the zebras tottered
-and almost fell. And then another awful shock came,
-and the zebras became frightened, and, taking the soft
-bit between their teeth, they tore down the avenue.
-Then the awful explosion came like the report of a
-thousand cannons, and the riders saw the awful spout
-of dust, ashes, steam, smoke, pouring from the volcano,
-and almost immediately afterward they were engulfed
-in that fearful black atmosphere which choked and
-blinded them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The zebras stopped so suddenly that their riders almost
-lost their seats, but by kind words, and by gently
-patting them, they were persuaded to proceed carefully.
-Here the avenue was plain to see, and there
-was little fear of losing the way, but the ashes were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_333'>333</span>falling with such force and such volume, the roadway
-was fast becoming blocked. Still the zebras were
-light-footed, and their riders had hopes of their being
-able to reach the villa. But the borders of the avenue
-continued in that unbroken line of trees, and the surrounding
-country was so much alike, it was hard to
-tell just where to turn off to the villa. The thought
-had occurred to Enola that they might be carried
-by this, and on and on until the beasts, overcome,
-would sink to the ground, leaving the riders to their
-fate. It was impossible to see anything, excepting
-now and then, when the light of the volcano would
-break through the awful gloom for a moment. Even
-then the air was so thick with the cinders and dust,
-they could not penetrate it more than a few feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so they plodded along, each moment the gloom
-becoming more dense and the avenue pavement
-harder for the zebras to traverse. They must certainly
-have reached the villa by this time, but for all
-they could see, they might still be ten miles from it.
-They could not place any dependence on the zebras,
-for they were too badly scared to act rationally; besides
-their senses of smell and sight were entirely lost
-in this stifling atmosphere.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The situation was becoming desperate, but there
-was positively nothing to do but ride on with the forlorn
-hope of riding beyond the circle of the shower.
-But if they could not reach the villa, why not turn
-and ride back to the green fields and open country
-again? Aye, why not. The thought had occurred to
-Enola, and the more she thought of it, the more feasible
-the idea seemed to be, and at last it occurred to
-her that this might be their only chance of escape.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_334'>334</span>Waiting until the volcano’s light broke through the
-gloom for a moment, she motioned to her friends to
-follow her, and after a moment she managed to turn
-her zebra’s head, and when this was done, and they
-had gotten started in the opposite direction, they
-seemed to have the wind at their backs and they
-could ride with a little more comfort. But the darkness
-was intense now, for night had closed in, and if
-possible, had added to the Egyptian blackness. The
-riders could only see each other at very infrequent
-intervals when the volcano’s light would, for a moment,
-melt the gloom and give the almost exhausted
-women a moment’s respite.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were moving very slowly, the ashes getting so
-thick over the avenue pavements, that the zebras
-found it almost impossible to further beat their way
-through it. But one of the infrequent light spells now
-allowed them to look about again, and Enola saw
-that they had left the avenue. On an ordinary
-dark night this could have been easily detected by
-the sound of the zebras’ hoofs, but now the grass sod
-and the hard onyx pavement were the same; they
-were both lost beneath the carpet of ashes. This new
-aspect of things did not please our friends. They
-were being overcome very rapidly by the thick atmosphere;
-it was killing them by inches. They could
-scarcely breathe any longer; every breath was like
-the stab of a stiletto, the sharp particles of the ashes
-had penetrated and cut the soft membranes of the
-throat and lungs, and then that steamy air, upon
-touching the raw flesh would cause the most acute
-pain. Their hands and faces were blistered, and their
-eyes seemed to be burning out of their heads.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_335'>335</span>Enola and Nellie stood it better than Mrs. Graham.
-She had almost fallen from her zebra several times,
-and Nellie and Enola were now trying to ride on
-either side of her, to save her from falling, if possible.
-But it was growing worse each moment, and hope
-was nearly dead. They were staggering along in the
-darkness, the zebras every now and then stumbling
-up against a tree, and nearly rubbing their riders from
-their backs. They felt satisfied that they had lost
-their way, and if this was so, and they could not again
-reach the avenue, then, indeed, might all hope be
-abandoned. Black as Erebus, the air was not only
-laden with the death-dealing ashes, but was so hot
-and humid, that no living thing could withstand it for
-any length of time.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It seemed an age since that first awful rumbling of
-the earth, and this fearful darkness overtook them;
-it seemed that night ought to have given way to day
-and the day to night again. So acute was their pain,
-so fearful the darkness, so quiet all else but the rumbling
-of the earth and the hissing of the steam in the
-volcano, that time itself seemed to stand still waiting
-for the hellish scene to pass. In such a moment one
-could imagine that a lifetime had been passed, and if
-youthful features should be changed to those of old
-age in such a night of suffering, it would not seem
-strange, for in those few short hours more suffering is
-crowded than in many years of ordinary life, and when
-it is all over with, one cannot realize that this could
-be in such a short space of time. Then these women
-were fast losing consciousness; their brains were in a
-whirl; they could no longer think; they had almost
-grown insensible to their pain; their eyes no longer
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_336'>336</span>tried to penetrate the darkness about them; they no
-longer tried to guide the zebras as they had done heretofore,
-notwithstanding that the zebras were more
-likely to know the right path than themselves. They
-still clung to the mane and rein and tried hard to retain
-their seats on the backs of the zebras, but they
-did this mechanically and not because they were guided
-by any spirit of self-protection.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had now became separated too, and each of
-the zebra was trying to pick out a path for itself. But
-it was dreadful, for the zebras were now also wandering
-on from a mere sense of habit, and not because
-they had any longer any hope of escaping. Their
-heads dropped until their noses almost touched the
-ash-covered ground. Their eyelids seemed frozen in
-a cramped position over the eyes and the balls of their
-eyes looked out like pieces of glass which had been
-rubbed with sand paper. There was no longer any
-sight in those eyes; there could not be after being exposed
-to the beating ashes and dust as long as they
-had. The legs of the poor beasts were raw to the
-knees, but still they plodded through the ashes which
-must have set them crazy with pain, if they too had
-not lost all sense of pain.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Such dreadful sufferings could not help but make one
-helplessly mad. It was a hell, an awful, reason-destroying
-hell, but a merciful hell in a way, for although it
-lacerated the poor, tortured bodies of its victims, it at
-the same time destroyed all consciousness of their suffering.
-So like poor, undying spirits in a helpless state
-of painless suffering, if such a thing could be, the zebras
-wandered on, bearing the almost lifeless bodies of the
-women.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_337'>337</span>Suddenly Enola half roused herself and opened her
-swollen eyes. Only for a moment, however, for they
-soon closed again and she lapsed into that comatose
-state, and then had dropped to the zebra’s neck as before.
-But again the eyes half opened and this time
-she showed signs of returning consciousness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the eyes closed again for a moment and then she
-starts as if having been struck; no, she had not been
-mistaken, there it was, a light burning through the
-darkness. Could she call for help? Her throat was
-dry and parched; she had not tried to make a sound
-in hours, days it seemed to her, but she must try now;
-so opening the baked lips she made an effort, but it
-was useless. She could not articulate. But the zebras
-were moving slowly toward the light and they might
-see her yet. It must be the villa and they were safe
-at last. She turned to point the light out to her companions,
-but they are gone. She looked again, for
-just at that moment, the flash of light broke through
-the gloom. But no, her companions were no longer
-with her. Had they found their way to a place of
-safety and had she been lost in the darkness, or had
-they been lost? She tried to remember when she last
-saw them, but she could not. She had a faint recollection
-of their having all been together sometime
-during this awful night, or, was it night? She could
-not say. It might have been years ago, so indefinite
-had grown the flight of time. She again turned toward
-the light; yes, it was still there, and then she tried to
-turn the head of her zebra towards the spot. Her
-arm was stiff and she could hardly move, but she managed
-to slap the zebra on the side of the neck, but he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_338'>338</span>did not turn. He still wandered on in that aimless
-way, seeming to heed nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Oh, this was fearful. She tried again and again but
-the only response the poor beast made, was to drop
-dead in his tracks. She felt him giving way under her
-and made a last effort to save herself, but too late;
-the beast caught her limbs as he fell and half burying
-her in the soft ashes, held her fast. She tried hard and
-wrenched the tender limbs until torn and bleeding, but
-to no purpose; she was held as secure as if tied to the
-side of the beast. She was too exhausted to make
-much of an effort, and the little she had made, had
-caused her to lose consciousness for the moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The moments flew by but all unknown to the poor,
-insensible girl and death seemed inevitable. There
-was no hope now, there could be none, unless it came
-from where that mocking light still gleamed through
-the darkness. But it would have been as helpful to
-the dying woman had it been ten miles away. It was
-better then, that the poor wanderer should never again
-wake to consciousness, for she would be saved the
-helpless suffering caused by knowing that she was near
-help and yet was beyond it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The ashes still fell in torrents, the humid air was
-growing more intolerable each moment with the hot
-steam and dust, and the blackness had grown more intense.
-Yes, it could be felt, and here in the midst of
-all its hellish night, lay Enola dying.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But no, what is that huge mass which has almost
-tramped on her, but which stops just in time? It is
-Gip.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_338fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic003'>
-<p>She tried hard and wrenched her limbs until torn and bleeding, but to no purpose.—<i>Page <a href='#Page_338'>338</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_339'>339</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLIV.<br /> <span class='large'>OUT OF THE ASHES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Yes it was Gip. Great, strong and faithful Gip.
-The only surviving animal of all that vast number which
-had started on that fateful morning for the cliffs. His
-great strength had enabled him to overcome all dangers
-and obstacles thus far, and on his back he bore the few
-whom he had saved. And his almost human intelligence,
-coupled with his animal sagacity, had enabled
-him to direct his course straight for the villa, through
-the almost impenetrable atmosphere and fearful darkness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Each moment the riders had expected to see him
-overcome by these obstacles, but he stumbled on, going
-down on his knees at times, when he would become
-too exhausted to move another step; but after resting
-for a moment, he would struggle to his feet again and
-make another effort. He was almost blind; he must
-be for he had been exposed for so many hours to this
-cyclone of ashes. But he could still see a little, or
-else he would not have stopped when he was about to
-crush out the little remaining life left in Enola. Or,
-was it that animal instinct that made him realize
-that he was about to tread on a human being? But the
-light from the volcano which now half lit up the weird
-scene, must have enabled him to see the prostrate
-zebra and Enola, for he had only stood for a moment,
-when he lowered his monstrous trunk and catching the
-zebra firmly about the neck, lifted him completely from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_340'>340</span>off Enola and laid it at one side. Then he caught up
-Enola as tenderly as a mother would lift her babe, and
-raised her to his back, where Onrai, who seemed to be
-the only one who had retained consciousness, took her
-in his arms, and after patting the noble beast gently on
-the end of his trunk to make him understand that he
-appreciated this last noble deed of his, he settled back
-in the crowded howdah and also lost consciousness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Gip stood for a moment longer and looked about
-him. Yes, he must have seen, for his head turned
-until it was in range with the light seen by Enola, and
-then he starts towards it. The light grew larger as he
-drew nearer to it, and he was finally stopped by the
-terrace of the villa. He had only hesitated for a moment,
-however, and then had mounted the few steps
-and crossed the terrace to the high arched doorway
-of the villa. Over this had been drawn a silk covering,
-to keep out, as much as possible, the ashes and
-dust. Gip did not stop for this, however, but pushed
-right through it. Two or three frightened attendants
-saw the great beast enter with its burden of unconscious
-human beings, and hurrying up to it they stood
-for a moment, while Gip kneeled for those whom he
-had so bravely rescued, to step from his back. He
-was weak and almost exhausted; his great body heaved
-with a short quick respiration, which the heated air
-and over-exertion had caused. His back was covered
-with a thick coating of the ashes, and those who were
-lying or sitting in the howdah were almost buried in
-this awful death-dealing substance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Gip could no longer keep the tiring position,
-and giving a last short pant, he fell over on his side.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Those in the howdah were thrown upon the hard
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_341'>341</span>stone flooring and laid there in a heap. The attendants
-now recognizing the King and his white companions,
-hastened to their assistance, and in a very
-short time they were laid upon couches and after the
-scorched garments had been removed from the bodies,
-they were deluged with cool water and oil. No part
-of their bodies had escaped the tortures of the hot
-ashes and steam, and they were almost raw. The
-limbs of the men who had been buried for some time
-in the bed of cinders, were horribly burned and blistered,
-and even Enola, who, having laid under the
-dead zebra for quite a while, had escaped with hardly
-less injury. Gently the attendants worked on the
-bleeding bodies, not knowing whether life had left
-them or not. It matters little, they thought, for it was
-but a question of a little while longer until all would
-be buried beneath the shower of death, which was
-slowly but surely burying them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But their love for the King and their regard for his
-guests still dominated over all other feelings, and they
-worked hard and faithfully on the survivors. Enola
-was the first to recover consciousness, and when she
-had fully recovered, and she remembered the awful
-ride and that Mrs. Graham and Nellie had been her
-companions, she tried hard to make the attendants
-understand that she wanted to know something of her
-friends. But the poor, bewildered women could not
-comprehend her meaning and sadly shook their heads.
-But Enola did not despair, and kept at them, until, in
-their desire to help her, they sent for one of the men
-who managed to grasp her meaning, and going out
-made inquiries about her companions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had not returned with the others who had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_342'>342</span>been saved, and he now gave this information to
-Enola. She almost became frantic and made such
-pitiful signs for the attendant to go and search for
-her friends, that, notwithstanding his awful fear of the
-dust-laden atmosphere outside, which had killed so
-many of his companions, he went for Enola, promising
-to make a search for Mrs. Graham and Nellie.
-And he did. He persuaded two of his companions to accompany
-him, and with them he managed to reach the
-stables, where the only three remaining elephants had
-been left before the eruption. It took considerable time
-to persuade the beasts to leave their comfortable quarters
-and go into the darkness outside. But the darkness
-cleared in a short time, and the lurid light from the
-volcano made things as light as day. The shower of
-ashes ceased, and the atmosphere became comparatively
-clear, and the elephants strode forth into the
-deep covering of ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The attendant had been able to get but little information
-from Enola, as to what direction they had
-come from when they turned their zebras back. She
-could give them positively no information and could
-not even make them understand that her zebra had
-wandered from the avenue, some distance, she thought
-from the villa; for she could not articulate a word,
-and the men were not accustomed to reading signs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the men started, each taking a different course
-from the front of the villa, hoping in this way to find
-the lost women. One of the attendants stumbled over
-the body of Enola’s zebra the first thing, but after examining
-this and learning that neither of the women
-were with it, he again took up the tramp and had gone
-but a little distance further, when his elephant
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_343'>343</span>stopped. The man looked about him but could see
-nothing. He tried to urge the elephant forward, but
-he would not move. He then slid from its back and
-was half buried in the soft ashes. But his foot had
-struck something which was soft and giving, and stooping
-down, just above the surface he saw a woman’s
-head. It was Mrs. Graham. He gently pushed the
-ashes away from her body, and speaking to the elephant,
-it kneeled, and the man, after much trouble,
-managed to crawl into the howdah with his lifeless
-burden. He continued a short distance further, when,
-not finding the body of Nellie, he returned to the villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Graham was carried carefully into one of the
-apartments and given the same treatment as had been
-the others. It was only a few moments later when
-one of the other men brought in Nellie. He had found
-her in much the same position as had been found her
-mother, but nearly a mile distant from her. It was
-thought for a long time by those who were working on
-them, that they were surely dead, but after very hard
-rubbing and frequent applications of native restoratives,
-they began to show signs of life, and after a
-little they opened their eyes and looked about them.
-That these women had withstood the dreadful experiences
-of the past few hours, could scarcely be believed,
-but so they had, and had regained consciousness long
-before the men.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They too, though, had been brought back to life
-and their first inquiries had been of the women. The
-attendants had told them that the ladies were safe but
-had been somewhat overcome by the close atmosphere,
-and were slightly indisposed as a consequence. But
-Onrai knew that he had seen Enola and had assisted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_344'>344</span>her in some way, but how he could not tell, for the
-whole fearful experience seemed, in some way, like a
-horrible nightmare. He could not yet fully realize
-that the events of the day had really occurred. They
-seemed too horrible to be real. He shuddered as he
-thought of the massacre of his men and later, the horrible
-slaughter of the negroes, and then the last occurrence,
-when the remainder of his men had perished.
-Then the fearful ride for life, the last hope, when the
-elephants gave out, and then the terrible fear that Gip
-would give out after he had once more renewed hope
-in them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then he saw Enola lying there nearly buried beneath
-the dead zebra; he had seen Gip raise her with
-his trunk, then he had clasped her in his arms; but all
-was a blank from here on, until he had wakened and
-found the attendants standing about him, and had felt
-himself bandaged from head to foot. Yes, it must be,
-the whole fearful story must be real; else why this
-terrible weakness and soreness and all these bandages.
-He was convinced at last, that it was no dream, but a
-terrible reality. But he marveled that he and his
-companions yet lived. The whole thing now passed
-before the mind’s eye and as he remembered the flying
-assagais and the formidable spear-pointed hatchets,
-and later, the death-dealing shower of ashes; when he
-thought of how men and beasts had dropped about
-him like sheep, he could but wonder that they, of all
-the others, should survive.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But that brought him to Gip, and he wondered what
-had become of the noble beast. He signed to his
-attendant that he wished to know of the elephant
-which had brought them back. The man left the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_345'>345</span>apartment for a moment, and then returning, said that
-the elephant had borne them directly into the large
-hall of the villa, and had dropped dead a moment
-later. But this did not please Onrai, and he gave
-orders to see that the elephant had restoratives given
-him, and to be sure that he was dead before they gave
-him up. The man had taken several of his companions,
-and they had gone to work on the great
-beast. He was turned on his back with great difficulty,
-and buckets full of stimulants were poured
-down his throat. His head was deluged with water,
-and everything was done to restore the brave animal
-to which the survivors owed their lives. And their
-work was rewarded at last by the animal showing signs
-of life, and a little later, by his again turning on his
-side and attempting to rise. This he finally did, and
-staggering about for a while, he then laid down in one
-corner of the hall and was now resting quietly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So all the survivors were doing as well as could be
-expected after the dreadful experiences through which
-they had passed. But what of the eruption?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Shortly after Gip had burst into the villa with his
-precious load, the shower had ceased, as if the volcano
-had known that now there were no more victims for
-it to destroy, and it was useless for it to further keep
-up the terrible strain which had shook the earth and
-covered a great part of the surrounding country with
-a layer of ashes. But the internal fires were still raging,
-for the great, lurid light flashed into the dark
-heavens above, and made all bright within the radius
-of several miles. There were no more shocks, and the
-violent eruption seemed to have spent its greatest
-force. From the cliff to a point some three miles beyond
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_346'>346</span>the villa, in which lay our friends, the ground
-was covered with a layer of ashes well mixed with a
-sort of loam, which would probably make a fertile soil
-in time. Some large rocks of a lava formation lay
-here and there, having been hurled by the mighty
-internal fires to this distance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lava flow had ceased, too, as far as could be
-seen, for none of the red stream was now visible coming
-over the side of the cliff.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It had been very fortunate for the survivors that the
-flow of lava had confined itself to certain channels, for
-if it had taken the old course, which was shown plainly
-by the bad lands, there would be no hope of their escaping.
-It had run over the sides of the great crevice
-when our friends stood looking at it, and it, together
-with the falling ashes, had been fast filling the awful
-crevice. But would the great eruption end here?
-Truly it had done damage enough, but would the internal
-fires be satisfied with this temporary vent? It
-seemed hardly possible that they would, and if they
-did burst forth again, what would be the further outcome?
-But now it was quiet. The hot bed of steam
-and ashes were fast cooling into an almost solid mass,
-and there would be no more plunging and falling when
-walking over its surface, hereafter. It would be as the
-surface had been before, only a few feet higher.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A few days longer, and if the party had convalesced
-sufficiently to allow them to travel, they would start
-on their return to the city, for Onrai had said that all
-must be in the city on the Day of Resis. Then, after
-the ceremonies of the day, after its mysteries had been
-learned, on the evening of that day, Enola was to become
-the bride of the King.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_347'>347</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLV.<br /> <span class='large'>SEARCHING FOR BODIES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>One week had passed away since the fearful eruption,
-and our friends had convalesced rapidly under
-the care of the attendants, until now all were entirely
-recovered. The sun had shown brightly for a week, its
-light unobstructed by any further shower of ashes.
-The fire and smoke from the volcano had subsided,
-until now but a faint blue line was seen slowly ascending
-into the heavens from the summit of the mountain.
-All about the villa, as far as could be seen, was a bed
-of ashes, or not so much a bed of ashes now as it was a
-cinder soil. But the trees had been stripped of their
-verdure and no green thing was seen. If it were not
-so excessively hot, our friends could have easily believed
-that they were in some temperate zone and
-winter was on them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the cooling of the thick mass had made the
-air hot and humid, almost suffocating; still, notwithstanding
-this, the air had not seemed unhealthful, for
-our friends declared that they had never felt better in
-their lives, with the exception of the stiffness and the
-soreness, which was the direct outcome of the bruises
-and the burns. But if the eruption had lasted but a
-few hours, its consequences had been fearful.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The slaughter of human beings and beasts had been
-terrible. On that fateful morning, five thousand men,
-one hundred elephants and nearly as many zebras, had
-left the villa, strong in perfect health and vigor; but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_348'>348</span>a few hours later, and but one elephant and five men
-were left to tell the fearful tale. Those who had not
-been killed in battle, had been slaughtered or had
-been buried beneath the hot shower of cinders and
-steam. And fully as many of the negroes had perished
-also, in all making a fearful total.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It had had an awful effect on the King for a few
-days. He had wandered about the villa like one demented,
-and had spoken to no one, keeping well to himself,
-his head bowed and face pale, and eyes sunken.
-One could hardly imagine that this was the great and
-powerful King of On. But Enola had been persevering
-in her efforts to draw his mind away from the saddening
-events, and he could not long remain insensible
-to her pleadings, to try and forget. She would tell
-him pleasing stories of the life in her own world;
-would relate strange tales of adventure and daring,
-which, for the time, would blot out the thought of his
-fearful loss. And when he would turn to Enola with
-words of love, she would no longer turn from him, but
-would encourage him in this. She had wanted to
-make him forget, knowing that if his mind brooded on
-these events, he would surely go mad, and then what
-would become of her and her friends?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Such fears had already taken possession of them, for
-they knew that such an occurrence as this would impress
-the Onians fearfully, and this impression might
-be as it had once been before, namely: that they were
-in some way the cause of the fearful event. If such a
-belief should become fully established in their minds,
-nothing could save them they knew, unless it would
-be the interference of the King, whose desires they
-held in high regard.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_349'>349</span>So Enola, although now determined never to marry
-the great King, would, to save her friends and herself,
-humor him in the belief that she loved him. It was a
-deception which was loathsome to her, but so much
-depended on it that she could not help herself.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was one week ago to-day that the volcano had
-belched forth, and the few survivors were sitting at
-their morning meal.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, shall we venture to the volcano, to-day?”
-said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, we must go to-day, or give it up altogether,”
-replied the King, “for our provisions are fast giving
-out and we must get back to the country that has not
-been devastated by the eruption.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, let us leave this horrible place as soon as
-possible,” added Mrs. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I confess that I, myself, am desirous of leaving the
-place which has so nearly been the scene of our
-deaths,” rejoined Mr. Graham. “But Mr. Bruce
-thinks that we ought to look over the ground where
-so many of the Onians have fallen.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will find no pleasure in thus going,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but we should know the exact state of things
-here before returning to the city. The relatives and
-friends of all these buried thousands, will want to
-know if it will be possible to recover their bodies.
-And then it would be well to see the crevice. I think
-Onrai still holds the idea that this should be closed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it will be one of my first duties, now,” said
-Onrai. “But what a task it will be for the men who
-do the work. The first unpleasant task they have
-ever had to perform.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The hole may have been closed somewhat by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_350'>350</span>the stream of lava which poured into it,” said Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I feel quite sure that it has,” said Mr. Graham,
-“for it poured into it in such a volume it could
-hardly be otherwise.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yet there will be much to do,” said Mr. Bruce,
-“and it will mean a great deal of hard work before the
-break is made impassable.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us start,” said Onrai, “so as to be able to investigate
-as much as possible and return before nightfall.
-To-morrow we must start for the city in order
-to be there for the Day of Resis. It will be a sad return;”
-and again the King fell into that melancholy
-condition out of which Enola had tried so hard to
-draw him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“True, Onrai,” said Enola, “but the only sadness
-which has ever darkened your life. It will cast a
-gloom over your life for awhile, but as time goes by
-and you see those about you again happy, and your
-life falls into the old routine, then will you also grow
-contented and happy once more. In our world we
-have so much sadness that we at last become accustomed
-to it, and expect it. But here you hardly know
-the meaning of the word. This experience has been
-fearful, I know, but it is better that you lose a few of
-your mighty men, than that all should lose country
-and, may be, life too, and even be sold into slavery.
-That must certainly have been the fate of your people,
-if they had fallen into the hands of the negroes. But
-that time has forever passed and out of this sad experience,
-which will cause so much grief, comes this grand
-assurance. The men who have been thus slain might
-have been spared until they had the wall on the way,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_351'>351</span>and while in the country beyond the cliff, for they
-would have had to be there some of the time, they
-might have been overpowered by the natives, and the
-land been overspread with these hated negroes, before
-the majority of your people could have learned of their
-presence. In such a case your country would have
-been destroyed with all its villas and its beautiful city.
-But such a thing can never occur now. God has
-simply taken the work out of your hands, and in his
-own way has avenged your people and has also, by
-turning the lava into the crevice, helped to close to the
-outside world, the only means of ingress into your
-country. The present generation will die, and as it is
-forbidden your people to ever mention or talk of such
-things to those who will live beyond your reign, the
-thing will die from memory, the same as has all of the
-previous events of your history. This fearful occurrence
-has been ordained to come during your reign,
-but it casts no reflection upon you or your people, for
-it has been wholly the work of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If He has chosen to take the men before their
-time, He has had a good purpose in it and I think
-that purpose has been shown. So don’t give up to
-despair in this moment, but be the brave, noble King
-which we have all learned to love. Be superior to the
-events which would crush most other men. Be strong,
-and set such an example before your people. They
-will look to you for strength and comfort, and you
-must be able to give them both.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The King had listened quietly to the words of Enola,
-and seemed much impressed by her strong, clear-cut
-remarks and the sound advice which she had given.
-For the first time he realized that it would not do for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_352'>352</span>him to give way to his feelings, in this hour of trial,
-for, as Enola had said, his people would look to him
-for comfort and strength, and he must be able to give
-them both. Somehow or other he felt better after
-Enola had talked to him in this way, and he felt that
-he could meet the inquisitive looks of his people and
-answer their mute questions without flinching.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But come, we must be off,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So the men-folk went to the terrace, where the only
-four elephants, which had been left, were awaiting
-them. Gip had entirely recovered, and was now with
-the three which had been left in the stable on that
-fateful morning. The five men mounted, and were
-soon making good time over the smooth surface of the
-bad lands. This new covering was of better soil than
-the old, and would some day become very productive.
-The elephants, heavy as they were, hardly made an
-impression in this, so solid had it become. They
-jogged along for nearly an hour, when they came on
-the body of an elephant lying on its side, nearly
-covered with the new soil. Digging away some of the
-dirt from his back the body of an Onian was disclosed
-to view. He had been one of three who had leaped
-to the elephant’s back when the eruption first broke
-forth. Further on they came across all of the one
-hundred elephants and a few of the zebras. Only one
-or two Onians were found with any part of their
-bodies above the soil. They were buried almost completely.
-It was thought at first that they would take
-these bodies back to the villa, and cremate them as
-was the custom this land, but Mr. Bruce had dissuaded
-Onrai from this, saying that as all of their companions
-were lying here in one common grave, there
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_353'>353</span>also might better be they. The King declared his
-intention of exhuming all of the many bodies which
-filled the immense graveyard, but his companions also
-made him change his mind in regard to this, saying
-that such an undertaking would take a great amount
-of time, and would be next to an impossibility.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the crevice was reached, but little of it remained.
-The hole in the ground was not even ten feet
-deep. It had been filled by the flowing lava up to
-that height. The party followed the crevice to the
-cliff, where a most unexpected scene met their astonished
-eyes. The crevice in the cliff was entirely filled,
-for the lava had run into the crevice until on a level
-with the surrounding country, after which it had still
-dropped its flinty substance into the hole and gradually
-cooled until the chasm had been entirely filled,
-when it had turned its stream into the country beyond,
-leaving the face of the cliff as straight and impregnable
-as it had been before the earthquake.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is more than I expected,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it is the handiwork of God,” answered Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You need have no further fears about your country
-being again invaded, Onrai,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is as Enola has said,” replied the King. “A
-blessed assurance that we are safe from those who
-would molest us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, let us move on up to the cliff,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “I would like to see where the stream of lava
-has ended in the cavern.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wonder how it has affected that part of the
-Hunting Reserve which the storm has covered,” said
-Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It must have driven the animals farther back into
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_354'>354</span>the jungle,” said Onrai. “But there is plenty of room
-for them all. A few miles, as you would call it, cut off
-of this great tract, amounts to but little.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But the whole tract will again be fertilized now, I
-think,” said Mr. Graham. “Those ashes have a great
-deal of good loam mixed with them, and it will be very
-productive, I think.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, the animals will find as good grazing here as
-in any other part of the Reserve, at some future day,”
-said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look,” said Mr. Graham, “what is that black object
-away there in the distance? It is moving, is it not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They all looked and came to the conclusion that it
-must be some sort of animal, but what, they could not
-say. As they proceeded the black spot grew larger
-and larger, but they could now see that the animals, or
-whatever they might be, were not moving but standing
-still. They had now come to the hole in the side
-of the mountain and concluded to enter this first, and
-investigate the black spot later. Accordingly they entered
-the hole and lighting a torch turned to the right
-and moved toward the upper end of the cave. From
-where they were, they could see no change in the
-crevice, but there might be nearer the crater, for it
-was from this that the stream of lava was running.
-They hurried on for they had much to look after before
-returning, and already half of the day had passed.
-The end wall was at last reached and they turned to
-follow this until they had reached the small tunnel,
-through which had run the lava. Arriving at this they
-were not surprised to find it considerable wider than it
-had been before the lava had found its way through it.
-The lava had raised the floor of it to quite a height,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_355'>355</span>but this new flooring was cool now and they decided
-to follow up the tunnel for some distance, and see
-what had taken place in the farther end.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As they advanced up the tunnel the air got somewhat
-warmer, but still not excessively so: The lava
-bed also grew thicker as they advanced until the floor
-had become so raised, they could extend their hands
-and touch the ceiling. They at last reached the end
-of the tunnel and were surprised to see that the crack
-had widened until it was nearly five feet broad.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Shall we enter?” asked Mr. Bruce, as they all
-stood looking at the crack rather hesitatingly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Most assuredly, if there is no danger,” replied Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot answer for the safety of it,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but I can say that it would be interesting to
-look into it a ways.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us proceed then,” said the King, who was fast
-becoming as curious as his white companions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The party then, headed by Mr. Bruce, stepped
-rather gingerly into the passage-way, and moved along
-slowly. The side-walls were still very hot and very
-soon the soles of their feet became almost burned with
-the hot flooring, for the hot lava had passed through
-there so recently, that it could hardly be expected to
-be very cool yet. They had gone some distance into
-the crack when Mr. Bruce suddenly stopped and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look ahead, can’t you see a ray of daylight?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All heads were immediately screwed to one side and
-a glance thrown ahead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, that is surely daylight,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but how in the world, or in this hole, does it get
-there?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_356'>356</span>“Shall we go on and see?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, by all means,” answered the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So the party again pushed on, now at a little livelier
-gait, for they could no longer be mistaken that that was
-the light of day penetrating this dark crevice. Hurriedly
-now they advanced, so anxious had they grown to
-see what sort of hole it was that admitted the sunlight;
-and after a short walk further they burst out into the
-bright open light of day. They looked above them
-and there, sure enough, was the bright, blue sky.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you make of it, Mr. Graham?” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well,” replied Mr. Graham, “I should say that we
-are looking up out of one of the crevices which opened
-into the crater of the volcano.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That’s so,” replied Mr. Bruce, “I did not think of
-that. But I supposed these cracks must have opened
-far into the bowels of the earth, and were vents for
-the steam, ashes and lava.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Some of them undoubtedly are,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but this is surely not. This may have been caused
-by one of the earthquakes, and was later widened by
-the excessive heat. Whatever the cause, it is here at
-any rate.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The tunnel at this point was very wide and fully
-two thousand feet deep.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you notice any peculiarities in this crevice?”
-asked Mr. Bruce of Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“None,” replied Mr. Graham, “unless it be its crookedness,
-but they are all crooked. But why do you
-ask?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I was just thinking,” said Mr. Bruce, “that we
-might have occasion to use this crevice some day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_357'>357</span>“I hope not,” replied Mr. Graham, “for if we had
-to trust to scaling these perpendicular walls, I am
-afraid we would perish here at the bottom.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “but it is well to have several
-strings to your bow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It might be possible,” said Mr. Graham, “to lower
-one’s self into this cavern, but I don’t believe it would
-be possible to hoist one’s self out of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We may have occasion some day to lower ourselves
-into it,” said Mr. Bruce. “At any rate, we have
-found another way to enter the Land of On.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But one never to be used as long as the other is
-open,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“As you like,” said Mr. Bruce. “Shall we return,
-Onrai?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If you are ready,” answered the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They accordingly turned and retraced their steps
-until again in the cavern. Instead of turning to the
-left and following the wall as they had done previously,
-they followed the lava bed which had gradually spread
-over a very wide area in the cavern, in one place being
-fully a mile wide. They followed this until opposite
-the hole, when they moved over to this and left the
-cavern.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The large black group again attracted their attention,
-and they determined to see what it was before
-returning to the villa. The sun was getting well down
-toward the western horizon, and they had a good fifteen
-miles to make, but they must see what it was that
-could make such a mark in the heart of this ash-covered
-plain. From as near as they could make out the
-animals were nearly two miles away. They hurried
-on, wishing to reach home before it grew very dark.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_358'>358</span>When within a mile of the dark object, they saw that
-it was a herd of elephants, lying down. They
-drew up to these cautiously, so as not to be molested,
-if possible, but they saw that the elephants were undoubtedly
-very much exhausted, or else dead, for they
-paid but little or no attention to the approaching riders.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But just before they came up to them, one of the
-animals half raised his head, but that was all, they
-made no further sign. The riders now came up to
-them and saw their predicament. These animals had
-undoubtedly been overcome by the shower of ashes,
-and sinking down had been too weak to again rise,
-and now, after a week of suffering and fasting, they
-were nearly dead. There were fully a hundred of them
-and they had been perfectly wild, but were now as
-docile as so many lambs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If we can save them,” said Onrai, “they will take
-the place of the hundred we lost.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLVI.<br /> <span class='large'>“WE DIE TOGETHER.”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The elephants were sadly emaciated, for they had
-now been seven days without food or water. Their
-great bodies looked gaunt, and their little eyes were
-sunken well into the head. Their bodies were nearly
-half covered with the ashes, and together with this and
-the fact that they were so weak they could only move
-their heads, turning them from side to side, showing
-that there was still life in their huge bodies.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_359'>359</span>“Yes, if we could get these elephants to the villa,”
-said Onrai, “they could well take the place of those
-which were killed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But even if you were to get them there, they
-would, with returning strength, grow as wild as ever,
-would they not?” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Onrai, “hunger always tames an
-elephant, and if he is taken while hungry, and given
-food and placed with tame elephants, he is generally
-as docile and manageable as any of those which have
-been in captivity all their lives.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This is strange,” said Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” replied the King, “it is, but nevertheless
-true. Elephants do not seem to have the fear of
-human beings that many other animals have, but seem
-rather to like the association of man. I have seen
-wild elephants follow us from out of the jungle, right
-down to the gate of the Hunting Reserve, as gentle
-and seemingly as tame as the ones we were riding, and
-I have no doubt that if we had let them through the
-gate, they would have followed us to the city, and
-would have been just as happy and contented with
-their tame companions as they had been running wild
-in the jungle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It seems a pity, then, that we have to leave them
-here,” said Mr. Bruce, “when with help they might be
-gotten to where they could be nursed back to life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It would take considerable time and trouble,
-though, to do so,” said Onrai. “Still, if we had men
-with us they could bring them food and water and in
-this way put life enough into them to get them to the
-villa. But come, the sun is nearly hidden behind the
-cliffs, and we have a long ride before us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_360'>360</span>As if the dying elephants knew that their would-be
-rescuers were leaving them, they turned their heads
-and watched them as they rode away, the most pitiful
-expression coming into their little black eyes. There
-were easily a hundred of them, and they made a great
-black spot on the plain with their bodies, which were
-only half covered.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends now hurried toward the villa, and after
-a ride of two hours, again pulled up in front of the
-terrace. They had entered the villa, and were just
-about to seat themselves to the evening meal, when
-the tramping of many zebras’ hoofs were heard, and
-our friends, going to the front entrance, looked toward
-the now covered avenue, and there saw in the half
-light, a band of not less than two hundred mounted
-men. When they saw the lights of the villa they
-turned and came toward it. Silently they picked
-their way between the trees and up to the terrace,
-where, recognizing the King, they gave a loud shout
-and then began a chant, which Onrai explained to his
-companions, was a chant of praise. After the chant
-was finished, the King stood on the terrace steps and
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onians, my countrymen, the sight of your faces,
-coming so unexpectedly, pleases me greatly and draws
-from my heart some of the sadness which the events
-of the past short while have caused. Your presence
-makes me feel that if some of our dearly beloved men
-have gone, there yet remains their sons and brothers
-and fathers, who will make this fair Land of On yet
-the same as we knew it before the fearful eruption.
-We have met with a terrible loss, but our men died
-in a good cause, and died bravely.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_361'>361</span>“We do not understand you, oh King,” said one
-of the foremost.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, I forgot,” said Onrai, “but enough to-night.
-Find quarters for yourselves and beasts, and on the
-morrow I will explain further. Prepare yourselves,
-however, for sad news, for such you will hear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The men turned from the terrace and the King and
-his guests again went into the villa. Onrai seemed
-much depressed, for how was he going to tell these
-men that their fathers, sons and brothers had perished
-by the hands of a band of negroes, and the terrible
-shower of ashes. They would not understand either
-unless they could realize that this new covering of
-ashes had overtaken their friends unexpectedly, and
-had buried them. But then it would be hard to make
-them understand the eruption and what caused it.
-They were too far away at the time to see or know
-anything of the awful overflow, unless it be a black
-cloud which they could possibly see. They may have
-felt the shocks of earthquake, but even this they
-might not have experienced. Then they could know
-nothing of how their friends had met death, nor could
-they understand the means by which they had fallen.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So the King had a hard task before him in the morning
-and it worried him fearfully. Enola had seen his
-downcast countenance, and guessing the cause, had
-followed him out on the terrace. Taking hold of his
-arm, as he paced up and down, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai, do not give up at the outstart. This
-is a sad task which you have to perform. But it is
-only the first one of a number like ones which will
-come later, when the mothers and sisters and wives
-of the unfortunates will come to gain information
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_362'>362</span>from you, when you will be in the city. So if you
-give up now what will you do after awhile? Be
-strong and make these men understand as well as
-possible, the real condition of things. Try and impress
-them with the greatness of the deed which made
-such heroes of their dead comrades, and of the fearful
-consequences if they had failed to act so nobly and
-bravely. Say not too much about the eruption, but
-leave the impression that it buried and burned the
-hated negroes who had invaded this country, and had
-slaughtered so many of their countrymen. Impress
-them with the fact that all of these brave Onians were
-killed in defence of their country and their loved ones,
-and then, if you can make them understand why these
-negroes were here, and how they entered the country,
-they will better appreciate the great sacrifice of life
-which has been made for them. Let them still retain
-their old belief that theirs is the only world on this
-sphere, letting them think that the negroes came from
-another world far away. They can better understand
-the latter for they have seen us and believe that we
-came from another planet, and this too, would leave
-the old belief unshaken, and would insure less unhappiness,
-than if their life-long teachings were destroyed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are right,” said Onrai, “as you always are,
-and I will act upon your advice. But Enola, have
-you thought of the time when we will be married?
-We are about to return to the city and the word has
-gone forth that on the Day of Resis you will marry me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The day has then been fixed?” questioned Enola.
-“I had not learned this.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, it has been decided upon,” said the King.
-“On that great day when so many of my countrymen
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_363'>363</span>will meet, with joy and loud songs of praise, on the
-evening of that day, after the ceremonies have been
-performed, you will become my wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Enola had expected that Onrai would make some
-such announcement soon, but she had no idea that he
-would name such an early day, for, as she understood
-it, the Day of Resis, was but a short time away.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When is the Day of Resis?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Four weeks from to-day, according to your calendar,”
-said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is not that very soon, Onrai?” asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Too soon?” exclaimed Onrai; “how can you ask
-such a question, Enola? If you love me as I do you,
-you would wish, as do I, that the day was to-morrow.
-The time to me seems a long way off. Our days will
-not be too many after our marriage, and it is well we
-should add to these as many as possible. And again,
-my people have so decreed that we should be married
-on that day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What are the ceremonies of the great Day of
-Resis?” again questioned Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hush, Enola, you must not ask me. The secret
-of the day is never divulged, or even spoken of among
-those who know its secrets. But once seen, the secret
-is then yours, and you will then know the meaning of
-the Day of Resis. It is a glorious day, a day of great
-rejoicing and happiness. Not one on that great day
-but feels a wonderful happiness, even those who are
-not direct participants in its great ceremonies. It
-falls to the lot of all, though, to be principal participants
-in the proceedings of the day, one day of his life,
-and this is the greatest day of all his or her days.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_364'>364</span>Their joy is supreme, and their happiness knows no
-bounds.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It must, indeed, be a great day,” said Enola, “and
-the people have chosen this day to be my wedding day.
-How they must love their King!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, the King and the fair stranger whom he is to
-marry,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I doubt the latter,” said Enola, “for they were too
-ready to kill both her and her friends when they
-thought that she had been the cause of the storm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t, don’t, Enola, mention that fearful time. I
-would blot it from my mind. It was the one time in my
-life that I lost confidence in my people, and the one time
-when I would have turned against them. I feel, though,
-that they have now bitterly regretted their action, for
-they have seen the folly of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Will we be married in the Temple?” asked Enola,
-wishing to take Onrai’s mind from such a painful subject
-as the one she had mentioned.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Onrai; “in the Temple, surrounded by
-my people, and the ceremony will be grand in the extreme.
-I am, I suppose, the first King who has ever
-been married, but this, of course, I cannot say positively,
-for we know nothing of the reign or history of
-past Kings. Still, the high priest has said as much.
-Our marriage ceremonies are mostly of a religious nature,
-and are accompanied by much song and music.
-Our marriage garments are made of pure cloth of gold,
-and those who will be with us, will be robed much in
-the same way.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Shall we live in the Temple?” again asked Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Onrai; “but in apartments which you
-have never seen; apartments grand beyond description.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_365'>365</span>These apartments were made by the builder of the
-Temple, for the King in whose reign an unusual event
-would occur. So says the high priest; and he further
-says that my marriage is an event never before heard
-of, and that it must have been this which the founder
-of the country foresaw when he had these chambers
-planned and held for this purpose. None but the
-high priest has ever entered them, but they must be
-sublime from what he has told me of them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And what will be my life as the King’s wife?”
-questioned Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your life will be much the same as it is now, but
-you will be called upon to take a part in all duties
-which belong to the King. In the ceremonies of the
-Day of Resis, for instance, you will stand near me and
-perform the same duties which alone belong to myself,
-and in this way, sharing the duties of my office, we go
-down to our death, happy, knowing no sorrows or
-troubles and assured of that great happiness in the
-eternity beyond.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And do we then go together?” asked Enola, as she
-remembered the mode of death of some of the women
-of India.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; it is so decreed,” said Onrai.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The horror of this made Enola faint for a moment,
-and she made a resolve to leave this land as soon as
-possible. Until beyond the rocky cliffs again, all happiness
-for her had flown.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_366'>366</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLVII.<br /> <span class='large'>IN THE CITY AGAIN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>On the following morning the men were up early
-and at the terrace, awaiting their King and the strange,
-sad tale which they must hear. Onrai came on to the
-terrace with his friends and told the sad story of the
-battle and the eruption. The Onians stood drinking
-in every word, their eyes changing from curiosity to
-pain, and then to horror, their faces depicting the
-same emotions. Onrai related all of the fearful tale,
-of how the men had stood up before the negroes even
-when they were being mowed down like wheat before
-the scythe, and then of how the elephants had rushed
-on to them, thus turning the tide of battle, and then
-of the mad rush for the crevice, and the awful eruption
-which had killed and burned the survivors.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For some time after the King had finished speaking
-the men stood with that look of horror overcasting
-their faces, their very bodies having assumed an attitude
-which showed the greatest dejection. Onrai then continued:
-“We will start for the city again to-day and
-will make as long marches as possible, as we wish to
-reach there in time to rest, before the ceremonies of
-the Day of Resis takes place. On the plain, some few
-miles from here, will be found a herd of nearly a hundred
-elephants. They were driven, on this desperate
-night, into the worst part of the downfall of ashes, and
-half buried and nearly starving, are dying there now,
-on the plain. I wish one hundred of you to go, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_367'>367</span>if possible, revive these elephants and bring them to a
-place where they can receive proper care. The remainder
-of you will accompany us to the city. We
-start immediately,” and saying this, he again turned to
-his friends and told them to make immediate preparations.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This they did and it was only a short while until
-they were mounted, and on their way from the spot
-which had become most hateful and loathsome to
-them. To the avenue, which could only be told now by
-the bordering trees, they went, and following its
-course they headed for the city. Hope was rejuvenated
-as they left the scene of so much pain and death, and
-life seemed again to be putting on a garment of happiness
-which had long since been cast aside. The
-cavalcade of the witnesses of the recent fearful scene,
-left the place without a regret and without one glance
-backward to either volcano, bad lands or villa.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Their thoughts turned to things more pleasant, of
-the green fields and shady trees; even the lake with
-its memories of night horrors seemed less repulsive
-than the place they were leaving. But the thought of the
-city and its quiet pleasures were more pleasing than
-all others. In a half hour they could see ahead of
-them the green fields and trees, which they had so
-longed for. The layer of ashes gradually thinned until
-there was no longer any trace of it, and the hard,
-onyx-paved avenue again stretched before them in all
-its beauty. An hour later and they could see no traces
-of the eruption at all, and the long track of the cyclone
-had been cleared, until it presented very much the
-same appearance as did the rest of the surrounding
-country.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_368'>368</span>The country became more cultivated as they proceeded,
-and men were now seen frequently working in
-the fields. None of them approached the cavalcade,
-and none were made acquainted with the sad story of
-the battle and eruption. And so day after day passed
-in much the same way as they had on the journey
-out, the marches being somewhat longer only, and the
-midday rests somewhat shorter. But the evenings
-were spent in the cool villas, the nights of prayer being
-observed now as usual, for with the last body of
-men who had come to meet them, before leaving the
-villa near the volcano, had been another priest and
-attendants, and these were now with the party.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lake had been reached and its banks followed.
-All former plans of taking another route back to the
-city had been abandoned on account of the eruption,
-and the party was not sorry for this, for the avenue,
-with its magnificent shade trees and its beautiful surroundings
-made it an enviable route. The days had
-passed and with them many miles of the long journey,
-until on the evening of the ninth day after leaving the
-villa in the bad lands they were at the point where
-they had embarked for the island, on the memorable
-night of the sea-fight. Here they put up for the night
-at the same villa which had held them once before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To-morrow,” said Mr. Bruce, after the evening
-meal had been disposed of and all had gathered on the
-terrace for their regular chat before retiring, “to-morrow,
-if nothing happens, will be our last day’s journey.
-We will reach the city before noon if we start very
-early in the morning.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am not sorry that this excursion is so near an
-end,” said Mr. Graham; “but it has been loaded with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_369'>369</span>adventures and that is what we were looking for when
-coming here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, but the adventures of the past month or so
-have none of them been agreeable ones,” said Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not agree with you, Mr. Bruce,” said Harry.
-“I think the last horrible experience has cast a gloom
-over all of the others, and if it were not for the fearful
-slaughter of the Onians and our own narrow
-escape, we would have considered the other adventures
-as being at least, excitable, if not altogether enjoyable.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This land has not seemed the same to me since
-that fearful day,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have noticed the change in you,” said Nellie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It has made this fair land almost hateful to me and
-I long to get away from it,” and Mr. Bruce spoke in
-such a bitter tone, that all looked at him in surprise.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have now seen most of the people and their
-country,” said Mr. Graham, “and it would be well for us
-to leave as soon as possible, especially as the King has
-decided that Enola shall marry him on the Day of
-Resis. By the way, Enola, have you learned anything
-of Onrai, in regard to this red-letter day?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing,” answered Enola, “excepting that it is a
-day of great joy to all of the participants in its ceremonies.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But do not all participate?” questioned Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It seems not,” answered Enola. “That is, they
-do not all participate on the same day; but a day
-comes to each one when he or she participates. It has
-a strange meaning, this Day of Resis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_370'>370</span>“Yes, and one which will never be learned until the
-day comes,” said Harry, “for Onrai told me himself
-that none of his people were allowed to mention the
-secrets of the day, but all understood them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And when is this day, which is to make you the
-wife of the King?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is barely a week distant,” answered Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And do you think that you could be happy as the
-wife of Onrai?” asked Mr. Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have never given the subject much thought,” answered
-Enola, “until the evening preceding our departure
-from the villa in the bad lands, then he spoke
-of our marriage and told of our apartments in the
-Temple, and of our marriage gowns, and another
-thing, which makes the very thought of marrying
-Onrai repulsive. He then told me that if he should
-die first that I would be sacrificed on his bier, and the
-King and wife would be buried together.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is certainly fearful to contemplate,” said Mr.
-Graham, “and it but adds to the necessity of our getting
-out of this country before this eventful day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What do you suppose, though, will be the outcome
-if we should leave the country before you become
-the wife of the King?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is hard to tell,” answered Enola, “but these
-people might object seriously to our doing so. It is
-certain that the King has fully decided on marrying
-me, and that his people have not only sanctioned the
-marriage, but it was they who fixed the Day of Resis
-as the one on which we should be married. They are
-a strange people. They have gone through life following
-certain laws and rules and have never been crossed
-in anything, and it might be a very serious matter to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_371'>371</span>try and balk them in this, probably the most important
-event which has ever taken place in their history.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, but if you do not wish to marry Onrai,” said
-Mr. Graham, “and you have just said that you would
-not, we must get away from here before this Day of
-Resis, in some way or other, whether they object or
-not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “and as the time is so short
-it would be well for us to feel around and see just how
-the land lays.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai, who had been overseeing some work in another
-part of the villa, came strolling carelessly on to
-the terrace, his very carriage lending a gracefulness to
-his majestic figure, which was charming, to say the
-least, and Enola thought how easy it could be to love
-this giant under any other circumstances.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Onrai,” said Mr. Bruce, “we have been your guests
-for many weeks now and we feel that to remain with
-you much longer would be a breach of etiquette, to
-say the least, and as the affairs in our own country
-need our almost immediate attention, we feel that we
-should leave your hospitable country, and return to
-our own.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai looked surprised at the very mention of such
-a thing and made no answer for some time; at last,
-however, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your words grieve me; I had never thought of
-such a thing as your ever returning to your own country.
-I have always supposed that you would remain
-with us for the remainder of your lives. Why should
-you want to leave us? Have we not been kind to you,
-and is ours not a good land to live in? You have told
-me that you have much care, worry, trouble and unhappiness
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_372'>372</span>in your world; you have found none of
-those disturbing influences here; that is, until the
-awful fight and eruption came, but even that is over
-now, and your lives will soon drop into the old groove
-which you have said was the most delightful existence
-which one could desire. My people love you for
-yourselves alone, and if they forgot themselves for
-once, they must not be blamed, for you can readily
-see how superstition could spring to life in such uneventful
-lives as theirs. But they have forgotten those
-fears, and are now as much your friends as is their
-King. Then why should you wish to leave us? We
-love you; and as Enola is to marry me, and is to remain
-with us, it will be pleasant for both her and you
-to be together. Don’t ever again mention leaving us,
-let alone ever putting such a suggestion into action.
-Why, we look upon you no longer as strangers, but as
-part of us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We thank you for those kind words,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “but you must understand us, Onrai, we have
-many personal interests in our world which would
-take us there, and we have brothers and sisters and
-friends who would grieve greatly if we should never
-return. If such were not the case, it would be an easy
-matter for us to take up our life residence with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have, as I had said before,” said Onrai, “never
-thought of your leaving us, and I cannot now say how
-such a thing would affect my people or myself. I can
-only say that we have always thought that you would
-remain with us, and we cannot think of anything else
-just now.” And saying this, the King took hold of
-Enola’s arm gently, and drawing it through his, as
-she had taught him to, they started to promenade the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_373'>373</span>terrace. After they had gotten out of hearing, Mr.
-Bruce turned to Mr. Graham, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Rather non-committal, is he not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should say so,” said Mr. Graham. “And if I am
-not mistaken, we will have trouble in getting away
-from here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“One thing sure,” said Mr. Bruce, “he has no intention
-of letting Enola leave the country.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He is a strange man, this Onrai,” said Mr. Graham,
-“and, in fact, the people are a queer anomaly
-and hard to make out. They have no secrets, seemingly,
-their lives are like open books, and they have
-no reason for being otherwise; but they can be as
-mum as oysters, as they say in America, when they
-wish to keep anything from you, and as evasive as a
-man paying taxes, when they take such a notion. For
-a race who has never had occasion to use any deception,
-they are certainly without a peer.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The talk now turned onto other subjects, and after a
-short time, all retired to their apartments to take their
-last sleep in the country, or away from the beautiful
-Temple. All were up very early the following morning,
-for they desired to reach the city before noon, so
-as not to have to stop before getting there for the
-midday rest. There was more life and gayety in the
-party on this morning than had been seen among
-them for weeks. All seemed happy and glad that the
-long journey was so near an end, and there was much
-joyous conversation and singing as they rode out before
-the sun had yet risen.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Straight to the beautiful avenue, which had been
-their guide for so many, many miles, and the trees of
-which had given them such shady comfort, they rode.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_374'>374</span>Even the animals seemed to realize that their long
-journey was at an end, for they started off at a good
-lively gait and maintained it throughout the morning.
-Onrai this morning seemed depressed; his head was
-bent and he seemed dejected. He had forbidden those
-who had joined the party, just before starting on this
-journey, never to speak of or mention in any way the
-things which he had told them on the morning of
-their departure. He had said that it was his duty as
-King and head of the people to impart to them the
-sad news; that the details of this great calamity were
-better known to him than to any other of his people,
-and he could the better tell the story for this reason.
-Therefore, his men had said nothing during the long
-journey, and those of the Onians whom they had met
-had learned nothing of the horrible event. Onrai now
-realized that the time had almost come for him to
-stand up before the mighty throng which would gather
-at his command, and tell them of the fearful death of
-five thousand of the fathers, sons, husbands and
-brothers of On.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He had seen in his mind’s eye, the look of utter despair
-and great pain, and had heard the cries of the sufferers,
-and all this saddened him. He felt that it would
-be next to an impossibility for him to explain so they
-could understand, and the doubt which would accompany
-his explanation would but add to the pain of those
-who had lost loved ones.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the elephants and zebras were bearing them fast
-toward the city, as if mocking the King and being desirous
-of hurrying him to that time and place so
-dreaded.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The sun had nearly reached its zenith, when the first
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_375'>375</span>one of the beautiful city villas was seen through the
-green trees in the distance, and not long after they were
-once more, after many weeks’ riding, between rows of
-the pink villas. All was quiet, for this was resting hour;
-but as they got nearer the heart of the city, numerous
-ones of the Onians would show themselves, and upon
-seeing that it was the King and his party, they would
-make a respectful obeisance and watch them until lost
-in the distance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the Temple was reached, and our friends
-were once more in their delightful apartments. Every
-comfort had been found in the villas en route, but
-none that they were ever in had such large and magnificent
-apartments as this grand Temple. The attendants
-took them in hand at once, and after a bath and
-light lunch, all of the tired wanderers slept.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the evening all gathered in the dining hall as
-usual, and it was hard to suppose that they had been
-away for so long. Mr. Graham and Mr. Bruce started
-to take their evening promenade on the terrace, and
-were surprised to see a number of soldiers, so they
-looked, walking in a measured beat about the
-grounds.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“As I thought,” said Mr. Bruce, “we are prisoners.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_376'>376</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLVIII.<br /> <span class='large'>NO HOPE OF ESCAPE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>At the usual morning gathering of the adventurers,
-on the following morning, Mr. Bruce said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It seems that we are prisoners, but why I cannot
-understand. It may be, though, that the Temple alone
-is to be guarded, and that when we desire to leave it
-for a walk or a ride, the guards may not follow us.
-Let us make the experiment, Mr. Graham, if we are
-accompanied by the guards we shall know that extra
-effort is needed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wonder,” said Mr. Graham, “if this custom of
-guarding a prospective bride, which this seems to be,
-applies to their courtiers as well. Anyway we can
-ascertain this, by ordering our zebras and taking a ride,”
-and stepping to the curtain which separated the apartment
-from the one which he occupied, Mr. Graham
-called one of his attendants, and told him they wanted
-their zebras at once. In a short time the zebras were
-awaiting them, and Mr. Bruce and he went to the entrance,
-and were not surprised to see ten mounted men
-standing near, seemingly waiting for them to start.
-Apparently unconcerned, our friends mounted and rode
-leisurely down the main avenue. And the ten men
-followed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“As I supposed,” said Mr. Graham, “our escape is
-going to be a serious matter after all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Mr. Bruce, “we will undoubtedly be
-guarded by these men wherever we go, and it is hardly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_377'>377</span>reasonable to believe that they will allow us to go to
-the cave, and make our escape without trying to stop
-us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There is Sedai,” said Mr. Graham, “he may be
-able to offer some suggestion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They stopped their zebras and motioning to Sedai, he
-came up and asked what he could do for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are virtually prisoners, Sedai,” said Mr.
-Graham, “and we need your help. The King has announced
-his intention of marrying Enola on the Day
-of Resis, and to avoid this, we shall have to leave the
-city; but a guard has been placed about the Temple
-and a guard is now following us, and it may be hard
-for us to get away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have heard of this intended marriage,” said Sedai,
-“but I thought that Miss Enola must have given her
-consent.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Far from it,” said Mr. Graham, “she is most desirous
-of getting away immediately. Exert your thinking
-powers, Sedai, and try to devise some means by which
-we can leave the country. If you think of anything,
-come up to the Temple and give us the result.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will do so,” said Sedai, as he walked away.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Bruce,” said Mr. Graham, “our friends in the
-rear do not seem to be appointed as guards to ward
-off danger, but more as a guard of honor. This is
-probably what they are for, simply to announce to the
-people that we have marriageable children,” and Mr.
-Graham smiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think myself that they have no idea of danger
-befalling us, but it looks to me as if they had some
-suspicion of our intended escape. You know we mentioned
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_378'>378</span>the matter to the King a few evenings since,”
-said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That’s so; I wonder if that can have anything to
-do with it. It may be that he intends to keep us prisoners,
-at least, until he has Enola secure,” said Mr.
-Graham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is hard to tell,” said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They turned their zebras and headed for the Temple,
-and upon arriving there told their companions of
-how they had been followed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai came up in the afternoon, and, after talking
-with the guard for awhile, reported what he had
-learned. The guard was changed every four hours,
-and the old guard marched to the house used by them
-as headquarters. Here they reported, and a relief was
-sent to the Temple. From the time the old guard left
-until the relief arrived, fifteen minutes elapsed, and
-during this fifteen minutes escape must be made.
-This was their only chance. It was not allowing much
-time for accidents, but they might be some distance
-before their escape was discovered, and a guard sent
-after them. This might not take the right direction
-at first, and in this way some time might be gained.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was decided to have Sedai carry the provisions to
-the cave, since he would not be watched; consequently,
-he left them to make preparations. No time
-was to be lost, and Sedai went directly to the provision
-storehouse and asked for four days’ provisions for himself,
-as he intended going to the large lake on a fishing
-excursion. The provisions were given him, but, to his
-surprise, when he came out of the storehouse and
-mounted his zebra, five mounted men, who were near
-and who were seen awaiting him, started just after he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_379'>379</span>did and followed him. Straight on he went in the direction
-of the secret door, and upon arriving at the
-gate of the wall, his followers rode up and stopped
-him, saying, that as none of them had weapons they
-could not think of entering that wild part or of letting
-him do so. He made no objection, and leaving his
-bundle of provisions in a shady place near the gate,
-rode back to the city and went directly to the Temple
-to notify his friends.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It begins to look very serious,” said Mr. Graham,
-“but we must go, provisions or no provisions. It may
-be that some of the dried food which we left along the
-way as we crossed the cave, may be in good condition
-still, and if so, this would sustain us for quite awhile.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have an idea,” said Enola, “which is not pleasant
-to contemplate, but which may mean the saving of
-life. The opening into the mountain is large enough to
-admit the zebras, and if we can get them through it,
-our journey will be much easier and quicker; and if
-the worst comes, we can sacrifice them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A splendid idea,” said Harry, “but we must be
-ready to start by to-morrow night. But five days remain
-for us before the Day of Resis, and we must not put
-off our first attempt until the last moment. It may be
-that we will make some miscalculation the first time
-and have to try again, so let us be ready by to-morrow
-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>During that day and the next they made as many
-preparations as they could without being observed.
-Each secreted some dried meats and a bottle of the
-exquisite wine and honey. Sedai had visited the
-guard frequently, and had learned when the changes
-were made. The stables, where the zebras were kept,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_380'>380</span>was about three hundred yards to the rear of the Temple.
-They were guarded by one man, the attendants
-of our friends grooming and taking care of them during
-the day. This man would have to be overcome,
-or called from the stable on some pretense.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The day intended for their escape drew slowly to an
-end. The evening meal had been eaten, as usual, with
-the King, but Enola had declined to accompany him
-to the terrace. They had gathered in Mrs. Graham’s
-room, and were waiting anxiously for Sedai to announce
-that the time had come and all was in readiness.
-Sedai at last came, but the moment he entered
-they saw that some slip had been made in the arrangements,
-or that something had gone wrong.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is it, Sedai?” asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This,” said Sedai. “The guard, as usual, had left
-for their headquarters, and I had sent the stableman
-on an errand which would take some time to carry out.
-I started to the Temple to notify you, when, to my
-surprise, twenty men came up to the stable, and when
-I asked their leader why they were there, he told me
-that the Day of Resis was but three days off, and
-that all zebras and elephants were sent into the country
-to carry into the city those working in the fields,
-quarries and mines, one day’s journey hence; and saying
-this, they took the zebras and elephants and went
-away with them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The friends looked from one to the other speechless.
-The zebras being away they could no longer
-calculate on their help, but something must be done.
-They could not think of walking to the cave, for their
-escape would soon be discovered, and the inhabitants,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_381'>381</span>having found out their intentions, would guard against
-any further attempt.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When will the zebras be returned,” asked Mr.
-Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He said that the men who were to use them were
-one day’s journey from here,” answered Sedai. “If
-they come to this city immediately, they will be here
-the evening of the day after to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us see,” said Mr. Bruce, “that will be two days
-before the Day Of Resis. Cheer up friends, we shall
-yet escape,” and telling Sedai to keep his eyes open
-and to report to them the moment the zebras were
-returned, they dismissed him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next two days were spent by Mr. Bruce in the
-Secret Chamber, for he determined to learn from the
-tablets more of the history of this strange people and
-country. Harry and Enola scarcely left each other,
-for Enola now realized that she loved Harry, and now
-that there was a possibility of their being separated
-from each other forever, they determined to see as
-much of each other as possible in the few remaining
-hours before the Day Of Resis.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. and Mrs. Graham and Nellie walked about the
-beautiful Temple and tried to calm their anxiety.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the second afternoon Sedai came to them and
-said that the zebras had been returned, but that the
-young men who had come with them had been given
-quarters in a villa adjoining the stable, and some of
-them were constantly lounging about and would
-undoubtedly see them, and give the alarm if they tried
-to escape. It seemed as if they must remain until the
-dreaded day. Sedai was told to try and find some
-means to get rid of the men about the stable, and to endeavor
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_382'>382</span>to have everything ready for that night. Night
-came but Sedai reported that the men had ridden a long
-distance that day, and were lying on the lawn of the
-park and could not be persuaded to move, so comfortable
-were they in the cool evening breeze.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When is the next relief?” questioned Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“At twelve o’clock,” said Sedai, “and they may
-go to their apartments before then, thus enabling us
-to get away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We will wait,” said Mr. Bruce, who had constituted
-himself the leader of the party.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Slowly the evening wore into the night and twelve
-o’clock came. The attendants had all been dismissed.
-Sedai came in at last but his face showed disappointment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The men are still lying in the garden,” said he,
-“some asleep, while others are awake and talking.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How many of them are there?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thirty,” said Sedai, “and that many more in the
-large villa near the stable, so that it would be foolish
-for us to try to overcome them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, we must not resort to violence,” said Mr.
-Bruce, “for that would only hurt our cause. To-morrow
-these men will be thoroughly rested, and we can
-reasonably expect that they will go about the city
-visiting their friends. We must not lose courage but
-hope for better results to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the afternoon of the next day our friends,
-mounted the zebras and with a guard of fifty following
-them, rode through the principal streets of the
-city. The city was crowded owing to all work in the
-fields, mines and quarries being suspended for five
-days. The people never seemed happier, for singing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_383'>383</span>and laughing was heard on every side. Just as our
-friends reached the large square, the King mounted
-the pedestal from which he had greeted them upon
-their arrival in the city. From a tablet of wood in his
-hand he read the law proclaiming the Day of Resis
-to be the only holiday, and, being now at hand, the
-direct participants in its ceremonies must prepare for
-them. He did not mention the secrets of the day, or
-did he give them idea as to what the ceremonies
-would be.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the bare wrists of the right arm of the older men
-and women could be seen a peculiarly-shaped diamond
-of a reddish cast. This was about half an inch in width
-and held to the wrist by a chain of gold. Mr. Bruce
-turned to one of the guards, and asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why do certain ones wear this peculiar stone and
-chain of gold about their wrists?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is the mark of Resis,” answered the man.
-And upon Mr. Bruce asking what this meant, the man
-made no further answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The faces of those wearing these bracelets were
-radiant. They seemed the happiest of the whole vast
-multitude, and the younger people appeared to look
-on them with envy. Truly, the happiness of the day
-must be supreme to those who participated in its
-ceremonies.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The King, after reading the law twice, descended
-from the pedestal, mounted his zebra and joined Enola
-and her friends. Carefully the zebras picked their
-way through the throng of people crowding the
-streets. Girls were dancing, men were giving exhibitions
-of skill in athletics; others were singing quaint,
-harmonious songs, and all were happy and joyous.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_384'>384</span>They soon reached the Temple and retired to the
-dining hall. After the meal the King excused himself,
-saying that he would have to go among his people, as
-on the Eve of Resis all were in the city and were
-anxious to have him appear at their games and pastimes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Graham, Mr. Bruce and Harry walked toward
-the stables, and to their dismay saw their zebras
-again being taken away.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where are they taking the zebras?” asked Harry
-of Sedai, who stood near.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To the great square,” answered Sedai. “These
-zebras are trained to do certain tricks, and are to give
-an exhibition to-night before the people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry almost broke down in despair. All hope of
-their escape on that night had fled, and all were thoroughly
-disturbed. Enola’s despair could be seen in her
-white face, but she said nothing. A resolve had taken
-shape in her mind, that if all else failed, before she
-would become the wife of the King of On she would
-end her life, for the thought now of marrying this man
-had become abhorrent to her, and the longer she
-brooded over it, the more hateful did it become to her,
-and hence this determination.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Slowly the night grew on, and all listened with
-bated breath for Sedai, for they still had a faint hope
-that the zebras might be returned in time for them to
-get away at the midnight relief; but midnight came
-and passed, and our friends knew that their last hope
-was gone. They separated for the night without a
-word, even Mr. Bruce, who was usually so hopeful,
-now not having a word to say.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The morrow was the Day of Resis, and after its
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_385'>385</span>mysterious ceremonies had been performed, the King
-of this strange people was to demand Enola for his
-wife.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLIX.<br /> <span class='large'>THE DAY OF RESIS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>“The Day of Resis” had come, and long before
-the sun had shed its golden beams on the Temple of
-On, the people were astir. The tramp of many
-zebras and the rumbling of chariots could be faintly
-heard by the adventurers as they lay tossing on their
-couches, the night having brought them but little rest.
-They listened with bated breath to the sounds as they
-floated through the wide arches of the Temple, and
-wondered what the day would bring forth. That it
-would be fateful, was certain, for if they did not effect
-their escape, Enola would become the unwilling bride
-of the King of On; and what would be the subsequent
-events? Would they longer be held prisoners, or,
-would they be allowed to go and come as they saw
-fit?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But if they failed to get away before the eventful
-ceremony should take place, would there be any
-further inducement to leave this beautiful country?
-Would not Enola be the wife of Onrai, and would not
-the bonds be binding, having been welded by the laws
-of this country? Would she not still be the wife of
-Onrai, even if she should go back to civilization, and
-would it not be better for her to remain here with the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_386'>386</span>man whom she had been forced to marry? It was a
-difficult question to answer, and puzzled and troubled,
-the small party of adventurers rose, and after the morning
-bath, the last, they hoped, in the Temple, they repaired
-to the dining hall.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The night has been a disappointing one in every
-respect,” said Mr. Graham, as he took a seat by the
-side of Enola, “for I had hoped that after the suspense
-and failure of the early evening, we would at least forget
-for awhile in our sleep. But I see in the haggard
-faces about me traces of unrest, and I know that we
-have all spent the night in worrying and in wondering
-as to what the day would bring forth.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The night has been a fearful one to me,” said
-Enola; “but it has seemed all too short, for I could
-remember only that with its darkness went all hope of
-mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, Enola,” said Mr. Bruce, “do not give up
-entirely. Remember that it is on the eve of this day
-that you are to marry the King, and there are many
-hours left us yet in which to escape.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Enola, “I feel that all hope is gone.
-We will be the central figures of attraction to-day and
-all eyes will be upon us, thus making it an impossibility
-to escape.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I differ with you,” said Mr. Bruce, “for we have
-learned that this is the greatest of all days with these
-people, and the ceremonies of the day may call attention
-from us, thus giving us a chance to get away.
-Listen, even now, the avenues seem crowded with the
-chariots and zebras, and the sandaled feet of the multitude
-can be heard shuffling over the hard pavement.
-The day for me has the greatest interest, for I long to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_387'>387</span>fathom its mysteries, but not at the expense of your
-happiness, Enola, and I will watch every chance, as
-will all of us, to get you away from the hateful ceremony.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I had forgotten, in our trouble,” said Mr. Graham,
-“that there were secrets to be learned to-day. What
-can they be?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They must be of an exceedingly happy nature,”
-said Harry, “for I have seen the faces of those who
-have spoken of the day, light up as if with pleasurable
-anticipation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “Onrai has said that the day
-was the happiest one in the lives of the people, and
-that must mean a great deal, for these people are
-always happy, or, have been so until the news reached
-them of the great battle and eruption. Hark,” and
-as Mr. Bruce ceased speaking, a song rose on the morning
-air so exquisitely beautiful and grand, that our
-friends almost held their breath, for fear of losing
-one note of its delightful harmony. It rose and fell
-one moment loud and powerful, ringing through the
-entrance and wide hall of the Temple, and the next
-dying away almost to a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah,” said Enola, as the voices ceased, “it is beautiful.
-Oh, why could not Onrai have left me in peace,
-so that we might enjoy even yet awhile the delights
-of this grand country and people.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is indeed too bad,” said Mr. Bruce. “But has
-Sedai been here this morning?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” said Mr. Graham, “but it is time that he
-was. Perhaps he is afraid of losing a chance for escape
-by coming to us,” but the curtain moves at this moment
-and Sedai enters.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_388'>388</span>“We were just speaking of you, Sedai,” said Mr.
-Bruce. “What are the chances this morning?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Better, I think,” replied Sedai. “I was sitting
-near the stables last night waiting for the watch to
-sleep, when Ephmer came to me and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘Listen, Sedai, your friends of the far-away country
-would escape, for the fair one whom Onrai the King,
-would marry, can see no happiness in becoming his
-wife. To-morrow is the Day of Resis, and on that day
-is the first King of On to marry. But you would
-escape. I have seen the look of fear and suspense on
-the faces of your friends since they have again arrived
-in the city, and I have seen you here day and night
-watching closely the movements of the men who have
-been placed to watch your friends. Now listen. I
-have longed to leave my native land and go to that
-far-away country, of which I have heard you speak, and
-I will help you escape. I only ask that you take me
-with you, and also my friend Shal, of the underground
-world. I cannot promise to effect your escape, but I
-will do all in my power to help you. Will you accept
-my help?’</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I looked at the Onian for a moment, but did not
-answer, for fear that if I should admit that we were
-trying to escape, he would report the matter to the
-King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t mistrust me,” he continued, “and I decided
-to accept his offer. Have I done right?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have,” said Mr. Bruce, “and if this man can
-help us, he shall see that great world beyond the cliffs
-to which he has so longed to go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Tis well,” said Sedai, “Ephmer will be near you
-to-day during the ceremonies and will explain all to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_389'>389</span>you. I will immediately notify you if an opportunity
-affords for our escape,” and with this Sedai withdrew.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Onrai was heard outside a moment later, and very
-shortly he came into the apartment. His face wore
-a happy smile, as he walked to where Enola was sitting,
-and taking her hand, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Greeting, Enola. This is the greatest day of my
-life and the happiest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The day seems strange to me,” said Enola.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why strange, Enola,” asked Onrai, his face
-troubled for the moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because I cannot realize that in this strange land,
-so far from our own, and where the customs are so
-very different, I have found the one whom I am to
-marry, and that on this day I am to become his wife.
-I cannot accustom myself to the idea, that is all,” and
-Enola tried to smile, knowing that she must still keep
-up the miserable farce in order to avert suspicion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The strangeness will wear off with the day’s ceremonies,”
-said Onrai, “and now the ceremonies are
-about to commence, and places on the terrace are
-awaiting you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then we are about to learn the day’s mysteries,”
-said Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They are mysteries to you only; to my people,
-the day’s ceremonies are well-known,” said the King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then why are they never mentioned?” questioned
-Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because they are too sacred,” answered Onrai,
-solemnly, as he left the apartment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, they are mysteries still,” said Mr. Bruce, after
-the King had left. “Not even at this late hour will he
-explain them to us, but leaves us to learn them ourselves,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_390'>390</span>and that we are willing to do. Let us go to
-the terrace and there learn what it is which makes the
-day one of mystery.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They all now left the dining hall and stepped into
-the large court. Here attendants were awaiting to
-conduct them to their seats. Ephmer, who was one
-of these, stepped up as they approached, and asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Has Sedai spoken?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Mr. Bruce, “and we have consented.
-You will not fail us?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I shall do all in my power,” and saying this, Ephmer
-led the way to the terrace where they found seats
-awaiting them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The scene which now met the gaze of the adventurers
-was strange, yet grand. The populace thronged
-the court of the Temple, the garden, the avenues leading
-to it, and even the tops of the villas were crowded
-with the happy-looking people. Before many of the
-villas could be seen a square pile of wood about ten feet
-high. These had been placed during the night, and
-our friends could but wonder what part these played
-in the ceremonies of the day. Turning to Ephmer,
-Mr. Bruce asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why are these piles of wood placed before some
-villas and not before others?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In these villas with the biers before them, live the
-principal participants in to-day’s ceremonies,” answered
-Ephmer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What did you call these? Biers?” asked Mr.
-Bruce, with a puzzled look on his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” answered Ephmer, “for on these are burned
-the bodies of those who have this day met their Day
-of Resis.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_391'>391</span>“Burned? Day of Resis? Why, what do you
-mean, man?” asked Mr. Bruce, and they all looked at
-the man with troubled faces.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Only this,” said Ephmer, “that all Onians who
-have reached the age of sixty-five, since this day last
-year, will to-day be put to death by the hand of the
-King.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Our friends looked at the Onian, as he said this, with
-fearful wonderment depicted in their faces. Could it
-be that the man told the truth? Could this race of
-enlightened people do this thing?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But why are these put to death?” asked Mr. Bruce,
-as soon as he could find his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because they have reached that time when old age
-creeps on; and having reached this age, too, they have
-earned the reward which is rightfully theirs, by having
-lived a sinless life,” answered Ephmer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But why should you kill a man because he has
-seen his best days?” asked Mr. Bruce, now interested in
-spite of himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because we would leave none but the strong and
-vigorous to bring children into our world, and, also,
-because our world would become over-populated if the
-old were not killed. The same law governs our domestic
-animals.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And this, then, was the secret, or one of the secrets
-of the great height, strength and healthfulness of this
-people, and it also explained the absence of all aged
-people in this strange land. Yes, such a law could
-have but this effect, but at what a cost was the beautiful
-stature and healthfulness acquired?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But do not those who are to be killed, object?”
-asked Mr. Bruce.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_392'>392</span>“Never,” answered Ephmer, “it is the happiest day
-of their lives. Look at them. The ceremonies are
-about to commence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot stand this,” said Mrs. Graham, and she
-and Nellie rising, entered the Temple. Enola also
-arose intending to go to her apartment, but at that
-moment the King came on to the terrace wearing a
-long, crimson robe, and seeing Enola about to retire,
-said to her: “It is important that you witness the
-scenes of the day, because hereafter, you will have to
-perform the same duties which I am this day performing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot look on this wholesale murder,” answered
-Enola, with a shudder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is the law,” replied Onrai, as he moved away.
-And Enola again sank into her seat. It was fearful,
-but what could she or the others do? Nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly the blare of a trumpet sounded over the
-city, and the vast throng burst forth in a weird chant
-which rose and fell in great waves of sound, and almost
-stopped the beating of the heart with its impressive
-solemnity. Up the long avenue came a procession
-of men and women, and across the wrist of each
-was the gold chain and peculiar diamond, which
-symbolized the bloody ending of the day. A white
-bag of goat skin was suspended by a silken cord which
-encircled the wrist just below the gold band. All
-were in spotless white with golden girdles and fillets
-of gold about their brows.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The King, in a crimson robe, accompanied by
-seven priests, took his place in the court and faced the
-line of the doomed. At the sound of another trumpet
-the singing ceased. An onyx pedestal was brought
-from the Temple and placed before the King. On the
-pedestal was a shallow basin of gold.</p>
-
-<div class='figcenter id003'>
-<img src='images/i_392fp.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-<div class='ic003'>
-<p>“Again the flashing dagger was raised in the air.”—<i>Page <a href='#Page_393'>393</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_393'>393</span>At a given signal the lines of the doomed moved
-forward, keeping the right foot foremost, and again
-the chant of the multitude rose higher and higher,
-growing wilder and wilder, until the front rank of the
-victims was ranged before the King. He drew from
-his girdle a glittering dagger, that flashed in the sunlight
-when he held it aloft, as the doomed men and
-women thrust out their naked wrists over the golden
-basin. One swift stroke severed the main artery and
-the goat-skin bag was instantly drawn up and tied
-above the wound, scarcely a drop of blood falling into
-the shallow golden vessel on the pedestal.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again the flashing dagger was raised in the air as two
-members of each victim’s family stepped from the
-throng and assisted the doomed into the chariot which
-stood waiting. On the faces of the vast throng no
-horror was depicted, but rather the intent look of
-serious and solemn interest. Even upon the faces of
-the victims a beatified look of hopeful expectancy,
-was the only evidence that they were not to mingle
-again with their fellow-men, in the duties and pleasures
-of the Land of On.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For a time Enola was enabled to keep her face
-turned away from the actual sight of the massacre,
-but under the influence of that wonderful music, she
-at last stole one brief glance at the King as the gleaming
-knife crossed the wrist of a victim, and from that
-time until the long procession had passed the pedestal
-of death, she was held as if by the glittering eyes of a
-serpent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the last man received his death-thrust, the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_394'>394</span>King dropped the knife into the basin, and holding
-aloft both hands, intoned the words of the ceremony
-which were supposed to justify the deeds of the day,
-and speed the departing souls into the sublimity of
-the hereafter. At last Mr. Bruce exclaimed hoarsely:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is over!” and he looked up just in time to see
-Enola fall fainting into Harry’s arms. She was immediately
-borne to her apartments and was soon revived.
-As the men left the terrace, there was not a
-sign to show that the day had been one of dreadful
-tragedies. No drop of blood, no confusion. Simply
-the orderly dispersing of the multitude engaged in
-low-toned conversation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All now met in Mr. Bruce’s rooms and breathlessly
-awaited Sedai’s arrival. The news which he would
-bring from the stables would decide how much or how
-little of hope they might have, for effecting an escape
-before Onrai should come.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly the curtain stirred and Sedai’s face appeared.
-He beckoned to them to follow, and noiselessly
-they crossed the starlit terrace and entered the
-garden. Here they found Ephmer and Shal awaiting
-them with zebras. Enola was about to mount her
-zebra when she heard a peculiar cry, and turning she
-saw the great white body of Gip looming up in the
-half light and coming toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Gip,” she cried, “this is my only regret in
-leaving On. I cannot take you with me,” and patting
-the great noble beast, which had saved her life on two
-different occasions and the lives of her friends, she
-turned and mounted her zebra and rode away with
-tears streaming from her eyes, afraid to look back,
-fearful of the pitiful look on Gip’s face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_395'>395</span>Cautiously they picked their way through the park
-toward the road to the mountains. Along this road,
-which was used only for bringing the fodder for the
-stables, Sedai led them, explaining that it joined the
-main road leading to the cave a short distance from
-the city. As soon as they reached the main road they
-urged on their zebras with all speed, for, turning to
-look back at the city, they could see torches glittering
-about rapidly and could hear a confused murmur of
-sounds which indicated that their escape had been detected.
-Here and there a steady flame shooting
-straight into the air, denoted the burning funeral
-pyres of the day’s victims. Sedai motioned them to
-stop for a moment, and listening intently, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We are pursued.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On they flew again over the hard road, through bits
-of forest, past the shores of small lakes and over green
-fields. Far ahead they could see the dark forest on
-the side of the mountain. Through the gate of the
-mighty wall they sped, and Sedai dismounted to
-hastily close and barricade it from the inside. Their
-pursuers would have to climb the wall, or seek one of
-the other gates and every moment was precious now.
-They crossed the bridge and plunged into the woods
-that intervened between them and the cave. The
-roar of a lion was heard to the right, but they did not
-hesitate.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The eastern horizon was growing brighter and
-brighter, and by the time they had passed the forest,
-the moon had risen high above the mountains. The
-rapid gallop of zebras could be heard and looking
-back, they saw a large body of mounted men struggling
-at the barricaded gate. Finding the gate impassable,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_396'>396</span>they formed a pyramid and in this way the men
-reached the top of the wall, and then used ropes to let
-themselves down into the Hunting Reserve.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Harry first reached the secret door, but strove in
-vain to find the hidden spring. The pursuers were
-gaining upon them, and Enola, urging her zebra forward,
-sprang to the ground and, grasping the lever,
-pressed hard on it, but the stone door of the cave
-failed to open. Her heart sank within her. She remembered
-the last revolution it had made, and the
-difficulty with which she had rescued Sedai from its
-stony embrace. Could it be that the mechanism was
-then injured? The mighty spring broken, perhaps?
-She reeled for a second, as the dreadful possibility
-suggested itself to her. Then seizing Harry’s rifle
-she dashed its butt against the lever and the heavy
-stone door began to revolve.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sedai, seizing a heavy branch, struck the zebra upon
-which Mrs. Graham was riding, and the frightened
-animal sprang through the opening, followed by the
-one ridden by Nellie. One after another they were
-driven through, and as the leaders of the pursuing
-party dashed into the open glade, Sedai drove the
-last unmounted zebra through the opening. Springing
-to the ground, the foremost of the pursuers sought
-to grasp Sedai, but with a swing of his club about his
-head, the assailant was laid low, and Sedai disappeared.
-Through the crack of the door, as it swung shut, came
-a heart-rending cry of “Enola, Enola,” from the
-King.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Once more, with pale faces and beating hearts, the
-explorers stood within the great subterranean cavern,
-which had so nearly been their tomb, but which now
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_397'>397</span>was a place of refuge. The hidden City of On had
-been discovered, its history and its people were known
-to them, the object of their journey had been accomplished.</p>
-
-<p class='c009'>After the party had rested, they took their way
-across the cave, and with the zebras this was found
-easy to do. These trained animals easily leaped across
-the break in the bridge, but when it came to the small
-entrance at the opposite side of the cave, it was feared
-that they would have to be left here to die, as the hole
-was too small for them to pass through. Our friends
-were greatly grieved to think that they would have to
-leave these noble beasts to die in such a cruel way, in
-the cave, but there seemed no other alternative, and they
-dismounted and passed through the hole, but they had
-not calculated on the training of these animals, and
-they had hardly stepped into the open air, when one
-of the zebras came crawling through on his haunches,
-and shortly after the others followed him. These
-had been trained to do this, and our friends now remembered
-having seen them perform this trick on the night
-preceding the Day of Resis.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It took them but a short time to reach the village
-of Umsaga, where they found the carriers still waiting
-for them, and in a few weeks they were again in Zanzibar,
-and had no difficulty in getting passage to England,
-from where they sailed for home.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A few weeks after their arrival in New York, a
-double wedding was announced, and on the evening of
-the happy day, carriage after carriage rolled to the
-door of the Graham mansion, depositing richly clad
-women and courtly men. Under an arch of flowers, a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_398'>398</span>little later, stood four people, arrayed in strange robes
-of silk, with bands of gold binding their brows and
-with girdles of gold about their waists.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the costume of the Land of On, the double wedding
-was in progress, and in the faces of the women
-could be read a story of trust and confidence and love
-supreme, and in those of the men, the satisfaction of
-proud manhood fitly crowned.</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>THE END.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>MRS. MARY J. HOLMES’ NOVELS.</div>
- <div class='c003'>Over a MILLION Sold.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>As a writer of domestic stories, which are extremely interesting, Mrs. Mary
-Holmes is unrivalled. Her characters are true to life, quaint, and admirable.</p>
-
-<ul class='index'>
- <li class='c011'>Tempest and Sunshine.</li>
- <li class='c011'>English Orphans.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Homestead on the Hillside.</li>
- <li class='c011'>’Lena Rivers.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Meadow Brook.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Dora Deane.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Cousin Maude.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Marian Grey.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Edith Lyle.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Daisy Thornton.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Chateau D’Or.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Queenie Hetherton.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Darkness and Daylight.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Hugh Worthington.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Cameron Pride.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Rose Mather.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Ethelyn’s Mistake.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Millbank.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Edna Browning.</li>
- <li class='c011'>West Lawn.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Mildred.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Forrest House.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Madeline.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Christmas Stories.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Bessie’s Fortune.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Gretchen.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Marguerite.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Dr. Hathern’s Daughters. (<i>New.</i>)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price $1.50 per Vol.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>AUGUSTA J. EVANS’</div>
- <div class='c003'>MAGNIFICENT NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<ul class='index'>
- <li class='c011'>Beulah, $1.75</li>
- <li class='c011'>St. Elmo, $2.00</li>
- <li class='c011'>Inez, $1.75</li>
- <li class='c011'>Macaria, $1.75</li>
- <li class='c011'>Vashti, $2.00</li>
- <li class='c011'>Infelice, $2.00</li>
- <li class='c011'>At the Mercy of Tiberius (<i>New</i>), $2.00.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The author’s style is beautiful, chaste, and elegant. Her ideas are clothed
-in the most fascinating imagery, and her power of delineating character is truly
-remarkable.”</p>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>MARION HARLAND’S</div>
- <div class='c003'>SPLENDID NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<ul class='index'>
- <li class='c011'>Alone.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Hidden Path.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Moss Side.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Nemesis.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Miriam.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Sunny Bank.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Ruby’s Husband.</li>
- <li class='c011'>At Last.</li>
- <li class='c011'>My Little Love.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Phemie’s Temptation.</li>
- <li class='c011'>The Empty Heart.</li>
- <li class='c011'>From My Youth Up.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Helen Gardner.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Husbands and Homes.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Jessamine.</li>
- <li class='c011'>True as Steel.</li>
-</ul>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price $1.50 per Vol.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Marion Harland understands the art of constructing a plot which will gain
-the attention of the reader at the beginning, and keep up the interest to the last
-page.”</p>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>MAY AGNES FLEMING’S</div>
- <div class='c003'>POPULAR NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<ul class='index'>
- <li class='c011'>Silent and True.</li>
- <li class='c011'>A Wonderful Woman.</li>
- <li class='c011'>A Terrible Secret.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Norine’s Revenge.</li>
- <li class='c011'>A Mad Marriage.</li>
- <li class='c011'>One Night’s Mystery.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Kate Danton.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Guy Earlscourt’s Wife.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Heir of Charlton.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Carried by Storm.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Lost for a Woman.</li>
- <li class='c011'>A Wife’s Tragedy.</li>
- <li class='c011'>A Changed Heart.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Pride and Passion.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Sharing Her Crime.</li>
- <li class='c011'>A Wronged Wife.</li>
- <li class='c011'>Maude Percy’s Secret.</li>
- <li class='c011'>The Actress’ Daughter.</li>
- <li class='c011'>The Queen of the Isle.</li>
- <li class='c011'>The Midnight Queen. (<i>New.</i>)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price $1.50 per Vol.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mrs. Fleming’s stories are growing more and more popular every day. These
-life-like conversations, flashes of wit, constantly varying scenes and deeply
-interesting plots, combine to place their author in the very first rank of Modern
-Novelists.”</p>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>JULIE P. SMITH’S NOVELS</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Widow Goldsmith’s Daughter</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Chris and Otho</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Ten Old Maids</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Lucy</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>His Young Wife</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Widower</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Married Belle</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Courting and Farming</td>
- <td class='c012'>50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Kiss and be Friends</td>
- <td class='c012'>50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Blossom Bud</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>JOHN ESTEN COOKE’S WORKS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Surry of Eagle’s Nest</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Fairfax</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Hilt to Hilt</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Beatrice Hallam</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Leather and Silk</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Miss Bennybel</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Out of the Foam</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Hammer and Rapier</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Mohun</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Captain Ralph</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Col. Ross of Piedmont</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Robert E. Lee</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Stonewall Jackson</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Her Majesty the Queen</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>CELIA E. GARDNER’S NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Stolen Waters. (In verse)</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Broken Dreams. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Compensation. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>A Twisted Skein. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Tested</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Rich Medway</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>A Woman’s Wiles</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Terrace Roses</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Seraph—or Mortal? (New)</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>A. S. ROE’S NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>True to the Last</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>A Long Look Ahead</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Star and the Cloud</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>I’ve Been Thinking.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>How could He Help It</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Like and Unlike</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>To Love and Be Loved</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Time and Tide</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Woman Our Angel</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Looking Around</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Cloud on the Heart</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Resolution</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>CAPTAIN MAYNE REID’S WORKS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Scalp Hunters</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Rifle Rangers</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The War Trail</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Wood Rangers</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Wild Huntress</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Maroon</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Headless Horseman</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Rangers and Regulators</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The White Chief</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Tiger Hunter</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Hunter’s Feast</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Wild Life</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Osceola, the Seminole</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Quadroon</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The White Gauntlet</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Lost Leonore</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>POPULAR HAND-BOOKS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Habits of Good Society—The nice points of taste and good manners</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Art of Conversation—For those who wish to be agreeable talkers</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>The Arts of Writing, Reading and Speaking—For Self-Improvement</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Carelton’s Hand-Book of Popular Quotations</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>1000 Legal Don’ts—By Ingersoll Lockwood</td>
- <td class='c012'>75</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>600 Medical Don’ts—By Ferd. C. Valentine, M.D.</td>
- <td class='c012'>75</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>On the Chafing Dish—By Harriet P. Bailey</td>
- <td class='c012'>50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Pole on Whist</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Draw Poker without a Master</td>
- <td class='c012'>50</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>POPULAR NOVELS, COMIC BOOKS, ETC.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Les Miserables—Translated from the French. The only complete edition</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Stephen Lawrence—By Annie Edwardes</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Susan Fielding Do. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>A Woman of Fashion Do. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Archie Lovell Do. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Love (L’Amour)—English Translation from Michelet’s famous French work</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Woman (La Femme)—The Sequel to “L’Amour.” Do. Do.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Verdant Green—A racy English college story. With 200 comic illustrations</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Doctor Antonio—By Ruffini</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Beatrice Cenci—From the Italian</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Josh Billings His Complete Writings—With Biography, Steel Portrait, and 100 Ill.</td>
- <td class='c012'>2 00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Artemas Ward. Complete Comic Writings—With Biography, Portrait, and 50 Ill.</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 50</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>Children’s Fairy Geography—With hundreds of beautiful Illustrations</td>
- <td class='c012'>1 00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>AUGUSTA J. EVANS’</div>
- <div class='c003'>MAGNIFICENT NOVELS.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<table class='table1'>
-<colgroup>
-<col class='colwidth92' />
-<col class='colwidth7' />
-</colgroup>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>BEULAH,</td>
- <td class='c012'>$1.75</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>ST. ELMO,</td>
- <td class='c012'>2.00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>INEZ,</td>
- <td class='c012'>1.75</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>MACARIA,</td>
- <td class='c012'>1.75</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>VASHTI,</td>
- <td class='c012'>2.00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>INFELICE,</td>
- <td class='c012'>2.00</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c006'>AT THE MERCY OF TIBERIUS,</td>
- <td class='c012'>2.00</td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>A Prominent Critic says of these Novels:</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The author’s style is beautiful, chaste, and elegant.
-Her ideals are clothed in the most fascinating imagery, and
-her power of delineating character is truly remarkable. One
-of the marked and striking characteristics of each and all
-her works is the purity of sentiment which pervades every
-line, every page, and every chapter.”</p>
-
-<div class='section ph3'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>Mrs. Mary J. HOLMES’ Works.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<ul class='index'>
- <li class='c011'>TEMPEST AND SUNSHINE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>ENGLISH ORPHANS.</li>
- <li class='c011'>HOMESTEAD ON HILLSIDE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>’LENA RIVERS.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MEADOW BROOK.</li>
- <li class='c011'>DORA DEANE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>COUSIN MAUDE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MARIAN GREY.</li>
- <li class='c011'>EDITH LYLE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>DAISY THORNTON.</li>
- <li class='c011'>CHATEAU D’OR.</li>
- <li class='c011'>QUEENIE HETHERTON.</li>
- <li class='c011'>BESSIE’S FORTUNE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MARGUERITE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>DARKNESS AND DAYLIGHT.</li>
- <li class='c011'>HUGH WORTHINGTON.</li>
- <li class='c011'>CAMERON PRIDE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>ROSE MATHER.</li>
- <li class='c011'>ETHELYN’S MISTAKE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MILLBANK.</li>
- <li class='c011'>EDNA BROWNING.</li>
- <li class='c011'>WEST LAWN.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MILDRED.</li>
- <li class='c011'>FOREST HOUSE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MADELINE.</li>
- <li class='c011'>CHRISTMAS STORIES.</li>
- <li class='c011'>GRETCHEN.</li>
- <li class='c011'>DR. HATHERN’S DAUGHTERS.</li>
- <li class='c011'>MRS. HALLAM’S COMPANION. (<i>New</i>.)</li>
-</ul>
-
-<p class='c010'>OPINIONS OF THE PRESS.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mrs. Holmes’ stories are universally read. Her admirers are numberless.
-She is in many respects without a rival in the world of fiction. Her
-characters are always life-like, and she makes them talk and act like human
-beings, subject to the same emotions, swayed by the same passions, and
-actuated by the same motives which are common among men and women
-of every-day existence. Mrs. Holmes is very happy in portraying domestic
-life. Old and young peruse her stories with great delight, for she writes in
-a style that all can comprehend.”—<cite>New York Weekly.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c010'>THE NORTH AMERICAN REVIEW, vol. 81, page 557, says of Mrs.
-Mary J. Holmes’ novel “English Orphans”: “With this novel of Mrs.
-Holmes’ we have been charmed, and so have a pretty numerous circle of
-discriminating readers to whom we have lent it. The characterization is
-exquisite, especially so far as concerns rural and village life, of which
-there are some pictures that deserve to be hung up in perpetual memory of
-types of humanity fast becoming extinct. The dialogues are generally
-brief, pointed, and appropriate. The plot seems simple, so easily and naturally
-is it developed and consummated. Moreover, the story thus gracefully
-constructed and written, inculcates without obtruding, but only pure
-Christian morality in general, but, with especial point and power, the
-dependence of true success on character, and of true respectability on
-merit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mrs. Holmes’ stories are all of a domestic character, and their interest,
-therefore, is not so intense as if they were more highly seasoned with sensationalism,
-but it is of a healthy and abiding character. The interest in
-her tales begins at once, and is maintained to the close. Her sentiments
-are so sound, her sympathies so warm and ready, and her knowledge of
-manners, character, and the varied incidents of ordinary life is so thorough,
-that she would find it difficult to write any other than an excellent tale if
-she were to try it.”—<cite>Boston Banner.</cite></p>
-
-<p class='c010'>☞ The volumes are all handsomely printed and bound in cloth, sold
-everywhere, and sent by mail, <i>postage free</i>, on receipt of price [$1.50 each].</p>
-
-<div class='figleft id004'>
-<img src='images/i_logo.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>G. W. DILLINGHAM CO., Publishers,</div>
- <div>33 WEST 23d STREET, NEW YORK.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003' />
-</div>
-<div class='tnotes x-ebookmaker'>
-
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c008'>
- <div>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
- <ol class='ol_1 c002'>
- <li>Silently corrected obvious typographical errors and variations in spelling.
-
- </li>
- <li>Retained archaic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings as printed.
- </li>
- </ol>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DAY OF RESIS ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.57c on 2022-02-23 06:22:56 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ea72aec..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_154fp.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_154fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e28bfd9..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_154fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_208fp.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_208fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 23c1ba6..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_208fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_292fp.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_292fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8f071d6..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_292fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_338fp.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_338fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 353e74f..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_338fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_392fp.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_392fp.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2d9132e..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_392fp.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6b33e60..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67479-h/images/i_logo.jpg b/old/67479-h/images/i_logo.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ee6a568..0000000
--- a/old/67479-h/images/i_logo.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ